This is a modern-English version of King Arthur and the Knights of the Round Table, originally written by Malory, Thomas, Sir. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.


KING ARTHUR

and the Knights of the Round Table

EDITED BY RUPERT S. HOLLAND

GROSSET & DUNLAP

Publishers NEW YORK

Copyright, 1919, by
George W. Jacobs & Company

Printed in the United States of America


"This girdle, lords," said she, "is made for the most part of mine own hair, which, while I was yet in the world, I loved full well."


CONTENTS


INTRODUCTION

King Arthur and the Knights of the Round Table! What magic is in the words! How they carry us straight to the days of chivalry, to the witchcraft of Merlin, to the wonderful deeds of Lancelot and Perceval and Galahad, to the Quest for the Holy Grail, to all that "glorious company, the flower of men," as Tennyson has called the king and his companions! Down through the ages the stories have come to us, one of the few great romances which, like the tales of Homer, are as fresh and vivid to-day as when men first recited them in court and camp and cottage. Other great kings and paladins are lost in the dim shadows of long-past centuries, but Arthur still reigns in Camelot and his knights still ride forth to seek the Grail.

King Arthur and the Knights of the Round Table! What magic is in these words! They take us right back to the days of chivalry, to Merlin's witchcraft, to the amazing feats of Lancelot, Perceval, and Galahad, to the Quest for the Holy Grail, to all that "glorious company, the flower of men," as Tennyson described the king and his friends! Over the ages, the stories have reached us, one of the few great romances which, like Homer's tales, feel as fresh and vivid today as when they were first told in courts, camps, and cottages. Other great kings and heroes are lost in the distant shadows of history, but Arthur still reigns in Camelot, and his knights still set out to find the Grail.

"No little thing shall be
"No small thing shall be
The gentle music of the bygone years,
The soft music of the past,
Long past to us with all their hopes and fears."
"Long gone from us with all their hopes and fears."

So wrote the poet William Morris in The Earthly Paradise. And surely it is no small debt of gratitude we owe the troubadours and chroniclers and poets who through many centuries have sung of Arthur and his champions, each adding to the song the gifts of his own imagination, so building from simple folk-tales one of the most magnificent and moving stories in all literature.

So wrote the poet William Morris in The Earthly Paradise. And surely we owe a huge debt of gratitude to the troubadours, chroniclers, and poets who, over many centuries, have celebrated Arthur and his heroes, each contributing their own imaginative gifts to the tale, transforming simple folk stories into one of the most magnificent and moving narratives in all literature.

This debt perhaps we owe in greatest measure to three men; to Chrétien de Troies, a Frenchman, who in the twelfth century put many of the old Arthurian legends into verse; to Sir Thomas Malory, who first wrote out most of the stories in English prose, and whose book, the Morte Darthur, was printed by William Caxton, the first English printer, in 1485; and to Alfred, Lord Tennyson, who in his series of poems entitled the Idylls of the King retold the legends in new and beautiful guise in the nineteenth century.

This debt is largely owed to three men: Chrétien de Troyes, a Frenchman who in the twelfth century turned many of the old Arthurian legends into verse; Sir Thomas Malory, who was the first to write most of the stories in English prose, with his book, the Morte Darthur, being printed by William Caxton, the first English printer, in 1485; and Alfred, Lord Tennyson, who in the nineteenth century retold the legends in a new and beautiful way through his series of poems called the Idylls of the King.

The history of Arthur is so shrouded in the mists of early England that it is difficult to tell exactly who and what he was. There probably was an actual Arthur, who lived in the island of Britain in the sixth century, but probably he was not a king nor even a prince. It seems most likely that he was a chieftain who led his countrymen to victory against the invading English about the year 500. So proud were his countrymen of his victories that they began to invent imaginary stories of his prowess to add to the fame of their hero, just as among all peoples legends soon spring up about the name of a great leader. As each man told the feats of Arthur he contributed those details that appealed most to his own fancy and each was apt to think of the hero as a man of his own time, dressing and speaking and living as his own kings and princes did, with the result that when we come to the twelfth century we find Geoffrey of Monmouth, in his History of the Kings of Britain, describing Arthur no longer as a half-barbarous Briton, wearing rude armor, his arms and legs bare, but instead as a most Christian king, the flower of mediæval chivalry, decked out in all the gorgeous trappings of a knight of the Crusades.

The story of Arthur is so wrapped in the mists of early England that it’s hard to know exactly who he was or what he represented. There likely was a real Arthur who lived on the island of Britain in the sixth century, but he probably wasn't a king or even a prince. It seems most likely that he was a chieftain who led his people to victory against the invading English around the year 500. His countrymen were so proud of his victories that they started to create fanciful stories about his bravery to enhance the reputation of their hero, just as legends often emerge around great leaders in every culture. As each person recounted Arthur's exploits, they added details that resonated most with them personally, and each would picture the hero as someone from their own time, dressed and acting like their own kings and princes. This led to Geoffrey of Monmouth, in his History of the Kings of Britain, depicting Arthur in the twelfth century not as a rough Briton in crude armor, with bare arms and legs, but as a highly Christian king, the epitome of medieval chivalry, adorned in all the lavish gear of a knight of the Crusades.

As the story of Arthur grew it attracted to itself popular legends of all kinds. Its roots were in Britain and the chief threads in its fabric remained British-Celtic. The next most important threads were those that were added by the Celtic chroniclers of Ireland. Then stories that were not Celtic at all were woven into the legend, some from Germanic sources, which the Saxons or the descendants of the Franks may have contributed, and others that came from the Orient, which may have been brought back from the East by men returning from the Crusades. And if it was the Celts who gave us the most of the material for the stories of Arthur it was the French poets who first wrote out the stories and gave them enduring form.

As the tale of Arthur expanded, it drew in all sorts of popular legends. Its origins were in Britain, and the main elements of its story remained British-Celtic. The next most significant contributions came from the Celtic chroniclers of Ireland. Additionally, non-Celtic stories were woven into the legend, including some from Germanic sources that the Saxons or descendants of the Franks may have contributed, along with others from the East that might have been brought back by men returning from the Crusades. While the Celts provided much of the material for the Arthurian stories, it was the French poets who were the first to write them down and give them lasting form.

It was the Frenchman, Chrétien de Troies, who lived at the courts of Champagne and of Flanders, who put the old legends into verse for the pleasure of the noble lords and ladies that were his patrons. He composed six Arthurian poems. The first, which was written about 1160 or earlier, related the story of Tristram. The next was called Érec et Énide, and told some of the adventures that were later used by Tennyson in his Geraint and Enid. The third was Cligès, a poem that has little to do with the stories of Arthur and his knights as we have them. Next came the Conte de la Charrette, or Le Chevalier de la Charrette, which set forth the love of Lancelot and Guinevere. Then followed Yvain, or Le Chevalier au Lion, and finally came Perceval, or Le Conte du Graal, which gives the first account of the Holy Grail.

It was the Frenchman, Chrétien de Troyes, who lived at the courts of Champagne and Flanders, who put the old legends into verse for the enjoyment of the noble lords and ladies who were his patrons. He wrote six Arthurian poems. The first, which was composed around 1160 or earlier, told the story of Tristram. The next was called Érec et Énide, which narrated some of the adventures that were later used by Tennyson in his Geraint and Enid. The third was Cligès, a poem that has little to do with the stories of Arthur and his knights as we know them. Next came the Conte de la Charrette, or Le Chevalier de la Charrette, which presented the love story of Lancelot and Guinevere. After that was Yvain, or Le Chevalier au Lion, and finally came Perceval, or Le Conte du Graal, which gives the first account of the Holy Grail.

None of these stories are to be found in the work of Geoffrey of Monmouth, who had written earlier in Latin, nor in any of the so-called chronicles. It was Chrétien who took the old folk-tales that men had been telling each other for centuries and put them into sprightly verse for the entertainment of his lords and ladies. He fashioned the stories according to the taste of his own gay courts, and so Arthur and his Queen Guinevere, Lancelot, Perceval and the other knights became far more like French people of the twelfth century than like Britons of the sixth. And in introducing the Holy Grail, that sacred and mystic cup that was supposed to hold drops of the blood of Christ and to have been carried to England by Joseph of Arimathea, Chrétien added to the Arthurian legends an old religious story that had had nothing to do with Arthur originally.

None of these stories can be found in the work of Geoffrey of Monmouth, who wrote earlier in Latin, or in any of the so-called chronicles. It was Chrétien who took the old folk tales that people had been sharing for centuries and turned them into lively verse for the entertainment of his lords and ladies. He shaped the stories to fit the tastes of his lively courts, making Arthur and his Queen Guinevere, Lancelot, Perceval, and the other knights seem more like twelfth-century French people than like sixth-century Britons. By introducing the Holy Grail, that sacred and mystic cup believed to hold drops of Christ's blood and said to have been brought to England by Joseph of Arimathea, Chrétien incorporated into the Arthurian legends an ancient religious story that originally had nothing to do with Arthur.

From this point in its history that sturdy ancient English oak, the original story of Arthur and his knights, an account mainly of warlike adventures, sent forth four new branches that have now become part and parcel of the parent legend. These four branches are the story of Merlin, the story of Lancelot, the story of the Holy Grail, and the story of Tristram and Iseult. Some of the writers who came after Chrétien took one of these stories, some another, each enlarging his theme according to his own taste, until each story was the center of a large number of new and romantic offshoots. Practically all of them, however, were bound together by the thread that led from the court of the great King Arthur at Camelot.

From this point in its history, that solid old English oak, the original tale of Arthur and his knights, which mainly focused on military adventures, sent out four new branches that have now become integral to the main legend. These four branches are the tales of Merlin, Lancelot, the Holy Grail, and Tristram and Iseult. Some writers who followed Chrétien picked up one of these stories or another, each expanding their narrative based on their own preferences, until each story became the centerpiece of numerous new and romantic offshoots. Nearly all of them, however, were connected by the thread that led back to the court of the great King Arthur at Camelot.

The story of Merlin, that man of magic, is the least important of the four branches, though Merlin is still an intensely interesting figure in the story of Arthur that we read to-day. The story of Lancelot was to prove very important; starting as a romance that had very little connection with Arthur, it became with Malory and Tennyson the real center of interest of the plot. The story of the Holy Grail proved almost equally important. In the earliest accounts of this Perceval was the knight chosen above all others to reach the Grail Castle, but Perceval was too rough and worldly a knight to suit the taste of the monks who wrote out the legends and so they created Galahad to take his place as their own ideal of perfection. And into these adventures are woven some of the tales of Sir Gawain, among them the delightful story of Gawain and the Little Maid with the Narrow Sleeves. To the legend of Perceval, Wolfram von Eschenbach, a Bavarian, added the story of the son of Perceval, or Parzival, as he calls him, the story of Lohengrin, the famous Swan-knight. Tristram and Iseult, the fourth of the branches, though less connected with Arthur than either Lancelot or the Holy Grail, became immensely popular with poets and remancers because of its great love story, and is to be found told again and again in widely varying forms all through the Middle Ages.

The story of Merlin, the man of magic, is the least significant of the four branches, but Merlin remains a fascinating figure in the story of Arthur that we read today. The tale of Lancelot became very important; starting as a romance with little connection to Arthur, it ultimately became the main focus of the plot with Malory and Tennyson. The story of the Holy Grail also proved almost equally significant. In the earliest versions, Perceval was the knight chosen above all others to find the Grail Castle, but he was too rough and worldly for the monks who recorded the legends, so they created Galahad to represent their ideal of perfection. Additionally, intertwined with these adventures are some tales of Sir Gawain, including the charming story of Gawain and the Little Maid with the Narrow Sleeves. The legend of Perceval was expanded by Wolfram von Eschenbach, a Bavarian, who added the story of Perceval's son, or Parzival as he calls him, and the story of Lohengrin, the famous Swan-knight. Tristram and Iseult, the fourth branch, while less connected to Arthur than Lancelot or the Holy Grail, became incredibly popular with poets and narrators because of its great love story, and it has been retold many times in various forms throughout the Middle Ages.

So we have seen that a British chieftain, winning a great battle in the year 500, became in time celebrated throughout Europe as the greatest king of romance. So far it was mainly the French who had made him famous. Layamon, an English priest, had written a poem in English concerning Arthur shortly after 1200, and told of the founding of the Round Table, but it was to be a considerable time yet before any English writer was to attempt what the French had already done. Chaucer told none of the Arthurian stories, though he placed the scene of his Wife of Bath's Tale at King Arthur's court. An unknown English poet wrote Sir Gawaine and the Green Knight somewhere between 1350 and 1375. It is not until we come to the Morte Darthur of Sir Thomas Malory, finished in 1469 or 1470, that we reach the next great step in the history of the legends since the time of Chrétien de Troies. But in Malory's story Arthur steps forth resplendent, the kingly figure that we have to-day.

So, we've seen that a British chieftain, who won a big battle in the year 500, eventually became famous throughout Europe as the greatest king of romance. Up until now, it was mainly the French who popularized him. Layamon, an English priest, wrote a poem in English about Arthur shortly after 1200, telling the story of the founding of the Round Table, but it would still be quite a while before any English writer attempted what the French had already accomplished. Chaucer didn’t tell any of the Arthurian stories, even though he set the scene of his Wife of Bath's Tale at King Arthur's court. An unknown English poet wrote Sir Gawaine and the Green Knight sometime between 1350 and 1375. It isn’t until we reach Sir Thomas Malory's Morte Darthur, completed in 1469 or 1470, that we hit the next major milestone in the history of the legends since the time of Chrétien de Troyes. In Malory's story, Arthur appears fully formed, the kingly figure that we recognize today.

Little is known concerning Sir Thomas Malory. He seems to have been a knight and country gentleman of Warwickshire, a member of Parliament in the reign of Henry VI, and later a soldier on the side of Lancaster in the Wars of the Roses. As a result of the victory of the party of York he had to retire from public life when Edward IV came to the throne, and lived quietly at his Warwickshire estate. He was familiar with life at court and with men-at-arms and he knew how popular the stories of King Arthur were becoming in England. So, being a man of education, he set to work to make a collection of the legends, using as his chief sources the French romances.

Little is known about Sir Thomas Malory. He appears to have been a knight and country gentleman from Warwickshire, a member of Parliament during Henry VI's reign, and later a soldier supporting Lancaster in the Wars of the Roses. After the York party's victory, he had to step back from public life when Edward IV took the throne, living quietly at his estate in Warwickshire. He was familiar with court life and men-at-arms and was aware of how popular the stories of King Arthur were becoming in England. So, being educated, he began to collect the legends, primarily using the French romances as his main sources.

Malory showed considerable originality in carrying out his plan. He made Arthur the central figure, taking the story of Merlin as an introduction to the birth of Arthur, instead of as a separate legend, and ending his account soon after the death of the king. He omitted a number of the older legends that had little to do with Arthur, many of them good stories, such as that of Sir Gawain and the Green Knight. He made the England of his Arthur something like the England he knew, and his people became real and living instead of fanciful figures out of a far-distant past. His descriptions are vivid and lively and his style so engaging that his work of the fifteenth century is much read to-day. Three characters stand out from all the rest, Arthur, Lancelot, and Guinevere, and these three became in all stories and poems subsequent to Malory's time the main figures of the legends.

Malory showed a lot of creativity in executing his plan. He made Arthur the main character, using the story of Merlin as an introduction to Arthur's birth instead of treating it as a separate tale, and he wrapped up his narrative shortly after the king's death. He left out several older legends that weren't closely related to Arthur, many of which were great stories, like that of Sir Gawain and the Green Knight. He portrayed the England of his Arthur to be somewhat like the England he knew, making his characters feel real and alive rather than just fanciful figures from a distant past. His descriptions are vivid and lively, and his style is so engaging that his work from the fifteenth century is still widely read today. Three characters stand out above the rest: Arthur, Lancelot, and Guinevere, and these three became the central figures in all the stories and poems following Malory's era.

Matthew Arnold attributed to Homer three great epic traits, swiftness, simplicity, and nobility. It is these three characteristics that have made the Morte Darthur so deservedly famous.

Matthew Arnold credited Homer with three key epic qualities: speed, simplicity, and dignity. These three traits are what have made the Morte Darthur so well-known and respected.

With the printing of Malory's book by the first English printer, William Caxton, in 1485, we come to the end of the Middle Ages in literature. Manuscripts written out laboriously by monks and clerks were now to give way to the printed page. The age of Elizabeth was less than a century away, one of the golden ages of the poets. Yet few of the Elizabethans touched on the story of Arthur. The main exception was Edmund Spenser, who made Prince Arthur the hero of his great poem The Faerie Queene, but Spenser's Arthur and his knights and ladies have little in common with the figures in the old romances.

With the printing of Malory's book by the first English printer, William Caxton, in 1485, we reach the end of the Middle Ages in literature. Manuscripts painstakingly copied by monks and clerks were now being replaced by the printed page. The Elizabethan era was less than a century away, marking one of the golden ages of poetry. Yet, few of the Elizabethans focused on the story of Arthur. The main exception was Edmund Spenser, who made Prince Arthur the hero of his epic poem The Faerie Queene, but Spenser's Arthur, along with his knights and ladies, have little in common with the characters in the old romances.

The succeeding centuries, great as they were in English writers of genius, paid little attention to Arthur. Milton and Dryden made little use of the legends. Stories of ancient chivalry lost their vogue, novels were becoming popular and the poets chose themes closer to their own times and point of view. Not until the nineteenth century did Arthur come into his own again. Then the Victorian poets turned to him for inspiration. William Morris wrote The Defence of Guenevere, and a host of lesser poets tried their hands on similar themes. Swinburne told the story of Tristram of Lyonesse and the Tale of Balen, and James Russell Lowell composed his beautiful poem The Vision of Sir Launfal. Matthew Arnold wrote Tristram and Iseult. In 1850 Richard Wagner, the great German composer, produced his opera Lohengrin, and followed it with Tristan und Isolde and Parsifal. These tell the old stories in somewhat new form, and follow the early French romances rather than Malory.

The following centuries, despite being filled with brilliant English writers, paid little attention to Arthur. Milton and Dryden barely tapped into the legends. Stories of ancient chivalry lost their popularity; novels were gaining traction, and poets chose themes that resonated more with their own times and perspectives. It wasn't until the nineteenth century that Arthur regained prominence. Victorian poets sought inspiration from him. William Morris wrote The Defence of Guenevere, and many lesser poets explored similar themes. Swinburne narrated the tale of Tristram of Lyonesse and the Tale of Balen, while James Russell Lowell crafted his beautiful poem The Vision of Sir Launfal. Matthew Arnold penned Tristram and Iseult. In 1850, Richard Wagner, the renowned German composer, produced his opera Lohengrin, followed by Tristan und Isolde and Parsifal. These works reinterpreted the old stories in a somewhat new light and drew more from the early French romances than from Malory.

But the true descendant of Chrétien de Troies and Malory was Alfred Tennyson. The great work of this poet's life was his Idylls of the King, one of the finest achievements of English literature. He owed his inspiration chiefly to Malory. "The vision of Arthur as I have drawn him," Tennyson said to his son, "had come upon me when, little more than a boy, I first lighted upon Malory." He covered almost the entire field of the legends. The Idylls of the King are The Coming of Arthur, Geraint and Enid, Merlin and Vivien, Lancelot and Elaine, The Holy Grail, Pelleas and Ettarre, Balin and Balan, The Last Tournament, Guinevere, and The Passing of Arthur.

But the real descendant of Chrétien de Troyes and Malory was Alfred Tennyson. The most significant work of this poet's life was his Idylls of the King, one of the greatest achievements in English literature. He drew most of his inspiration from Malory. "The vision of Arthur as I have portrayed him," Tennyson told his son, "came to me when, just a little more than a boy, I first discovered Malory." He explored almost all aspects of the legends. The Idylls of the King include The Coming of Arthur, Geraint and Enid, Merlin and Vivien, Lancelot and Elaine, The Holy Grail, Pelleas and Ettarre, Balin and Balan, The Last Tournament, Guinevere, and The Passing of Arthur.

Tennyson gives to the stories far more allegory, far more philosophy than the early poets gave them. His age was interested in philosophy and so, as was the case with each of the earlier poets, Tennyson handled the legends after the fashion of his own times. In his pages we see the characters as actual men and women, subtly drawn, concerned with right and wrong far more than with mere knightly adventures. Arthur and Lancelot and Guinevere hold the center of the stage, and it is the fate of these three that provides the great moving motive of the poems.

Tennyson infuses the stories with much more allegory and philosophy than the earlier poets did. His era was focused on philosophy, and just like the poets before him, Tennyson shaped the legends in light of his own time. In his works, we see the characters as real people, intricately portrayed, grappling with issues of right and wrong rather than just knightly quests. Arthur, Lancelot, and Guinevere take the spotlight, and their destinies drive the central themes of the poems.

To Tennyson we owe the most nearly perfect version of the story that dates back to a dim and legendary England. What verse more beautiful than his to tell of chivalry?

To Tennyson, we owe the closest thing to a perfect version of the story that goes back to a distant and legendary England. What verse is more beautiful than his to tell of chivalry?

"Then, in the boyhood of the year,
"Then, in the boyhood of the year,
Sir Lancelot and Queen Guinevere
Lancelot and Guinevere
Rode thro' the coverts of the deer,
Rode through the wooded areas where the deer are,
With blissful treble ringing clear.
With joyful treble ringing clear.
She seem'd a part of joyous Spring:
She seemed like a part of joyful Spring:
A gown of grass-green silk she wore,
She wore a gown made of grass-green silk,
Buckled with golden clasps before;
Buckled with gold clasps before;
A light-green tuft of plumes she bore
She carried a light-green tuft of feathers.
Closed in a golden ring."
Closed in a gold ring.

In beauty and dignity and human interest Tennyson gives us the great world of Arthurian legend in its most perfect form.

In terms of beauty, dignity, and human interest, Tennyson presents the vast world of Arthurian legend in its most flawless form.

Malory's Morte Darthur was not Tennyson's only source for the stories of his Idylls. The adventures of Geraint he took from the Mabinogion, a collection of mediæval Welsh tales translated with great charm and accuracy by Lady Charlotte Guest, and published in 1838. Also, though to a very limited extent, he drew some of his incidents from the history of Geoffrey of Monmouth and the other early writers of chronicles.

Malory's Morte Darthur wasn't Tennyson's only source for the stories in his Idylls. He got the adventures of Geraint from the Mabinogion, a collection of medieval Welsh tales that were translated with great skill and precision by Lady Charlotte Guest, published in 1838. Also, although to a very small degree, he took some of his incidents from the history of Geoffrey of Monmouth and other early chroniclers.

The great panorama of stories that we group together under the title of King Arthur and the Knights of the Round Table, when they are told in prose, are usually taken from Malory's book, the Morte Darthur, condensed in size, for Malory was frequently verbose, and related in more modern English. In this volume we have used as a basis the version prepared by Sir James Knowles, which is an abridgment of Malory's work as it was printed by Caxton, with a few additions from Geoffrey of Monmouth and other sources. To this we have added the story of Sir Gawain and the Maid with the Narrow Sleeves, which comes originally from the poem of Perceval by Chrétien de Troies.

The wide range of stories we group under the title of King Arthur and the Knights of the Round Table, when told in prose, usually comes from Malory's book, the Morte Darthur, summarized in length, as Malory often wrote at length, and presented in more modern English. In this volume, we've used the version created by Sir James Knowles, which is a shortened version of Malory's work as published by Caxton, along with a few additions from Geoffrey of Monmouth and other sources. We've also included the story of Sir Gawain and the Maid with the Narrow Sleeves, originally from the poem Perceval by Chrétien de Troies.

The stories seem naturally to group themselves into four divisions, The Coming of Arthur and the Founding of the Round Table, The Adventures of the Champions of the Round Table, Sir Galahad and the Quest of the Holy Grail, and The Passing of Arthur. Into these come all the great characters of the legends and all the surpassing adventures of the king and his knights.

The stories naturally divide into four sections: The Coming of Arthur and the Founding of the Round Table, The Adventures of the Champions of the Round Table, Sir Galahad and the Quest of the Holy Grail, and The Passing of Arthur. These sections include all the major characters from the legends and all the remarkable adventures of the king and his knights.

The story of how a half-barbarous British Chieftain became the greatest king of mediæval chivalry is a romance in itself. To him poets and chroniclers of all lands added one valorous knight after another, one amazing adventure on top of another, until the result was the greatest collection of legends that have gathered about any king in history. The story of the origin and growth of these world-famous legends is told in a most delightful book, The Arthur of the English Poets, by Howard Maynadier, and those who wish to get the historical background of King Arthur should turn to its pages.

The tale of how a half-barbaric British chieftain became the greatest king of medieval chivalry is a story worth telling. Poets and historians from all over added one brave knight after another and one incredible adventure after another, resulting in the largest collection of legends surrounding any king in history. The story of how these famous legends originated and developed is beautifully narrated in a delightful book, The Arthur of the English Poets, by Howard Maynadier. Those interested in the historical background of King Arthur should definitely check it out.

Those who love brave and knightly deeds, those who love the gorgeous trappings of mediæval romance, come to the story of Arthur and his Round Table, of Lancelot and Perceval and Galahad and Gawain, of Guinevere and Elaine, and of the Quest for the Holy Grail, and there shall be found the glories that you seek. The king and his knights ride out from Camelot. Here shall you join them on their great adventures!

Those who enjoy courageous and chivalrous actions, those who admire the beautiful elements of medieval tales, should delve into the story of Arthur and his Round Table, of Lancelot, Perceval, Galahad, and Gawain, of Guinevere and Elaine, and the Quest for the Holy Grail, where you will discover the wonders you seek. The king and his knights ride out from Camelot. Here, you can join them on their epic adventures!

Rupert S. Holland.

Rupert S. Holland.


KING ARTHUR AND THE KNIGHTS OF THE ROUND TABLE


THE COMING OF ARTHUR AND THE FOUNDING OF THE ROUND TABLE


I

MERLIN FORETELLS THE BIRTH OF ARTHUR

King Vortigern the usurper sat upon his throne in London, when, suddenly, upon a certain day, ran in a breathless messenger, and cried aloud—

King Vortigern the usurper sat on his throne in London when, suddenly, on a certain day, a breathless messenger burst in and exclaimed—

"Arise, Lord King, for the enemy is come; even Ambrosius and Uther, upon whose throne thou sittest—and full twenty thousand with them—and they have sworn by a great oath, Lord, to slay thee, ere this year be done; and even now they march towards thee as the north wind of winter for bitterness and haste."

"Get up, Lord King, because the enemy is here; Ambrosius and Uther, who sit on the throne you occupy—and there are twenty thousand with them—and they have sworn a great oath, Lord, to kill you before this year ends; and right now they are marching toward you like the cold north wind of winter, fierce and fast."

At those words Vortigern's face grew white as ashes, and, rising in confusion and disorder, he sent for all the best artificers and craftsmen and mechanics, and commanded them vehemently to go and build him straightway in the furthest west of his lands a great and strong castle, where he might fly for refuge and escape the vengeance of his master's sons—"and, moreover," cried he, "let the work be done within a hundred days from now, or I will surely spare no life amongst you all."

At those words, Vortigern's face turned as white as ash. Rising in confusion, he called for the best builders, craftsmen, and mechanics, and urgently commanded them to go and construct a strong castle in the far west of his lands, where he could take refuge and escape the revenge of his master's sons. "And also," he shouted, "make sure the work is completed within a hundred days from now, or I will not spare any of your lives."

Then all the host of craftsmen, fearing for their lives, found out a proper site whereon to build the tower, and eagerly began to lay in the foundations. But no sooner were the walls raised up above the ground than all their work was overwhelmed and broken down by night invisibly, no man perceiving how, or by whom, or what. And the same thing happening again, and yet again, all the workmen, full of terror, sought out the king, and threw themselves upon their faces before him, beseeching him to interfere and help them or to deliver them from their dreadful work.

Then all the craftsmen, fearing for their lives, found a suitable place to build the tower and eagerly started laying the foundations. But as soon as the walls were raised above the ground, their work was mysteriously destroyed overnight, without anyone seeing how, by whom, or what caused it. This happened again and again, and all the workers, filled with fear, went to the king, fell on their faces before him, and begged him to step in and help them or to save them from their terrifying task.

Filled with mixed rage and fear, the king called for the astrologers and wizards, and took counsel with them what these things might be, and how to overcome them. The wizards worked their spells and incantations, and in the end declared that nothing but the blood of a youth born without mortal father, smeared on the foundations of the castle, could avail to make it stand. Messengers were therefore sent forthwith through all the land to find, if it were possible, such a child. And, as some of them went down a certain village street, they saw a band of lads fighting and quarreling, and heard them shout at one—"Avaunt, thou imp!—avaunt! Son of no mortal man! go, find thy father, and leave us in peace."

Filled with mixed anger and fear, the king called for the astrologers and wizards and consulted with them about what these things might be and how to overcome them. The wizards performed their spells and incantations, and ultimately declared that only the blood of a youth born without a mortal father, smeared on the foundations of the castle, could make it stand. Messengers were therefore sent immediately throughout the land to find, if possible, such a child. As some of them went down a certain village street, they saw a group of boys fighting and arguing, and heard one of them shout, "Get lost, you imp! Get lost! Son of no mortal man! Go find your father and leave us alone."

At that the messengers looked steadfastly on the lad, and asked who he was. One said his name was Merlin; another, that his birth and parentage were known by no man; a third, that the foul fiend alone was his father. Hearing the things, the officers seized Merlin, and carried him before the king by force.

At that, the messengers stared at the boy and asked who he was. One said his name was Merlin; another said that no one knew his birth or family; a third claimed that only the wicked devil was his father. Upon hearing this, the officers grabbed Merlin and forcefully took him before the king.

But no sooner was he brought to him than he asked in a loud voice, for what cause he was thus dragged there?

But as soon as he was brought to him, he loudly asked why he had been dragged there.

"My magicians," answered Vortigern, "told me to seek out a man that had no human father, and to sprinkle my castle with his blood, that it may stand."

"My magicians," replied Vortigern, "told me to find a man who had no human father and to sprinkle my castle with his blood so that it can stand."

"Order those magicians," said Merlin, "to come before me, and I will convict them of a lie."

"Send for those magicians," said Merlin, "to come before me, and I'll prove they're lying."

The king was astonished at his words, but commanded the magicians to come and sit down before Merlin, who cried to them—

The king was amazed by his words, but he ordered the magicians to come and sit down in front of Merlin, who shouted at them—

"Because ye know not what it is that hinders the foundation of the castle, ye have advised my blood for a cement to it, as if that would avail; but tell me now rather what there is below that ground, for something there is surely underneath that will not suffer the tower to stand?"

"Since you don’t know what’s preventing the castle’s foundation from being stable, you’ve suggested using my blood as a solution, as if that would help; but instead, tell me what’s below the ground, because there must be something down there that’s keeping the tower from standing."

The wizards at these words began to fear, and made no answer. Then said Merlin to the king—

The wizards, upon hearing this, started to feel afraid and didn't respond. Then Merlin said to the king—

"I pray, Lord, that workmen may be ordered to dig deep down into the ground till they shall come to a great pool of water."

"I pray, Lord, that workers may be instructed to dig deep into the ground until they find a large pool of water."

This then was done, and the pool discovered far beneath the surface of the ground.

This was done, and the pool was revealed deep beneath the ground's surface.

Then, turning again to the magicians, Merlin said, "Tell me now, false sycophants, what there is underneath that pool?"—but they were silent. Then said he to the king, "Command this pool to be drained, and at the bottom shall be found two dragons, great and huge, which now are sleeping, but which at night awake and fight and tear each other. At their great struggle all the ground shakes and trembles, and so casts down thy towers, which, therefore, never yet could find secure foundations."

Then, turning back to the magicians, Merlin said, "Now tell me, deceitful flatterers, what's really under that pool?"—but they were quiet. Then he said to the king, "Order this pool to be drained, and you will find two massive dragons at the bottom, which are currently asleep, but at night they wake up and fight each other. Their fierce battles cause the ground to shake and tremble, which is why your towers can never find a stable foundation."

The king was amazed at these words, but commanded the pool to be forthwith drained; and surely at the bottom of it did they presently discover the two dragons, fast asleep, as Merlin had declared.

The king was surprised by these words but ordered the pool to be drained immediately; and sure enough, at the bottom, they quickly found the two dragons, sound asleep, just as Merlin had said.

But Vortigern sat upon the brink of the pool till night to see what else would happen.

But Vortigern sat at the edge of the pool until night to see what else would happen.

Then those two dragons, one of which was white, the other red, rose up and came near one another, and began a sore fight, and cast forth fire with their breath. But the white dragon had the advantage, and chased the other to the end of the lake. And he, for grief at his flight, turned back upon his foe, and renewed the combat, and forced him to retire in turn. But in the end the red dragon was worsted, and the white dragon disappeared no man knew where.

Then those two dragons, one white and the other red, rose up and got close to each other, starting an intense fight and breathing fire. The white dragon had the upper hand and chased the other one to the far end of the lake. The red dragon, feeling defeated, turned back to confront his enemy again and re-engaged in battle, forcing the white dragon to retreat this time. But in the end, the red dragon was defeated, and the white dragon vanished without anyone knowing where he went.

When their battle was done, the king desired Merlin to tell him what it meant. Whereat he, bursting into tears, cried out this prophecy, which first foretold the coming of King Arthur.

When their battle was over, the king wanted Merlin to explain what it meant. At that, Merlin burst into tears and proclaimed this prophecy, which first predicted the arrival of King Arthur.

"Woe to the red dragon, which figureth the British nation, for his banishment cometh quickly; his lurking-holes shall be seized by the white dragon—the Saxon whom thou, O king, hast called to the land. The mountains shall be leveled as the valleys, and the rivers of the valleys shall run blood; cities shall be burned, and churches laid in ruins; till at length the oppressed shall turn for a season and prevail against the strangers. For a Boar of Cornwall shall arise and rend them, and trample their necks beneath his feet. The island shall be subject to his power, and he shall take the forests of Gaul. The house of Romulus shall dread him—all the world shall fear him—and his end shall no man know; he shall be immortal in the mouths of the people, and his works shall be food to those that tell them.

"Woe to the red dragon, which represents the British nation, for his exile is coming soon; his hiding places will be taken over by the white dragon—the Saxon whom you, O king, have summoned to the land. The mountains will be flattened like the valleys, and the rivers in the valleys will run with blood; cities will be set on fire, and churches will be left in ruins; until eventually, the oppressed will rise up for a time and succeed against the outsiders. For a Boar of Cornwall will appear and tear them apart, trampling them underfoot. The island will fall under his control, and he will seize the forests of Gaul. The house of Romulus will fear him—everyone will be afraid of him—and no one will know his end; he will live on in the stories of the people, and his deeds will be stories for those who recount them."

"But as for thee, O Vortigern, flee thou the sons of Constantine, for they shall burn thee in thy tower. For thine own ruin wast thou traitor to their father, and didst bring the Saxon heathens to the land. Aurelius and Uther are even now upon thee to revenge their father's murder; and the brood of the white dragon shall waste thy country, and shall lick thy blood. Find out some refuge, if thou wilt! but who may escape the doom of God?"

"But as for you, Vortigern, run from the sons of Constantine, because they will burn you in your tower. Your own downfall came from betraying their father and bringing the Saxon heathens to the land. Aurelius and Uther are already coming for you to avenge their father's murder, and the line of the white dragon will devastate your country and devour your blood. Look for some refuge if you want! But who can escape God's judgment?"

The king heard all this, trembling greatly; and, convicted of his sins, said nothing in reply. Only he hasted the builders of his tower by day and night, and rested not till he had fled thereto.

The king heard all this, trembling with fear; and, ashamed of his sins, said nothing in response. He only urged the builders of his tower to work day and night and did not rest until he had escaped there.

In the meantime, Aurelius, the rightful king, was hailed with joy by the Britons, who flocked to his standard, and prayed to be led against the Saxons. But he, till he had first killed Vortigern, would begin no other war. He marched therefore to Cambria, and came before the tower which the usurper had built. Then, crying out to all his knights, "Avenge ye on him who hath ruined Britain and slain my father and your king!" he rushed with many thousands at the castle walls. But, being driven back again and yet again, at length he thought of fire, and ordered blazing brands to be cast into the building from all sides. These, finding soon a proper fuel, ceased not to rage till, spreading to a mighty conflagration, they burned down the tower, and Vortigern within it.

In the meantime, Aurelius, the rightful king, was joyfully welcomed by the Britons, who gathered around him, asking to be led against the Saxons. However, he refused to start any other battle until he had first killed Vortigern. He therefore marched to Cambria and reached the tower that the usurper had built. Then, calling out to all his knights, "Get revenge on the one who has destroyed Britain and killed my father and your king!" he charged the castle walls with thousands of men. But, after being pushed back again and again, he finally thought of using fire and ordered torches to be thrown into the building from all sides. These soon found enough fuel and continued to rage until they spread into a huge blaze, burning down the tower and Vortigern inside it.

Then did Aurelius turn his strength against Hengist and the Saxons, and, defeating them in many places, weakened their power for a long season, so that the land had peace.

Then Aurelius turned his strength against Hengist and the Saxons, and, by defeating them in many places, weakened their power for a long time, bringing peace to the land.

Anon the king, making journeys to and fro, restoring ruined churches and, creating order, came to the monastery near Salisbury, where all those British knights lay buried who had been slain there by the treachery of Hengist. For when in former times Hengist had made a solemn truce with Vortigern, to meet in peace and settle terms, whereby himself and all his Saxons should depart from Britain, the Saxon soldiers carried every one of them beneath his garment a long dagger, and, at a given signal, fell upon the Britons, and slew them, to the number of nearly five hundred.

Soon the king, traveling back and forth, restoring damaged churches and bringing order, arrived at the monastery near Salisbury, where all the British knights who had been killed there by Hengist's betrayal were buried. In the past, when Hengist had made a formal truce with Vortigern to meet peacefully and work out terms for him and all his Saxons to leave Britain, the Saxon soldiers had hidden long daggers beneath their clothing, and at a signal, they attacked the Britons, killing nearly five hundred of them.

The sight of the place where the dead lay moved Aurelius to great sorrow, and he cast about in his mind how to make a worthy tomb over so many noble martyrs, who had died there for their country.

The sight of the place where the dead were laid moved Aurelius to deep sadness, and he thought about how to create a proper tomb for so many brave martyrs who had died there for their country.

When he had in vain consulted many craftsmen and builders, he sent, by the advice of the archbishop, for Merlin, and asked him what to do. "If you would honor the burying-place of these men," said Merlin, "with an everlasting monument, send for the Giants' Dance which is in Killaraus, a mountain; in Ireland; for there is a structure of stone there which none of this age could raise without a perfect knowledge of the arts. They are stones of a vast size and wondrous nature, and if they can be placed here as they are there, round this spot of ground, they will stand for ever."

After trying unsuccessfully to get advice from many builders and craftsmen, he, on the archbishop's suggestion, called for Merlin and asked him what to do. "If you want to honor the burial site of these men," Merlin said, "have the Giants' Dance from Killaraus Mountain in Ireland brought here; there’s a stone structure there that no one in this age could recreate without a complete understanding of the arts. The stones are enormous and impressive, and if they can be arranged here like they are there, around this area, they will last forever."

At these words of Merlin, Aurelius burst into laughter, and said, "How is it possible to remove such vast stones from so great a distance, as if Britain, also, had no stones fit for the work?"

At Merlin's words, Aurelius laughed and said, "How can we move such huge stones from so far away, as if Britain doesn't have its own stones suitable for this?"

"I pray the king," said Merlin, "to forbear vain laughter; what I have said is true, for those stones are mystical and have healing virtues. The giants of old brought them from the furthest coast of Africa, and placed them in Ireland while they lived in that country: and their design was to make baths in them, for use in time of grievous illness. For if they washed the stones and put the sick into the water, it certainly healed them, as also it did them that were wounded in battle; and there is no stone among them but hath the same virtue still."

"I ask the king," said Merlin, "to hold back his laughter; what I've said is true, because those stones are magical and have healing properties. The giants of old brought them from the farthest coast of Africa and placed them in Ireland while they lived there. Their purpose was to create baths from them for use during severe illness. If they washed the stones and put the sick into the water, it would definitely heal them, just like it did for those wounded in battle; and every stone among them still has the same healing power."

When the Britons heard this, they resolved to send for the stones, and to make war upon the people of Ireland if they offered to withhold them. So, when they had chosen Uther the king's brother for their chief, they set sail, to the number of 15,000 men, and came to Ireland. There Gillomanius, the king, withstood them fiercely, and not till after a great battle could they approach the Giants' Dance, the sight of which filled them with joy and admiration. But when they sought to move the stones, the strength of all the army was in vain, until Merlin, laughing at their failures, contrived machines of wondrous cunning, which took them down with ease, and placed them in the ships.

When the Britons heard this, they decided to send for the stones and to fight the people of Ireland if they tried to withhold them. So, after choosing Uther, the king's brother, as their leader, they set sail with 15,000 men and arrived in Ireland. There, King Gillomanius fiercely opposed them, and it wasn't until after a great battle that they could get close to the Giants' Dance, a sight that filled them with joy and admiration. But when they tried to move the stones, the strength of the entire army was useless, until Merlin, laughing at their failures, devised incredibly clever machines that easily took them down and loaded them onto the ships.

When they had brought the whole to Salisbury, Aurelius, with the crown upon his head, kept for four days the feast of Pentecost with royal pomp; and in the midst of all the clergy and the people, Merlin raised up the stones, and set them round the sepulcher of the knights and barons, as they stood in the mountains of Ireland.

When they brought everything to Salisbury, Aurelius, wearing the crown, celebrated the feast of Pentecost with great splendor for four days. In front of all the clergy and the people, Merlin lifted the stones and arranged them around the tomb of the knights and barons, just as they stood in the mountains of Ireland.

Then was the monument called "Stonehenge," and stands, as all men know, upon the plain of Salisbury to this very day.

Then the monument called "Stonehenge" stands, as everyone knows, on the plain of Salisbury to this very day.

Soon thereafter it befell that Aurelius was slain by poison at Winchester, and was himself buried within the Giants' Dance.

Soon after that, Aurelius was poisoned and killed in Winchester, and he was buried in the Giants' Dance.

At the same time came forth a comet of amazing size and brightness, darting out a beam, at the end whereof was a cloud of fire shaped like a dragon, from whose mouth went out two rays, one stretching over Gaul, the other ending in seven lesser rays over the Irish sea.

At the same time, a massive and bright comet appeared, shooting out a beam with a fiery cloud at its end shaped like a dragon. From the dragon's mouth, two rays emerged: one extending over Gaul and the other dividing into seven smaller rays over the Irish Sea.

At the appearance of this star a great dread fell upon the people, and Uther, marching into Cambria against the son of Vortigern, himself was very troubled to learn what it might mean. Then Merlin, being called before him, cried with a loud voice: "O mighty loss! O stricken Britain! Alas! the great prince is gone from us. Aurelius Ambrosius is dead, whose death will be ours also, unless God help us. Haste, therefore, noble Uther, to destroy the enemy; the victory shall be thine, and thou shalt be king of all Britain. For the star with the fiery dragon signifies thyself; and the ray over Gaul portends that thou shalt have a son, most mighty, whom all those kingdoms shall obey which the ray covers."

At the sight of this star, a great fear fell upon the people, and Uther, marching into Cambria against the son of Vortigern, felt very anxious to understand what it might mean. Then Merlin, being summoned before him, shouted loudly: "Oh, great loss! Oh, stricken Britain! Alas! the great prince is lost to us. Aurelius Ambrosius is dead, and his death will lead to ours as well, unless God helps us. So hurry, noble Uther, to defeat the enemy; victory will be yours, and you will become king of all Britain. For the star with the fiery dragon represents you; and the ray over Gaul warns that you will have a most powerful son, whom all those kingdoms the ray covers will obey."

Thus, for the second time, did Merlin foretell the coming of King Arthur. And Uther, when he was made king, remembered Merlin's words, and caused two dragons to be made in gold, in likeness of the dragon he had seen in the star. One of these he gave to Winchester Cathedral, and had the other carried into all his wars before him, whence he was ever after called Uther Pendragon, or the dragon's head.

Thus, for the second time, Merlin predicted the arrival of King Arthur. And Uther, once he became king, recalled Merlin's words and had two dragons made of gold, resembling the dragon he had seen in the star. He gave one of these dragons to Winchester Cathedral and had the other carried into all his battles, which is why he was forever after known as Uther Pendragon, or the dragon's head.

Now, when Uther Pendragon had passed through all the land, and settled it—and even voyaged into all the countries of the Scots, and tamed the fierceness of that rebel people—he came to London, and ministered justice there. And it befell at a certain great banquet and high feast which the king made at Easter-tide, there came, with many other earls and barons, Gorloïs, Duke of Cornwall, and his wife Igerna, who was the most famous beauty in all Britain. And soon thereafter, Gorloïs being slain in battle, Uther determined to make Igerna his own wife. But in order to do this, and enable him to come to her—for she was shut up in the high castle of Tintagil, on the furthest coast of Cornwall—the king sent for Merlin, to take counsel with him and to pray his help. This, therefore, Merlin promised him on one condition—namely, that the king should give him up the first son born of the marriage. For Merlin by his art foreknew that this firstborn should be the long-wished prince, King Arthur.

Now, when Uther Pendragon had traveled throughout all the land and established order—even sailing to all the territories of the Scots and subdued the fierceness of that rebellious people—he arrived in London and administered justice there. During a grand banquet and festive celebration that the king hosted at Easter, Gorloïs, Duke of Cornwall, and his wife Igerna, who was the most beautiful woman in all Britain, attended among many other earls and barons. Shortly after, with Gorloïs being killed in battle, Uther resolved to marry Igerna. However, to accomplish this and reach her—since she was confined in the high castle of Tintagil on the far coast of Cornwall—the king called for Merlin to seek his counsel and request his assistance. Merlin agreed to help on one condition—that the king would give him the firstborn son from their marriage. For Merlin, through his magic, foresaw that this firstborn would be the long-awaited prince, King Arthur.

When Uther, therefore, was at length happily wedded, Merlin came to the castle on a certain day, and said, "Sir, thou must now provide thee for the nourishing of thy child."

When Uther was finally happily married, Merlin came to the castle one day and said, "Sir, you must now prepare for the care of your child."

And the king, nothing doubting, said, "Be it as thou wilt."

And the king, confidently, said, "As you wish."

"I know a lord of thine in this land," said Merlin, "who is a man both true and faithful; let him have the nourishing of the child. His name is Sir Ector, and he hath fair possessions both in England and in Wales. When, therefore, the child is born, let him be delivered unto me, unchristened, at yonder postern-gate, and I will bestow him in the care of this good knight."

"I know a lord of yours in this land," said Merlin, "who is a man both honest and loyal; let him take care of the child. His name is Sir Ector, and he has good land in both England and Wales. So, when the child is born, let him be brought to me, unbaptized, at that side gate, and I will place him in the care of this good knight."

So when the child was born, the king bid two knights and two ladies to take it, bound in rich cloth of gold, and deliver it to a poor man whom they should discover at the postern-gate. And the child being delivered thus to Merlin, who himself took the guise of a poor man, was carried by him to a holy priest and christened by the name of Arthur, and then was taken to Sir Ector's house, and nourished at Sir Ector's wife's own breasts. And in the same house he remained privily for many years, no man soever knowing where he was, save Merlin and the king.

So when the child was born, the king instructed two knights and two ladies to take it, wrapped in rich gold cloth, and deliver it to a poor man they would find at the postern gate. The child was handed over to Merlin, who was disguised as a poor man. He took the child to a holy priest and named him Arthur, and then he was brought to Sir Ector's house, where he was nursed by Sir Ector's wife. He stayed in that house privately for many years, with no one knowing where he was except for Merlin and the king.

Anon it befell that the king was seized by a lingering distemper, and the Saxon heathens, taking their occasion, came back from over sea, and swarmed upon the land, wasting it with fire and sword. When Uther heard thereof, he fell into a greater rage than his weakness could bear, and commanded all his nobles to come before him, that he might upbraid them for their cowardice. And when he had sharply and hotly rebuked them, he swore that he himself, nigh unto death although he lay, would lead them forth against the enemy. Then causing a horse-litter to be made, in which he might be carried—for he was too faint and weak to ride—he went up with all his army swiftly against the Saxons.

Soon it happened that the king was struck by a lingering illness, and the Saxon invaders, seizing the opportunity, returned from overseas and flooded into the land, ravaging it with fire and sword. When Uther heard this, he fell into a rage that was more than his frail condition could handle and ordered all his nobles to gather around him so he could reprimand them for their cowardice. After he scolded them sharply and passionately, he swore that he, even though he was close to death, would lead them against the enemy. Then he had a horse litter made for himself so he could be carried—since he was too weak to ride—and he quickly set out with all his army to confront the Saxons.

But they, when they heard that Uther was coming in a litter, disdained to fight him, saying it would be shame for brave men to fight with one half dead. So they retired into their city; and, as it were in scorn of danger, left the gates wide open. But Uther straightway commanding his men to assault the town, they did so without loss of time, and had already reached the gates, when the Saxons, repenting too late of their haughty pride, rushed forth to the defense. The battle raged till night, and was begun again next day; but at last, their leaders, Octa and Eosa, being slain, the Saxons turned their backs and fled, leaving the Britons a full triumph.

But when they heard that Uther was approaching on a litter, they refused to fight him, claiming it would be shameful for brave men to battle someone who was half dead. So they retreated into their city and, as if mocking danger, left the gates wide open. But Uther immediately ordered his men to attack the town, and they did so without delay. They had already reached the gates when the Saxons, realizing too late their arrogance, rushed out to defend themselves. The battle raged until night and resumed the next day; but ultimately, their leaders, Octa and Eosa, were killed, and the Saxons turned and fled, leaving the Britons in complete triumph.

The king at this felt so great joy, that, whereas before he could scarce raise himself without help, he now sat upright in his litter by himself, and said, with a laughing and merry face, "They called me the half-dead king, and so indeed I was; but victory to me half dead is better than defeat and the best health. For to die with honor is far better than to live disgraced."

The king felt such great joy that, whereas before he could hardly sit up without assistance, he now sat upright in his litter by himself and said, with a laughing and cheerful face, "They called me the half-dead king, and that’s exactly what I was; but for me, victory while half dead is better than defeat while perfectly healthy. Because dying with honor is far better than living in disgrace."

But the Saxons, although thus defeated, were ready still for war. Uther would have pursued them; but his illness had by now so grown, that his knights and barons kept him from the adventure. Whereat the enemy took courage, and left nothing undone to destroy the land; until, descending to the vilest treachery, they resolved to kill the king by poison.

But the Saxons, even though they were defeated, were still ready for battle. Uther wanted to go after them, but his illness had gotten so bad that his knights and barons prevented him from taking action. Because of this, the enemy gained courage and did everything they could to ravage the land; until, resorting to the lowest form of treachery, they planned to kill the king with poison.

To this end, as he lay sick at Verulum, they sent and poisoned stealthily a spring of clear water, whence he was wont to drink daily; and so, on the very next day, he was taken with the pains of death, as were also a hundred others after him, before the villainy was discovered, and heaps of earth thrown over the well.

To achieve this, while he was sick in Verulum, they secretly poisoned a clear spring where he used to drink every day; and so, the very next day, he was struck with intense pain, just like a hundred others after him, before the treachery was uncovered and dirt was thrown over the well.

The knights and barons, full of sorrow, now took counsel together, and came to Merlin for his help to learn the king's will before he died, for he was by this time speechless. "Sirs, there is no remedy," said Merlin, "and God's will must be done; but be ye all to-morrow before him, for God will make him speak before he die."

The knights and barons, filled with sadness, gathered together and sought Merlin's help to understand the king's wishes before he passed, as he had become speechless by this time. "Gentlemen, there is no solution," said Merlin, "and God's will must prevail; however, make sure to be with him tomorrow, for God will allow him to speak before he dies."

So on the morrow all the barons, with Merlin, stood round the bedside of the king; and Merlin said aloud to Uther, "Lord, shall thy son Arthur be the king of all this realm after thy days?"

So the next day, all the barons, along with Merlin, gathered around the king's bedside; and Merlin spoke loudly to Uther, "Lord, will your son Arthur be the king of this entire realm after you?"

Then Uther Pendragon turned him about, and said, in the hearing of them all, "God's blessing and mine be upon him. I bid him pray for my soul, and also that he claim my crown, or forfeit all my blessing;" and with those words he died.

Then Uther Pendragon turned around and said, in front of everyone, "God's blessing and mine be upon him. I ask him to pray for my soul and to claim my crown, or lose all my blessings;" and with those words, he died.

Then came together all the bishops and the clergy, and great multitudes of people, and bewailed the king; and carrying his body to the convent of Ambrius, they buried it close by his brother's grave, within the "Giants' Dance."

Then all the bishops and clergy gathered together, along with huge crowds of people, and mourned for the king. They took his body to the Ambrius monastery and buried it near his brother's grave, within the "Giants' Dance."


II

THE CROWNING OF ARTHUR AND THE SWORD EXCALIBUR

Now Arthur the prince had all this time been nourished in Sir Ector's house as his own son, and was fair and tall and comely, being of the age of fifteen years, great in strength, gentle in manner, and accomplished in all exercises proper for the training of a knight.

Now Prince Arthur had been raised in Sir Ector's home like his own son, and he was handsome, tall, and well-built at the age of fifteen, strong in body, gentle in spirit, and skilled in all the activities suitable for a knight's training.

But as yet he knew not of his father; for Merlin had so dealt, that none save Uther and himself knew aught about him. Wherefore it befell that many of the knights and barons who heard King Uther speak before his death, and call his son Arthur his successor, were in great amazement; and some doubted, and others were displeased.

But he didn't know anything about his father yet because Merlin had arranged it so that only Uther and he knew anything about him. Because of this, many of the knights and barons who heard King Uther talk before his death and name his son Arthur as his successor were very surprised; some doubted it, while others were unhappy.

Anon the chief lords and princes set forth each to his own land, and, raising armed men and multitudes of followers, determined every one to gain the crown for himself; for they said in their hearts, "If there be any such a son at all as he of whom this wizard forced the king to speak, who are we that a beardless boy should have rule over us?"

Soon the main lords and princes headed back to their own lands, gathering armed forces and large groups of supporters, each resolved to claim the crown for himself; for they thought to themselves, "If there is really a son like the one this wizard made the king mention, who are we to let a young boy lead us?"

So the land stood long in great peril, for every lord and baron sought but his own advantage; and the Saxons, growing ever more adventurous, wasted and overran the towns and villages in every part.

So the land was in serious danger for a long time, as every lord and baron only looked out for their own benefit; and the Saxons, becoming more daring, plundered and destroyed the towns and villages everywhere.

Then Merlin went to Brice, the Archbishop of Canterbury, and advised him to require all the earls and barons of the realm and all knights and gentlemen-at-arms to come to him at London, before Christmas, under pain of cursing, that they might learn the will of Heaven who should be king. This, therefore, the archbishop did, and upon Christmas Eve were met together in London all the greatest princes, lords, and barons; and long before day they prayed in St. Paul's Church, and the archbishop besought Heaven for a sign who should be lawful king of all the realm.

Then Merlin went to Brice, the Archbishop of Canterbury, and advised him to summon all the earls and barons of the realm, along with all knights and gentlemen-at-arms, to come to him in London before Christmas, under the threat of cursing, so they could learn the will of Heaven regarding who should be king. The archbishop followed this advice, and on Christmas Eve, all the greatest princes, lords, and barons gathered in London; long before dawn, they prayed in St. Paul's Church, and the archbishop asked Heaven for a sign of who should be the rightful king of the entire realm.

And as they prayed, there was seen in the churchyard, set straight before the doorways of the church, a huge square stone having a naked sword stuck in the midst of it. And on the sword was written in letters of gold, "Whoso pulleth out the sword from this stone is born the rightful King of England."

And while they were praying, a huge square stone appeared in the churchyard, positioned right in front of the church doors, with a naked sword embedded in the middle of it. Inscribed on the sword in golden letters was, "Whoever pulls this sword from the stone is the rightful King of England."

At this all the people wondered greatly; and, when Mass was over, the nobles, knights, and princes ran out eagerly from the church to see the stone and sword; and a law was forthwith made that whoso should pull out the sword should be acknowledged straightway King of Britain.

At this, everyone was amazed; and when Mass was over, the nobles, knights, and princes hurried out of the church to see the stone and sword. A law was immediately established stating that whoever could pull out the sword would be recognized right away as the King of Britain.

Then many knights and barons pulled at the sword with all their might, and some of them tried many times, but none could stir or move it.

Then many knights and lords pulled at the sword with all their strength, and some of them tried several times, but none could budge or move it.

When all had tried in vain, the archbishop declared the man whom Heaven had chosen was not yet there. "But God," said he, "will doubtless make him known ere many days."

When everyone had tried unsuccessfully, the archbishop announced that the man chosen by Heaven was not there yet. "But God," he said, "will surely reveal him in the coming days."

So ten knights were chosen, being men of high renown, to watch and keep the sword; and there was proclamation made through all the land that whosoever would, had leave and liberty to try and pull it from the stone. But though great multitudes of people came, both gentle and simple, for many days, no man could ever move the sword a hair's breadth from its place.

So, ten knights were chosen, known for their great reputation, to guard the sword; and an announcement was made throughout the land that anyone who wanted to could try to pull it from the stone. But despite the many people who came, both noble and ordinary, for several days, no one could move the sword even a tiny bit from where it was.

Now, at the New Year's Eve a great tournament was to be held in London, which the archbishop had devised to keep together lords and commons, lest they should grow estranged in the troublous and unsettled times. To the which tournament there came, with many other knights, Sir Ector, Arthur's foster-father, who had great possessions near to London; and with him came his son, Sir Key, but recently made knight, to take his part in the jousting, and young Arthur also to witness all the sports and fighting.

Now, on New Year's Eve, there was going to be a big tournament in London, organized by the archbishop to bring together the lords and common people, so they wouldn’t become distant from one another during these troubled and uncertain times. Among many other knights, Sir Ector, Arthur's foster father, who owned a lot of land near London, attended the tournament. Along with him came his son, Sir Kay, who had just been knighted and was eager to compete in the jousting, and young Arthur, who was there to watch all the events and battles.

But as they rode towards the jousts, Sir Key found suddenly he had no sword, for he had left it at his father's house; and turning to young Arthur, he prayed him to ride back and fetch it for him. "I will with a good will," said Arthur; and rode fast back after the sword.

But as they rode towards the tournaments, Sir Key suddenly realized he had no sword because he had left it at his father's house. He turned to young Arthur and asked him to ride back and get it for him. "I’ll be happy to do that," said Arthur, and he quickly rode back to retrieve the sword.

But when he came to the house he found it locked and empty, for all were gone forth to see the tournament. Whereat, being angry and impatient, he said within himself, "I will ride to the churchyard and take with me the sword that sticketh in the stone, for my brother shall not go without a sword this day."

But when he got to the house, he found it locked and empty because everyone had gone to watch the tournament. Feeling angry and impatient, he thought to himself, "I’ll ride to the churchyard and take the sword that’s stuck in the stone, because my brother isn’t going to go without a sword today."

So he rode and came to the churchyard, and alighting from his horse he tied him to the gate, and went to the pavilion, which was pitched near the stone, wherein abode the ten knights who watched and kept it; but he found no knights there, for all were gone to see the jousting.

So he rode to the churchyard, got off his horse, tied it to the gate, and walked over to the pavilion that was set up near the stone, where ten knights were supposed to be guarding it; however, he found no knights there, as they had all gone to watch the jousting.

Then he took the sword by its handle, and lightly and fiercely he pulled it out of the stone, and took his horse and rode until he came to Sir Key and delivered him the sword. But as soon as Sir Key saw it he knew well it was the sword of the stone, and, riding swiftly to his father, he cried out, "Lo! here, sir, is the sword of the stone, wherefore it is I who must be king of all this land."

Then he grabbed the sword by its handle and, with a mix of ease and force, pulled it out of the stone. He got on his horse and rode until he reached Sir Kay and handed him the sword. As soon as Sir Kay saw it, he recognized it as the sword from the stone and, riding quickly to his father, exclaimed, "Look! Here, sir, is the sword from the stone, which means I should be king of all this land."

When Sir Ector saw the sword, he turned back straight with Arthur and Sir Key and came to the churchyard, and there alighting, they went all three into the church, and Sir Key was sworn to tell truly how he came by the sword. Then he confessed it was his brother Arthur who had brought it to him.

When Sir Ector saw the sword, he immediately turned around with Arthur and Sir Kay and headed to the churchyard. Once they arrived, they all got down and went into the church. Sir Kay was sworn in to truthfully explain how he got the sword. He then admitted that it was his brother Arthur who had brought it to him.

Whereat Sir Ector, turning to young Arthur, asked him—"How gottest thou the sword?"

Whereupon Sir Ector turned to young Arthur and asked him, "How did you get the sword?"

"Sir," said he, "I will tell you. When I went home to fetch my brother's sword, I found nobody to deliver it to me, for all were abroad to the jousts. Yet was I loth to leave my brother swordless, and, bethinking me of this one, I came hither eagerly to fetch it for him, and pulled it out of the stone without any pain."

"Sir," he said, "I'll tell you. When I went home to get my brother's sword, nobody was around to give it to me because everyone was out at the jousts. I really didn't want to leave my brother without a sword, so I thought of this one and hurried here to get it for him, and I pulled it out of the stone easily."

Then said Sir Ector, much amazed and looking steadfastly on Arthur, "If this indeed be thus, 'tis thou who shalt be king of all this land—and God will have it so—for none but he who should be rightful Lord of Britain might ever draw this sword forth from that stone. But let me now with mine own eyes see thee put back the sword into its place and draw it forth again."

Then Sir Ector said, greatly surprised and staring at Arthur, "If this is really true, then you will be the king of all this land—and God wants it that way—because only the true Lord of Britain could pull this sword out of the stone. But let me see with my own eyes you put the sword back in its place and pull it out again."

"That is no mastery," said Arthur; and straightway set it in the stone. And then Sir Ector pulled at it himself, and after him Sir Key, with all his might, but both of them in vain: then Arthur, reaching forth his hand and grasping at the pommel, pulled it out easily, and at once.

"That's not real mastery," Arthur said, and immediately placed it back in the stone. Then Sir Ector tried to pull it out himself, followed by Sir Kay, using all their strength, but both unsuccessful. Then Arthur reached out his hand, grabbed the pommel, and pulled it out effortlessly and immediately.

Then fell Sir Ector down upon his knees upon the ground before young Arthur, and Sir Key also with him, and straightway did him homage as their sovereign lord.

Then Sir Ector knelt down on the ground before young Arthur, and Sir Kay did the same, and right away they pledged their loyalty to him as their sovereign lord.

But Arthur cried aloud, "Alas! mine own dear father and my brother, why kneel ye thus to me?"

But Arthur shouted, "Oh no! My dear father and my brother, why are you kneeling to me like this?"

"Nay, my Lord Arthur," answered then Sir Ector, "we are of no blood-kinship with thee, and little though I thought how high thy kin might be, yet wast thou never more than foster-child of mine." And then he told him all he knew about his infancy, and how a stranger had delivered him, with a great sum of gold, into his hands to be brought up and nourished as his own born child, and then had disappeared.

"Nah, my Lord Arthur," Sir Ector replied, "we're not related by blood, and even though I didn’t realize how noble your background might be, you were never more than a foster child to me." He then shared everything he knew about Arthur's early years, explaining how a stranger had handed him over, along with a large sum of gold, for him to raise and care for as his own child, and then had vanished.

But when young Arthur heard of it, he fell upon Sir Ector's neck, and wept, and made great lamentation, "For now," said he, "I have in one day lost my father and my mother and my brother."

But when young Arthur heard about it, he threw his arms around Sir Ector and cried, mourning deeply, "For now," he said, "I've lost my father, my mother, and my brother all in one day."

"Sir," said Sir Ector presently, "when thou shalt be made king be good and gracious unto me and mine."

"Sir," said Sir Ector then, "when you become king, be good and gracious to me and my family."

"If not," said Arthur, "I were no true man's son at all, for thou art he in all the world to whom I owe the most; and my good lady and mother, thy wife, hath ever kept and fostered me as though I were her own; so if it be God's will that I be king hereafter as thou sayest, desire of me whatever thing thou wilt and I will do it; and God forbid that I should fail thee in it."

"If not," said Arthur, "then I'm not a true man's son at all, because you are the one in this world to whom I owe the most; and my good lady and mother, your wife, has always taken care of me as if I were her own. So if it’s God’s will that I become king one day as you say, ask me for whatever you want, and I will do it; and God forbid that I should let you down."

"I will but pray," replied Sir Ector, "that thou wilt make my son Sir Key, thy foster-brother, seneschal of all the lands."

"I'll just pray," replied Sir Ector, "that you will make my son Sir Key, your foster brother, the steward of all the lands."

"That shall he be," said Arthur; "and never shall another hold that office, save thy son, while he and I do live."

"That's who he'll be," said Arthur; "and no one else will hold that position, except for your son, as long as he and I are alive."

Anon, they left the church and went to the archbishop to tell him that the sword had been achieved. And when he saw the sword in Arthur's hand he set a day and summoned all the princes, knights, and barons to meet again at St. Paul's Church and see the will of Heaven signified. So when they came together, the sword was put back in the stone, and all tried, from the greatest to the least, to move it; but there before them all not one could take it out save Arthur only.

Soon, they left the church and went to the archbishop to inform him that the sword had been obtained. When he saw the sword in Arthur's hand, he set a date and called all the princes, knights, and barons to gather again at St. Paul's Church to witness the will of Heaven. When they assembled, the sword was placed back in the stone, and everyone tried, from the highest to the lowest, to pull it out; but in front of everyone, no one could take it out except Arthur.

But then befell a great confusion and dispute, for some cried out it was the will of Heaven, and, "Long live King Arthur," but many more were full of wrath and said, "What! would ye give the ancient scepter of this land unto a boy born none know how?" And the contention growing greatly, till nothing could be done to pacify their rage, the meeting was at length broken up by the archbishop and adjourned till Candlemas, when all should meet again.

But then a great confusion and argument broke out, because some shouted it was Heaven's will, and, "Long live King Arthur," while many others were furious and said, "What! Are you really going to give the ancient scepter of this land to a boy born from who knows where?" As the disagreement escalated, and nothing could calm their anger, the archbishop ultimately ended the meeting and postponed it until Candlemas, when everyone would meet again.

But when Candlemas was come, Arthur alone again pulled forth the sword, though more than ever came to win it; and the barons, sorely vexed and angry, put it in delay till Easter. But as he had sped before so he did at Easter, and the barons yet once more contrived delays till Pentecost.

But when Candlemas arrived, Arthur again pulled out the sword by himself, even though more people than ever were trying to win it; and the barons, extremely annoyed and angry, postponed it until Easter. But just as he had done before, he repeated the same at Easter, and the barons once more came up with excuses to delay until Pentecost.

But now the archbishop, fully seeing God's will, called together, by Merlin's counsel, a band of knights and gentlemen-at-arms, and set them about Arthur to keep him safely till the Feast of Pentecost. And when at the feast Arthur still again alone prevailed to move the sword, the people all with one accord cried out, "Long live King Arthur! we will have no more delay, nor any other king, for so it is God's will; and we will slay whoso resisteth Him and Arthur;" and wherewithal they kneeled down all at once, and cried for Arthur's grace and pardon that they had so long delayed him from his crown. Then he full sweetly and majestically pardoned them; and taking in his hand the sword, he offered it upon the high altar of the church.

But now the archbishop, clearly understanding God's will, gathered a group of knights and soldiers with Merlin's advice, and placed them around Arthur to protect him until the Feast of Pentecost. When, at the feast, Arthur once again managed to pull the sword from the stone, the crowd shouted in unison, "Long live King Arthur! We won’t wait any longer for another king, for this is God's will; and we will punish anyone who opposes Him and Arthur!” Then they all knelt down together and begged for Arthur's mercy and forgiveness for delaying his crowning for so long. He graciously and nobly forgave them, and taking the sword in his hand, he placed it on the high altar of the church.

Anon was he solemnly knighted with great pomp by the most famous knight there present, and the crown was placed upon his head; and, having taken oath to all the people, lords and commons, to be true king and deal in justice only unto his life's end, he received homage and service from all the barons who held lands and castles from the crown. Then he made Sir Key, High Steward of England, and Sir Badewaine of Britain, Constable, and Sir Ulfius, Chamberlain: and after this, with all his court and a great retinue of knights and armed men, he journeyed into Wales, and was crowned again in the old city of Caerleon-upon-Usk.

He was then solemnly knighted with much ceremony by the most renowned knight present, and a crown was placed on his head. After taking an oath to the people, both lords and commoners, to be a true king and administer justice for the rest of his life, he received loyalty and service from all the barons who held lands and castles from the crown. He then appointed Sir Kay as the High Steward of England, Sir Bedivere of Britain as Constable, and Sir Ulfius as Chamberlain. Following this, along with his court and a large retinue of knights and armed men, he traveled to Wales and was crowned once more in the ancient city of Caerleon-upon-Usk.

Meanwhile those knights and barons who had so long delayed him from the crown, met together and went up to the coronation feast at Caerleon, as if to do him homage; and there they ate and drank such things as were set before them at the royal banquet, sitting with the others in the great hall.

Meanwhile, the knights and barons who had kept him from the crown for so long gathered together and went to the coronation feast at Caerleon, pretending to pay their respects. There, they enjoyed the food and drink served at the royal banquet, sitting alongside the others in the grand hall.

But when after the banquet Arthur began, according to the ancient royal custom, to bestow great boons and fiefs on whom he would, they all with one accord rose up, and scornfully refused his gifts, crying that they would take nothing from a beardless boy come of low or unknown birth, but would instead give him good gifts of hard sword-strokes between neck and shoulders.

But when Arthur started, after the feast, to grant generous gifts and land to those he chose, they all together stood up and mockingly rejected his offerings, shouting that they wouldn’t accept anything from a young boy of humble or unknown origin, but would rather give him a solid dose of hard sword blows between the neck and shoulders.

Whereat arose a deadly tumult in the hall, and every man there made him ready to fight. But Arthur leaped up as a flame of fire against them, and all his knights and barons drawing their swords, rushed after him upon them and began a full sore battle; and presently the king's party prevailed, and drave the rebels from the hall and from the city, closing the gates behind them; and King Arthur brake his sword upon them in his eagerness and rage.

Where a deadly uproar broke out in the hall, every man prepared to fight. But Arthur sprang up like a flame of fire against them, and all his knights and barons drew their swords, charging after him and starting a fierce battle; soon, the king's side gained the upper hand, driving the rebels out of the hall and the city, closing the gates behind them; and King Arthur broke his sword on them in his eagerness and rage.

But amongst them were six kings of great renown and might, who more than all raged against Arthur and determined to destroy him, namely, King Lot, King Nanters, King Urien, King Carados, King Yder, and King Anguisant. These six, therefore, joining their armies together, laid close siege to the city of Caerleon, wherefrom King Arthur had so shamefully driven them.

But among them were six powerful and renowned kings who were especially determined to take down Arthur: King Lot, King Nanters, King Urien, King Carados, King Yder, and King Anguisant. These six kings banded their armies together and laid a tight siege on the city of Caerleon, from which King Arthur had shamefully expelled them.

And after fifteen days Merlin came suddenly into their camp and asked them what this treason meant. Then he declared to them that Arthur was no base adventurer, but King Uther's son, whom they were bound to serve and honor even though Heaven had not vouch-safed the wondrous miracle of the sword. Some of the kings, when they heard Merlin speak thus, marveled and believed him; but others, as King Lot, laughed him and his words to scorn, and mocked him for a conjurer and wizard. But it was agreed with Merlin that Arthur should come forth and speak with the kings.

And after fifteen days, Merlin suddenly appeared in their camp and asked them what this betrayal was all about. Then he told them that Arthur was no lowly adventurer, but the son of King Uther, whom they were obligated to serve and honor even though Heaven had not granted the miraculous sword. Some of the kings, upon hearing Merlin speak this way, were amazed and believed him; but others, like King Lot, laughed at him and his words, mocking him as a sorcerer and wizard. However, it was agreed with Merlin that Arthur would come forward and speak with the kings.

So he went forth to them to the city gate, and with him the archbishop and Merlin, and Sir Key, Sir Brastias, and a great company of others. And he spared them not in his speech, but spoke to them as king and chieftain, telling them plainly he would make them all bow to him if he lived, unless they choose to do him homage there and then; and so they parted in great wrath, and each side armed in haste.

So he went out to meet them at the city gate, along with the archbishop, Merlin, Sir Key, Sir Brastias, and a large group of others. He didn't hold back in his speech, addressing them as their king and leader, clearly stating that he would make them all submit to him if he lived, unless they chose to pay him tribute right then and there; and so they parted in great anger, each side quickly arming themselves.

"What will ye do?" said Merlin to the kings; "ye had best hold your hands, for were ye ten times as many ye should not prevail."

"What will you do?" said Merlin to the kings; "you should hold back, because even if you were ten times as many, you still wouldn't succeed."

"Shall we be afraid of a dream-reader?" quoth King Lot in scorn.

"Should we be afraid of a dream reader?" King Lot said mockingly.

With that Merlin vanished away and came to King Arthur.

With that, Merlin disappeared and appeared before King Arthur.

Then Arthur said to Merlin, "I have need now of a sword that shall chastise these rebels terribly."

Then Arthur said to Merlin, "I need a sword that will punish these rebels severely."

"Come then with me," said Merlin, "for hard by there is a sword that I can gain for thee."

"Come with me," said Merlin, "because there's a sword nearby that I can get for you."

So they rode out that night till they came to a fair and broad lake, and in the midst of it King Arthur saw an arm thrust up, clothed in white samite, and holding a great sword in the hand.

So they rode out that night until they reached a beautiful, wide lake, and in the middle of it, King Arthur saw an arm raised, wrapped in white silk, holding a huge sword in its hand.

"Lo! yonder is the sword I spoke of," said Merlin.

"Look! That’s the sword I was talking about," said Merlin.

Then saw they a damsel floating on the lake in the moonlight. "What damsel is that?" said the king.

Then they saw a young woman floating on the lake in the moonlight. "Who is that young woman?" asked the king.

"The lady of the lake," said Merlin; "for upon this lake there is a rock, and on the rock a noble palace, where she abideth, and she will come towards thee presently, when thou shalt ask her courteously for the sword."

"The lady of the lake," said Merlin; "for on this lake, there is a rock, and on the rock, a grand palace, where she lives, and she will come to you soon when you ask her politely for the sword."

Therewith the damsel came to King Arthur, and saluted him, and he saluted her, and said, "Lady, what sword is that the arm holdeth above the water? I would that it were mine, for I have no sword."

Thereupon the young woman approached King Arthur, greeted him, and he returned the greeting, saying, "Lady, what sword is that you’re holding above the water? I wish it were mine, as I currently have no sword."

"Sir King," said the lady of the lake, "that sword is mine, and if thou wilt give me in return a gift whenever I shall ask it of thee, thou shalt have it."

"Sir King," said the lady of the lake, "that sword is mine, and if you promise to give me a gift whenever I ask for it, you can have it."

"By my faith," said he, "I will give thee any gift that thou shalt ask."

"Honestly," he said, "I will give you any gift you ask for."

"Well," said the damsel, "go into yonder barge, and row thyself unto the sword, and take it and the scabbard with thee, and I will ask my gift of thee when I see my time."

"Well," said the young woman, "go into that boat, row over to the sword, take it and the scabbard with you, and I’ll ask for my gift from you when the time is right."

So King Arthur and Merlin alighted, and tied their horses to two trees, and went into the barge; and when they came to the sword that the hand held, King Arthur took it by the handle and bore it with him, and the arm and hand went down under the water; and so they came back to land, and rode again to Caerleon.

So King Arthur and Merlin got off their horses and tied them to two trees, then they got into the boat. When they reached the sword that the hand was gripping, King Arthur took it by the handle and brought it along, while the arm and hand sank underwater. They returned to land and rode back to Caerleon.

On the morrow Merlin bade King Arthur to set fiercely on the enemy; and in the meanwhile three hundred good knights went over to King Arthur from the rebels' side. Then at the spring of day, when they had scarce left their tents, he fell on them with might and main, and Sir Badewaine, Sir Key, and Sir Brastias slew on the right and on the left marvelously; and ever in the thickest of the fight King Arthur raged like a young lion, and laid on with his sword, and did wondrous deeds of arms, to the joy and admiration of the knights and barons who beheld him.

On the next day, Merlin urged King Arthur to attack the enemy fiercely. Meanwhile, three hundred brave knights joined Arthur from the rebels’ side. Then, at dawn, just as they were leaving their tents, he launched a powerful assault on them. Sir Badewaine, Sir Key, and Sir Brastias fought valiantly on the right and left, achieving incredible feats. In the heat of battle, King Arthur fought like a young lion, swinging his sword and accomplishing amazing acts of valor, much to the joy and admiration of the knights and barons watching him.

Then King Lot, King Carados, and the King of the Hundred Knights—who also was with them—going round to the rear, set on King Arthur fiercely from behind; but King Arthur, turning to his knights, fought ever in the foremost press until his horse was slain beneath him. At that, King Lot rode furiously at him, and smote him down; but rising straightway, and being set again on horseback, he drew his sword Excalibur that he had gained by Merlin from the lady of the lake, which, shining brightly as the light of thirty torches, dazzled the eyes of his enemies. And therewith falling on them afresh with all his knights, he drove them back and slew them in great numbers, and Merlin by his arts scattered among them fire and pitchy smoke, so that they broke and fled. Then all the common people of Caerleon, seeing them give way, rose up with one accord, and rushed at them with clubs and staves, and chased them far and wide, and slew many great knights and lords, and the remainder of them fled and were seen no more. Thus won King Arthur his first battle and put his enemies to shame.

Then King Lot, King Carados, and the King of the Hundred Knights—who was with them—snuck around to the back and attacked King Arthur fiercely from behind. But King Arthur, turning to his knights, fought bravely at the front until his horse was killed beneath him. At that, King Lot charged at him and struck him down; but Arthur quickly got back up, mounted his horse again, and drew his sword Excalibur, which he had received from Merlin through the lady of the lake. It shone as brightly as thirty torches, blinding his enemies. With that, he charged back at them alongside his knights, driving them back and killing many, while Merlin used his magic to unleash fire and thick smoke among them, causing them to break and flee. Then all the people of Caerleon, seeing them retreat, rallied together and attacked with clubs and staves, chasing them far and wide, and killed many high-ranking knights and lords, while the rest escaped and were never seen again. This is how King Arthur won his first battle and humiliated his enemies.

But the six kings, though sorely routed, prepared for a new war, and joining to themselves five others swore together that, whether for weal or woe, they would keep steadfast alliance till they had destroyed King Arthur. Then, with a host of 50,000 men-at-arms on horseback, and 10,000 foot, they were soon ready, and sent forth their fore-riders, and drew from the northern country towards King Arthur, to the castle of Bedgraine.

But the six kings, despite their heavy defeat, got ready for a new battle. They teamed up with five others and vowed that, come what may, they would stick together until they had defeated King Arthur. Then, with an army of 50,000 knights on horseback and 10,000 foot soldiers, they quickly made their preparations and sent out scouts as they moved down from the north toward King Arthur, heading to the castle of Bedgraine.

But he by Merlin's counsel had sent over sea to King Ban of Benwick and King Bors of Gaul, praying them to come and help him in his wars, and promising to help them in return against King Claudas, their foe. To which those kings made answer that they would joyfully fulfil his wish, and shortly after came to London with 300 knights, well arrayed for both peace and war, leaving behind them a great army on the other side of the sea till they had consulted with King Arthur and his ministers how they might best dispose of it.

But he had, with Merlin's advice, sent a message across the sea to King Ban of Benwick and King Bors of Gaul, asking them to come and assist him in his battles, and promising to support them in return against King Claudas, their enemy. The kings responded that they would gladly fulfill his request, and shortly after arrived in London with 300 knights, well-prepared for both peace and conflict, leaving behind a large army across the sea until they could discuss with King Arthur and his advisors how to best manage it.

And Merlin being asked for his advice and help, agreed to go himself and fetch it over sea to England, which in one night he did; and brought with him 10,000 horsemen and led them northward privately to the forest of Bedgraine, and there lodged them in a valley secretly.

And when Merlin was asked for his advice and assistance, he agreed to go himself and bring it back across the sea to England, which he accomplished in one night; he also brought with him 10,000 horsemen and secretly led them north to the forest of Bedgraine, where he quietly settled them in a valley.

Then, by the counsel of Merlin, when they knew which way the eleven kings would ride and sleep, King Arthur with Kings Ban and Bors made themselves ready with their army for the fight, having yet but 30,000 men, counting the 10,000 who had come from Gaul.

Then, with Merlin's advice, after they figured out which direction the eleven kings would ride and sleep, King Arthur, along with Kings Ban and Bors, prepared their army for battle, still having only 30,000 men, including the 10,000 who had arrived from Gaul.

"Now shall ye do my advice," said Merlin; "I would that King Ban and King Bors, with all their fellowship of 10,000 men, were led to ambush in this wood ere daylight, and stir not therefrom until the battle hath been long waged. And thou, Lord Arthur, at the spring of day draw forth thine army before the enemy, and dress the battle so that they may at once see all thy host, for they will be the more rash and hardy when they see you have but 20,000 men."

"Now you should follow my advice," said Merlin; "I wish for King Ban and King Bors, along with their group of 10,000 men, to be hidden in this forest before dawn, and not to move until the battle has been going on for a while. And you, Lord Arthur, at the break of day, bring forth your army in front of the enemy, and arrange the battle so they can see your entire force at once, because they will be more reckless and bold when they see you only have 20,000 men."

To this the three knights and the barons heartily consented, and it was done as Merlin had devised. So on the morrow when the hosts beheld each other, the host of the north was greatly cheered to find so few led out against them.

To this, the three knights and the barons wholeheartedly agreed, and it was done as Merlin had planned. So the next day, when the armies saw each other, the northern army felt greatly encouraged to see so few opponents facing them.

Then gave King Arthur the command to Sir Ulfius and Sir Brastias to take 3000 men-at-arms, and to open battle. They therefore setting fiercely on the enemy slew them on the right hand and the left till it was wonderful to see their slaughter.

Then King Arthur commanded Sir Ulfius and Sir Brastias to take 3,000 men-at-arms and engage in battle. They charged fiercely at the enemy, cutting them down on both the right and left sides until the scale of their slaughter was astonishing to behold.

When the eleven kings beheld so small a band doing such mighty deeds of arms they were ashamed, and charged them fiercely in return. Then was Sir Ulfius' horse slain under him; but he fought well and marvelously on foot against Duke Eustace and King Clarience, who set upon him grievously, till Sir Brastias, seeing his great peril, pricked towards them swiftly, and so smote the duke through with his spear that horse and man fell down and rolled over. Whereat King Clarience turned upon Sir Brastias, and rushing furiously together they each unhorsed the other and fell both to the ground, and there lay a long time stunned, their horses' knees being cut to the bone. Then came Sir Key the seneschal with six companions, and did wondrous well, till the eleven kings went out against them and overthrew Sir Griflet and Sir Lucas the butler. And when Sir Key saw Sir Griflet unhorsed and on foot, he rode against King Nanters hotly and smote him down, and led his horse to Griflet and horsed him again; with the same spear did Sir Key smite down King Lot and wounded him full sore.

When the eleven kings saw such a small group accomplishing great feats in battle, they felt ashamed and charged at them fiercely in return. Sir Ulfius's horse was killed under him, but he fought bravely and remarkably on foot against Duke Eustace and King Clarience, who attacked him fiercely, until Sir Brastias, noticing his great danger, quickly rushed over and struck the duke with his spear, knocking both horse and man down. King Clarience then turned on Sir Brastias, and in their furious clash, they each unhorsed the other and fell to the ground, lying there for a long time dazed, their horses’ knees cut to the bone. Then came Sir Key the seneschal with six companions, who fought valiantly, until the eleven kings charged at them and took down Sir Griflet and Sir Lucas the butler. When Sir Key saw Sir Griflet unhorsed and on foot, he charged at King Nanters fiercely and knocked him down, then brought his horse back to Griflet and helped him mount again; with the same spear, Sir Key also struck down King Lot and wounded him severely.

But seeing that, the King of the Hundred Knights rushed at Sir Key and overthrew him in return, and took his horse and gave it to King Lot. And when Sir Griflet saw Sir Key's mischance, he set his spear in rest, and riding at a mighty man-at-arms, he cast him down headlong and caught his horse and led it straightway to Sir Key.

But when he saw that, the King of the Hundred Knights charged at Sir Key and knocked him down in return, then took his horse and gave it to King Lot. And when Sir Griflet noticed Sir Key's misfortune, he braced his spear and rode at a powerful warrior, knocked him down, and took his horse, then brought it straight to Sir Key.

By now the battle was growing perilous and hard, and both sides fought with rage and fury. And Sir Ulfius and Sir Brastias were both afoot and in great danger of their death, and foully stained and trampled under horses' feet. Then King Arthur, putting spurs to his horse, rushed forward like a lion into the midst of all the mêlèe, and singling out King Cradlemont of North Wales, smote him through the left side and overthrew him, and taking his horse by the rein he brought it to Sir Ulfius in haste and said, "Take this horse, mine old friend, for thou hast great need of one, and charge by side of me." And even as he spoke he saw Sir Ector, Sir Key's father, smitten to the earth by the King of the Hundred Knights, and his horse taken to King Cradlemont.

By now the battle was getting dangerous and intense, and both sides were fighting with anger and fury. Sir Ulfius and Sir Brastias were both on foot, in serious danger of dying, and were grimy and trampled under the horses' hooves. Then King Arthur kicked his horse into action and charged into the middle of the mêlèe, targeting King Cradlemont of North Wales. He struck him on the left side and knocked him down. Grabbing the reins of his horse, he quickly brought it to Sir Ulfius and said, "Take this horse, my old friend, because you really need one, and ride alongside me." Just as he spoke, he saw Sir Ector, Sir Key's father, knocked to the ground by the King of the Hundred Knights, and his horse taken by King Cradlemont.

But when King Arthur saw him ride upon Sir Ector's horse his wrath was very great, and with his sword he smote King Cradlemont upon the helm, and shore off the fourth part thereof and of the shield, and drave the sword onward to the horse's neck and slew the horse, and hurled the king upon the ground.

But when King Arthur saw him riding Sir Ector's horse, he was extremely angry, and with his sword, he struck King Cradlemont on the helmet, chopping off a quarter of it and part of the shield, then drove the sword further into the horse's neck, killing the horse and throwing the king to the ground.

And now the battle waxed so great and furious that all the noise and sound thereof rang out by water and by wood, so that Kings Ban and Bors, with all their knights and men-at-arms in ambush, hearing the tumult and the cries, trembled and shook for eagerness, and scarce could stay in secret, but made them ready for the fray and dressed their shields and harness.

And now the battle grew so intense and fierce that the noise and commotion echoed across the water and through the woods. Kings Ban and Bors, along with all their knights and soldiers hiding in ambush, were filled with excitement upon hearing the uproar and the shouts. They couldn't contain themselves, so they prepared for the fight, getting their shields and armor ready.

But when King Arthur saw the fury of the enemy, he raged like a mad lion, and stirred and drove his horse now here, now there, to the right hand and to the left and stayed not in his wrath till he had slain full twenty knights. He wounded also King Lot so sorely in the shoulder that he left the field, and in great pain and dolor cried out to the other kings, "Do ye as I devise, or we shall be destroyed. I, with the King of the Hundred Knights, King Anguisant, King Yder, and the Duke of Cambinet, will take fifteen thousand men and make a circuit, meanwhile that ye do hold the battle with twelve thousand. Then coming suddenly we will fall fiercely on them from behind and put them to the rout, but else shall we never stand against them."

But when King Arthur saw the enemy's fury, he went into a frenzy like a raging lion, moving his horse this way and that, back and forth, not stopping in his anger until he had slain twenty knights. He also wounded King Lot so badly in the shoulder that he left the battlefield, crying out in great pain to the other kings, "Do as I suggest, or we will be destroyed. I, along with the King of the Hundred Knights, King Anguisant, King Yder, and the Duke of Cambinet, will take fifteen thousand men and make a flank maneuver while you hold the battle with twelve thousand. Then, suddenly, we’ll strike hard from behind and send them running, or else we won't be able to withstand them."

So Lot and four kings departed with their party to one side, and the six other kings dressed their ranks against King Arthur and fought long and stoutly.

So Lot and four kings left with their group to one side, while the six other kings organized their ranks against King Arthur and fought fiercely for a long time.

But now Kings Ban and Bors, with all their army fresh and eager, broke from their ambush and met face to face the five kings and their host as they came round behind, and then began a frantic struggle with breaking of spears and clashing of swords and slaying of men and horses. Anon King Lot, espying in the midst King Bors, cried out in great dismay, "Our Lady now defend us from our death and fearful wounds; our peril groweth great, for yonder cometh one of the worshipfullest kings and best knights in all the world."

But now Kings Ban and Bors, with their entire army fresh and eager, broke from their ambush and confronted the five kings and their forces as they came around from behind. A fierce struggle began, filled with broken spears, clashing swords, and the killing of men and horses. Soon King Lot, spotting King Bors in the middle of the chaos, shouted in great alarm, "May our Lady protect us from death and serious wounds! Our danger is increasing, for over there comes one of the most respected kings and greatest knights in the whole world."

"Who is he?" said the King of the Hundred Knights.

"Who is he?" asked the King of the Hundred Knights.

"It is King Bors of Gaul," replied King Lot, "and much I marvel how he may have come with all his host into this land without our knowledge."

"It’s King Bors of Gaul," replied King Lot, "and I’m really surprised he was able to come with all his people into this land without us knowing."

"Aha!" cried King Carados, "I will encounter with this king if ye will rescue me when there is need."

"Aha!" shouted King Carados, "I will face this king if you promise to help me when it's necessary."

"Ride on," said they.

"Ride on," they said.

So King Carados and all his host rode softly till they came within a bow-shot of King Bors, and then both hosts, spurring their horses to their greatest swiftness, rushed at each other. And King Bors encountered in the onset with a knight, and struck him through with a spear, so that he fell dead upon the earth; then drawing his sword, he did such mighty feats of arms that all who saw him gazed with wonder. Anon King Ban came also forth upon the field with all his knights, and added yet more fury, sound, and slaughter, till at length both hosts of the eleven kings began to quake, and drawing all together into one body, they prepared to meet the worst, while a great multitude already fled.

So King Carados and his entire army rode slowly until they were within a bowshot of King Bors. Then both armies, kicking their horses into high gear, charged at each other. King Bors met a knight head-on and pierced him with a spear, causing him to fall dead to the ground. Drawing his sword, he performed such incredible feats that everyone watching was filled with awe. Soon after, King Ban also entered the battlefield with all his knights, adding even more chaos, noise, and carnage. Eventually, both armies of the eleven kings began to tremble, pulling together as one to brace for the worst, while many in the crowd were already fleeing.

Then said King Lot, "Lords, we must take yet other means, or worse loss still awaits us. See ye not what people we have lost in waiting on the footmen, and that it costs ten horsemen to save one of them? Therefore it is my counsel to put away our footmen from us, for it is almost night, and King Arthur will not stay to slaughter them. So they can save their lives in this great wood hard by. Then let us gather into one band all the horsemen that remain, and whoso breaketh rank or leaveth us, let him be straightway slain by him that seeth him, for it is better that we slay a coward than through a coward be all slain. How say ye?" said King Lot; "answer me, all ye kings."

Then King Lot said, "Lords, we need to find a different strategy, or we're facing an even worse loss. Don't you see how many people we’ve lost waiting for the foot soldiers, and that it takes ten horsemen to save just one of them? So, I suggest we dismiss our foot soldiers, as night is almost upon us, and King Arthur won't stick around to finish them off. They can save themselves in this nearby forest. Let’s unite all the remaining horsemen into one group, and if anyone breaks rank or abandons us, let that person be immediately killed by whoever spots him, because it's better to kill a coward than to be defeated because of one. What do you think?" said King Lot; "I want an answer from all you kings."

"It is well said," replied they all.

"They all said it's true."

And swearing they would never fail each other, they mended and set right their armor and their shields, and took new spears and set them steadfastly against their thighs, waiting, and so stood still as a clump of trees stands on the plain; and no assaults could shake them, they held so hard together; which when King Arthur saw he marveled greatly, and was very wroth. "Yet," cried he, "I may not blame them, by my faith, for they do as brave men ought to do, and are the best fighting men and knights of most prowess that I ever saw or heard tell of." And so said also Kings Ban and Bors, and praised them greatly for their noble chivalry.

And swearing they would never let each other down, they fixed and adjusted their armor and shields, grabbed new spears, and placed them firmly against their thighs, waiting. They stood still like a group of trees on a plain; no attacks could shake them, as they held tightly together. When King Arthur saw this, he was greatly amazed and very angry. "Yet," he exclaimed, "I can’t blame them, truly, for they are acting as brave men should, and they are the best fighters and knights of the highest skill that I have ever seen or heard of." Kings Ban and Bors also agreed and praised them highly for their noble chivalry.

But now came forty noble knights out of King Arthur's host, and prayed that he would suffer them to break the enemy. And when they were allowed, they rode forth with their spears upon their thighs, and spurred their horses to their hottest. Then the eleven kings, with a party of their knights, rushed with set spears as fast and mightily to meet them; and when they were encountered, all the crash and splinter of their spears and armor rang with a mighty din, and so fierce and bloody was their onset that in all that day there had been no such cruel press, and rage, and smiting. At that same moment rode fiercely into the thickest of the struggle King Arthur and Kings Ban and Bors, and slew downright on both hands right and left, until their horses went in blood up to the fetlocks.

But now, forty noble knights from King Arthur's army stepped forward and asked him for permission to fight the enemy. Once they were granted this, they rode out with their spears resting on their thighs, spurring their horses as hard as they could. Then the eleven kings, along with some of their knights, charged with their spears aimed directly at them, meeting them with great speed and power. When they collided, the sound of shattering spears and armor created a colossal noise, and the ferocity and violence of their attack were so intense that there had been no such brutal clash that day—not to mention the fury and striking. At that same moment, King Arthur, along with Kings Ban and Bors, fiercely rode into the thick of the battle and struck down foes on both sides until their horses were soaked in blood up to their fetlocks.

And while the slaughter and the noise and shouting were at their greatest, suddenly there came down through the battle Merlin the Wizard, upon a great black horse, and riding to King Arthur, he cried out, "Alas, my Lord! will ye have never done? Of sixty thousand have ye left but fifteen thousand men alive. Is it not time to stay this slaying? for God is ill pleased with ye that ye have never ended, and yonder kings shall not be altogether overthrown this time. But if ye fall upon them any more, the fortune of this day will turn, and go to them. Withdraw, Lord, therefore, to thy lodging, and there now take thy rest, for to-day thou hast won a great victory, and overcome the noblest chivalry of all the world. And now for many years those kings shall not disturb thee. Therefore, I tell thee, fear them no more, for now they are sore beaten, and have nothing left them but their honor; and why shouldest thou slay them to take that?"

And while the fighting, noise, and yelling were at their peak, suddenly, through the chaos, Merlin the Wizard appeared, riding a massive black horse. He reached King Arthur and shouted, "Alas, my Lord! Will you never stop? Of sixty thousand, you have only left fifteen thousand men alive. Isn't it time to end this killing? God is displeased with you for not stopping, and those kings won’t be completely defeated this time. But if you attack them again, the outcome of today will turn against you. So withdraw, my Lord, to your quarters, and take some rest. Today, you have achieved a great victory and defeated the finest knights in the world. For many years, those kings won’t bother you. So, I tell you, don’t fear them anymore, for they are badly beaten and have nothing left but their honor; why should you kill them to take that?"

Then said King Arthur, "Thou sayest well, and I will take thy counsel." With that he cried out, "Ho!" for the battle to cease, and sent forth heralds through the field to stay more fighting. And gathering all the spoil, he gave it not amongst his own host, but to Kings Ban and Bors and all their knights and men-at-arms, that he might treat them with the greater courtesy as strangers.

Then King Arthur said, "You're right, and I'll follow your advice." With that, he shouted, "Hey!" for the battle to stop, and sent heralds across the field to call off the fighting. Instead of sharing the loot with his own men, he gave it to Kings Ban and Bors and all their knights and soldiers, so he could treat them with even more respect as guests.

Then Merlin took his leave of Arthur and the two other kings, and went to see his master, Blaise, a holy hermit, dwelling in Northumberland, who had nourished him through all his youth. And Blaise was passing glad to see him, for there was a great love ever between them; and Merlin told him how King Arthur had sped in the battle, and how it had ended; and told him the names of every king and knight of worship who was there. So Blaise wrote down the battle, word for word, as Merlin told him; and in the same way ever after, all the battles of King Arthur's days Merlin caused Blaise, his master, to record.

Then Merlin said goodbye to Arthur and the two other kings, and went to see his mentor, Blaise, a holy hermit living in Northumberland, who had raised him throughout his childhood. Blaise was very happy to see him, as there was always a deep bond between them; and Merlin told him how King Arthur fared in the battle, and how it ended; and he mentioned the names of every noble king and knight who was there. So Blaise wrote down the battle, word for word, as Merlin told him; and from then on, Merlin had Blaise record all the battles of King Arthur's era in the same way.


III

ARTHUR DRIVES THE SAXONS FROM HIS REALM

Anon, thereafter, came word to King Arthur that Ryence, King of North Wales, was making war upon King Leodegrance of Camelgard; whereat he was passing wroth, for he loved Leodegrance well, and hated Ryence. So he departed with Kings Ban and Bors and twenty thousand men, and came to Camelgard, and rescued Leodegrance, and slew ten thousand of Ryence's men and put him to flight. Then Leodegrance made a great festival to the three kings, and treated them with every manner of mirth and pleasure which could be devised. And there had King Arthur the first sight of Guinevere, daughter of Leodegrance, whom in the end he married, as shall be told hereafter.

Soon after, King Arthur received word that Ryence, the King of North Wales, was waging war against King Leodegrance of Camelgard. This made him extremely angry because he cared deeply for Leodegrance and despised Ryence. So, he set out with Kings Ban and Bors, along with twenty thousand men, and arrived at Camelgard, where he rescued Leodegrance, killing ten thousand of Ryence's troops and forcing Ryence to flee. Afterward, Leodegrance held a grand celebration for the three kings, honoring them with every kind of joy and entertainment that could be imagined. It was there that King Arthur had his first glimpse of Guinevere, Leodegrance's daughter, whom he would ultimately marry, as will be revealed later.

Then did Kings Ban and Bors take leave, and went to their own country, where King Claudas worked great mischief. And King Arthur would have gone with them, but they refused him, saying, "Nay, ye shall not at this time, for ye have yet much to do in these lands of your own; and we with the riches we have won here by your gifts shall hire many good knights, and, by the grace of God, withstand the malice of King Claudas; and if we have need we will send to ye for succor; and likewise ye, if ye have need, send for us, and we will not tarry, by the faith of our bodies."

Then Kings Ban and Bors said their goodbyes and returned to their own kingdom, where King Claudas was causing a lot of trouble. King Arthur wanted to go with them, but they refused, saying, "No, you can't come with us this time. You still have a lot to do in your own lands. With the wealth we’ve gained here thanks to your gifts, we will hire many good knights and, with God’s help, withstand the evil of King Claudas. If we need help, we’ll send for you; and if you need us, just call, and we won’t delay, we promise."

When the two kings had left, King Arthur rode to Caerleon, and thither came to him his half-sister Belisent, wife to King Lot, sent as a messenger, but in truth to espy his power; and with her came a noble retinue, and also her four sons—Gowain, Gaheris, Agravaine, and Gareth. But when she saw King Arthur and his nobleness, and all the splendor of his knights and service, she forebore to spy upon him as a foe, and told him of her husband's plots against him and his throne. And the king, not knowing that she was his half-sister, made great court to her; and being full of admiration for her beauty, loved her out of measure, and kept her a long season at Caerleon. Wherefore her husband, King Lot, was more than ever King Arthur's enemy, and hated him till death with a passing great hatred.

When the two kings had left, King Arthur rode to Caerleon, and there his half-sister Belisent, the wife of King Lot, came to him as a messenger, but really to assess his strength; she brought along a noble entourage and her four sons—Gowain, Gaheris, Agravaine, and Gareth. However, when she saw King Arthur and his nobility, along with the splendor of his knights and their service, she refrained from spying on him as an enemy and informed him about her husband's schemes against him and his throne. The king, not realizing she was his half-sister, treated her with great honor and, filled with admiration for her beauty, became deeply infatuated with her, keeping her at Caerleon for a long time. As a result, her husband, King Lot, grew to be even more of an enemy to King Arthur, hating him with an intense and lasting hatred until his death.

At that time King Arthur had a marvelous dream, which gave him great disquietness of heart. He dreamed that the whole land was full of many fiery griffins and serpents, which burnt and slew the people everywhere; and then that he himself fought with them, and that they did him mighty injuries, and wounded him nigh to death, but that at last he overcame and slew them all. When he woke, he sat in great heaviness of spirit and pensiveness, thinking what this dream might signify, but by-and-by, when he could by no means satisfy himself what it might mean, to rid himself of all his thoughts of it, he made ready with a great company to ride out hunting.

At that time, King Arthur had a vivid dream that left him deeply unsettled. He dreamt that the entire land was filled with fiery griffins and serpents that burned and killed people everywhere. In the dream, he fought against them and suffered serious injuries, nearly losing his life, but in the end, he managed to defeat and kill them all. When he woke up, he was filled with a heavy spirit and deep contemplation, trying to figure out what the dream could mean. Eventually, when he couldn't make sense of it, he decided to clear his mind by preparing a large group to go out hunting.

As soon as he was in the forest, the king saw a great hart before him, and spurred his horse, and rode long eagerly after it, and chased until his horse lost breath and fell down dead from under him. Then, seeing the hart escaped and his horse dead, he sat down by a fountain, and fell into deep thought again. And as he sat there alone, he thought he heard the noise of hounds, as it were some thirty couple in number, and looking up he saw coming towards him the strangest beast that ever he had seen or heard tell of, which ran towards the fountain and drank of the water. Its head was like a serpent's, with a leopard's body and a lion's tail, and it was footed like a stag; and the noise was in its belly, as it were the baying or questing of thirty couple of hounds. While it drank there was no noise within it; but presently, having finished, it departed with a greater sound than ever.

As soon as he entered the forest, the king spotted a great stag ahead of him, spurred his horse, and eagerly chased after it for a long time until his horse got exhausted and collapsed dead beneath him. Realizing the stag had escaped and his horse was dead, he settled down by a fountain and fell into deep thought again. While he sat there alone, he thought he heard the sound of hounds—about thirty pairs in total—and looking up, he saw the strangest creature he had ever seen or heard of. It rushed toward the fountain and drank from the water. Its head was like a serpent's, with the body of a leopard and the tail of a lion, and it stood on legs like a stag. The noise was coming from its belly, resembling the baying or calling of thirty pairs of hounds. While it drank, there was no sound from within it; but as soon as it was done, it left, making an even greater noise than before.

The king was amazed at all this; but being greatly wearied, he fell asleep, and was before long waked up by a knight on foot, who said, "Knight, full of thought and sleepy, tell me if thou sawest a strange beast pass this way?"

The king was amazed by all of this; however, feeling very tired, he fell asleep. Before long, he was awakened by a knight on foot, who said, "Knight, deep in thought and sleepy, did you see a strange beast pass by here?"

"Such a one I saw," said King Arthur to the knight, "but that is now two miles distant at the least. What would you with that beast?"

"That's the one I saw," King Arthur said to the knight, "but it's at least two miles away now. What do you want with that creature?"

"Sir," said the knight, "I have followed it for a long time, and have killed my horse, and would to heaven I had another to pursue my quest withal."

"Sir," said the knight, "I have been chasing it for a long time, and I've killed my horse, and I wish to heaven I had another one to continue my quest."

At that moment came a yeoman with another horse for the king, which, when the knight saw, he earnestly prayed to be given him. "For I have followed this quest," said he, "twelve months, and either I shall achieve him or bleed of the best blood of my body."

At that moment, a servant arrived with another horse for the king. When the knight saw it, he eagerly requested to be given the horse. "I've been on this quest," he said, "for twelve months, and either I'll succeed in getting it or I'll bleed out the best blood of my body."

It was King Pellinore who at that time followed the questing beast, but neither he nor King Arthur knew each other.

It was King Pellinore who was chasing the questing beast at that time, but neither he nor King Arthur recognized each other.

"Sir Knight," said King Arthur, "leave that quest and suffer me to have it, and I will follow it other twelve months."

"Sir Knight," King Arthur said, "give up that quest and let me take it over, and I’ll pursue it for another twelve months."

"Ah, fool," said the knight, "thy desire is utterly in vain, for it shall never be achieved but by me, or by my next of kin."

"Ah, fool," said the knight, "your desire is completely pointless, as it can only be fulfilled by me or my relatives."

Therewith he started to the king's horse, and mounted to the saddle, crying out, "Gramercy, this horse is mine!"

Thereupon, he approached the king's horse and got into the saddle, shouting, "Thank you, this horse is mine!"

"Well," said the king, "thou mayest take my horse by force, and I will not say nay; but till we prove whether thou or I be best on horseback, I shall not rest content."

"Well," said the king, "you may take my horse by force, and I won't argue; but until we find out whether you or I am better on horseback, I won't be satisfied."

"Seek me here," said the knight, "whenever thou wilt, and here by this fountain thou shalt find me;" and so he passed forth on his way.

“Look for me here,” said the knight, “whenever you want, and you’ll find me here by this fountain;” and with that, he went on his way.

Then sat King Arthur in a deep fit of study, and bade his yeomen fetch him yet another horse as quickly as they could. And when they left him all alone came Merlin, disguised as a child of fourteen years of age, and saluted the king, and asked him why he was so pensive and heavy.

Then King Arthur sat deep in thought and ordered his men to bring him another horse as quickly as they could. Once they left him alone, Merlin appeared, disguised as a fourteen-year-old boy, greeted the king, and asked why he seemed so lost in thought and troubled.

"I may well be pensive and heavy," he replied, "for here even now I have seen the strangest sight I ever saw."

"I might be feeling thoughtful and weighed down," he replied, "because just now I witnessed the strangest thing I've ever seen."

"That know I well," said Merlin, "as well as thyself, and also all thy thoughts; but thou art foolish to take thought, for it will not amend thee. Also I know what thou art, and know thy father and thy mother."

"Yeah, I know that well," said Merlin, "just like you do, and I can see all your thoughts; but you’re being silly to worry, because it won’t fix anything for you. I also know who you are, and I know your dad and your mom."

"That is false," said King Arthur; "how shouldst thou know? thy years are not enough."

"That's not true," said King Arthur; "how would you know? You don't have enough experience."

"Yea," said Merlin, "but I know better than thou how thou wast born, and better than any man living."

"Yeah," said Merlin, "but I know more than you do about how you were born, and better than anyone else alive."

"I will not believe thee," said King Arthur, and was wroth with the child.

"I won't believe you," said King Arthur, and he was angry with the child.

So Merlin departed, and came again in the likeness of an old man of fourscore years of age; and the king was glad at his coming, for he seemed wise and venerable. Then said the old man, "Why art thou so sad?"

So Merlin left and returned as an old man of eighty years; the king was happy to see him because he looked wise and respected. Then the old man asked, "Why are you so sad?"

"For divers reasons," said King Arthur; "for I have seen strange things to-day, and but this moment there was here a child who told me things beyond his years to know."

"For various reasons," said King Arthur; "for I have witnessed strange things today, and just a moment ago, there was a child here who told me things that were beyond his years to know."

"Yea," said the old man, "but he told thee truth, and more he would have told thee hadst thou suffered him. But I will tell thee wherefore thou art sad, for thou hast done a thing of late for which God is displeased with thee, and what it is thou knowest in thy heart, though no man else may know."

"Yeah," said the old man, "but he told you the truth, and he would have told you more if you had let him. But I'll tell you why you're sad, because you've done something recently that has displeased God, and you know what it is in your heart, even if no one else does."

"What are thou," said King Arthur, starting up all pale, "that tellest me these tidings?"

"What are you," said King Arthur, sitting up all pale, "that tells me this news?"

"I am Merlin," said he, "and I was he in the child's likeness, also."

"I am Merlin," he said, "and I was him in the child's form, too."

"Ah," said King Arthur, "thou art a marvelous and right fearful man, and I would ask and tell thee many things this day."

"Ah," said King Arthur, "you are a remarkable and truly terrifying man, and I would like to ask and tell you many things today."

As they talked came one with the king's horses, and so, King Arthur mounting one, and Merlin another, they rode together to Caerleon; and Merlin prophesied to Arthur of his death, and also foretold his own end.

As they were talking, a person arrived with the king's horses, and so King Arthur got on one horse while Merlin mounted another. They rode together to Caerleon, and Merlin predicted Arthur's death while also foretelling his own end.

And now King Arthur, having utterly dispersed and overwhelmed those kings who had so long delayed his coronation, turned all his mind to overthrow the Saxon heathens who yet in many places spoiled the land. Calling together, therefore, his knights and men-at-arms, he rode with all his hosts to York, where Colgrin, the Saxon, lay with a great army; and there he fought a mighty battle, long and bloody, and drove him into the city, and besieged him. Then Baldulph, Colgrin's brother, came secretly with six thousand men to assail King Arthur and to raise the siege. But King Arthur was aware of him, and sent six hundred horsemen and three thousand foot to meet and fall on him instead. This therefore they did, encountering them at midnight, and utterly defeated them, till they fled away for life. But Baldulph, full of grief, resolved to share his brother's peril; wherefore he shaved his head and beard, and disguised himself as a jester, and so passed through King Arthur's camp, singing and playing on a harp, till by degrees he drew near to the city walls, where presently he made himself known, and was drawn up by ropes into the town.

And now King Arthur, having completely defeated and overwhelmed the kings who had delayed his coronation for so long, focused all his efforts on defeating the Saxon heathens who were still plundering the land in many places. He gathered his knights and men-at-arms and rode with his entire army to York, where Colgrin, the Saxon, had a large army stationed. There, he fought a huge, bloody battle, driving Colgrin into the city and laying siege to him. Then Baldulph, Colgrin's brother, secretly arrived with six thousand men to attack King Arthur and lift the siege. However, King Arthur was aware of his plans and sent six hundred horsemen and three thousand foot soldiers to confront and engage him instead. They did so, meeting them at midnight and completely defeating them until they fled for their lives. But Baldulph, filled with sorrow, decided to share his brother's danger; thus, he shaved his head and beard, disguised himself as a jester, and made his way through King Arthur's camp, singing and playing a harp, until he gradually approached the city walls, where he revealed his identity and was pulled up by ropes into the town.

Anon, while Arthur closely watched the city, came news that full six hundred ships had landed countless swarms of Saxons, under Cheldric, on the eastern coast. At that he raised the siege, and marched straight to London, and there increased his army, and took counsel with his barons how to drive the Saxons from the land for evermore.

Soon, while Arthur was closely watching the city, news arrived that six hundred ships had landed countless Saxons, led by Cheldric, on the eastern coast. In response, he lifted the siege and marched straight to London, where he bolstered his army and consulted with his barons on how to drive the Saxons out of the land for good.

Then with his nephew, Hoel, King of the Armorican Britons, who came with a great force to help him, King Arthur, with a mighty multitude of barons, knights, and fighting men, went swiftly up to Lincoln, which the Saxons lay besieging. And there he fought a passing fierce battle, and made grievous slaughter, killing above six thousand men, till the main body of them turned and fled. But he pursued them hotly into the wood of Celidon, where, sheltering themselves among the trees from his arrows, they made a stand, and for a long season bravely defended themselves. Anon, he ordered all the trees in that part of the forest to be cut down, leaving no shelter or ambush; and with their trunks and branches made a mighty barricade, which shut them in and hindered their escape. After three days, brought nigh to death by famine, they offered to give up their wealth of gold and silver spoils, and to depart forthwith in their empty ships; moreover, to pay tribute to King Arthur when they reached their home, and to leave him hostages till all was paid.

Then, along with his nephew Hoel, the King of the Armorican Britons, who came with a large force to support him, King Arthur, accompanied by a massive group of barons, knights, and soldiers, quickly marched to Lincoln, where the Saxons were besieging the city. There, he engaged in an incredibly fierce battle, causing heavy casualties and killing over six thousand men until the main group turned and fled. He pursued them aggressively into the woods of Celidon, where they took cover among the trees from his arrows and made a stand, bravely defending themselves for a long time. Soon after, he ordered all the trees in that part of the forest to be cut down, leaving no cover or hiding places; he used their trunks and branches to create a formidable barricade that trapped them and blocked their escape. After three days, nearing death from starvation, they offered to surrender their wealth of gold and silver and depart immediately in their empty ships; furthermore, they agreed to pay tribute to King Arthur when they returned home and to leave him hostages until all payments were made.

This offer, therefore, he accepted, and suffered them to depart. But when they had been a few hours at sea, they repented of their shameful flight, and turned their ships back again, and landing at Totnes, ravaged all the land as far as the Severn, and, burning and slaying on all sides, bent their steps towards Bath.

This offer, then, he accepted, and let them leave. But after they had been at sea for a few hours, they regretted their disgraceful escape and turned their ships back, landing at Totnes. They devastated the land as far as the Severn, burning and killing everywhere, and headed towards Bath.

When King Arthur heard of their treachery and their return, he burned with anger till his eyes shone like two torches, and then he swore a mighty oath to rest no more until he had utterly destroyed those enemies of God and man, and had rooted them forever out of the land of Britain. Then marching hotly with his armies on to Bath, he cried aloud to them, "Since these detestable and impious heathens disdain to keep their faith with me, I, to keep faith with God, to whom I swear to cherish and defend this realm, will now this day avenge on them the blood of all that they have slain in Britain!"

When King Arthur heard about their betrayal and their return, he was filled with such rage that his eyes shone like two torches. He then made a powerful vow to rest no more until he had completely destroyed those enemies of God and humanity and had driven them out of the land of Britain for good. Marching fiercely with his armies toward Bath, he shouted to them, "Since these despicable and godless heathens refuse to keep their promise to me, I, to remain true to God, to whom I pledge to protect and defend this kingdom, will today avenge the blood of everyone they have killed in Britain!"

In like manner after him spoke the archbishop, standing upon a hill, and crying that to-day they should fight both for their country and for Paradise, "For whoso," he said, "shall in this holy war be slain, the angels shall forthwith receive him; for death in this cause shall be penance and absolution for all sins."

Similarly, the archbishop spoke after him, standing on a hill and proclaiming that today they should fight for both their country and Paradise. "For whoever," he said, "is killed in this holy war will be immediately received by the angels; for dying in this cause will serve as penance and forgiveness for all sins."

At these words every man in the whole army raged with hatred, and pressed eagerly to rush upon those savages.

At these words, every man in the entire army boiled with rage and eagerly pushed forward to confront those savages.

Anon King Arthur, dressed in armor shining with gold and jewels, and wearing on his head a helmet with a golden dragon, took a shield painted with the likeness of the blessed Mary. Then girding on Excalibur and taking in his right hand his great lance Ron, he placed his men in order and led them out against the enemy, who stood for battle on the slope of Badon Hill, ranged in the form of a wedge, as their custom was. And they, resisting all the onslaughts of King Arthur and his host, made that day a stout defense, and at night lay down upon the hill.

King Arthur, wearing armor that sparkled with gold and jewels and a helmet featuring a golden dragon, picked up a shield painted with the image of the blessed Mary. After strapping on Excalibur and grabbing his large lance Ron in his right hand, he arranged his men and led them into battle against the enemy, who were positioned on the slope of Badon Hill in a wedge formation, as was their tradition. Despite King Arthur and his army's relentless attacks, the enemy held their ground steadfastly that day and camped on the hill at night.

But on the next day Arthur led his army once again to the attack, and with wounds and slaughter such as no man had ever seen before, he drove the heathen step by step before him, backwards and upwards, till he stood with all his noblest knights upon the summit of the hill.

But the next day, Arthur led his army into battle again, and with injuries and bloodshed like nothing anyone had ever witnessed, he pushed the enemy back step by step, until he and his bravest knights were standing on the top of the hill.

And then men saw him, "red as the rising sun from spur to plume," lift up his sword, and, kneeling, kiss the cross of it; and after, rising to his feet, set might and main with all his fellowship upon the foe, till, as a troop of lions roaring for their prey, they drove them like a scattered herd along the plains, and cut them down till they could cut no more for weariness.

And then the men saw him, "red as the rising sun from spur to plume," lift his sword, kneel down, and kiss the cross on it; and afterward, getting back up, he and his companions gave everything they had against the enemy, until, like a pack of lions roaring for their prey, they pushed them back like a scattered herd across the plains and kept cutting them down until they couldn’t anymore from exhaustion.

That day King Arthur by himself alone slew with his sword Excalibur four hundred and seventy heathens. Colgrin also, and his brother Baldulph, were slain.

That day, King Arthur single-handedly killed four hundred and seventy heathens with his sword, Excalibur. Colgrin and his brother Baldulph were also slain.

Then the king bade Cador, Duke of Cornwall, follow Cheldric, the chief leader, and the remnant of his hosts, unto the uttermost. He, therefore, when he had first seized their fleet, and filled it with chosen men, to beat them back when they should fly to it at last, chased them and slew them without mercy so long as he could overtake them. And though they crept with trembling hearts for shelter to the coverts of the woods and dens of mountains, yet even so they found no safety, for Cador slew them, even one by one. Last of all he caught and slew Cheldric himself, and slaughtering a great multitude took hostages for the surrender of the rest.

Then the king instructed Cador, Duke of Cornwall, to pursue Cheldric, the main leader, and the remaining members of his army to the end. So, after seizing their fleet and filling it with select men to push them back when they finally tried to escape to it, he chased them down and killed them without mercy as long as he could catch up to them. And although they crept into the cover of the woods and into the mountains with scared hearts seeking shelter, they still found no safety, as Cador killed them one by one. In the end, he captured and killed Cheldric himself, and by slaughtering a large number, he took hostages to ensure the surrender of the rest.

Meanwhile, King Arthur turned from Badon Hill, and freed his nephew Hoel from the Scots and Picts, who besieged him in Alculd. And when he had defeated them in three sore battles, he drove them before him to a lake, which was one of the most wondrous lakes in all the world, for it was fed by sixty rivers, and had sixty islands, and sixty rocks, and on every island sixty eagles' nests. But King Arthur with a great fleet sailed round the rivers and besieged them in the lake for fifteen days, so that many thousands died of hunger.

Meanwhile, King Arthur turned away from Badon Hill and rescued his nephew Hoel from the Scots and Picts, who were laying siege to him in Alculd. After defeating them in three fierce battles, he pushed them back to a lake, which was one of the most amazing lakes in the world. It was fed by sixty rivers, had sixty islands, and sixty rocks, and each island had sixty eagles' nests. But King Arthur, with a large fleet, sailed around the rivers and besieged them in the lake for fifteen days, causing many thousands to die of starvation.

Anon the King of Ireland came with an army to relieve them; but Arthur, turning on him fiercely, routed him, and compelled him to retreat in terror to his land. Then he pursued his purpose, which was no less than to destroy the race of Picts and Scots, who, beyond memory, had been a ceaseless torment to the Britons by their barbarous malice.

Soon, the King of Ireland showed up with an army to help them; but Arthur, turning on him fiercely, defeated him and forced him to flee in fear to his homeland. Then he continued with his plan, which was to wipe out the Picts and Scots, who for as long as anyone could remember had been a constant trouble to the Britons with their cruel actions.

So bitterly, therefore, did he treat them, giving quarter to none, that at length the bishops of that miserable country with the clergy met together, and, bearing all the holy relics, came barefooted to the king to pray his mercy for their people. As soon as they were led before him they fell down upon their knees, and piteously besought him to spare the few survivors of their countrymen, and grant them any corner of the land where they might live in peace. When he thus heard them, and knew that he had now fully punished them, he consented to their prayer, and withdrew his hosts from any further slaughter.

So harshly did he treat them, showing no mercy at all, that eventually the bishops of that unfortunate country along with the clergy gathered together and, carrying all the holy relics, came to the king barefoot to plead for mercy for their people. As soon as they were brought before him, they fell to their knees and desperately begged him to spare the few survivors of their fellow countrymen and allow them a piece of land where they could live in peace. When he heard them and realized he had sufficiently punished them, he agreed to their request and pulled back his forces from any further killing.

Then turned he back to his own realm, and came to York for Christmas, and there with high solemnity observed that holy tide; and being passing grieved to see the ruin of the churches and houses, which the rage of the pagans had destroyed, he rebuilt them, and restored the city to its ancient happy state.

Then he returned to his own land and went to York for Christmas, where he celebrated that holy season with great solemnity. Deeply saddened by the destruction of the churches and homes caused by the rage of the pagans, he rebuilt them and restored the city to its former glory.

And on a certain day, as the king sat with his barons, there came into the court a squire on horseback, carrying a knight before him wounded to the death, and told the king that hard by in the forest was a knight who had reared up a pavilion by the fountain, "and hath slain my master, a valiant knight, whose name was Nirles; wherefore I beseech thee, Lord, my master may be buried, and that some good knight may avenge his death."

And one day, as the king was sitting with his nobles, a squire rode into the court on horseback, carrying a mortally wounded knight in front of him. He told the king that nearby in the forest, a knight had set up a tent by the fountain, "and has killed my master, a brave knight named Nirles; so I ask you, my Lord, to allow my master to be buried and for a brave knight to take revenge for his death."

At that stepped forth a squire named Griflet, who was very young, being of the same age with King Arthur, and besought the king, for all the service he had done, to give him knighthood.

At that point, a young squire named Griflet stepped forward, roughly the same age as King Arthur, and asked the king, for all the service he had provided, to grant him knighthood.

"Thou art full young and tender of age," said King Arthur, "to take so high an order upon thee."

"You're still very young and tender," said King Arthur, "to take on such a high responsibility."

"Sir," said Griflet, "I beseech thee make me a knight;" and Merlin also advising the king to grant his request, "Well," said Arthur, "be it then so," and knighted him forthwith. Then said he to him, "Since I have granted thee this favor, thou must in turn grant me a gift."

"Sir," Griflet said, "I ask you to make me a knight;" and Merlin also urged the king to agree to his request. "Well," Arthur said, "let it be so," and knighted him right away. Then he said to him, "Since I’ve granted you this favor, you must in return give me a gift."

"Whatsoever thou wilt, my lord," replied Sir Griflet.

"What you wish, my lord," replied Sir Griflet.

"Promise me," said King Arthur, "by the faith of thy body, that when thou hast jousted with this knight at the fountain, thou wilt return to me straightway, unless he slay thee."

"Promise me," said King Arthur, "by the faith of your body, that when you've dueled with this knight at the fountain, you will come back to me right away, unless he kills you."

"I promise," said Sir Griflet; and taking his horse in haste, he dressed his shield, and took a spear in his hand and rode full gallop till he came to the fountain, by the side of which he saw a rich pavilion, and a great horse standing well saddled and bridled, and on a tree close by there hung a shield of many colors and a long lance.

"I promise," said Sir Griflet; and quickly grabbing his horse, he strapped on his shield, took a spear, and rode at full speed until he reached the fountain. Next to it, he noticed an ornate pavilion, a well-saddled and bridled horse standing nearby, and on a tree close by hung a colorful shield and a long lance.

Then Sir Griflet smote upon the shield with the butt of his spear until he cast it to the ground. At that a knight came out of the pavilion and said, "Fair knight, why smote ye down my shield?"

Then Sir Griflet struck the shield with the end of his spear until he knocked it to the ground. At that moment, a knight emerged from the pavilion and said, "Noble knight, why did you knock down my shield?"

"Because," said Griflet, "I would joust with thee."

"Because," Griflet said, "I want to challenge you to a joust."

"It were better not," replied the knight; "for thou art young and but lately made a knight, and thy strength is small compared to mine."

"It’s probably not a good idea," replied the knight. "You’re young and just recently became a knight, and your strength is much less than mine."

"For all that," said Sir Griflet, "I will joust with ye."

"For all that," said Sir Griflet, "I will joust with you."

"I am full loth," replied the knight; "but if I must I must."

"I really don't want to," replied the knight, "but if I have to, I have to."

Then did they wheel their horses far apart, and running them together, the strange knight shivered Sir Griflet's spear to fragments, and smote him through the shield and the left side, and broke his own spear into Sir Griflet's body, so that the truncheon stuck there, and Sir Griflet and his horse fell down. But when the strange knight saw him overthrown, he was sore grieved, and hastily alighted, for he thought that he had slain him. Then he unlaced his helm and gave him air, and tended him carefully till he come out of his swoon, and leaving the truncheon of his spear in his body, he set him upon horse, and commended him to God, and said he had a mighty heart, and if he lived would prove a passing good knight. And so Sir Griflet rode to the court, where, by aid of good physicians, he was healed in time and his life saved.

Then they moved their horses far apart, and charging at each other, the strange knight shattered Sir Griflet's spear into pieces, striking him through the shield and into his left side, and breaking his own spear in Sir Griflet's body, leaving the splinter embedded there, causing both Sir Griflet and his horse to fall. But when the strange knight saw him down, he felt very distressed and quickly dismounted, thinking he had killed him. He then unfastened his helmet to give him some air and carefully looked after him until he regained consciousness. Leaving the piece of his spear in Sir Griflet, he helped him onto his horse, entrusted him to God, and said he had a strong spirit and if he survived, would make a great knight. So Sir Griflet rode to the court, where, with the help of skilled doctors, he was healed in time and his life was saved.

At that same time there came before the king twelve old men, ambassadors from Lucius Tiberius, Emperor of Rome, and demanded of Arthur tribute unto Cæsar for his realm, or else, said they, the emperor would destroy both him and his land. To whom King Arthur answered that he owed the emperor no tribute, nor would send him any; but said he, "On a fair field I will pay him his proper tribute—with a sharp spear and sword; and by my father's soul that tribute shall he take from me, whether he will or not." So the ambassadors departed passing wroth, and King Arthur was as wroth as they.

At that same time, twelve elderly men, ambassadors from Lucius Tiberius, Emperor of Rome, came before the king and demanded that Arthur pay tribute to Caesar for his kingdom. They warned that if he didn't, the emperor would destroy both him and his land. King Arthur replied that he owed the emperor no tribute and would not send him any. He declared, "On a fair battlefield, I will give him his proper tribute—with a sharp spear and sword; and by my father's soul, he will take that tribute from me, whether he likes it or not." The ambassadors left, extremely angry, and King Arthur was just as furious.

But on the morrow of Sir Griflet's hurt, the king commanded to take his horse and armor secretly outside the city walls before sunrise of the next morning, and, rising a long while before dawn, he mounted up and took his shield and spear, and bade his chamberlain tarry till he came again; but he forbore to take Excalibur, for he had given it for safety into charge of his sister, Queen Morgan le Fay. And as the king rode at a soft pace he saw suddenly three villains chasing Merlin and making to attack and slay him. Clapping spurs to his horse, he rushed towards them, and cried out in a terrible voice, "Flee, churls, or take your deaths;" but they, as soon as they perceived a knight, fled away with the haste of hares.

But the day after Sir Griflet was hurt, the king ordered his horse and armor to be taken secretly outside the city walls before sunrise. Rising long before dawn, he mounted up, grabbed his shield and spear, and told his chamberlain to wait for his return; however, he decided not to take Excalibur, as he had entrusted it to his sister, Queen Morgan le Fay, for safekeeping. As the king rode at a slow pace, he suddenly saw three villains chasing Merlin and getting ready to attack and kill him. Kicking his horse into a gallop, he rushed toward them and shouted in a fierce voice, "Run, you scoundrels, or face your deaths!" But as soon as they saw a knight, they fled away as quickly as rabbits.

"O Merlin," said the king; "here hadst thou been killed, despite thy many crafts, had I not chanced to pass."

"O Merlin," said the king, "you would have been killed here, despite your many skills, if I hadn't happened to pass by."

"Not so," said Merlin, "for when I would, I could have saved myself; but thou art nearer to thy death than I, for without special help from heaven thou ridest now towards thy grave."

"Not really," said Merlin, "because if I wanted to, I could have saved myself; but you're closer to death than I am, because without special help from heaven, you're riding straight toward your grave."

And as they were thus talking, they came to the fountain and the rich pavilion pitched beside it, and saw a knight sitting all armed on a chair in the opening of the tent. "Sir knight," said King Arthur, "for what cause abidest thou here? to joust with any knight that passeth by? If so, I caution thee to quit that custom."

And while they were talking, they arrived at the fountain and the luxurious pavilion set up next to it, where they saw a knight fully armored sitting in a chair at the entrance of the tent. "Sir knight," said King Arthur, "why are you staying here? Are you planning to challenge any knight who passes by? If so, I advise you to stop that habit."

"That custom," said the knight, "have I followed and will follow, let whosoever will say nay, and if any is aggrieved at it, let him who will amend it."

"That tradition," said the knight, "I have followed and will continue to follow, no matter who disagrees, and if anyone is unhappy about it, let them fix it themselves."

"I will amend it," said King Arthur.

"I'll fix it," said King Arthur.

"And I will defend it," answered the knight.

"And I will defend it," replied the knight.

Then the knight mounted his horse and made himself ready, and charging at each other they met so hard that both their lances splintered into pieces. Then King Arthur drew his sword, but the knight cried out, "Not so; but let us run another tilt together with sharp spears."

Then the knight got on his horse and prepared himself, and as they charged at each other, they collided with such force that both their lances shattered. Then King Arthur drew his sword, but the knight shouted, "Not like that; let's have another run at each other with sharp spears."

"I would with a good will," said King Arthur; "but I have no more spears."

"I would gladly," said King Arthur; "but I don’t have any more spears."

"I have enough of spears," replied the knight, and called a squire, who brought two good new lances.

"I've had my fill of spears," replied the knight, and called a squire, who brought two good new lances.

Then spurring their horses, they rushed together with all their might, and broke each one his own spear short off in his hand. Then the king again put his hand to his sword, but the knight once more cried out, "Nay, yet abide awhile; ye are the best jouster that I ever met with; for the love of knighthood, let us joust yet once again."

Then urging their horses forward, they charged at each other with all their strength, breaking their spears short in their hands. The king reached for his sword again, but the knight shouted out, "Wait, hold on; you’re the best jouster I’ve ever faced. For the love of chivalry, let’s joust one more time."

So once again they tilted with their fullest force, and this time King Arthur's spear was shivered, but the knight's held whole, and drove so furiously against the king that both his horse and he were hurled to the ground.

So once again they charged with all their strength, and this time King Arthur's spear broke, but the knight's remained intact and struck so hard against the king that both he and his horse were knocked to the ground.

At that, King Arthur was enraged and drew his sword and said, "I will attack thee now, Sir knight, on foot, for on horseback I have lost the honor."

At that, King Arthur was furious and drew his sword, saying, "I will fight you now, Sir knight, on foot, because I've lost my honor while on horseback."

"I will be on horseback," said the knight. But when he saw him come on foot, he lighted from his horse, thinking it shame to have so great advantage.

"I'll be on horseback," said the knight. But when he saw him approaching on foot, he got off his horse, thinking it was shameful to have such a big advantage.

And then began they a strong battle, with many great strokes and grievous blows, and so hewed with their swords that the fragments of their armor flew about the fields, and both so bled that all the ground around was like a marsh of blood. Thus they fought long and mightily, and anon, after brief rest fell to again, and so hurtled together like two wild boars that they both rolled to the ground. At last their swords clashed furiously together, and the knight's sword shivered the king's in two.

And then they started a fierce battle, delivering powerful strikes and heavy blows, hacking away with their swords so that bits of armor flew across the field, and both bled so much that the ground around them looked like a swamp of blood. They fought fiercely for a long time, and after a short rest, they went at it again, crashing into each other like two wild boars until they both fell to the ground. Eventually, their swords collided violently, and the knight's sword shattered the king's in two.

Then said the knight, "Now art thou in my power, to save thee or to slay. Yield therefore as defeated, and a recreant knight, or thou shalt surely die."

Then said the knight, "Now you are in my power, to save you or to kill you. Submit as defeated and a cowardly knight, or you will surely die."

"As for death," replied King Arthur, "welcome be it when it cometh; but as for yielding me to thee as a recreant because of this poor accident upon my sword, I had far liefer die than be so shamed."

"As for death," replied King Arthur, "may it come when it will; but as for surrendering to you as a coward because of this minor misfortune with my sword, I would rather die than suffer such shame."

So saying, he sprang on the knight, and took him by the middle and threw him down, and tore off his helm. But the knight, being a huge man, wrestled and struggled in a frenzy with the king until he brought him under, and tore off his helm in turn, and would have smitten off his head.

So saying, he lunged at the knight, grabbed him by the waist, and threw him down, removing his helmet. But the knight, being a large man, fought back fiercely with the king until he got the upper hand, took off the king's helmet in return, and was about to strike off his head.

At that came Merlin and said, "Knight, hold thy hand, for if thou slayest yonder knight, thou puttest all this realm to greater loss and damage than ever realm was in; for he is a man of greater worship than thou dreamest of."

At that moment, Merlin stepped in and said, "Knight, stop right there, because if you kill that knight, you’ll bring more loss and damage to this entire realm than any realm has ever faced; for he is a man of much greater honor than you can imagine."

"Who then is he?" cried the knight.

"Who is he then?" exclaimed the knight.

Then would he have slain him for dread of his wrath, but Merlin cast a spell upon the knight, so that he fell suddenly to the earth in a deep sleep. Then raising up the king, he took the knight's horse for himself and rode away.

Then he would have killed him out of fear of his anger, but Merlin cast a spell on the knight, causing him to suddenly fall to the ground in a deep sleep. After lifting the king, he took the knight's horse for himself and rode away.

"Alas," said King Arthur, "what hast thou done, Merlin? hast thou slain this good knight by thy crafts? There never lived a better knight; I had rather lose my kingdom for a year than have him dead."

"Alas," said King Arthur, "what have you done, Merlin? Did you kill this good knight with your magic? There has never been a better knight; I would rather lose my kingdom for a year than have him dead."

"Be not afraid," said Merlin; "he is more whole and sound than thou art, and is but in a sleep, wherefrom in three hours' time he will awake. I told thee what a knight he was, and how near thou was to death. There liveth not a better knight than he in all the world, and hereafter he shall do thee good service. His name is King Pellinore, and he shall have two sons, who shall be passing valiant men, and, save one another, shall have no equal in prowess and in purity of life. The one shall be named Percival, and the other Lamoracke of Wales."

"Don’t be afraid," said Merlin; "he’s more whole and healthy than you are, and he’s just asleep, from which he will wake up in three hours. I told you what a great knight he is and how close you were to death. There isn’t a better knight in the world than him, and he will serve you well in the future. His name is King Pellinore, and he will have two sons, who will be exceptionally brave men, and, except for each other, will have no equals in skill and in living a good life. One will be named Percival, and the other Lamorack of Wales."

So they rode on to Caerleon, and all the knights grieved greatly when they heard of this adventure, that the king would jeopardize his person thus alone. Yet could they not hide their joy at serving under such a noble chief, who adventured his own life as much as did the poorest knight among them all.

So they rode on to Caerleon, and all the knights were deeply saddened when they heard about this adventure, where the king would risk his life all alone. Yet they couldn't hide their happiness at serving under such a noble leader, who put his life on the line just like the poorest knight among them.


IV

THE KING'S MANY AND GREAT ADVENTURES

The land of Britain being now in peace, and many great and valiant knights therein ready to take part in whatsoever battles or adventures might arise, King Arthur resolved to follow all his enemies to their own coasts. Anon he fitted out a great fleet, and sailing first to Ireland, in one battle he miserably routed the people of the country. The King of Ireland also he took prisoner, and forced all earls and barons to pay him homage.

The land of Britain is now at peace, and many brave knights are ready to participate in any battles or adventures that may come up. King Arthur decided to pursue all his enemies to their own shores. He quickly assembled a large fleet and set sail for Ireland, where he defeated the locals in a fierce battle. He also captured the King of Ireland and compelled all the earls and barons to swear loyalty to him.

Having conquered Ireland, he went next to Iceland and subdued it also, and the winter being then arrived, returned to Britain.

Having conquered Ireland, he next went to Iceland and conquered that too, and when winter arrived, he returned to Britain.

In the next year he set forth to Norway, whence many times the heathen had descended on the British coasts; for he was determined to give so terrible a lesson to those savages as should be told through all their tribes both far and near, and make his name fearful to them.

In the following year, he traveled to Norway, from where the heathens had often invaded the British shores; he was determined to deliver such a terrifying lesson to those savages that it would be spoken of throughout all their tribes, both far and wide, making his name feared among them.

As soon as he was come, Riculf, the king, with all the power of that country, met and gave him battle; but, after mighty slaughter, the Britons had at length the advantage, and slew Riculf and a countless multitude besides.

As soon as he arrived, Riculf, the king, along with all the forces of that region, faced him in battle; but after a fierce fight, the Britons ultimately gained the upper hand and killed Riculf along with countless others.

Having thus defeated them, they set the cities on fire, dispersed the country people, and pursued the victory till they had reduced all Norway, as also Dacia, under the dominion of King Arthur.

Having defeated them, they set the cities on fire, scattered the rural populations, and continued their pursuit of victory until they had brought all of Norway, as well as Dacia, under King Arthur's rule.

Now, therefore, having thus chastised those pagans who so long had harassed Britain, and put his yoke upon them, he voyaged on to Gaul, being steadfastly set upon defeating the Roman governor of that province, and so beginning to make good the threats which he had sent the emperor by his ambassadors.

Now, having punished those pagans who had troubled Britain for so long and forced them under his control, he sailed to Gaul, determined to defeat the Roman governor of that area, thus starting to follow through on the threats he had sent to the emperor through his envoys.

So soon as he was landed on the shores of Gaul, there came to him a countryman who told him of a fearful giant in the land of Brittany, who had slain, murdered, and devoured many people, and had lived for seven years upon young children only, "insomuch," said the man, "that all the children of the country are destroyed; and but the other day he seized upon our duchess, as she rode out with her men, and took her away to his lodging in a cave of a mountain, and though five hundred people followed her, yet could they give her no help or rescue, but left her shrieking and crying lamentably in the giant's hands; and, Lord, she is thy cousin Hoel's wife, who is of thy near kindred; wherefore, as thou art a rightful king, have pity on this lady; and as thou art a valiant conqueror, avenge us and deliver us."

As soon as he landed on the shores of Gaul, a local man approached him and told him about a terrifying giant in Brittany who had killed, murdered, and eaten many people. He had survived for seven years by preying exclusively on young children, “so much so,” the man said, “that all the children in the area are gone. Just the other day, he abducted our duchess while she was riding out with her men and took her to his hideout in a cave on a mountain. Even though five hundred people followed her, they couldn’t help or rescue her, and left her screaming and crying in the giant's grip. And, my lord, she is your cousin Hoel's wife, who is closely related to you; so, as you are the rightful king, have mercy on this lady, and as you are a brave conqueror, avenge us and save us.”

"Alas!" said King Arthur, "this is a great mischief that ye tell of. I had rather than the best realm I have, that I had rescued that lady ere the giant laid his hand on her; but tell me now, good fellow, canst thou bring me where this giant haunteth?"

"Alas!" said King Arthur, "this is a terrible thing you speak of. I would give up my best kingdom to have rescued that lady before the giant got to her; but tell me now, my good man, can you lead me to where this giant lives?"

"Yea, Lord!" replied the man; "lo, yonder, where thou seest two great fires, there shalt thou find him, and more treasure also than is in all Gaul besides."

"Yes, Lord!" replied the man; "look over there, where you see two big fires, that's where you'll find him, along with more treasure than there is in all of Gaul combined."

Then the king returned to his tent, and, calling Sir Key and Sir Bedwin, desired them to get horses ready for himself and them, for that after evensong he would ride a pilgrimage with them alone to St. Michael's Mount. So in the evening they departed, and rode as fast as they could till they came near the mount, and there alighted; and the king commanded the two knights to await him at the hill foot, while he went up alone.

Then the king went back to his tent and asked Sir Key and Sir Bedwin to get horses ready for him and for them because he wanted to ride to St. Michael's Mount for a pilgrimage after evensong. So in the evening, they set off and rode as fast as they could until they got close to the mount, and there they got off their horses. The king told the two knights to wait for him at the bottom of the hill while he went up by himself.

Then he ascended the mountain till he came to a great fire. And there he found a sorrowful widow wringing her hands and weeping miserably, sitting by a new-made grave. And saluting her, King Arthur prayed her wherefore she made such heavy lamentations.

Then he climbed the mountain until he reached a big fire. There, he saw a grieving widow wringing her hands and crying sadly, sitting next to a freshly dug grave. He greeted her and asked why she was in such deep sorrow.

"Sir knight," she said, "speak softly, for yonder is a devil, who, if he hear thy voice, will come and straightway slay thee. Alas! what dost thou here? Fifty such men as thou were powerless to resist him. Here lieth dead my lady, Duchess of Brittany, wife to Sir Hoel, who was the fairest lady in the world, foully and shamefully slaughtered by that fiend! Beware that thou go not too nigh, for he hath overcome and vanquished fifteen kings, and hath made himself a coat of precious stones, embroidered with their beards; but if thou art so hardy, and wilt speak with him, at yonder great fire he is at supper."

"Sir knight," she said, "speak quietly, because there’s a devil over there who, if he hears your voice, will come and kill you right away. Alas! What are you doing here? Fifty men like you would be powerless against him. Here lies dead my lady, the Duchess of Brittany, wife to Sir Hoel, who was the most beautiful woman in the world, brutally and shamefully murdered by that monster! Be careful not to get too close, for he has defeated and conquered fifteen kings and made himself a cloak of precious stones, decorated with their beards; but if you’re brave enough and want to talk to him, he’s having dinner over by that big fire."

"Well," said King Arthur, "I will accomplish mine errand, for all thy fearful words;" and so went forth to the crest of the hill, and saw where the giant sat at supper, gnawing on a limb of a man, and baking his huge frame by the fire, while three damsels turned three spits, whereon were spitted, like larks, twelve young children lately born.

"Well," said King Arthur, "I will complete my mission, despite all your fearful words;" and he went up to the top of the hill, where he saw the giant eating dinner, gnawing on a human leg, and warming his massive body by the fire, while three young women turned three skewers, on which were roasted, like larks, twelve recently born babies.

When King Arthur saw all that, his heart bled for sorrow, and he trembled for rage and indignation; then lifting up his voice he cried aloud—"God, that wieldeth all the world, give thee short life and shameful death, and may the devil have thy soul! Why hast thou slain those children and that fair lady! Wherefore arise, and prepare thee to perish, thou glutton and fiend, for this day thou shalt die by my hands."

When King Arthur saw all that, his heart ached with sorrow, and he shook with anger and outrage; then raising his voice, he shouted loudly—"God, who rules the whole world, may you have a short life and a disgraceful death, and may the devil take your soul! Why did you kill those children and that beautiful lady! Get up and get ready to meet your end, you greedy monster, because today you will die by my hands."

Then the giant, mad with fury at these words, started up, and seizing a great club, smote the king, and struck his crown from off his head. But King Arthur smote him with his sword so mightily in return, that all his blood gushed forth in streams.

Then the giant, furious at these words, jumped up and grabbed a huge club, hitting the king and knocking his crown off his head. But King Arthur struck back with his sword so powerfully that blood poured from him in streams.

At that the giant, howling in great anguish, threw away his club of iron, and caught the king in both his arms and strove to crush his ribs together. But King Arthur struggled and writhed, and twisted him about so that the giant could not hold him tightly; and as they fiercely wrestled, they both fell, and rolling over one another, tumbled—wrestling, and struggling, and fighting frantically—from rock to rock, till they came to the sea.

At that moment, the giant, howling in pain, tossed aside his iron club, grabbed the king in both his arms, and tried to crush his ribs. But King Arthur fought back, struggling and twisting until the giant couldn't hold him tightly. As they fiercely wrestled, they both fell, rolling over each other, tumbling—wrestling, struggling, and fighting desperately—from rock to rock, until they reached the sea.

And as they tore and strove and tumbled, the king ever and anon smote at the giant with his dagger, till his arms stiffened in death around King Arthur's body, and groaning horribly, he died. So presently the two knights came and found the king locked fast in the giant's arms, and very faint and weary, and loosed him from their hold.

And as they ripped and struggled and fell, the king repeatedly stabbed the giant with his dagger until the giant's arms stiffened in death around King Arthur's body, and he groaned horribly before dying. Eventually, the two knights arrived and found the king trapped in the giant's arms, very weak and exhausted, and they freed him from their grip.

Then the king bade Sir Key to "smite off the giant's head, and set it on the truncheon of a spear, and bear it to Sir Hoel, and tell him that his enemy is slain; and afterwards let it be fastened to the castle gate, that all the people may behold it. And go ye two up on the mountain and fetch me my shield and sword, and also the great club of iron ye will see there; and as for the treasure, ye shall find there wealth beyond counting, but take as much as ye will, for I have his kirtle and the club, I desire no more."

Then the king commanded Sir Key to "cut off the giant's head, put it on the end of a spear, and take it to Sir Hoel, letting him know that his enemy is dead; after that, attach it to the castle gate so everyone can see it. And you two, go up the mountain and bring me my shield and sword, along with the large iron club you'll find there; as for the treasure, you'll discover wealth beyond measure, so take as much as you want, for I have his cloak and the club; I don't need anything more."

Then the knights fetched the club and kirtle, as the king had ordered, and took the treasure to themselves, as much as they could carry, and returned to the army. But when this deed was noised abroad, all the people came in multitudes to thank the king, who told them "to give thanks to God, and to divide the giant's spoils amongst them equally." And King Arthur desired Sir Hoel to build a church upon the mount, and dedicate it to the Archangel Michael.

Then the knights brought back the club and cloak, as the king had instructed, and took as much treasure as they could carry before returning to the army. When word of this spread, crowds of people came to thank the king, who told them to "thank God and share the giant's loot equally among themselves." King Arthur asked Sir Hoel to build a church on the hill and dedicate it to the Archangel Michael.

On the morrow, all the host moved onwards into the country of Champagne, and Flollo, the Roman tribune, retired before them into Paris. But while he was preparing to collect more forces from the neighboring countries, King Arthur came upon him unawares; and besieged him in the town.

On the next day, the entire army moved forward into the region of Champagne, and Flollo, the Roman tribune, withdrew into Paris. However, while he was getting ready to gather more troops from the surrounding areas, King Arthur unexpectedly confronted him and surrounded him in the town.

And when a month had passed, Flollo—full of grief at the starvation of his people, who died in hundreds day by day—sent to King Arthur, and desired that they two might fight together; for he was a man of mighty stature and courage, and thought himself sure of the victory. This challenge, King Arthur, full weary of the siege, accepted with great joy, and sent back word to Flollo that he would meet him whensoever he appointed.

And after a month had gone by, Flollo—overwhelmed with sorrow at the hunger of his people, who were dying in droves each day—reached out to King Arthur and asked to duel him; he was a strong and brave man and believed he could easily win. King Arthur, tired of the siege, gladly accepted the challenge and replied to Flollo that he would meet him whenever he decided.

And a truce being made on both sides, they met together the next day on the island without the city, where all the people also were gathered to see the issue. And as the king and Flollo rode up to the lists, each was so nobly armed and horsed, and sat so mightily upon his saddle, that no man could tell which way the battle would end.

And with a truce agreed upon by both sides, they met the next day on the island outside the city, where all the people gathered to watch the outcome. As the king and Flollo approached the arena, both were so splendidly armored and mounted, and sat so confidently in their saddles, that no one could predict how the battle would turn out.

When they had saluted one another, and presented themselves against each other with their lances aloft, they put spurs to their horses and began a fierce encounter. But King Arthur, carrying his spear more warily, struck it on the upper part of Flollo's breast, and flung him from his saddle to the earth. Then drawing his sword, he cried to him to rise, and rushed upon him; but Flollo, starting up, met him with his spear couched, and pierced the breast of King Arthur's horse, and overthrew both horse and man.

When they greeted each other and faced off with their lances raised, they spurred their horses and charged into a fierce battle. But King Arthur, handling his spear more carefully, struck it against the upper part of Flollo's chest, knocking him off his saddle and onto the ground. Then, drawing his sword, he shouted for him to get up and charged at him; but Flollo, springing to his feet, met him with his spear readied and stabbed King Arthur’s horse in the chest, toppling both the horse and the man.

The Britons, when they saw their king upon the ground, could scarcely keep themselves from breaking up the truce and falling on the Gauls. But as they were about to burst the barriers, and rush upon the lists, King Arthur hastily arose, and, guarding himself with his shield, ran with speed on Flollo. And now they renewed the assault with great rage, being sorely bent upon each other's death.

The Britons, when they saw their king on the ground, could barely hold themselves back from breaking the truce and attacking the Gauls. But just as they were about to break down the barriers and charge onto the field, King Arthur quickly got to his feet, and, shielding himself with his shield, ran swiftly at Flollo. Now they renewed the fight with intense fury, determined to kill each other.

At length, Flollo, seizing his advantage, gave King Arthur a huge stroke upon the helm, which nigh overthrew him, and drew forth his blood in streams.

At last, Flollo, taking his chance, struck King Arthur hard on the helmet, nearly knocking him over and causing blood to flow in streams.

But when King Arthur saw his armor and shield all red with blood, he was inflamed with fury, and lifting up Excalibur on high, with all his might, he struck straight through the helmet into Flollo's head, and smote it into halves; and Flollo falling backwards, and tearing up the ground with his spurs, expired.

But when King Arthur saw his armor and shield completely covered in blood, he was filled with rage. Raising Excalibur high, he swung it down with all his strength, striking straight through Flollo's helmet and into his head, splitting it in half. Flollo fell backward, digging into the ground with his spurs, and died.

As soon as this news spread, the citizens all ran together, and, opening the gates, surrendered the city to the conqueror.

As soon as the news got out, the citizens all rushed together and opened the gates, giving up the city to the conqueror.

And when he had overrun the whole province with his arms, and reduced it everywhere to subjection, he returned again to Britain, and held his court at Caerleon, with greater state than ever.

And when he had conquered the entire province with his forces and brought it under control everywhere, he returned to Britain and held his court at Caerleon, with more grandeur than ever before.

Anon he invited thereto all the kings, dukes, earls, and barons, who owed him homage, that he might treat them royally, and reconcile them to each other, and to his rule.

Soon, he invited all the kings, dukes, earls, and barons who owed him loyalty, so he could host them lavishly and bring them together in harmony with each other and with his leadership.

And never was there a city more fit and pleasant for such festivals. For on one side it was washed by a noble river, so that the kings and princes from the countries beyond sea might conveniently sail up to it; and on the other side, the beauty of the groves and meadows, and the stateliness and magnificence of the royal palaces, with lofty gilded roofs, made it even rival the grandeur of Rome. It was famous also for two great and noble churches, whereof one was built in honor of the martyr Julius, and adorned with a choir of virgins who had devoted themselves wholly to the service of God; and the other, founded in memory of St. Aaron, his companion, maintained a convent of canons, and was the third metropolitan church of Britain. Besides, there was a college of two hundred philosophers, learned in astronomy, and all the other sciences and arts.

And there was never a city more suitable and enjoyable for such festivities. On one side, it was bordered by a beautiful river, allowing kings and princes from across the sea to easily sail there; on the other side, the lovely groves and meadows, along with the impressive royal palaces with tall gilded roofs, made it rival the splendor of Rome. It was also known for two great and notable churches, one built in honor of the martyr Julius, adorned with a choir of virgins dedicated entirely to serving God; and the other, established in memory of St. Aaron, his companion, which hosted a convent of canons and was the third metropolitan church of Britain. In addition, there was a college of two hundred philosophers, well-versed in astronomy and all the other sciences and arts.

In this place, therefore, full of such delights, King Arthur held his court, with many jousts and tournaments, and royal huntings, and rested for a season after all his wars.

In this place, filled with such delights, King Arthur held his court, featuring many jousts and tournaments, grand hunts, and he took a break after all his battles.

And on a certain day there came into the court a messenger from Ryence, King of North Wales, bearing this message from his master: That King Ryence had discomfited eleven kings, and had compelled each one of them to cut off his beard; that he had trimmed a mantle with these beards, and lacked but one more beard to finish it; and that he therefore now sent for King Arthur's beard, which he required of him forthwith, or else he would enter his lands and burn and slay, and never leave them till he had taken by force not his beard only, but his head also.

And one day, a messenger from Ryence, the King of North Wales, arrived at the court with a message from his master: King Ryence had defeated eleven kings and had forced each of them to cut off their beards. He had made a cape out of these beards and only needed one more to complete it. Therefore, he was demanding King Arthur's beard immediately, or else he would invade his lands, burn and kill, and wouldn’t stop until he had taken not just his beard, but his head as well.

When King Arthur heard these words he flushed all scarlet, and rising in great anger said, "Well it is for thee that thou speakest another man's words with thy lips, and not thine own. Thou hast said thy message, which is the most insolent and villainous that ever man heard sent to any king: now hear my reply. My beard is yet too young to trim that mantle of thy master's with; yet, young although I be, I owe no homage either to him or any man—nor will ever owe. But, young although I be, I will have thy master's homage upon both his knees before this year be past, or else he shall lose his head, by the faith of my body, for this message is the shamefullest I ever heard speak of. I see well thy king hath never yet met with a worshipful man; but tell him that King Arthur will have his head or his worship right soon."

When King Arthur heard these words, he turned bright red and, rising in great anger, said, "It's easy for you to repeat someone else's words instead of your own. You’ve delivered your message, which is the most arrogant and despicable thing I’ve ever heard sent to any king. Now, listen to my response. My beard is still too young to trim your master's cloak; however, even though I’m young, I owe no allegiance to him or anyone else—and I never will. But, even though I’m young, I will have your master paying me respect on both his knees before this year is over, or he will lose his head, I swear, because this message is the most disgraceful I’ve ever come across. It’s clear your king has never met a truly honorable man; so tell him that King Arthur will have his head or his respect very soon."

Then the messenger departed, and Arthur, looking round upon his knights, demanded of them if any there knew this King Ryence. "Yea," answered Sir Noran, "I know him well, and there be few better or stronger knights upon a field than he; and he is passing proud and haughty in his heart; wherefore I doubt not, Lord, he will make war on thee with mighty power."

Then the messenger left, and Arthur, looking around at his knights, asked if anyone knew this King Ryence. "Yeah," replied Sir Noran, "I know him well, and there are few better or stronger knights on the battlefield than he is; plus, he’s incredibly proud and arrogant. So, I have no doubt, my Lord, that he'll wage war against you with great power."

"Well," said King Arthur, "I shall be ready for him, and that shall he find."

"Well," said King Arthur, "I'm ready for him, and he'll see that."

While the king thus spoke, there came into the hall a damsel having on a mantle richly furred, which she let fall, and showed herself to be girded with a noble sword. The king being surprised at this, said, "Damsel, wherefore art thou girt with that sword, for it beseemeth thee not?" "Sir," said she, "I will tell thee. This sword wherewith I am thus girt gives me great sorrow and encumbrance, for I may not be delivered from it till I find a knight faithful and pure and true, strong of body and of valiant deeds, without guile or treachery, who shall be able to draw it from its scabbard, which no man else can do. And I have but just now come from the court of King Ryence, for there they told me many great and good knights were to be ever found; but he and all his knights have tried to draw it forth in vain—for none of them can move it."

While the king was speaking, a young woman entered the hall wearing a richly furred cloak, which she let fall to reveal a noble sword at her side. The king, surprised by this, asked, “Young lady, why are you wearing that sword? It doesn’t suit you.” She replied, “Sir, I will explain. This sword I wear causes me great sorrow and burden, for I cannot be rid of it until I find a knight who is faithful, pure, and true, strong in body and valiant in deeds, without deceit or treachery, who can draw it from its scabbard, something no other man has been able to do. I have just come from King Ryence's court, where they said many great and noble knights could be found; however, he and all his knights tried to pull it out in vain—none of them could move it.”

"This is a great marvel," said King Arthur; "I will myself try to draw forth this sword, not thinking in my heart that I am the best knight, but rather to begin and give example that all may try after me." Saying this, he took the sword and pulled at it with all his might, but could not shake or move it.

"This is amazing," said King Arthur. "I’ll try to pull this sword out myself, not because I think I’m the best knight, but to set an example so everyone else can give it a shot too." With that, he grabbed the sword and pulled with all his strength, but it wouldn't budge.

"Thou needest not strive so hard, Lord," said the damsel, "for whoever may be able to pull it forth shall do so very easily."

"You don't have to try so hard, my lord," said the young woman, "because whoever can pull it out will do it very easily."

"Thou sayest well," replied the king, remembering how he had himself drawn forth the sword from the stone before St. Paul's. "Now try ye, all my barons; but beware ye be not stained with shame, or any treachery, or guile." And turning away his face from them, King Arthur mused full heavily on sins within his breast he knew of, and which his failure brought to mind right sadly.

"You speak truth," replied the king, recalling how he had pulled the sword from the stone before St. Paul's. "Now you all try, my barons; but be careful not to be tainted with shame, treachery, or deceit." Turning away from them, King Arthur deeply pondered the sins he harbored within himself, which his failure brought to mind with great sadness.

Then all the barons present tried each after other, but could none of them succeed; whereat the damsel greatly wept, and said, "Alas, alas! I thought in this court to have found the best knight, without shame or treachery or treason."

Then all the barons present took their turns, but none of them succeeded; at which the lady cried a lot and said, "Oh no, oh no! I thought I would find the best knight here, one who was honorable and not deceitful or treacherous."

Now by chance there was at that time a poor knight with King Arthur, who had been prisoner at his court for half a year or more, charged with slaying unawares a knight who was a cousin of the king's. He was named Balin le Savage, and had been by the good offices of the barons delivered from prison, for he was of good and valiant address and gentle blood. He being secretly present at the court saw this advantage, and felt his heart rise high within him, and longed to try the sword as did the others; but being poor and poorly clad, he was ashamed to come forward in the press of knights and nobles. But in his heart he felt assured that he could do better—if Heaven willed—than any knight among them all.

Now, by chance, there was a poor knight at King Arthur's court at that time who had been a prisoner there for over half a year, accused of secretly killing a knight who was the king's cousin. His name was Balin le Savage, and thanks to the good actions of the barons, he had been released from prison because he was brave and of noble blood. Being secretly present at the court, he saw his chance and felt a surge of confidence, eager to prove himself with the sword like the others. However, being poor and in shabby clothes, he felt embarrassed to step forward among the other knights and nobles. Still, deep down, he was sure that if Heaven allowed it, he could perform better than any knight there.

So as the damsel left the king, he called to her and said, "Damsel, I pray thee of thy courtesy, suffer me to try the sword as well as all these lords; for though I be but poorly clad, I feel assurance in my heart."

So as the young woman left the king, he called out to her and said, "Young lady, I kindly ask you to let me try the sword like all these lords; for even though I'm poorly dressed, I feel confident in my heart."

The damsel looked at him, saw in him a likely and an honest man, but because of his poor garments could not think him to be any knight of worship, and said, "Sir, there is no need to put me to any more pain or labor; why shouldst thou succeed where so many worthy ones have failed?"

The young woman looked at him and saw a decent and honest man. However, because of his shabby clothes, she couldn't believe he was a knight of honor. She said, "Sir, there's no need to put me through any more suffering or effort; why do you think you'll succeed where so many deserving ones have failed?"

"Ah, fair lady," answered Balin, "worthiness and brave deeds are not shown by fair raiment but manhood and truth lie hid within the heart. There be many worshipful knights unknown to all the people."

"Ah, beautiful lady," Balin replied, "true worth and bravery aren’t revealed by fine clothing, but rather by the strength and honesty found within the heart. There are many honorable knights who remain unknown to everyone."

"By my faith, thou sayest truth," replied the damsel; "try therefore, if thou wilt, what thou canst do."

"Honestly, you're speaking the truth," replied the young woman; "so go ahead, if you want, and see what you can do."

So Balin took the sword by the girdle and hilt, and drew it lightly out, and looking on its workmanship and brightness, it pleased him greatly.

So Balin grabbed the sword by the belt and handle and pulled it out gently. As he examined its craftsmanship and shine, he was very pleased.

But the king and all the barons marveled at Sir Balin's fortune, and many knights were envious of him, for, "Truly," said the damsel, "this is a passing good knight, and the best man I have ever found, and the most worshipfully free from treason, treachery, or villainy, and many wonders shall he achieve.

But the king and all the barons were amazed by Sir Balin's luck, and many knights were jealous of him, for, "Honestly," said the damsel, "he is an exceptional knight, the best person I've ever met, and he's completely free from betrayal, deceit, or wickedness, and he will accomplish many incredible feats.

"Now, gentle and courteous knight," continued she, turning to Balin, "give me the sword again."

"Now, kind and polite knight," she said, looking at Balin, "please give me the sword back."

"Nay," said Sir Balin, "save it be taken from me by force, I shall preserve this sword for evermore."

"Nah," said Sir Balin, "unless someone takes it from me by force, I’m going to keep this sword forever."

"Thou art not wise," replied the damsel, "to keep it from me; for if thou wilt do so, thou shall slay with it the best friend thou hast, and the sword shall be thine own destruction also."

"You’re not being wise," replied the young woman, "to hide it from me; because if you do, you will end up killing your best friend with it, and the sword will bring about your own downfall too."

"I will take whatever adventure God may send," said Balin; "but the sword will I keep, by the faith of my body."

"I'll embrace whatever adventure God sends my way," said Balin; "but I will keep the sword, on my honor."

"Thou will repent it shortly," said the damsel; "I would take the sword for thy sake rather than for mine, for I am passing grieved and heavy for thy sake, who wilt not believe the peril I foretell thee." With that she departed, making great lamentation.

"You're going to regret this soon," said the woman; "I would take the sword for you instead of for myself, because I am deeply saddened and troubled for you, who won't believe the danger I'm warning you about." With that, she left, crying bitterly.

Then Balin sent for his horse and armor, and took his leave of King Arthur, who urged him to stay at his court. "For," said he, "I believe that thou art displeased that I showed thee unkindness; blame me not overmuch, for I was misinformed against thee, and knew not truly what a knight of worship thou art. Abide in this court with my good knights, and I will so advance thee that thou shalt be well pleased."

Then Balin called for his horse and armor and took his leave of King Arthur, who encouraged him to remain at his court. "Because," he said, "I think you are upset that I treated you unfairly; don't blame me too much, as I was misled about you and didn’t truly understand what a noble knight you are. Stay in this court with my loyal knights, and I will promote you in a way that will make you happy."

"God thank thee, Lord," said Balin, "for no man can reward thy bounty and thy nobleness; but at this time I must needs depart, praying thee ever to hold me in thy favor."

"Thank you, Lord," said Balin, "because no one can repay your generosity and your greatness; but right now I have to leave, asking you to always keep me in your favor."

"Truly," said King Arthur, "I am grieved for thy departure; but tarry not long, and thou shalt be right welcome to me and all my knights when thou returnest, and I will repair my neglect and all that I have done amiss against thee."

"Honestly," said King Arthur, "I'm sad to see you go; but don't be away for too long, and when you come back, you’ll be warmly welcomed by me and all my knights, and I will make up for my neglect and everything I’ve done wrong to you."

"God thank thee, Lord," again said Balin, and made ready to depart.

"Thank you, Lord," Balin said again as he prepared to leave.

But meanwhile came into the court a lady upon horseback, full richly dressed, and saluted King Arthur, and asked him for the gift that he had promised her when she gave him his sword Excalibur, "for," said she, "I am the lady of the lake."

But meanwhile, a lady on horseback rode into the court, dressed in magnificent clothing. She greeted King Arthur and asked him for the gift he had promised her when she gave him his sword Excalibur. "For," she said, "I am the Lady of the Lake."

"Ask what thou wilt," said the king, "and thou shalt have it, if I have power to give."

"Ask what you want," said the king, "and you will have it, if I have the power to give."

"I ask," said she, "the head of that knight who hath just achieved the sword, or else the damsel's head who brought it, or else both; for the knight slew my brother, and the lady caused my father's death."

"I ask," she said, "for the head of that knight who just earned the sword, or the head of the lady who brought it, or both; because the knight killed my brother, and the lady caused my father's death."

"Truly," said King Arthur, "I cannot grant thee this desire; it were against my nature and against my name; but ask whatever else thou wilt, and I will do it."

"Honestly," said King Arthur, "I can’t grant you this request; it goes against my nature and my name; but ask anything else you want, and I’ll take care of it."

"I will demand no other thing," said she.

"I won’t ask for anything else," she said.

And as she spake came Balin, on his way to leave the court, and saw her where she stood, and knew her straightway for his mother's murderess, whom he had sought in vain three years. And when they told him that she had asked King Arthur for his head, he went up straight to her and said, "May evil have thee! Thou desirest my head, therefore shalt thou lose thine"; and with his sword he lightly smote her head off, in the presence of the king and all the court.

And as she spoke, Balin came, on his way to leave the court, and saw her standing there. He recognized her immediately as the one who had killed his mother, the person he had been searching for in vain for three years. When they informed him that she had asked King Arthur for his head, he approached her and said, "May evil be upon you! You want my head, so you shall lose yours." With that, he swiftly struck her head off with his sword, right in front of the king and the entire court.

"Alas, for shame!" cried out King Arthur, rising up in wrath; "why hast thou done this, shaming both me and my court? I am beholden greatly to this lady, and under my safe conduct came she here; thy deed is passing shameful; never shall I forgive thy villainy."

"Alas, how could you!" exclaimed King Arthur, standing up in anger. "Why have you done this, embarrassing both me and my court? I owe a lot to this lady, and she came here under my protection; what you've done is incredibly shameful; I will never forgive your treachery."

"Lord," cried Sir Balin, "hear me; this lady was the falsest living, and by her witchcraft hath destroyed many, and caused my mother also to be burnt to death by her false arts and treachery."

"Lord," shouted Sir Balin, "listen to me; this lady is the most deceitful person alive, and through her witchcraft, she has ruined many lives, including causing my mother to be burned to death because of her deception and betrayal."

"What cause soever thou mightest have had," said the king, "thou shouldst have forborne her in my presence. Deceive not thyself, thou shalt repent this sin, for such a shame was never brought upon my court; depart now from my face with all the haste thou mayest."

"What reason you might have had," said the king, "you should have held back in my presence. Don't fool yourself, you will regret this sin, for such a disgrace has never been brought upon my court; now leave my sight as quickly as you can."

Then Balin took up the head of the lady and carried it to his lodgings, and rode forth with his squire from out the town. Then said he, "Now must we part; take ye this head and bear it to my friends in Northumberland, and tell them how I speed, and that our worst foe is dead; also tell them that I am free from prison, and of the adventure of my sword."

Then Balin picked up the lady's head and took it back to his place, riding out of the town with his squire. He said, "Now we have to separate; take this head and deliver it to my friends in Northumberland, and let them know how I'm doing, and that our greatest enemy is dead; also tell them that I'm free from prison and share the story of my sword."

"Alas!" said the squire, "ye are greatly to blame to have so displeased King Arthur."

"Wow!" said the squire, "you really messed up by upsetting King Arthur."

"As for that," said Sir Balin, "I go now to find King Ryence, and destroy him or lose my life; for should I take him prisoner, and lead him to the court, perchance King Arthur would forgive me, and become my good and gracious lord."

"As for that," said Sir Balin, "I'm going now to find King Ryence and either kill him or die trying; because if I capture him and bring him to court, maybe King Arthur would forgive me and become my kind and generous lord."

"Where shall I meet thee again?" said the squire.

"Where should I meet you again?" said the squire.

"In King Arthur's court," said Balin.

"In King Arthur's court," said Balin.


V

SIR BALIN FIGHTS WITH HIS BROTHER, SIR BALAN

Now there was a knight at the court more envious than the others of Sir Balin, for he counted himself one of the best knights in Britain. His name was Lancear; and going to the king, he begged leave to follow after Sir Balin and avenge the insult he had put upon the court. "Do thy best," replied the king, "for I am passing wroth with Balin."

Now there was a knight at the court who was more envious than the others of Sir Balin, as he considered himself one of the best knights in Britain. His name was Lancear; and going to the king, he asked for permission to pursue Sir Balin and take revenge for the insult he had brought upon the court. "Do your best," replied the king, "for I am extremely angry with Balin."

In the meantime came Merlin, and was told of this adventure of the sword and lady of the lake.

In the meantime, Merlin arrived and was informed about the adventure involving the sword and the lady of the lake.

"Now hear me," said he, "when I tell ye that this lady who hath brought the sword is the falsest damsel living."

"Listen to me," he said, "when I tell you that this lady who brought the sword is the most deceitful woman alive."

"Say not so," they answered, "for she hath a brother a good knight, who slew another knight this damsel loved; so she, to be revenged upon her brother, went to the Lady Lile, of Avilion, and besought her help. Then Lady Lile gave her the sword, and told her that no man should draw it forth but one, a valiant knight and strong, who should avenge her on her brother. This, therefore, was the reason why the damsel came here."

"Don't say that," they replied, "because she has a brother who is a good knight and killed another knight that this young woman loved. To get revenge on her brother, she went to Lady Lile of Avilion and asked for her help. Then, Lady Lile gave her the sword and said that only one man, a brave and strong knight, could draw it out to take revenge on her brother. That's why the young woman came here."

"I know it all as well as ye do," answered Merlin; "and would to God she had never come hither, for never came she into any company but to do harm; and that good knight who hath achieved the sword shall be himself slain by it, which shall be great harm and loss, for a better knight there liveth not; and he shall do unto my lord the king great honor and service."

"I know everything just as you do," Merlin replied. "I wish to God she had never come here because every time she enters a group, it only brings trouble. That good knight who has taken the sword will end up being killed by it, which will be a huge loss and cause great harm, because there isn’t a better knight alive. He will bring my lord the king great honor and service."

Then Sir Lancear, having armed himself at all points, mounted, and rode after Sir Balin, as fast as he could go, and overtaking him, he cried aloud, "Abide, Sir knight! wait yet awhile, or I shall make thee do so."

Then Sir Lancelot, fully armed, mounted his horse and chased after Sir Balin as quickly as he could. Catching up to him, he shouted, "Hold on, Sir knight! Wait just a moment, or I'll make you stop."

Hearing him cry, Sir Balin fiercely turned his horse, and said, "Fair knight, what wilt thou with me? wilt thou joust?"

Hearing him cry, Sir Balin quickly turned his horse and said, "Good knight, what do you want from me? Do you want to fight?"

"Yea," said Sir Lancear, "it is for that I have pursued thee."

"Yeah," said Sir Lancear, "that's why I have pursued you."

"Peradventure," answered Balin, "thou hadst best have stayed at home, for many a man who thinketh himself already victor, endeth by his own downfall. Of what court art thou?"

"Maybe," replied Balin, "you should have stayed home, because many a man who thinks he's already won ends up falling by his own doing. What court are you from?"

"Of King Arthur's court," cried Lancear, "and I am come to revenge the insult thou hast put on it this day."

"Of King Arthur's court," shouted Lancelot, "and I've come to avenge the insult you put on it today."

"Well," said Sir Balin, "I see that I must fight thee, and I repent to be obliged to grieve King Arthur or his knights; and thy quarrel seemeth full foolish to me, for the damsel that is dead worked endless evils through the land, or else I had been loth as any knight that liveth to have slain a lady."

"Well," said Sir Balin, "I see that I have to fight you, and I regret that it has to upset King Arthur or his knights; your argument seems totally foolish to me, because the lady who is dead caused a lot of trouble throughout the land, or else I would be as reluctant as any knight alive to have killed a lady."

"Make thee ready," shouted Lancear, "for one of us shall rest forever in this field."

"Get ready," shouted Lancear, "because one of us is going to lie here forever."

But at their first encounter Sir Lancear's spear flew into splinters from Sir Balin's shield, and Sir Balin's lance pierced with such might through Sir Lancear's shield, that it rove the hauberk also, and passed through the knight's body and the horse's crupper. And Sir Balin turning fiercely round again, drew out his sword, and knew not that he had already slain him; and then he saw him lie a corpse upon the ground.

But at their first encounter, Sir Lancear's spear shattered against Sir Balin's shield, and Sir Balin's lance drove with such force through Sir Lancear's shield that it went through the armor as well and pierced the knight's body and the horse's hindquarters. As Sir Balin turned fiercely again, he drew his sword, unaware that he had already killed him; then he saw him lying dead on the ground.

At that same moment came a damsel riding towards him as fast as her horse could gallop, who, when she saw Sir Lancear dead, wept and sorrowed out of measure, crying, "O, Sir Balin, two bodies hast thou slain, and one heart; and two hearts in one body; and two souls also hast thou lost."

At that same moment, a young woman rode toward him as fast as her horse could gallop. When she saw Sir Lancelot dead, she wept uncontrollably, crying, "Oh, Sir Balin, you've killed two people and one heart; and two hearts in one body; and you've also lost two souls."

Therewith she took the sword from her dead lover's side—for she was Sir Lancear's lady-love—and setting the pommel of it on the ground, ran herself through the body with the blade.

Therewith she took the sword from her dead lover's side—because she was Sir Lancear's girlfriend—and, placing the pommel on the ground, drove the blade through her own body.

When Sir Balin saw her dead he was sorely hurt and grieved in spirit, and repented the death of Lancear, which had also caused so fair a lady's death. And being unable to look on their bodies for sorrow, he turned aside into a forest, where presently as he rode, he saw the arms of his brother, Sir Balan. And when they were met they put off their helms, and embraced each other, kissing, and weeping for joy and pity. Then Sir Balin told Sir Balan all his late adventures, and that he was on his way to King Ryence, who at that time was besieging Castle Terrabil. "I will be with thee," answered Sir Balan, "and we will help each other, as brethren ought to do."

When Sir Balin saw her dead, he was deeply hurt and filled with sorrow, regretting the death of Lancear, which had also caused such a beautiful lady's demise. Unable to bear the sight of their bodies because of his grief, he turned into a forest. As he rode on, he encountered the armor of his brother, Sir Balan. When they met, they took off their helmets, embraced each other, and kissed, weeping for both joy and sadness. Then Sir Balin shared all his recent adventures with Sir Balan, mentioning that he was on his way to King Ryence, who was then besieging Castle Terrabil. "I will join you," replied Sir Balan, "and we will support each other, as brothers should."

Anon by chance, as they were talking, came King Mark, of Cornwall, by that way, and when he saw the two dead bodies of Sir Lancear and his lady lying there, and heard the story of their death, he vowed to build a tomb to them before he left that place. So pitching his pavilion there, he sought through all the country round to find a monument, and found at last a rich and fair one in a church, which he took and raised above the dead knight and his damsel, writing on it—"Here lieth Lancear, son of the King of Ireland, who, at his own request, was slain by Balin; and here beside him also lieth his lady Colombe, who slew herself with her lover's sword for grief and sorrow."

Suddenly, while they were talking, King Mark of Cornwall passed by and, upon seeing the two dead bodies of Sir Lancear and his lady lying there, he learned the story of their deaths. He promised to build a tomb for them before leaving the area. So, he set up his tent there and searched throughout the surrounding countryside for a monument. Eventually, he found a beautiful and rich one in a church, which he took and placed above the dead knight and his lady, inscribing on it—"Here lies Lancear, son of the King of Ireland, who, at his own request, was killed by Balin; and here beside him lies his lady Colombe, who took her own life with her lover's sword out of grief and sorrow."

Then as Sir Balin and Sir Balan rode away, Merlin met with them, and said to Balin, "Thou hast done thyself great harm not to have saved that lady's life who slew herself; and because of it, thou shalt strike the most Dolorous Stroke that ever man struck, save he that smote our Lord. For thou shalt smite the truest and most worshipful of living knights, who shall not be recovered from his wounds for many years, and through that stroke three kingdoms shall be overwhelmed in poverty and misery."

Then as Sir Balin and Sir Balan rode away, Merlin met them and said to Balin, "You've done yourself a great disservice by not saving the life of that lady who took her own life; and because of it, you're going to deliver the most painful blow that any man ever has, except for the one who struck our Lord. For you will strike down the truest and most honorable of living knights, who will not recover from his wounds for many years, and through that blow, three kingdoms will fall into poverty and misery."

"If I believed," said Balin, "what thou sayest, I would slay myself to make thee a liar."

"If I believed," said Balin, "what you're saying, I'd kill myself to prove you're a liar."

At that Merlin vanished suddenly away; but afterwards he met them in disguise towards night, and told them he could lead them to King Ryence, whom they sought. "For this night he is to ride with sixty lances only through a wood hard by."

At that moment, Merlin suddenly disappeared; but later, he met them in disguise in the evening and told them he could take them to King Ryence, whom they were searching for. "Tonight, he is going to ride with just sixty knights through a nearby forest."

So Sir Balin and Sir Balan hid themselves within the wood, and at midnight came out from their ambush among the leaves by the highway, and waited for the king, whom presently they heard approaching with his company. Then did they suddenly leap forth and smote at him and overthrew him and laid him on the ground, and turning on his company wounded and slew forty of them, and put the rest to flight. And returning to King Ryence they would have slain him there, but he craved mercy, and yielded to their grace, crying, "Knights full of prowess, slay me not; for by my life ye may win something—but my death can avail ye nought."

So Sir Balin and Sir Balan hid themselves in the woods, and at midnight, they came out from their ambush among the leaves by the road, waiting for the king, whom they soon heard approaching with his group. Then they suddenly jumped out, struck him down, and threw him to the ground. Turning on his men, they wounded and killed forty of them and sent the rest fleeing. When they returned to King Ryence, they intended to kill him, but he begged for mercy and surrendered to their mercy, shouting, "Brave knights, don’t kill me; you could gain something from my life, but my death will bring you nothing."

"Ye say truth," said the two knights, and put him in a horse-litter, and went swiftly through all the night, till at cock-crow they came to King Arthur's palace. There they delivered him to the warders and porters, to be brought before the king, with this message—"That he was sent to King Arthur by the knight of the two swords" (for so was Balin known by name, since his adventure with the damsel) "and by his brother." And so they rode away again ere sunrise.

"You're telling the truth," said the two knights, and they placed him in a horse-drawn carriage, quickly traveling all through the night until they arrived at King Arthur's palace at dawn. There, they handed him over to the guards and attendants to be brought before the king, with this message—"He was sent to King Arthur by the knight of the two swords" (for that was Balin's name due to his adventure with the damsel) "and his brother." Then they rode away before sunrise.

Within a month or two thereafter, King Arthur being somewhat sick, went forth outside the town, and had his pavilion pitched in a meadow, and there abode, and laid him down on a pallet to sleep, but could get no rest. And as he lay he heard the sound of a great horse, and looking out of the tent door, saw a knight ride by, making great lamentation.

Within a month or two after that, King Arthur, feeling a bit unwell, ventured outside the town and had his tent set up in a meadow. He stayed there and lay down on a pallet to sleep, but couldn’t find any rest. As he lay there, he heard the sound of a large horse, and when he looked out of the tent door, he saw a knight riding by, crying out in distress.

"Abide, fair sir," said King Arthur, "and tell me wherefore thou makest this sorrow."

"Wait, good sir," said King Arthur, "and tell me why you are so sad."

"Ye may little amend it," said the knight, and so passed on.

"You might not be able to improve it much," said the knight, and then moved on.

Presently after Sir Balin, rode, by chance, past that meadow, and when he saw the king he alighted and came to him on foot, and kneeled and saluted him.

Currently, after Sir Balin rode past that meadow, he saw the king, got off his horse, walked over to him on foot, knelt down, and greeted him.

"By my head," said King Arthur, "ye be welcome, Sir Balin;" and then he thanked him heartily for revenging him upon King Ryence, and for sending him so speedily a prisoner to his castle, and told him how King Nero, Ryence's brother, had attacked him afterwards to deliver Ryence from prison; and how he had defeated him and slain him, and also King Lot, of Orkney, who was joined with Nero, and whom King Pellinore had killed in the battle. Then when they had thus talked, King Arthur told Sir Balin of the sullen knight that had just passed his tent, and desired him to pursue him and to bring him back.

"By my head," said King Arthur, "you are welcome, Sir Balin;" and then he thanked him warmly for getting revenge on King Ryence and for quickly sending him to his castle as a prisoner. He explained how King Nero, Ryence's brother, had later attacked him to rescue Ryence from prison; how he had defeated and killed Nero, as well as King Lot of Orkney, who had joined forces with Nero and whom King Pellinore had slain in the battle. After they finished their conversation, King Arthur told Sir Balin about the gloomy knight who had just passed his tent, and asked him to chase him down and bring him back.

So Sir Balin rode and overtook the knight in a forest with a damsel, and said, "Sir knight, thou must come back with me unto my lord, King Arthur, to tell him the cause of thy sorrow, which thou hast refused even now to do."

So Sir Balin rode and caught up with the knight in a forest with a lady, and said, "Sir knight, you must come back with me to my lord, King Arthur, to explain the reason for your sorrow, which you just refused to share."

"That will I not," replied the knight, "for it would harm me much, and do him no advantage."

"Definitely not," replied the knight, "because it would hurt me a lot, and wouldn't help him at all."

"Sir," said Sir Balin, "I pray thee make ready, for thou must needs go with me—or else I must fight with thee and take thee by force."

"Sir," said Sir Balin, "please get ready, because you have to come with me—or else I’ll have to fight you and take you by force."

"Wilt thou be warrant for safe conduct, if I go with thee?" inquired the knight.

"Will you guarantee my safe passage if I go with you?" the knight asked.

"Yea, surely," answered Balin, "I will die else."

"Yeah, for sure," answered Balin, "I'll die otherwise."

So the knight made ready to go with Sir Balin, and left the damsel in the wood.

So the knight got ready to go with Sir Balin and left the lady in the woods.

But as they went, there came one invisible, and smote the knight through the body with a spear. "Alas," cried Sir Herleus (for so was he named), "I am slain under thy guard and conduct, by that traitor knight called Garlon, who through magic and witchcraft rideth invisibly. Take, therefore, my horse, which is better than thine, and ride to the damsel whom we left, and follow the quest I had in hand, as she will lead thee—and revenge my death when thou best mayest."

But as they traveled, an invisible figure attacked and pierced the knight with a spear. "Oh no," shouted Sir Herleus (that's his name), "I’m dying under your protection from that treacherous knight named Garlon, who rides invisibly using magic and witchcraft. So take my horse, which is better than yours, and ride to the damsel we left behind. Follow the quest I was on, as she will guide you—and avenge my death when you can."

"That will I do," said Sir Balin, "by my knighthood, and so I swear to thee."

"That’s what I’ll do," said Sir Balin, "by my honor as a knight, and I swear it to you."

Then went Sir Balin to the damsel, and rode forth with her; she carrying ever with her the truncheon of the spear wherewith Sir Herleus had been slain. And as they went, a good knight, Perin de Mountbelgard, joined their company, and vowed to take adventure with them wheresoever they might go. But presently as they passed a hermitage fast by a churchyard, came the knight Garlon, again invisible, and smote Sir Perin through the body with a spear, and slew him as he had slain Sir Herleus. Whereat, Sir Balin greatly raged, and swore to have Sir Garlon's life, whenever next he might encounter and behold him in his bodily shape. Anon, he and the hermit buried the good knight Sir Perin, and rode on with the damsel till they came to a great castle, whereinto they were about to enter. But when Sir Balin had passed through the gateway, the portcullis fell behind him suddenly, leaving the damsel on the outer side, with men around her, drawing their swords as if to slay her.

Then Sir Balin went to the lady and rode out with her; she always carried the broken spear that had killed Sir Herleus. As they traveled, a valiant knight, Perin de Mountbelgard, joined them and promised to accompany them on their adventures wherever they went. But as they passed a hermitage near a churchyard, the knight Garlon, invisible once again, struck Sir Perin through the body with a spear, killing him just as he had killed Sir Herleus. This made Sir Balin extremely furious, and he vowed to take Sir Garlon's life the next time he encountered him in his physical form. Soon, he and the hermit buried the noble knight Sir Perin and continued on with the lady until they arrived at a large castle, where they were about to enter. However, as soon as Sir Balin passed through the gateway, the portcullis suddenly fell behind him, leaving the lady outside with men surrounding her, drawing their swords as if to kill her.

When he saw that, Sir Balin climbed with eager haste by wall and tower, and leaped into the castle moat, and rushed towards the damsel and her enemies, with his sword drawn, to fight and slay them. But they cried out, "Put up thy sword, Sir knight, we will not fight thee in this quarrel, for we do nothing but an ancient custom of this castle."

When he saw that, Sir Balin quickly climbed up the wall and tower, jumped into the castle moat, and ran towards the damsel and her attackers, sword drawn, ready to fight and defeat them. But they shouted, "Put away your sword, Sir knight, we won’t fight you in this matter, as we are just following an old tradition of this castle."

Then they told him that the lady of the castle was passing sick, and had lain ill for many years, and might never more be cured, unless she had a silver dish full of the blood of a pure maid and a king's daughter. Wherefore the custom of the castle was, that never should a damsel pass that way but she must give a dish full of her blood. Then Sir Balin suffered them to bleed the damsel with her own consent, but her blood helped not the lady of the castle. So on the morrow they departed, after right good cheer and rest.

Then they told him that the lady of the castle was seriously ill and had been suffering for many years, and she might never recover unless she had a silver dish full of the blood of a pure maiden and a king's daughter. Because of this, the custom of the castle was that no young woman could pass that way without giving a dish full of her blood. So, Sir Balin allowed them to take the damsel's blood with her consent, but her blood did not help the lady of the castle. The next day, they left after a good meal and some rest.

Then they rode three or four days without adventure, and came at last to the abode of a rich man, who sumptuously lodged and fed them. And while they sat at supper Sir Balin heard a voice of some one groaning grievously. "What noise is this?" said he.

Then they traveled for three or four days without any adventures and finally arrived at the home of a wealthy man, who generously offered them luxurious accommodations and meals. While they were having dinner, Sir Balin heard someone groaning in distress. "What is that noise?" he asked.

"Forsooth," said the host, "I will tell you. I was lately at a tournament, and there I fought a knight who is brother to King Pelles, and overthrew him twice, for which he swore to be revenged on me through my best friend, and so he wounded my son, who cannot be recovered till I have that knight's blood, but he rideth through witchcraft always invisibly, and I know not his name."

"Seriously," said the host, "I'll tell you. I recently went to a tournament, and there I fought a knight who is the brother of King Pelles, and I defeated him twice. Because of that, he swore to get revenge on me through my best friend, and he ended up wounding my son, who won’t be healed until I have that knight's blood. But he rides around using witchcraft, always invisible, and I don’t know his name."

"Ah," said Sir Balin, "but I know him; his name is Garlon, and he hath slain two knights, companions of mine own, in the same fashion, and I would rather than all the riches in this realm that I might meet him face to face."

"Ah," said Sir Balin, "but I know him; his name is Garlon, and he has killed two knights, my companions, in the same way, and I would give anything rather than all the riches in this realm to meet him face to face."

"Well," said his host, "let me now tell thee that King Pelles hath proclaimed in all the country a great festival, to be held at Listeniss, in twenty days from now, whereto no knight may come without a lady. At that great feast we might perchance find out this Garlon, for many will be there; and if it please thee we will set forth together."

"Well," said his host, "let me tell you that King Pelles has announced a big festival across the land, to be held at Listeniss in twenty days. No knight can attend without a lady. At that grand feast, we might be able to find Garlon, since many will be there. If you’re up for it, we can go together."

So on the morrow they rode all three towards Listeniss, and traveled fifteen days, and reached it on the day the feast began. Then they alighted and stabled their horses, and went up to the castle, and Sir Balin's host was denied entrance, having no lady with him. But Sir Balin was right heartily received, and taken to a chamber, where they unarmed him, and dressed him in rich robes, of any color that he chose, and told him he must lay aside his sword. This, however, he refused, and said, "It is the custom of my country for a knight to keep his sword ever with him; and if I may not keep it here, I will forthwith depart." Then they gave him leave to wear his sword. So he went to the great hall, and was set among knights of rank and worship, and his lady before him.

So the next day, the three of them rode toward Listeniss, traveling for fifteen days until they arrived just as the feast began. They dismounted, settled their horses, and headed to the castle. However, Sir Balin's companion was denied entry because he didn't have a lady with him. But Sir Balin was warmly welcomed and taken to a room, where they took off his armor and dressed him in fine robes of any color he wanted, telling him he had to leave his sword behind. He refused, saying, "In my country, it's customary for a knight to always carry his sword; if I can't keep it here, I'll leave right away." They then allowed him to wear his sword. He went to the great hall and was seated among esteemed knights, with his lady before him.

Soon he found means to ask one who sat near him, "Is there not here a knight whose name is Garlon?"

Soon he found a way to ask someone sitting next to him, "Is there a knight here named Garlon?"

"Yonder he goeth," said his neighbor, "he with that black face; he is the most marvelous knight alive, for he rideth invisibly, and destroyeth whom he will."

"Look over there," said his neighbor, "he with the black face; he’s the most amazing knight alive because he rides invisibly and takes out whoever he wants."

"Ah, well," said Balin, drawing a long breath, "is that indeed the man? I have aforetime heard of him."

"Ah, well," said Balin, taking a deep breath, "is that really the guy? I've heard of him before."

Then he mused long within himself, and thought, "If I shall slay him here and now, I shall not escape myself; but if I leave him, peradventure I shall never meet with him again at such advantage; and if he live, how much more harm and mischief will he do!"

Then he pondered for a long time and thought, "If I kill him right now, I won't be able to escape from the consequences; but if I let him go, I might never get another chance like this; and if he lives, how much more damage will he cause!"

But while he deeply thought, and cast his eyes from time to time upon Sir Garlon, that false knight saw that he watched him, and thinking that he could at such a time escape revenge, he came and smote Sir Balin on the face with the back of his hand, and said, "Knight, why dost thou so watch me? be ashamed, and eat thy meat, and do that which thou camest for."

But as he thought deeply and occasionally glanced at Sir Garlon, that deceitful knight noticed he was being watched. Thinking he could avoid retribution in that moment, he approached and struck Sir Balin on the face with the back of his hand, saying, "Knight, why are you staring at me? You should be ashamed, eat your food, and do what you came here to do."

"Thou sayest well," cried Sir Balin, rising fiercely; "now will I straightway do that which I came to do, as thou shalt find." With that he whirled his sword aloft and struck him downright on the head, and clove his skull asunder to the shoulder.

"You’re right," shouted Sir Balin, standing up angrily; "now I will immediately do what I came to do, and you'll see." With that, he raised his sword high and struck him directly on the head, splitting his skull in half down to the shoulder.

"Give me the truncheon," cried out Sir Balin to his lady, "wherewith he slew thy knight." And when she gave it him—for she had always carried it about with her, wherever she had gone—he smote him through the body with it, and said, "With that truncheon didst thou treacherously murder a good knight, and now it sticketh in thy felon body."

"Give me the club," shouted Sir Balin to his lady, "with which he killed your knight." And when she handed it to him—since she always carried it with her wherever she went—he hit him through the body with it and said, "With that club, you treacherously murdered a good knight, and now it’s stuck in your wicked body."

Then he called to the father of the wounded son, who had come with him to Listeniss, and said, "Now take as much blood as thou wilt, to heal thy son withal."

Then he called to the father of the injured son, who had come with him to Listeniss, and said, "Now take as much blood as you want, to heal your son."

But now arose a terrible confusion, and all the knights leaped from the table to slay Balin, King Pelles himself the foremost, who cried out, "Knight, thou hast slain my brother at my board; die, therefore, die, for thou shalt never leave this castle."

But now a terrible chaos broke out, and all the knights jumped up from the table to kill Balin, with King Pelles leading the charge, who shouted, "Knight, you’ve killed my brother at my table; so die, die, because you’ll never leave this castle."

"Slay me, thyself, then," shouted Balin.

"Then kill me yourself," shouted Balin.

"Yea," said the king, "that will I! for no other man shall touch thee, for the love I bear my brother."

"Yeah," said the king, "I will! No one else will touch you because of the love I have for my brother."

Then King Pelles caught in his hand a grim weapon and smote eagerly at Balin, but Balin put his sword between his head and the king's stroke, and saved himself but lost his sword, which fell down smashed and shivered into pieces by the blow. So being weaponless he ran to the next room to find a sword, and so from room to room, with King Pelles after him, he in vain ever eagerly casting his eyes round every place to find some weapon.

Then King Pelles grabbed a menacing weapon and struck fiercely at Balin, but Balin blocked the blow with his sword, saving himself but losing his weapon, which shattered into pieces from the impact. Now unarmed, he dashed into the next room to find a sword, and moved from room to room with King Pelles chasing after him, desperately looking around in every corner for a weapon.

At last he ran into a chamber wondrous richly decked, where was a bed all dressed with cloth of gold, the richest that could be thought of, and one who lay quite still within the bed; and by the bedside stood a table of pure gold, borne on four silver pillars, and on the table stood a marvelous spear, strangely wrought.

At last, he entered a beautifully decorated room with a bed covered in luxurious golden fabric, the finest imaginable, and there was someone lying still in the bed. By the bedside, there was a table made of pure gold, supported by four silver pillars, and on the table rested a remarkable spear, intricately crafted.

When Sir Balin saw the spear he seized it in his hand, and turned upon King Pelles, and smote at him so fiercely and so sore that he dropped swooning to the ground.

When Sir Balin saw the spear, he grabbed it and turned to King Pelles, striking him with such force that he collapsed, fainting to the ground.

But at that Dolorous and awful Stroke the castle rocked and rove throughout, and all the walls fell crashed and breaking to the earth, and Balin himself fell also in their midst, struck as it were to stone, and powerless to move a hand or foot. And so three days he lay amidst the ruins, until Merlin came and raised him up and brought him a good horse, and bade him ride out of that land as swiftly as he could.

But at that painful and terrible moment, the castle shook and swayed, and all the walls collapsed and fell to the ground. Balin himself was also caught in the chaos, rendered motionless as if turned to stone, unable to move even a hand or foot. He lay there amidst the ruins for three days, until Merlin arrived, lifted him up, and gave him a strong horse, urging him to leave that land as quickly as he could.

"May I not take the damsel with me I brought hither?" said Sir Balin.

"Can I not take the young woman I brought here with me?" said Sir Balin.

"Lo! where she lieth dead," said Merlin. "Ah, little knowest thou, Sir Balin, what thou hast done; for in this castle and that chamber which thou didst defile, was the blood of our Lord Christ! and also that most holy cup—the Sangreal—wherefrom the wine was drunk at the last supper of our Lord. Joseph of Arimathea brought it to this land, when first he came here to convert and save it. And on that bed of gold it was himself who lay, and the strange spear beside him was the spear wherewith the soldier Longus smote our Lord, which evermore had dripped with blood. King Pelles is the nearest kin to Joseph in direct descent, wherefore he held these holy things in trust; but now have they all gone at thy dolorous stroke, no man knoweth whither; and great is the damage to this land, which until now hath been the happiest of all lands, for by that stroke thou hast slain thousands, and by the loss and parting of the Sangreal, the safety of this realm is put in peril, and its great happiness is gone for evermore."

"Look! She lies dead," said Merlin. "Ah, you little know, Sir Balin, what you have done; for in this castle and in that chamber you desecrated was the blood of our Lord Christ! And also that most holy cup—the Sangreal—from which wine was drunk at the last supper of our Lord. Joseph of Arimathea brought it to this land when he first came here to convert and save it. And upon that golden bed, it was he who lay, with the strange spear beside him being the one with which the soldier Longus struck our Lord, which always dripped with blood. King Pelles is the closest relative to Joseph in direct descent, which is why he held these holy items in trust; but now they have all vanished at your tragic blow, and no one knows where they've gone; and great is the damage to this land, which until now has been the happiest of all lands, for by that stroke you have caused the death of thousands, and with the loss and separation of the Sangreal, the safety of this realm is endangered, and its great happiness is lost forever."

Then Balin departed from Merlin, struck to his soul with grief and sorrow, and said, "In this world shall we meet never more."

Then Balin left Merlin, deeply affected by grief and sadness, and said, "In this world, we will never meet again."

So he rode forth through the fair cities and the country, and found the people lying dead on every side. And all the living cried out on him as he passed, "O Balin, all this misery hast thou done! For the dolorous stroke thou gavest King Pelles, three countries are destroyed, and doubt not but revenge will fall on thee at last!"

So he rode out through the beautiful cities and the countryside and saw people lying dead everywhere. The living cried out to him as he passed, "O Balin, all this suffering is your doing! Because of the painful blow you dealt to King Pelles, three countries are devastated, and make no mistake, revenge will come for you eventually!"

When he had passed the boundary of those countries, he was somewhat comforted, and rode eight days without adventure. Anon he came to a cross, whereon was written in letters of gold, "It is not for a knight alone to ride towards this castle." Looking up, he saw a hoary ancient man come towards him, who said, "Sir Balin le Savage, thou passest thy bounds this way; therefore turn back again, it will be best for thee;" and with these words he vanished.

When he crossed the borders of those countries, he felt a bit relieved and rode for eight days without any incidents. Soon, he arrived at a cross marked with golden letters that read, "It is not for a knight alone to ride toward this castle." Looking up, he saw an old man approaching him, who said, "Sir Balin le Savage, you're straying too far this way; you should turn back, it's the best choice for you;" and with that, he disappeared.

Then did he hear a horn blow as it were the death-note of some hunted beast. "That blast," said Balin, "is blown for me, for I am the prey; though yet I be not dead." But as he spoke he saw a hundred ladies with a great troop of knights come forth to meet him with bright faces and great welcome, who led him to the castle and made a great feast, with dancing and minstrelsy and all manner of joy.

Then he heard a horn blow, like the death knell of some hunted animal. "That blast," Balin said, "is for me, because I'm the target; though I'm not dead yet." But as he spoke, he saw a hundred ladies with a large group of knights coming out to greet him with bright smiles and warm welcomes, who led him to the castle and threw a big feast, filled with dancing, music, and all kinds of joy.

Then the chief lady of the castle said, "Knight with the two swords, thou must encounter and fight with a knight hard by, who dwelleth on an island, for no man may pass this way without encountering him."

Then the chief lady of the castle said, "Knight with the two swords, you must face and fight a knight nearby, who lives on an island, because no one can pass this way without encountering him."

"It is a grievous custom," answered Sir Balin.

"It’s a terrible tradition," replied Sir Balin.

"There is but one knight to defeat," replied the lady.

"There’s only one knight to beat," replied the lady.

"Well," said Sir Balin, "be it as thou wilt. I am ready and quite willing, and though my horse and my body be full weary, yet is my heart not weary, save of life. And truly I were glad if I might meet my death."

"Well," said Sir Balin, "it’s up to you. I’m ready and completely willing, and even though my horse and my body are tired, my heart isn’t weary, except of life. Honestly, I would be glad if I could meet my death."

"Sir," said one standing by, "methinketh your shield is not good; I will lend you a bigger."

"Sir," said one standing nearby, "I think your shield isn't very good; I'll lend you a bigger one."

"I thank thee, sir," said Balin, and took the unknown shield and left his own, and so rode forth, and put himself and horse into a boat and came to the island.

"I thank you, sir," said Balin, and took the unknown shield and left his own, and so rode off, and put himself and his horse into a boat and arrived at the island.

As soon as he had landed, he saw come riding towards him, a knight dressed all in red, upon a horse trapped in the same color. When the red knight saw Sir Balin, and the two swords he wore, he thought it must have been his brother (for the red knight was Sir Balan), but when he saw the strange arms on his shield, he forgot the thought, and came against him fiercely. At the first course they overthrew each other, and both lay swooning on the ground; but Sir Balin was the most hurt and bruised, for he was weary and spent with traveling. So Sir Balan rose up first to his feet and drew his sword, and Sir Balin painfully rose against him and raised his shield. Then Sir Balan smote him through the shield and brake his helmet; and Sir Balin, in return, smote at him with his fated sword, and had wellnigh slain his brother. And so they fought till their breaths failed.

As soon as he landed, he saw a knight in all red riding toward him on a horse that matched his color. When the red knight saw Sir Balin and the two swords he wore, he thought he must be his brother (since the red knight was Sir Balan), but when he noticed the strange emblem on his shield, he dismissed the thought and charged at him fiercely. In their first charge, they knocked each other down and both lay unconscious on the ground; however, Sir Balin was the more injured and battered since he was exhausted from traveling. So, Sir Balan got up first and drew his sword, while Sir Balin painfully rose to oppose him and raised his shield. Then Sir Balan struck him through the shield and broke his helmet; in response, Sir Balin attacked him with his cursed sword and nearly killed his brother. They fought until they ran out of breath.

Then Sir Balin, looking up, saw all the castle towers stand full of ladies. So they went again to battle, and wounded each other full sore, and paused, and breathed again, and then again began the fight; and this for many times they did, till all the ground was red with blood. And by now, each had full grievously wounded the other with seven great wounds, the least of which might have destroyed the mightiest giant in the world. But still they rose against each other, although their hauberks now were all unnailed, and they smiting at each other's naked bodies with their sharp swords. At the last, Sir Balan, the younger brother, withdrew a little space and laid him down.

Then Sir Balin looked up and saw that all the castle towers were filled with ladies. So they went back into battle, injuring each other severely, then paused to catch their breath, and started fighting again. They repeated this many times until the ground was soaked with blood. By now, each of them had inflicted seven deep wounds on the other, any one of which could have been fatal to the mightiest giant in the world. But they still faced each other, even though their armor was completely battered, striking at each other’s bare bodies with their sharp swords. Finally, Sir Balan, the younger brother, stepped back a little and lay down.

Then said Sir Balin le Savage, "What knight art thou? for never before have I found a knight to match me thus."

Then Sir Balin le Savage said, "Who are you, knight? I’ve never encountered a knight who can match me like this before."

"My name," said he, all faintly, "is Balan, brother to the good knight Sir Balin."

"My name," he said softly, "is Balan, brother to the noble knight Sir Balin."

"Ah, God!" cried Balin, "that ever I should see this day!" and therewith fell down backwards in a swoon.

"Ah, God!" Balin exclaimed, "that I should ever witness this day!" and with that, he collapsed backwards in a faint.

Then Sir Balan crept with pain upon his feet and hands, and put his brother's helmet off his head, but could not know him by his face, it was so hewed and bloody. But presently, when Sir Balin came to, he said, "Oh! Balan, mine own brother, thou hast slain me, and I thee! All the wide world saw never greater grief!"

Then Sir Balan crawled painfully on his hands and knees and removed his brother's helmet, but he couldn't recognize him because his face was so battered and bloody. But soon, when Sir Balin came to his senses, he said, "Oh! Balan, my own brother, you have slain me, and I have slain you! Never in the whole world has there been greater sorrow!"

"Alas!" said Sir Balan, "that I ever saw this day; and through mishap alone I knew thee not, for when I saw thy two swords, if it had not been for thy strange shield, I should have known thee for my brother."

"Wow!" said Sir Balan, "I can't believe I saw this day; and because of bad luck, I didn't recognize you. When I saw your two swords, if it hadn’t been for your unusual shield, I would have known you were my brother."

"Alas!" said Balin, "all this sorrow lieth at the door of one unhappy knight within the castle, who made me change my shield. If I might live, I would destroy that castle and its evil customs."

"Unfortunately!" said Balin, "all this grief falls on the shoulders of one unfortunate knight inside the castle, who forced me to change my shield. If I could live, I would tear down that castle and its wicked ways."

"It were well done," said Balan, "for since I first came hither I have never been able to depart, for here they made me fight with one who kept this island, whom I slew, and by enchantment I might never quit it more; nor couldst thou, brother, hadst thou slain me, and escaped with thine own life."

"It would be a good idea," said Balan, "because since I first arrived here I have never been able to leave. Here, they made me fight someone who guarded this island, and I killed him, but because of a spell, I can never leave again; nor could you, brother, if you had killed me and managed to escape with your own life."

Anon came the lady of the castle, and when she heard their talk, and saw their evil case, she wrung her hands and wept bitterly. So Sir Balan prayed the lady of her gentleness that, for his true service, she would bury them both together in that place. This she granted, weeping full sore, and said it should be done right solemnly and richly, and in the noblest manner possible. Then did they send for a priest, and received the holy sacrament at his hands. And Balin said, "Write over us upon our tomb, that here two brethren slew each other; then shall never good knight or pilgrim pass this way but he will pray for both our souls." And anon Sir Balan died, but Sir Balin died not till the midnight after; and then they both were buried.

Soon, the lady of the castle arrived, and when she heard their conversation and saw their tragic situation, she wrung her hands and cried deeply. Sir Balan pleaded with her for her kindness, asking that, in honor of his true service, she would bury them both together in that place. She agreed, weeping quite hard, and promised that it would be done very solemnly and beautifully, in the most noble way possible. Then they sent for a priest and received the holy sacrament from him. Balin said, "Write on our tomb that here two brothers killed each other; then no good knight or pilgrim passing this way will fail to pray for our souls." Soon after, Sir Balan died, but Sir Balin didn’t pass until midnight afterward; then they were both buried.

On the morrow of their death came Merlin, and took Sir Balin's sword and fixed on it a new pommel, and set it in a mighty stone, which then, by magic, he made float upon the water. And so, for many years, it floated to and fro around the island, till it swam down the river to Camelot, where young Sir Galahad achieved it, as shall be told hereafter.

On the day after their death, Merlin came and took Sir Balin's sword, added a new pommel to it, and placed it in a powerful stone, which he magically made float on the water. For many years, it floated back and forth around the island until it drifted down the river to Camelot, where young Sir Galahad obtained it, as will be explained later.


VI

THE MARRIAGE OF ARTHUR AND GUINEVERE AND THE FOUNDING OF THE ROUND TABLE

It befell upon a certain day, that King Arthur said to Merlin, "My lords and knights do daily pray me now to take a wife; but I will have none without thy counsel, for thou hast ever helped me since I came first to this crown."

It happened one day that King Arthur said to Merlin, "My lords and knights keep asking me to take a wife; but I won’t do it without your advice, because you’ve always supported me since I first took this crown."

"It is well," said Merlin, "that thou shouldst take a wife, for no man of bounteous and noble nature should live without one; but is there any lady whom thou lovest better than another?"

"It’s good," said Merlin, "that you should take a wife, because no generous and noble man should live without one; but is there any lady you love more than the others?"

"Yea," said King Arthur, "I love Guinevere, the daughter of King Leodegrance, of Camelgard, who also holdeth in his house the Round Table that he had from my father Uther; and as I think, that damsel is the gentlest and the fairest lady living."

"Yeah," said King Arthur, "I love Guinevere, the daughter of King Leodegrance of Camelgard, who also has the Round Table that he got from my father Uther; and I believe that lady is the kindest and the most beautiful woman alive."

"Sir," answered Merlin, "as for her beauty, she is one of the fairest that do live; but if ye had not loved her as ye do, I would fain have had ye choose some other who was both fair and good. But where a man's heart is set, he will be loth to leave." This Merlin said, knowing the misery that should hereafter happen from this marriage.

"Sir," replied Merlin, "when it comes to her beauty, she's one of the most beautiful women alive; but if you didn't love her as you do, I would have preferred you to choose someone else who is both beautiful and good. But when a man’s heart is committed, he’s reluctant to let go." Merlin said this, aware of the suffering that would later come from this marriage.

Then King Arthur sent word to King Leodegrance that he mightily desired to wed his daughter, and how that he had loved her since he saw her first, when with Kings Ban and Bors he rescued Leodegrance from King Ryence of North Wales.

Then King Arthur sent a message to King Leodegrance that he really wanted to marry his daughter, and that he had loved her since he first saw her, when he, along with Kings Ban and Bors, rescued Leodegrance from King Ryence of North Wales.

When King Leodegrance heard the message, he cried out, "These be the best tidings I have heard in all my life—so great and worshipful a prince to seek my daughter for his wife! I would fain give him half my lands with her straightway, but that he needeth none—and better will it please him that I send him the Round Table of King Uther, his father, with a hundred good knights towards the furnishing of it with guests, for he will soon find means to gather more, and make the table full."

When King Leodegrance heard the message, he exclaimed, "This is the best news I've ever received—such a noble and esteemed prince wants to marry my daughter! I would gladly give him half my lands along with her right away, but he doesn’t need any of that. It would please him more if I send him King Uther's Round Table, his father, along with a hundred good knights to help fill it with guests. He'll quickly find a way to gather more and make the table complete."

Then King Leodegrance delivered his daughter Guinevere to the messengers of King Arthur, and also the Round Table with the hundred knights.

Then King Leodegrance handed over his daughter Guinevere to the messengers of King Arthur, along with the Round Table and the hundred knights.

So they rode royally and freshly, sometimes by water and sometimes by land, towards Camelot. And as they rode along in the spring weather, they made full many sports and pastimes. And, in all those sports and games, a young knight lately come to Arthur's, court, Sir Lancelot by name, was passing strong, and won praise from all, being full of grace and hardihood; and Guinevere also ever looked on him with joy. And always in the eventide, when the tents were set beside some stream or forest, many minstrels came and sang before the knights and ladies as they sat in the tent-doors, and many knights would tell adventures; and still Sir Lancelot was foremost, and told the knightliest tales, and sang the goodliest songs, of all the company.

So they rode in style and full of energy, sometimes by water and sometimes by land, heading towards Camelot. As they traveled in the spring weather, they enjoyed many sports and activities. In all those games, a young knight who had recently joined Arthur's court, named Sir Lancelot, stood out for his strength and won praise from everyone; he was full of charm and bravery, and Guinevere always looked at him with delight. Every evening, when the tents were set up near a stream or in a forest, many musicians came and sang for the knights and ladies as they sat at the entrances to their tents, and many knights would share their adventures; and Sir Lancelot remained at the forefront, telling the most noble tales and singing the best songs of the entire group.

And when they came to Camelot, King Arthur made great joy, and all the city with him; and riding forth with a great retinue he met Guinevere and her company, and led her through the streets all filled with people, and in the midst of all their shoutings and the ringing of church bells, to a palace hard by his own.

And when they arrived in Camelot, King Arthur was full of joy, and so was the entire city; riding out with a large entourage, he met Guinevere and her group, and led her through the bustling streets filled with people, amid all their cheers and the sound of church bells, to a palace right by his own.

Then, in all haste, the king commanded to prepare the marriage and the coronation with the stateliest and most honorable pomp that could be made. And when the day was come, the archbishops led the king to the cathedral, whereto he walked, clad in his royal robes, and having four kings, bearing four golden swords, before him; a choir of passing sweet music going also with him.

Then, in a hurry, the king ordered that the wedding and the coronation be prepared with the grandest and most honorable ceremony possible. When the day arrived, the archbishops led the king to the cathedral, where he walked in his royal robes, accompanied by four kings who carried four golden swords in front of him, along with a choir singing beautiful music.

In another part, was the queen dressed in her richest ornaments, and led by archbishops and bishops to the Chapel of the Virgins, the four queens also of the four kings last mentioned walked before her, bearing four white doves, according to ancient custom; and after her there followed many damsels, singing and making every sign of joy.

In another area, the queen was adorned in her finest jewels, accompanied by archbishops and bishops as she made her way to the Chapel of the Virgins. The four queens of the four kings mentioned earlier walked ahead of her, carrying four white doves, in keeping with the old tradition. Following her were many young women, singing and expressing joy in every way possible.

And when the two processions were come to the churches, so wondrous was the music and the singing, that all the knights and barons who were there pressed on each other, as in the crowd of battle, to hear and see the most they might.

And when the two processions reached the churches, the music and singing were so amazing that all the knights and barons present pushed against each other, like in a battle, to hear and see as much as they could.

When the king was crowned, he called together all the knights that came with the Round Table from Camelgard, and twenty-eight others, great and valiant men, chosen by Merlin out of all the realm, towards making up the full number of the table. Then the Archbishop of Canterbury blessed the seats of all the knights, and when they rose again therefrom to pay their homage to King Arthur, there was found upon the back of each knight's seat his name, written in letters of gold. But upon one seat was found written, "This is the Siege Perilous, wherein if any man shall sit save him whom Heaven hath chosen, he shall be devoured by fire."

When the king was crowned, he gathered all the knights that came with the Round Table from Camelgard, along with twenty-eight other great and brave men chosen by Merlin from across the realm, to complete the number for the table. Then the Archbishop of Canterbury blessed the seats of all the knights, and when they rose to pay their respect to King Arthur, each knight discovered his name written in gold letters on the back of his seat. However, on one seat was written, "This is the Siege Perilous, and if any man sits here except for the one chosen by Heaven, he shall be consumed by fire."

Anon came young Gawain, the king's nephew, praying to be made a knight, whom the king knighted then and there. Soon after came a poor man, leading with him a tall fair lad of eighteen years of age, riding on a lean mare. And falling at the king's feet, the poor man said, "Lord, it was told me, that at this time of thy marriage thou wouldst give to any man the gift he asked for, so it were not unreasonable."

Soon, young Gawain, the king's nephew, arrived, asking to be made a knight, and the king knighted him right then and there. Shortly after, a poor man appeared, leading a tall, handsome lad of eighteen, who was riding on a skinny mare. Falling to his knees at the king's feet, the poor man said, "My lord, I was told that during your wedding, you would grant any man the request he makes, as long as it's reasonable."

"That is the truth," replied King Arthur, "and I will make it good."

"That’s the truth," replied King Arthur, "and I will prove it."

"Thou sayest graciously and nobly," said the poor man. "Lord, I ask nothing else but that thou wilt make my son here a knight."

"You're speaking kindly and nobly," said the poor man. "Lord, I ask for nothing more than that you make my son here a knight."

"It is a great thing that thou askest," said the king. "What is thy name?"

"It’s great that you’re asking," said the king. "What’s your name?"

"Aries, the cowherd," answered he.

"Aries, the cowherder," he replied.

"Cometh this prayer from thee or from thy son?" inquired King Arthur.

"Did this prayer come from you or your son?" asked King Arthur.

"Nay, lord, not from myself," said he, "but from him only, for I have thirteen other sons, and all of them will fall to any labor that I put them to. But this one will do no such work for anything that I or my wife may do, but is for ever shooting or fighting, and running to see knights and joustings, and torments me both night and day that he be made a knight."

"Nah, my lord, not because of me," he said, "but because of him only. I have thirteen other sons, and they'll do any work I ask of them. But this one won't lift a finger for anything I or my wife do. He spends all his time hunting, fighting, and rushing off to see knights and tournaments, and he drives me crazy both day and night because he wants to become a knight."

"What is thy name?" said the king to the young man.

"What is your name?" said the king to the young man.

"My name is Tor," said he.

"My name is Tor," he said.

Then the king, looking at him steadfastly, was well pleased with his face and figure, and with his look of nobleness and strength.

Then the king, looking at him intently, was pleased with his appearance, build, and his expression of nobility and strength.

"Fetch all thy other sons before me," said the king to Aries. But when he brought them, none of them resembled Tor in size or shape or feature.

"Bring all your other sons to me," said the king to Aries. But when he brought them, none of them looked like Tor in size, shape, or appearance.

Then the king knighted Tor, saying, "Be thou to thy life's end a good knight and a true, as I pray God thou mayest be; and if thou provest worthy, and of prowess, one day thou shalt be counted in the Round Table." Then turning to Merlin, Arthur said, "Prophesy now, O Merlin, shall Sir Tor become a worthy knight, or not?"

Then the king knighted Tor, saying, "From this day on, be a good and true knight for the rest of your life, as I hope you will be; and if you prove yourself worthy and skilled, one day you'll be counted among the Round Table." Then turning to Merlin, Arthur asked, "Now, Merlin, prophesy: will Sir Tor become a worthy knight or not?"

"Yea, lord," said Merlin, "so he ought to be, for he is the son of that King Pellinore whom thou hast met, and proved to be one of the best knights living. He is no cowherd's son."

"Yeah, my lord," said Merlin, "he should be, because he is the son of King Pellinore, whom you've met and who has proven to be one of the best knights alive. He’s not just some cowherd's son."

Presently after came in King Pellinore, and when he saw Sir Tor he knew him for his son, and was more pleased than words can tell to find him knighted by the king. And Pellinore did homage to King Arthur, and was gladly and graciously accepted of the king; and then was led by Merlin to a high seat at the Table Round, near to the Perilous Seat.

Presently, King Pellinore entered, and when he saw Sir Tor, he recognized him as his son and was more pleased than words can express to find him knighted by the king. Pellinore did homage to King Arthur, who gladly and graciously accepted him; then Merlin led him to a high seat at the Round Table, close to the Perilous Seat.

But Sir Gawain was full of anger at the honor done King Pellinore, and said to his brother Gaheris, "He slew our father, King Lot, therefore will I slay him."

But Sir Gawain was really angry about the honor given to King Pellinore and said to his brother Gaheris, "He killed our father, King Lot, so I will kill him."

"Do it not yet," said he; "wait till I also be a knight, then will I help ye in it: it is best ye suffer him to go at this time, and not trouble this high feast with blood-shed."

"Don't do it yet," he said; "wait until I'm a knight too, then I'll help you with it. It's better if you let him go this time and not disturb this grand feast with bloodshed."

"As ye will, be it," said Sir Gawain.

"As you wish, so be it," said Sir Gawain.

Then rose the king and spake to all the Table Round, and charged them to be ever true and noble knights, to do neither outrage nor murder, nor any unjust violence, and always to flee treason; also by no means ever to be cruel, but give mercy unto him that asked for mercy, upon pain of forfeiting the liberty of his court forevermore. Moreover, at all times, on pain of death, to give all succor unto ladies and young damsels; and lastly, never to take part in any wrongful quarrel, for reward or payment. And to all this he swore them knight by knight.

Then the king stood up and spoke to all the Knights of the Round Table, urging them to always be true and noble knights, to commit neither outrage nor murder, nor any unjust violence, and to always avoid treason. He also commanded them never to be cruel, but to show mercy to anyone who asked for it, or risk losing their standing in the court forever. Furthermore, he decreed that they must always, under penalty of death, provide help to ladies and young women. Lastly, they were never to take part in any wrongful conflict for reward or payment. He made them swear to all of this, knight by knight.

Then he ordained that, every year at Pentecost, they should all come before him, wheresoever he might appoint a place, and give account of all their doings and adventures of the past twelve-month. And so, with prayer and blessing, and high words of cheer, he instituted the most noble order of the Round Table, whereto the best and bravest knights in all the world sought afterwards to find admission.

Then he commanded that every year at Pentecost, they should all come before him, wherever he designated a place, and report on all their activities and adventures from the past year. And so, with prayer and blessings, and encouraging words, he established the prestigious order of the Round Table, to which the best and bravest knights in the world later sought to be admitted.

Then was the high feast made ready, and the king and queen sat side by side, before the whole assembly; and great and royal was the banquet and the pomp.

Then the grand feast was prepared, and the king and queen sat together in front of the entire gathering; and the banquet and the spectacle were magnificent and royal.

And as they sat, each man in his place, Merlin went round and said, "Sit still awhile, for ye shall see a strange and marvelous adventure."

And as they sat, each man in his spot, Merlin went around and said, "Sit tight for a moment, because you’re about to witness a strange and incredible adventure."

So as they sat, there suddenly came running through the hall, a white hart, with a white hound next after him, and thirty couple of black running hounds, making full cry; and the hart made circuit of the Table Round, and past the other tables; and suddenly the white hound flew upon him and bit him fiercely, and tore out a piece from his haunch. Whereat the hart sprang suddenly with a great leap, and overthrew a knight sitting at the table, who rose forthwith, and, taking up the hound, mounted, and rode fast away.

So as they sat, suddenly a white deer came running through the hall, followed by a white hound and thirty pairs of black hunting dogs, all barking loudly; the deer circled the Round Table and went past the other tables. Out of nowhere, the white hound lunged at it and bit it hard, tearing a chunk from its hind leg. This caused the deer to leap up suddenly with a great jump and knock over a knight sitting at the table, who immediately got up, grabbed the hound, and rode off quickly.

But no sooner had he left, than there came in a lady, mounted on a white palfrey, who cried out to the king, "Lord, suffer me not to have this injury!—the hound is mine which that knight taketh." And as she spake, a knight rode in all armed, on a great horse, and suddenly took up the lady and rode away with her by force, although she greatly cried and moaned.

But no sooner had he left than a lady on a white horse came in, calling out to the king, "My lord, please don’t let this happen to me! That knight has taken my hound." As she spoke, a fully armed knight rode in on a big horse and suddenly grabbed the lady, riding away with her despite her cries and pleas.

Then the king desired Sir Gawain, Sir Tor, and King Pellinore to mount and follow this adventure to the uttermost; and told Sir Gawain to bring back the hart, Sir Tor the hound and knight, and King Pellinore the knight and the lady.

Then the king asked Sir Gawain, Sir Tor, and King Pellinore to get on their horses and pursue this adventure to the extreme; and told Sir Gawain to return with the deer, Sir Tor the dog and the knight, and King Pellinore the knight and the lady.

So Sir Gawain rode forth at a swift pace, and with him Gaheris, his brother, for a squire. And as they went, they saw two knights fighting on horseback, and when they reached them they divided them and asked the reason of their quarrel. "We fight for a foolish matter," one replied, "for we be brethren; but there came by a white hart this way, chased by many hounds, and thinking it was an adventure for the high feast of King Arthur, I would have followed it to have gained worship; whereat my younger brother here declared he was the better knight and would go after it instead, and so we fight to prove which of us be the better knight."

So Sir Gawain rode out quickly, with his brother Gaheris serving as his squire. As they traveled, they came across two knights fighting on horseback. When they reached them, they separated the two and asked what the fight was about. "We’re fighting over something ridiculous," one of them replied, "because we are brothers. A white hart came by, being chased by a bunch of hounds, and I thought it would be a worthy adventure for King Arthur’s great feast, so I wanted to follow it to gain some honor. My younger brother here insisted he was the better knight and wanted to go after it instead, and now we’re fighting to see who is the better knight."

"This is a foolish thing," said Sir Gawain. "Fight with all strangers, if ye will, but not brother with brother. Take my advice, set on against me, and if ye yield to me, as I shall do my best to make ye, ye shall go to King Arthur and yield ye to his grace."

"This is a stupid thing," said Sir Gawain. "You can fight with any strangers you want, but not brother against brother. Listen to my advice, face me, and if you give in to me, as I will do my best to make you, you can go to King Arthur and present yourself to his grace."

"Sir knight," replied the brothers, "we are weary, and will do thy wish without encountering thee; but by whom shall we tell the king that we were sent?"

"Sir knight," the brothers replied, "we're tired and will fulfill your request without facing you, but who should we say sent us to the king?"

"By the knight that followeth the quest of the white hart," said Sir Gawain. "And now tell me your names, and let us part."

"By the knight who follows the quest of the white deer," said Sir Gawain. "Now tell me your names, and let's go our separate ways."

"Sorlous and Brian of the Forest," they replied; and so they went their way to the king's court.

"Sorlous and Brian of the Forest," they said; and so they made their way to the king's court.

Then Sir Gawain, still following his quest by the distant baying of the hounds, came to a great river, and saw the hart swimming over and near to the further bank. And as he was about to plunge in and swim after, he saw a knight upon the other side, who cried, "Come not over here, Sir knight, after that hart, save thou wilt joust with me."

Then Sir Gawain, still pursuing his quest by the distant barking of the hounds, reached a large river and saw the deer swimming toward the far bank. As he was about to jump in and swim after it, he noticed a knight on the other side who shouted, "Don’t come over here, Sir knight, after that deer, unless you want to duel with me."

"I will not fail for that," said Sir Gawain; and swam his horse across the stream.

"I won't let that stop me," said Sir Gawain; and he swam his horse across the river.

Anon they got their spears, and ran against each other fiercely; and Sir Gawain smote the stranger off his horse, and turning, bade him yield.

Soon they grabbed their spears and charged at each other fiercely; Sir Gawain knocked the stranger off his horse and turned to tell him to surrender.

"Nay," replied he, "not so; for though ye have the better of me on horseback, I pray thee, valiant knight, alight, and let us match together with our swords on foot."

"Not at all," he replied, "for even though you may be better than me on horseback, I ask you, brave knight, to get down and let’s fight each other with our swords on foot."

"What is thy name?" quoth Gawain.

"What is your name?" asked Gawain.

"Allardin of the Isles," replied the stranger.

"Allardin of the Isles," the stranger replied.

Then they fell on each other; but soon Sir Gawain struck him through the helm, so deeply and so hard, that all his brains were scattered, and Sir Allardin fell dead. "Ah," said Gaheris, "that was a mighty stroke for a young knight!"

Then they clashed; but soon Sir Gawain hit him hard in the helmet, so deeply that his brains were splattered, and Sir Allardin dropped dead. "Wow," said Gaheris, "that was an incredible blow for a young knight!"

Then did they turn again to follow the white hart, and let slip three couple of greyhounds after him; and at the last they chased him to a castle, and there they overtook and slew him, in the chief courtyard.

Then they turned back to chase the white stag and released three pairs of greyhounds after him; eventually, they chased him to a castle, where they caught and killed him in the main courtyard.

At that there rushed a knight forth from a chamber, with a drawn sword in his hand, and slew two of the hounds before their eyes, and chased the others from the castle, crying, "Oh, my white hart! alas, that thou art dead! for thee my sovereign lady gave to me, and evil have I kept thee; but if I live, thy death shall be dear bought." Anon he went within and armed, and came out fiercely, and met Sir Gawain face to face.

At that moment, a knight rushed out from a room, sword drawn, and killed two of the hounds right in front of them, chasing the others away from the castle, shouting, "Oh, my white deer! it's so sad that you’re dead! My lady gave you to me, and I've taken such poor care of you; but if I survive, your death will be avenged." Soon after, he went inside to put on his armor and came out ready to fight, confronting Sir Gawain directly.

"Why have ye slain my hounds?" said Sir Gawain; "they did but after their nature: and ye had better have taken vengeance on me than on the poor dumb beasts."

"Why did you kill my hounds?" said Sir Gawain; "they were just acting according to their nature: and you would have been better off taking your revenge on me than on the poor dumb animals."

"I will avenge me on thee, also," said the other, "ere thou depart this place."

"I will get my revenge on you, too," said the other, "before you leave this place."

Then did they fight with each other savagely and madly, till the blood ran down to their feet. But at last Sir Gawain had the better, and felled the knight of the castle to the ground. Then he cried out for mercy, and yielded to Sir Gawain, and besought him as he was a knight and gentleman to save his life. "Thou shalt die," said Sir Gawain, "for slaying my hounds."

Then they fought each other fiercely and recklessly, until blood was streaming down to their feet. But eventually, Sir Gawain had the upper hand and knocked the knight of the castle to the ground. Then he cried out for mercy and surrendered to Sir Gawain, begging him as a knight and gentleman to spare his life. "You shall die," said Sir Gawain, "for killing my hounds."

"I will make thee all amends within my power," replied the knight.

"I will make it up to you in every way I can," replied the knight.

But Sir Gawain would have no mercy, and unlaced his helm to strike his head off; and so blind was he with rage, that he saw not where a lady ran out from her chamber and fell down upon his enemy. And making a fierce blow at him, he smote off by mischance the lady's head.

But Sir Gawain showed no mercy and took off his helmet to strike his enemy's head off; he was so blinded by rage that he didn't notice a lady running out of her room and falling on his opponent. In his frenzy, he accidentally struck off the lady's head with a fierce blow.

"Alas!" cried Gaheris, "foully and shamefully have ye done—the shame shall never leave ye! Why give ye not your mercy unto them that ask it? a knight without mercy is without worship also."

"Unfortunately!" shouted Gaheris, "you have acted disgracefully and shamefully—the shame will never leave you! Why don’t you show mercy to those who ask for it? A knight without mercy is also without honor."

Then Sir Gawain was sore amazed at that fair lady's death, and knew not what to do, and said to the fallen knight, "Arise, for I will give thee mercy."

Then Sir Gawain was deeply shocked by that beautiful lady's death, and didn't know what to do, and said to the fallen knight, "Get up, for I will show you mercy."

"Nay, nay," said he, "I care not for thy mercy now, for thou hast slain my lady and my love—that of all earthly things I loved the best."

"Nah, nah," he said, "I don’t care about your mercy now, because you’ve killed my lady and my love—the one thing in this world I loved the most."

"I repent me sorely of it," said Sir Gawain, "for I meant to have struck thee: but now shalt thou go to King Arthur and tell him this adventure, and how thou hast been overcome by the knight that followeth the quest of the white hart."

"I deeply regret it," said Sir Gawain, "because I meant to strike you: but now you should go to King Arthur and tell him about this adventure, and how you were defeated by the knight who follows the quest of the white hart."

"I care not whether I live or die, or where I go," replied the knight.

"I don't care if I live or die, or where I go," replied the knight.

So Sir Gawain sent him to the court to Camelot, making him bear one dead greyhound before and one behind him on his horse. "Tell me thy name before we part," said he.

So Sir Gawain sent him to the court at Camelot, making him carry one dead greyhound in front and one behind him on his horse. "What’s your name before we part?" he asked.

"My name is Athmore of the Marsh," he answered.

"My name is Athmore of the Marsh," he replied.

Then went Sir Gawain into the castle, and prepared to sleep there and began to unarm; but Gaheris upbraided him, saying, "Will ye disarm in this strange country? bethink ye, ye must needs have many enemies about."

Then Sir Gawain went into the castle, got ready to sleep there, and started to take off his armor; but Gaheris scolded him, saying, "Are you really going to take off your armor in this strange country? Think about it, you must have a lot of enemies around."

No sooner had he spoken than there came out suddenly four knights, well armed, and assailed them hard, saying to Sir Gawain, "Thou new-made knight, how hast thou shamed thy knighthood! a knight without mercy is dishonored! Slayer of fair ladies, shame to thee evermore! Doubt not thou shalt thyself have need of mercy ere we leave thee."

No sooner had he finished speaking than four fully armed knights suddenly appeared and attacked them fiercely, saying to Sir Gawain, "You newly made knight, how have you shamed your knighthood! A knight without mercy is dishonored! Slayer of fair ladies, shame on you forever! Don’t doubt that you will need mercy yourself before we’re done with you."

Then were the brothers in great jeopardy, and feared for their lives, for they were but two to four, and weary with traveling; and one of the four knights shot Sir Gawain with a bolt, and hit him through the arm, so that he could fight no more. But when there was nothing left for them but death, there came four ladies forth and prayed the four knights' mercy for the strangers. So they gave Sir Gawain and Gaheris their lives, and made them yield themselves prisoners.

Then the brothers were in serious danger and were afraid for their lives because they were outnumbered two to four and exhausted from traveling. One of the four knights shot Sir Gawain with a bolt, hitting him in the arm, so he could no longer fight. Just when it seemed like they had no choice but to face death, four ladies appeared and asked the four knights to spare the strangers. As a result, they granted Sir Gawain and Gaheris their lives and forced them to surrender as prisoners.

On the morrow, came one of the ladies to Sir Gawain, and talked with him, saying, "Sir knight, what cheer?"

On the next day, one of the ladies approached Sir Gawain and spoke to him, saying, "Sir knight, how's it going?"

"Not good," said he.

"Not good," he said.

"It is your own default, sir," said the lady, "for ye have done a passing foul deed in slaying that fair damsel yesterday—and ever shall it be great shame to you. But ye be not of King Arthur's kin."

"It’s your own fault, sir," said the lady, "because you committed a terrible act by killing that beautiful woman yesterday—and it will always bring you great shame. But you are not related to King Arthur."

"Yea, truly am I," said he; "my name is Gawain, son of King Lot of Orkney, whom King Pellinore slew—and my mother, Belisent, is half-sister to the king."

"Yes, that's right," he said; "my name is Gawain, son of King Lot of Orkney, whom King Pellinore killed—and my mother, Belisent, is the king's half-sister."

When the lady heard that, she went and presently got leave for him to quit the castle; and they gave him the head of the white hart to take with him, because it was in his quest; but made him also carry the dead lady with him—her head hung round his neck and her body lay before him on his horse's neck.

When the lady heard that, she went and quickly got permission for him to leave the castle; they gave him the head of the white hart to take with him since it was part of his quest, but they also made him carry the dead lady with him—her head hung around his neck and her body lay across his horse's neck.

So in that fashion he rode back to Camelot; and when the king and queen saw him, and heard tell of his adventures, they were heavily displeased, and, by order of the queen, he was put upon his trial before a court of ladies—who judged him to be evermore, for all his life, the knight of ladies' quarrels, and to fight always on their side, and never against any, except he fought for one lady and his adversary for another; also they charged him never to refuse mercy to him that asked it, and swore him to it on the Holy Gospels. Thus ended the adventure of the white hart.

So in that way, he rode back to Camelot; and when the king and queen saw him and heard about his adventures, they were very displeased. By the queen's order, he was put on trial before a court of ladies, who decided that he would always be the knight of ladies' disputes for the rest of his life. He would fight on their side and never against any lady, unless he was fighting for one lady and his opponent was fighting for another. They also instructed him never to deny mercy to anyone who asked for it and made him swear on the Holy Gospels. That’s how the adventure of the white hart concluded.

Meanwhile, Sir Tor had made him ready, and followed the knight who rode away with the hound. And as he went, there suddenly met him in the road a dwarf, who struck his horse so viciously upon the head with a great staff, that he leaped backwards a spear's length.

Meanwhile, Sir Tor got himself ready and followed the knight who rode off with the hound. As he traveled, he was suddenly confronted on the road by a dwarf, who hit his horse hard on the head with a large staff, causing it to jump backwards a spear's length.

"Wherefore so smitest thou my horse, foul dwarf?" shouted Sir Tor.

"Why are you hitting my horse, you nasty dwarf?" shouted Sir Tor.

"Because thou shalt not pass this way," replied the dwarf, "unless thou fight for it with yonder knights in those pavilions," pointing to two tents, where two great spears stood out, and two shields hung upon two trees hard by.

"Because you can't go this way," replied the dwarf, "unless you fight for it against those knights in those tents," pointing to two pavilions, where two large spears stood out and two shields hung from two trees nearby.

"I may not tarry, for I am on a quest I needs must follow," said Sir Tor.

"I can't stay long because I'm on a quest I have to pursue," said Sir Tor.

"Thou shalt not pass," replied the dwarf, and therewith blew his horn. Then rode out quickly at Sir Tor one armed on horseback, but Sir Tor was quick as he, and riding at him bore him from his horse, and made him yield. Directly after came another still more fiercely, but with a few great strokes and buffets Sir Tor unhorsed him also, and sent them both to Camelot to King Arthur. Then came the dwarf and begged Sir Tor to take him in his service, "for," said he, "I will serve no more recreant knights."

"You're not getting past," the dwarf said, then blew his horn. Right after that, Sir Tor charged out, fully armed and on horseback, but Sir Tor was just as quick and knocked him off his horse, forcing him to surrender. Soon after, another knight came at him even more aggressively, but with a few powerful blows, Sir Tor unhorsed him too and sent both of them to Camelot to King Arthur. The dwarf then approached and asked Sir Tor to take him on as his servant, saying, "I won't serve any more cowardly knights."

"Take then a horse, and come with me," said Tor.

"Then take a horse and come with me," said Tor.

"Ride ye after the knight with the white hound?" said the dwarf; "I can soon bring ye where he is."

"Are you going to follow the knight with the white hound?" said the dwarf. "I can take you to him right away."

So they rode through the forest till they came to two more tents. And Sir Tor alighting, went into the first, and saw three damsels lie there, sleeping. Then went he to the other, and found another lady also sleeping, and at her feet the white hound he sought for, which instantly began to bay and bark so loudly, that the lady woke. But Sir Tor had seized the hound and given it to the dwarf's charge.

So they rode through the forest until they reached two more tents. Sir Tor got off his horse and entered the first tent, where he saw three women lying there asleep. He then went to the other tent and found another woman also sleeping, and at her feet was the white hound he was looking for, which immediately started barking so loudly that the woman woke up. But Sir Tor had already grabbed the hound and handed it over to the dwarf to take care of.

"What will ye do, Sir knight?" cried out the lady; "will ye take away my hound from me by force?"

"What are you going to do, Sir Knight?" the lady cried. "Are you really going to take my hound away from me by force?"

"Yea, lady," said Sir Tor; "for so I must, having the king's command; and I have followed it from King Arthur's court, at Camelot, to this place."

"Yes, my lady," said Sir Tor, "I must do this because it's the king's command; I've followed it from King Arthur's court at Camelot to this place."

"Well," said the lady, "ye will not go far before ye be ill handled, and will repent ye of the quest."

"Well," said the lady, "you won't get far before you get into trouble, and you'll regret your journey."

"I shall cheerfully abide whatsoever adventure cometh, by the grace of God," said Sir Tor; and so mounted his horse and began to ride back on his way. But night coming on, he turned aside to a hermitage that was in the forest, and there abode till the next day, making but sorrowful cheer of such poor food as the hermit had to give him, and hearing a Mass devoutly before he left on the morrow.

"I'll happily face whatever adventure comes my way, with God's grace," said Sir Tor; and with that, he got on his horse and started riding back. But as night fell, he decided to stop at a hermitage in the forest, where he stayed until the next day, making the best of the meager food the hermit offered him and attending Mass with devotion before he left the following morning.

And in the early morning, as he rode forth with the dwarf towards Camelot, he heard a knight call loudly after him, "Turn, turn! Abide, Sir knight, and yield me up the hound thou tookest from my lady." At which he turned, and saw a great and strong knight, armed full splendidly, riding down upon him fiercely through a glade of the forest.

And in the early morning, as he rode out with the dwarf toward Camelot, he heard a knight call out loudly after him, "Stop, stop! Wait, Sir knight, and give me back the hound you took from my lady." At that, he turned and saw a big, strong knight, fully armed and riding fiercely toward him through a clearing in the forest.

Now Sir Tor was very ill provided, for he had but an old courser, which was as weak as himself, because of the hermit's scanty fare. He waited, nevertheless, for the strange knight to come, and at the first onset with their spears, each unhorsed the other, and then fell to with their swords like two mad lions. Then did they smite through one another's shields and helmets till the fragments flew on all sides, and their blood ran out in streams; but yet they carved and rove through the thick armor of the hauberks, and gave each other great and ghastly wounds. But in the end, Sir Tor, finding the strange knight faint, doubled his strokes until he beat him to the earth. Then did he bid him yield to his mercy.

Now Sir Tor was poorly equipped, as he only had an old horse that was as weak as he was because of the hermit's meager diet. Still, he waited for the strange knight to arrive, and at their first clash with their spears, they both unhorsed each other and then fought with their swords like two furious lions. They struck through each other's shields and helmets until fragments flew everywhere, and their blood poured out in streams; yet they sliced through the thick armor of their chainmail, inflicting serious and terrifying wounds on each other. In the end, Sir Tor, seeing that the strange knight was weakened, intensified his attacks until he knocked him to the ground. He then commanded him to yield to his mercy.

"That will I not," replied Abellius, "while my life lasteth and my soul is in my body, unless thou give me first the hound."

"That I will not," replied Abellius, "as long as I live and my soul is in my body, unless you give me the hound first."

"I cannot," said Sir Tor, "and will not, for it was my quest to bring again that hound and thee unto King Arthur, or otherwise to slay thee."

"I can't," said Sir Tor, "and I won't, because it was my mission to bring that hound and you back to King Arthur, or else to kill you."

With that there came a damsel riding on a palfrey, as fast as she could drive, and cried out to Sir Tor with a loud voice, "I pray thee, for King Arthur's love, give me a gift."

With that, a young woman rode up on a horse as fast as she could and shouted to Sir Tor in a loud voice, "Please, for the love of King Arthur, grant me a favor."

"Ask," said Sir Tor, "and I will give thee."

"Ask," said Sir Tor, "and I'll give you."

"Gramercy," said the lady, "I ask the head of this false knight Abellius, the most outrageous murderer that liveth."

"Thank you," said the lady, "I ask about the leader of this fake knight Abellius, the most notorious murderer alive."

"I repent me of the gift I promised," said Sir Tor. "Let him make thee amends for all his trespasses against thee."

"I regret the gift I promised," said Sir Tor. "Let him make up for all his wrongs against you."

"He cannot make amends," replied the damsel, "for he hath slain my brother, a far better knight than he, and scorned to give him mercy, though I kneeled for half an hour before him in the mire, to beg it, and though it was but by a chance they fought, and for no former injury or quarrel. I require my gift of thee as a true knight, or else will I shame thee in King Arthur's court; for this Abellius is the falsest knight alive, and a murderer of many."

"He can't make up for what he's done," replied the lady, "because he killed my brother, who was a much better knight than he is, and refused to show him mercy, even though I knelt in the mud for half an hour begging for it. They only fought by chance, with no prior conflict or grudge. I demand my right from you as a true knight, or I will shame you in King Arthur's court; because Abellius is the most dishonorable knight alive and a murderer of many."

When Abellius heard this, he trembled greatly, and was sore afraid, and yielded to Sir Tor, and prayed his mercy.

When Abellius heard this, he shook with fear and was very scared, so he surrendered to Sir Tor and begged for his mercy.

"I cannot now, Sir knight," said he, "lest I be false to my promise. Ye would not take my mercy when I offered it; and now it is too late."

"I can’t do that now, Sir Knight," he said, "because I would be breaking my promise. You wouldn’t accept my mercy when I offered it, and now it’s too late."

Therewith he unlaced his helmet, and took it off; but Abellius, in dismal fear, struggled to his feet, and fled, until Sir Tor overtook him, and smote off his head entirely with one blow.

Thereupon, he unfastened his helmet and removed it; however, Abellius, in a state of panic, got to his feet and ran away, until Sir Tor caught up with him and decapitated him with a single blow.

"Now, sir," said the damsel, "it is near night, I pray ye come and lodge at my castle hard by."

"Now, sir," said the young woman, "it's getting close to night. I kindly ask you to come and stay at my castle nearby."

"I will, with a good will," said he, for both his horse and he had fared but poorly since they left Camelot.

"I will, with a good attitude," he said, as both he and his horse had been doing poorly since they left Camelot.

So he went to the lady's castle and fared sumptuously, and saw her husband, an old knight, who greatly thanked him for his service, and urged him oftentimes to come again.

So he went to the lady's castle and enjoyed a lavish meal, and met her husband, an old knight, who thanked him a lot for his service and often encouraged him to visit again.

On the morrow he departed, and reached Camelot by noon, where the king and queen rejoiced to see him, and the king made him Earl; and Merlin prophesied that these adventures were but little to the things he should achieve hereafter.

On the next day, he left and arrived in Camelot by noon, where the king and queen were thrilled to see him, and the king appointed him as Earl; and Merlin predicted that these adventures were only a small preview of the things he would accomplish in the future.

Now while Sir Gawain and Sir Tor had fulfilled their quests, King Pellinore pursued the lady whom the knight had seized away from the wedding-feast. And as he rode through the woods, he saw in a valley a fair young damsel sitting by a well-side, and a wounded knight lying in her arms, and King Pellinore saluted her as he passed by.

Now that Sir Gawain and Sir Tor had completed their quests, King Pellinore was chasing the lady that the knight had taken from the wedding feast. As he rode through the woods, he spotted a beautiful young woman sitting by a well, cradling a wounded knight in her arms, and King Pellinore greeted her as he rode by.

As soon as she perceived him she cried out, "Help, help me, knight, for our Lord's sake!" But Pellinore was far too eager in his quest to stay or turn, although she cried a hundred times to him for help; at which she prayed to heaven he might have such sore need before he died as she had now. And presently thereafter her knight died in her arms; and she, for grief and love, slew herself with his sword.

As soon as she saw him, she shouted, "Help, help me, knight, for our Lord's sake!" But Pellinore was way too focused on his quest to stop or turn back, even though she begged him a hundred times for help. She then prayed to heaven that he might need help as desperately as she did at that moment. Shortly after, her knight died in her arms; and in her grief and love, she took his sword and ended her own life.

But King Pellinore rode on till he met a poor man, and asked him had he seen a knight pass by that way, leading by force a lady with him.

But King Pellinore rode on until he encountered a poor man and asked if he had seen a knight passing that way, forcefully leading a lady with him.

"Yea, surely," said the man, "and greatly did she moan and cry; but even now another knight is fighting with him to deliver the lady; ride on and thou shalt find them fighting still."

"Yeah, for sure," said the man, "and she was really moaning and crying; but right now another knight is fighting him to rescue the lady; keep going and you’ll find them still battling."

At that King Pellinore rode swiftly on, and came to where he saw the two knights fighting, hard by where two pavilions stood. And when he looked in one of them, he saw the lady that was his quest, and with her the two squires of the two knights who fought.

At that moment, King Pellinore rode quickly onward and arrived at the spot where he saw two knights battling, near two pavilions. When he glanced inside one of them, he saw the lady he was searching for, along with the two squires of the knights who were fighting.

"Fair lady," said he, "ye must come with me unto King Arthur's court."

"Fair lady," he said, "you must come with me to King Arthur's court."

"Sir knight," said the two squires, "yonder be two knights fighting for this lady; go part them, and get their consent to take her, ere thou touch her."

"Sir knight," said the two squires, "over there are two knights fighting for this lady; go break it up and get their permission to take her before you lay a hand on her."

"Ye say well," said King Pellinore, and rode between the combatants, and asked them why they fought.

"You speak wisely," said King Pellinore, and rode between the fighters, asking them why they were battling.

"Sir knight," said the one, "yon lady is my cousin, mine aunt's daughter, whom I met borne away against her will, by this knight here, with whom I therefore fight to free her."

"Sir knight," said one, "that lady is my cousin, my aunt's daughter, whom I saw being taken away against her will by this knight here, and I'm fighting him to rescue her."

"Sir knight," replied the other, whose name was Hantzlake of Wentland, "this lady got I, by my arms and prowess, at King Arthur's court to-day."

"Sir knight," replied the other, whose name was Hantzlake of Wentland, "I won this lady today by my skills and bravery at King Arthur's court."

"That is false," said King Pellinore; "ye stole the lady suddenly, and fled away with her, before any knight could arm to stay thee. But it is my service to take her back again. Neither of ye shall therefore have her; but if ye will fight for her, fight with me now and here."

"That's not true," said King Pellinore; "you kidnapped the lady and ran away with her before any knight could get ready to stop you. But it's my duty to bring her back. Neither of you will have her; if you want to fight for her, then fight me right here and now."

"Well," said the knights, "make ready, and we will assail thee with all our might."

"Alright," said the knights, "get ready, and we will attack you with all our strength."

Then Sir Hantzlake ran King Pellinore's horse through with his sword, so that they might be all alike on foot. But King Pellinore at that was passing wroth, and ran upon Sir Hantzlake, with a cry, "Keep well thy head!" and gave him such a stroke upon the helm as clove him to the chin, so that he fell dead to the ground. When he saw that, the other knight refused to fight, and kneeling down said, "Take my cousin the lady with thee, as thy quest is; but as thou art a true knight, suffer her to come to neither shame nor harm."

Then Sir Hantzlake ran King Pellinore's horse through with his sword, so they could all fight on foot. But King Pellinore, enraged, charged at Sir Hantzlake, shouting, "Watch your head!" and struck him so hard on the helmet that it split him down to the chin, causing him to fall dead to the ground. When the other knight saw this, he refused to fight and knelt down, saying, "Take my cousin the lady with you, as your quest requires; but as a true knight, please ensure she comes to no shame or harm."

So the next day King Pellinore departed for Camelot, and took the lady with him; and as they rode in a valley full of rough stones, the damsel's horse stumbled and threw her, so that her arms were sorely bruised and hurt. And as they rested in the forest for the pain to lessen, night came on, and there they were compelled to make their lodging. A little before midnight they heard the trotting of a horse. "Be ye still," said King Pellinore, "for now we may hear of some adventure," and therewith he armed her. Then he heard two knights meet and salute each other, in the dark; one riding from Camelot, the other from the north.

So the next day, King Pellinore set off for Camelot, taking the lady with him. As they were riding through a valley filled with rough stones, the damsel's horse stumbled and threw her, causing her arms to be badly bruised and injured. While they took a break in the forest to let the pain ease, night fell, and they had to find a place to stay. Just before midnight, they heard the sound of a horse trotting. "Be quiet," said King Pellinore, "because we might hear about some adventure," and he prepared her for whatever was coming. Then he heard two knights meeting and greeting each other in the darkness, one coming from Camelot and the other from the north.

"What tidings at Camelot?" said one.

"What news from Camelot?" said one.

"By my head," said the other, "I have but just left there, and have espied King Arthur's court, and such a fellowship is there as never may be broke or overcome; for wellnigh all the chivalry of the world is there, and all full loyal to the king, and now I ride back homewards to the north to tell our chiefs, that they waste not their strength in wars against him."

"By my head," said the other, "I just came from there, and I saw King Arthur's court, and there’s a brotherhood there that can never be broken or defeated; nearly all the knights from around the world are there, and they’re all completely loyal to the king. Now I’m riding back home to the north to tell our leaders not to waste their strength in wars against him."

"As for all that," replied the other knight, "I am but now from the north, and bear with me a remedy, the deadliest poison that ever was heard tell of, and to Camelot will I with it; for there we have a friend close to the king, and greatly cherished of him, who hath received gifts from us to poison him, as he hath promised soon to do."

"As for all that," replied the other knight, "I just came from the north, and I have with me a remedy, the deadliest poison anyone has ever heard of, and I'm taking it to Camelot; because there we have a friend close to the king, who is greatly valued by him, and he has received gifts from us to poison him, as he has promised to do soon."

"Beware," said the first knight, "of Merlin, for he knoweth all things, by the devil's craft."

"Be careful," said the first knight, "of Merlin, because he knows everything, thanks to the devil's skill."

"I will not fear for that," replied the other, and so rode on his way.

"I won't worry about that," the other replied, and continued on his way.

Anon King Pellinore and the lady passed on again; and when they came to the well at which the lady with the wounded knight had sat, they found both knight and damsel utterly devoured by lions and wild beasts, all save the lady's head.

Anon, King Pellinore and the lady moved on again; and when they reached the well where the lady with the injured knight had been, they discovered both the knight and the damsel completely devoured by lions and wild animals, except for the lady's head.

When King Pellinore saw that, he wept bitterly, saying, "Alas! I might have saved her life had I but tarried a few moments in my quest."

When King Pellinore saw that, he cried hard, saying, "Oh no! I could have saved her life if I had just delayed a few moments in my quest."

"Wherefore make so much sorrow now?" said the lady.

"Why are you so sad now?" said the lady.

"I know not," answered he, "but my heart grieveth greatly for this poor lady's death, so fair she was and young."

"I don't know," he replied, "but my heart aches deeply for this poor lady's death; she was so beautiful and young."

Then he required a hermit to bury the remains of the bodies, and bare the lady's head with him to Camelot, to the court.

Then he needed a hermit to bury the bodies and take the lady's head with him to Camelot, to the court.

When he was arrived, he was sworn to tell the truth of his quest before the King and Queen, and when he had entered the Queen somewhat upbraided him, saying, "Ye were much to blame that ye saved not that lady's life."

When he arrived, he swore to tell the truth about his quest before the King and Queen, and when he entered, the Queen scolded him, saying, "You were very much to blame for not saving that lady's life."

"Madam," said he, "I shall repent it all my life."

"Ma'am," he said, "I’ll regret it for the rest of my life."

"Ay, king," quoth Merlin, who suddenly came in, "and so ye ought to do, for that lady was your daughter, not seen since infancy by thee. And she was on her way to court, with a right good young knight, who would have been her husband, but was slain by treachery of a felon knight, Lorraine le Savage, as they came; and because thou wouldst not abide and help her, thy best friend shall fail thee in thine hour of greatest need, for such is the penance ordained thee for that deed."

"Yes, king," said Merlin, who suddenly entered, "and you should do that, because that lady is your daughter, who you haven't seen since she was a baby. She was on her way to court with a good young knight who was supposed to marry her, but he was killed by the betrayal of a wicked knight, Lorraine le Savage, while they were traveling. And because you chose not to stay and help her, your best friend will abandon you in your time of greatest need, as this is the punishment set for you for that action."

Then did King Pellinore tell Merlin secretly of the treason he had heard in the forest, and Merlin by his craft so ordered that the knight who bare the poison was himself soon after slain by it, and so King Arthur's life was saved.

Then King Pellinore secretly told Merlin about the treason he had heard in the forest, and Merlin cleverly arranged for the knight who carried the poison to be killed by it shortly after, thus saving King Arthur's life.


VII

THE ADVENTURE OF ARTHUR AND SIR ACCOLON OF GAUL

Being now happily married, King Arthur for a season took his pleasure, with great tournaments, and jousts, and huntings. So once upon a time the king and many of his knights rode hunting in a forest, and Arthur, King Urience, and Sir Accolon of Gaul, followed after a great hart, and being all three well mounted, they chased so fast that they outsped their company, and left them many miles behind; but riding still as rapidly as they could go, at length their horses fell dead under them. Then being all three on foot, and seeing the stag not far before them, very weary and nigh spent—"What shall we do," said King Arthur, "for we are hard bested?" "Let us go on afoot," said King Urience, "till we can find some lodging." At that they saw the stag lying upon the bank of a great lake, with a hound springing at his throat, and many other hounds trooping towards him. So, running forward, Arthur blew the death-note on his horn, and slew the hart. Then lifting up his eyes he saw before him on the lake a barge, all draped down to the water's edge, with silken folds and curtains, which swiftly came towards him, and touched upon the sands; but when he went up close and looked in, he saw no earthly creature. Then he cried out to his companions, "Sirs, come ye hither, and let us see what there is in this ship." So they all three went in, and found it everywhere throughout furnished, and hung with rich draperies of silk and gold.

Being happily married now, King Arthur spent some time enjoying grand tournaments, jousts, and hunting. One day, the king and many of his knights went hunting in a forest, and Arthur, King Urience, and Sir Accolon of Gaul chased a great stag. All three of them were well mounted, and they rode so quickly that they outpaced their companions, leaving them many miles behind. However, as they continued to ride as fast as they could, their horses eventually fell dead beneath them. Now on foot and seeing the stag not far ahead, very weary and nearly spent, King Arthur said, "What should we do? We're in a tough spot." King Urience replied, "Let's keep going on foot until we find somewhere to stay." At that moment, they spotted the stag lying on the bank of a large lake, with a hound lunging at its throat and many other hounds running towards it. Arthur then rushed forward, blew the death note on his horn, and killed the stag. When he lifted his eyes, he saw a barge on the lake, draped to the water's edge with silken folds and curtains, moving swiftly towards him and landing on the shore. But when he approached and looked inside, he found no earthly creature. He called out to his companions, "Come here, let’s see what’s in this boat." So all three of them boarded and discovered it was fully furnished, adorned with rich silk and golden draperies.

By this time eventide had come, when suddenly a hundred torches were set up on all sides of the barge, and gave a dazzling light, and at the same time came forth twelve fair damsels, and saluted King Arthur by his name, kneeling on their knees, and telling him that he was welcome, and should have their noblest cheer, for which the king thanked them courteously. Then did they lead him and his fellows to a splendid chamber, where was a table spread with all the richest furniture, and costliest wines and viands; and there they served them with all kinds of wines and meats, till Arthur wondered at the splendor of the feast, declaring he had never in his life supped better, or more royally. After supper they led him to another chamber, than which he had never beheld a richer, where he was left to rest. King Urience, also, and Sir Accolon were each conducted into rooms of like magnificence. And so they all three fell asleep, and being very weary slept deeply all that night.

By this time, evening had arrived when suddenly a hundred torches were lit all around the barge, creating a dazzling light. At the same time, twelve beautiful young women came forward, greeted King Arthur by name, knelt before him, and told him he was welcome and would receive their finest hospitality, to which the king graciously thanked them. Then, they led him and his companions to a magnificent chamber, where a table was set with the richest decorations, and the finest wines and foods; they served them all kinds of wines and dishes until Arthur marveled at the splendor of the feast, declaring he had never enjoyed a meal better or more royal in his life. After dinner, they took him to another chamber, richer than any he had ever seen, where he was left to rest. King Urience and Sir Accolon were each shown to similarly luxurious rooms. Thus, all three of them fell asleep, very tired, and slept soundly through the night.

But when the morning broke, King Urience found himself in his own house in Camelot, he knew not how; and Arthur awaking found himself in a dark dungeon, and heard around him nothing but the groans of woeful knights, prisoners like himself. Then said King Arthur, "Who are ye, thus groaning and complaining?" And some one answered him, "Alas, we be all prisoners, even twenty good knights, and some of us have lain here seven years—some more—nor seen the light of day for all that time." "For what cause?" said King Arthur. "Know ye not then yourself?" they answered—"we will soon tell you. The lord of this strong castle is Sir Damas, and is the falsest and most traitorous knight that liveth; and he hath a younger brother, a good and noble knight, whose name is Outzlake. This traitor Damas, although passing rich, will give his brother nothing of his wealth, and save what Outzlake keepeth to himself by force, he hath no share of the inheritance. He owneth, nevertheless, one fair rich manor, whereupon he liveth, loved of all men far and near. But Damas is as altogether hated as his brother is beloved, for he is merciless and cowardly: and now for many years there hath been war between these brothers, and Sir Outzlake evermore defieth Damas to come forth and fight with him, body to body, for the inheritance; and if he be too cowardly, to find some champion knight that will fight for him. And Damas hath agreed to find some champion, but never yet hath found a knight to take his evil cause in hand, or wager battle for him. So with a strong band of men-at-arms he lieth ever in ambush, and taketh captive every passing knight who may unwarily go near and bringeth him into this castle, and desireth him either to fight Sir Outzlake, or to lie for evermore indurance. And thus hath he dealt with all of us, for we all scorned to take up such a cause for such a false foul knight—but rather one by one came here, where many a good knight hath died of hunger and disease. But if one of us would fight, Sir Damas would deliver all the rest."

But when morning came, King Urience found himself in his own home in Camelot, not knowing how he got there; and Arthur, waking up, discovered he was in a dark dungeon, surrounded only by the groans of miserable knights, prisoners like himself. King Arthur asked, "Who are you, groaning and complaining?" Someone answered him, "Alas, we are all prisoners, twenty good knights, and some of us have been here for seven years—some even longer—without seeing the light of day." "Why is that?" King Arthur asked. "Don’t you know?" they replied—"we'll tell you. The lord of this strong castle is Sir Damas, the most false and treacherous knight alive; he has a younger brother, a good and noble knight named Outzlake. This traitor Damas, despite being very wealthy, gives his brother nothing of his riches, and aside from what Outzlake can claim for himself by force, he doesn’t get any of the inheritance. He does own one lovely rich manor where he lives, loved by everyone near and far. But Damas is completely hated, while his brother is beloved, for he is ruthless and cowardly: and for many years, there has been war between these brothers, with Sir Outzlake constantly challenging Damas to come out and fight him, man to man, for the inheritance; and if he is too cowardly, to find some champion knight to fight for him. Damas has agreed to find a champion, but he has yet to find a knight willing to take on his wicked cause or fight for him. So, with a strong band of men-at-arms, he lies in wait and captures every passing knight who unknowingly gets close and brings them into this castle, demanding they either fight Sir Outzlake or stay here forever. So he has treated all of us, for we all refused to support such a cause for such a false, despicable knight—but one by one, we ended up here, where many good knights have died from hunger and disease. However, if one of us would fight, Sir Damas would release all the others."

"God of his mercy send you deliverance," said King Arthur, and sat turning in his mind how all these things should end, and how he might himself gain freedom for so many noble hearts.

"May God in His mercy bring you salvation," said King Arthur, as he contemplated how all of this would conclude and how he could secure freedom for so many noble souls.

Anon there came a damsel to the king, saying, "Sir, if thou wilt fight for my lord thou shalt be delivered out of prison, but else nevermore shalt thou escape with thy life." "Nay," said King Arthur, "that is but a hard choice, yet had I rather fight than die in prison, and if I may deliver not myself alone, but all these others, I will do the battle." "Yea," said the damsel, "it shall be even so." "Then," said King Arthur, "I am ready now, if but I had a horse and armor." "Fear not," said she, "that shalt thou have presently, and shalt lack nothing proper for the fight." "Have I not seen thee," said the king, "at King Arthur's court? for it seemeth that thy face is known to me." "Nay," said the damsel, "I was never there; I am Sir Damas' daughter, and have never been but a day's journey from this castle." But she spoke falsely, for she was one of the damsels of Morgan le Fay, the great enchantress, who was King Arthur's half-sister.

Soon, a young woman approached the king and said, "Sir, if you fight for my lord, you will be released from prison, but if not, you will never escape with your life." "No," replied King Arthur, "that's a tough choice, but I'd rather fight than die in prison, and if I can free not just myself but all these others, I will take on the battle." "Yes," said the young woman, "it shall be as you wish." "Then," said King Arthur, "I'm ready now, if only I had a horse and armor." "Don’t worry," she replied, "you will have that soon, and you won't lack anything needed for the fight." "Haven't I seen you," the king asked, "at King Arthur's court? Your face looks familiar to me." "No," said the young woman, "I've never been there; I'm Sir Damas' daughter and have only traveled a day's journey from this castle." But she was lying, for she was one of Morgan le Fay's maidens, the great enchantress who was King Arthur's half-sister.

When Sir Damas knew that there had been at length a knight found who would fight for him, he sent for Arthur, and finding him a man so tall and strong, and straight of limb, he was passingly well pleased, and made a covenant with him, that he should fight unto the uttermost for his cause, and that all the other knights should be delivered. And when they were sworn to each other on the Holy Gospels, all those imprisoned knights were straightway led forth and delivered, but abode there one and all to see the battle.

When Sir Damas realized that a knight had finally been found to fight for him, he called for Arthur. Seeing that Arthur was tall, strong, and well-built, he was quite pleased and made an agreement with him that he would fight to the utmost for his cause and ensure that all the other knights would be freed. After they swore an oath to each other on the Holy Gospels, all the imprisoned knights were immediately released, but they all stayed to watch the battle.

In the meanwhile there had happened to Sir Accolon of Gaul a strange adventure; for when he awoke from his deep sleep upon the silken barge, he found himself upon the edge of a deep well, and in instant peril of falling thereinto. Whereat, leaping up in great affright, he crossed himself and cried aloud, "May God preserve my lord King Arthur and King Urience, for those damsels in the ship have betrayed us, and were doubtless devils and no women; and if I may escape this misadventure, I will certainly destroy them wheresoever I may find them." With that there came to him a dwarf with a great mouth, and a flat nose, and saluted him, saying that he came from Queen Morgan le Fay. "And she greeteth you well," said he, "and biddeth you be strong of heart, for to-morrow you shall do battle with a strange knight, and therefore she hath sent you here Excalibur, King Arthur's sword, and the scabbard likewise. And she desireth you as you do love her to fight this battle to the uttermost, and without any mercy, as you have promised her you would fight when she should require it of you; and she will make a rich queen forever of any damsel that shall bring her that knight's head with whom you are to fight."

In the meantime, Sir Accolon of Gaul had a strange adventure. When he woke up from his deep sleep on the silken barge, he found himself at the edge of a deep well, in immediate danger of falling in. Startled, he jumped up, crossed himself, and cried out, "May God protect my lord King Arthur and King Urience, for those ladies on the ship have betrayed us, and they were surely demons in disguise! If I can escape this trouble, I will definitely hunt them down wherever I find them." Just then, a dwarf with a big mouth and a flat nose approached him and greeted him, saying he came from Queen Morgan le Fay. "She sends her regards," he said, "and encourages you to be strong, for tomorrow you will battle a strange knight. That's why she has sent you Excalibur, King Arthur's sword, along with the scabbard. She wants you to fight this battle fiercely and without mercy, as you promised her you would when she called upon you; and she will reward any lady who brings her that knight's head with riches beyond measure."

"Well," said Sir Accolon, "tell you my lady Queen Morgan, that I shall hold to that I promised her, now that I have this sword—and," said he, "I suppose it was to bring about this battle that she made all these enchantments by her craft." "You have guessed rightly," said the dwarf, and therewithal he left him.

"Well," said Sir Accolon, "tell my lady Queen Morgan that I will stick to what I promised her, now that I have this sword—and," he continued, "I guess it was to set up this battle that she created all these enchantments with her skills." "You've guessed correctly," said the dwarf, and then he left him.

Then came a knight and lady, and six squires, to Sir Accolon, and took him to a manor house hard by, and gave him noble cheer; and the house belonged to Sir Outzlake, the brother of Sir Damas, for so had Morgan le Fay contrived with her enchantments. Now Sir Outzlake himself was at that time sorely wounded and disabled, having been pierced through both his thighs by a spear-thrust. When, therefore, Sir Damas sent down messengers to his brother, bidding him make ready by to-morrow morning, and be in the field to fight with a good knight, for that he had found a champion ready to do battle at all points, Sir Outzlake was sorely annoyed and distressed, for he knew he had small chance of victory, while yet he was disabled by his wounds; notwithstanding, he determined to take the battle in hand, although he was so weak that he must needs be lifted to his saddle. But when Sir Accolon of Gaul heard this, he sent a message to Sir Outzlake offering to take the battle in his stead, which cheered Sir Outzlake mightily, who thanked Sir Accolon with all his heart, and joyfully accepted him.

Then a knight and a lady, along with six squires, approached Sir Accolon and took him to a nearby manor house, where they treated him with great hospitality. This house belonged to Sir Outzlake, the brother of Sir Damas, thanks to Morgan le Fay's scheming. At that time, Sir Outzlake was severely wounded and unable to fight, having been pierced through both thighs by a spear. When Sir Damas sent messengers to his brother, asking him to be ready by the next morning for a battle against a skilled knight, Sir Outzlake was quite troubled and distressed, knowing he had little chance of winning while still being incapacitated by his injuries. Nevertheless, he decided to face the battle, even though he was so weak that he needed to be lifted onto his horse. However, when Sir Accolon of Gaul learned about this, he sent a message to Sir Outzlake offering to fight in his place, which greatly relieved Sir Outzlake. He thanked Sir Accolon with all his heart and joyfully accepted his offer.

So, on the morrow, King Arthur was armed and well horsed, and asked Sir Damas, "When shall we go to the field?" "Sir," said Sir Damas, "you shall first hear mass." And when mass was done, there came a squire on a great horse, and asked Sir Damas if his knight were ready, "for our knight is already in the field." Then King Arthur mounted on horseback, and there around were all the knights, and barons, and people of the country; and twelve of them were chosen to wait upon the two knights who were about to fight. And as King Arthur sat on horseback, there came a damsel from Morgan le Fay, and brought to him a sword, made like Excalibur, and a scabbard also, and said to him, "Morgan le Fay sendeth you here your sword for her great love's sake." And the king thanked her, and believed it to be as she said; but she traitorously deceived him, for both sword and scabbard were counterfeit, brittle, and false, and the true sword Excalibur was in the hands of Sir Accolon. Then, at the sound of a trumpet, the champions set themselves on opposite side of the field, and giving rein and spur to their horses urged them to so great a speed that each smiting the other in the middle of the shield, rolled his opponent to the ground, both horse and man. Then starting up immediately, both drew their swords and rushed swiftly together. And so they fell to eagerly, and gave each other many great and mighty strokes.

So, the next day, King Arthur was geared up and ready to ride, and he asked Sir Damas, "When are we heading to the field?" "Sir," replied Sir Damas, "you'll need to hear mass first." After mass ended, a squire on a big horse approached Sir Damas and asked if his knight was ready, saying, "Our knight is already in the field." Then King Arthur got on his horse, and all around were knights, barons, and the local people; twelve of them were chosen to support the two knights who were about to fight. While King Arthur was on horseback, a damsel sent by Morgan le Fay arrived with a sword like Excalibur and a scabbard, saying, "Morgan le Fay sends you this sword for her deep love." The king thanked her and believed what she said; however, she was deceitful, as both the sword and the scabbard were fake, brittle, and false, while the true sword Excalibur was in the hands of Sir Accolon. Then, at the sound of a trumpet, the champions positioned themselves on opposite sides of the field. They urged their horses to charge, and each hit the other square in the middle of the shield, toppling each opponent to the ground, both horse and rider. They quickly got back up, drew their swords, and rushed at each other with great speed. They engaged fiercely, exchanging many powerful blows.

And as they were thus fighting, the damsel Vivien, lady of the lake, who loved King Arthur, came upon the ground, for she knew by her enchantments how Morgan le Fay had craftily devised to have King Arthur slain by his own sword that day, and therefore came to save his life. And Arthur and Sir Accolon were now grown hot against each other, and spared not strength nor fury in their fierce assaults; but the king's sword gave way continually before Sir Accolon's, so that at every stroke he was sore wounded, and his blood ran from him so fast that it was a marvel he could stand. When King Arthur saw the ground so sore be-blooded, he bethought him in dismay that there was magic treason worked upon him, and that his own true sword was changed, for it seemed to him that the sword in Sir Accolon's hand was Excalibur, for fearfully it drew his blood at every blow, while what he held himself kept no sharp edge, nor fell with any force upon his foe.

And while they were fighting, the lady of the lake, Vivien, who loved King Arthur, arrived on the scene. She knew through her enchantments that Morgan le Fay had cunningly plotted to have King Arthur killed by his own sword that day, so she came to save his life. Arthur and Sir Accolon were now fiercely battling each other, pouring all their strength and fury into their attacks; however, the king's sword constantly faltered against Sir Accolon's, so that with every strike he was badly wounded, and his blood flowed so quickly that it was a wonder he could stand. When King Arthur saw the ground drenched in his blood, he realized in horror that magic treachery was at play, and that his own loyal sword had been switched, for it felt to him like the sword in Sir Accolon’s hand was Excalibur, as it fearfully drew his blood with every blow, while the sword he held felt dull and lacked power against his enemy.

"Now, knight, look to thyself, and keep thee well from me," cried out Sir Accolon. But King Arthur answered not, and gave him such a buffet on the helm as made him stagger and nigh fall upon the ground. Then Sir Accolon withdrew a little, and came on with Excalibur on high, and smote King Arthur in return with such a mighty stroke as almost felled him; and both being now in hottest wrath, they gave each other grievous and savage blows. But Arthur all the time was losing so much blood that scarcely could he keep upon his feet, yet so full was he of knighthood, that knightly he endured the pain, and still sustained himself, though now he was so feeble that he thought himself about to die. Sir Accolon, as yet, had lost no drop of blood, and being very bold and confident in Excalibur, even grew more vigorous and hasty in his assaults. But all men who beheld them said they never saw a knight fight half so well as did King Arthur, and all the people were so grieved for him that they besought Sir Damas and Sir Outzlake to make up their quarrel and so stay the fight; but they would not.

"Now, knight, take care of yourself and stay away from me," shouted Sir Accolon. But King Arthur didn’t reply and hit him hard on the helmet, making him stagger and nearly fall. Then Sir Accolon stepped back for a moment, raised Excalibur high, and struck King Arthur back with such a powerful blow that it nearly knocked him down; both were now filled with rage and exchanged brutal, savage hits. However, Arthur was losing so much blood that he could barely stay on his feet, yet he was so full of chivalry that he toughened out the pain and held himself up, even though he felt weak enough to think he might die. Sir Accolon, on the other hand, hadn’t lost a drop of blood, and feeling bold and confident with Excalibur, he became even more aggressive in his attacks. But everyone watching said they had never seen a knight fight as well as King Arthur did, and the crowd was so upset for him that they begged Sir Damas and Sir Outzlake to settle their differences and stop the fight; but they refused.

So still the battle raged, till Arthur drew a little back for breath and a few moments' rest; but Accolon came on after him, following fiercely and crying loud, "It is no time for me to suffer thee to rest," and therewith set upon him. Then Arthur, full of scorn and rage, lifted up his sword and struck Sir Accolon upon the helm so mightily that he drove him to his knees; but with the force of that great stroke his brittle, treacherous sword broke short off at the hilt, and fell down in the grass among the blood, leaving the pommel only in his hand. At that, King Arthur thought within himself that all was over, and secretly prepared his mind for death, yet kept himself so knightly sheltered by his shield that he lost no ground, and made as though he yet had hope and cheer. Then said Sir Accolon, "Sir knight, thou now art overcome and canst endure no longer, seeing thou art weaponless, and hast lost already so much blood. Yet am I fully loth to slay thee; yield, then, therefore, to me as recreant." "Nay," said King Arthur, "that may I not, for I have promised to do battle to the uttermost by the faith of my body while my life lasteth; and I had rather die with honor than live with shame; and if it were possible for me to die an hundred times, I had rather die as often than yield me to thee, for though I lack weapons, I shall lack no worship, and it shall be to thy shame to slay me weaponless." "Aha," shouted then Sir Accolon, "as for the shame, I will not spare; look to thyself, sir knight, for thou art even now but a dead man." Therewith he drove at him with pitiless force, and struck him nearly down; but Arthur evermore waxing in valor as he waned in blood, pressed on Sir Accolon with his shield, and hit at him so fiercely with the pommel in his hand, as hurled him three strides backward.

So the battle continued until Arthur stepped back for a moment to catch his breath and rest, but Accolon charged after him, shouting loudly, "I can't let you rest now!" and attacked him. Filled with anger and contempt, Arthur raised his sword and struck Sir Accolon so hard on the helmet that he knocked him to his knees. However, the force of that mighty blow caused Arthur's fragile, treacherous sword to break off at the hilt and fall into the grass among the blood, leaving only the pommel in his hand. At that moment, King Arthur thought it was all over and mentally prepared for death, yet he managed to shield himself well enough to maintain his ground and pretended he still had hope. Then Sir Accolon said, "Sir knight, you are defeated and can’t hold on any longer since you’re unarmed and have already lost so much blood. I really don’t want to kill you; just yield to me as a coward." "No," King Arthur replied, "I cannot do that, for I have sworn to fight to the end with all my strength for as long as I live; I would rather die with honor than live in shame, and even if I had to die a hundred times, I'd prefer to die each time than surrender to you. Even without weapons, I will preserve my honor, and it would be shameful for you to kill me when I'm defenseless." "Haha," Sir Accolon shouted, "as for shame, I won't hold back; watch yourself, knight, for you are about to die." With that, he attacked Arthur with brutal force, nearly knocking him down; but Arthur, despite losing blood, grew more courageous, pushed against Sir Accolon with his shield, and swung the pommel in his hand so powerfully that it sent him back three paces.

This, therefore, so confused Sir Accolon, that rushing up, all dizzy, to deliver once again a furious blow, even as he struck, Excalibur, by Vivien's magic, fell from out his hands upon the earth. Beholding which, King Arthur lightly sprang to it, and grasped it, and forthwith felt it was his own good sword, and said to it, "Thou hast been from me all too long, and done me too much damage." Then spying the scabbard hanging by Sir Accolon's side, he sprang and pulled it from him, and cast it away as far as he could throw it; for so long as he had worn it, Arthur knew his life would have been kept secure. "Oh, knight!" then said the king, "thou hast this day wrought me much damage by this sword, but now art thou come to thy death, for I shall not warrant thee but that thou shalt suffer, ere we part, somewhat of that thou hast made me suffer." And therewithal King Arthur flew at him with all his might, and pulled him to the earth, and then struck off his helm, and gave him on the head a fearful buffet, till the blood leaped forth. "Now will I slay thee!" cried King Arthur; for his heart was hardened, and his body all on fire with fever, till for a moment he forgot his knightly mercy. "Slay me thou mayest," said Sir Accolon, "for thou art the best knight I ever found, and I see well that God is with thee; and I, as thou hast, have promised to fight this battle to the uttermost, and never to be recreant while I live; therefore shall I never yield me with my mouth, and God must do with my body what he will." And as Sir Accolon spoke, King Arthur thought he knew his voice; and parting all his blood-stained hair from out his eyes, and leaning down towards him, saw, indeed, it was his friend and own true knight. Then said he—keeping his own visor down—"I pray thee tell me of what country art thou, and what court?" "Sir knight," he answered, "I am of King Arthur's court, and my name is Sir Accolon of Gaul." Then said the king, "Oh, sir knight! I pray thee tell me who gave thee this sword? and from whom thou hadst it?"

This completely confused Sir Accolon, who, dizzy, rushed forward to deliver another furious blow. But as he struck, Excalibur, enchanted by Vivien, fell from his hands onto the ground. Seeing this, King Arthur quickly jumped to grab it and immediately felt it was his trusty sword. He said to it, "You've been away from me for too long and caused me too much harm." Then, noticing the scabbard hanging at Sir Accolon's side, he dashed over, took it from him, and threw it as far as he could; Arthur knew that as long as he wore it, his life would be secure. "Oh, knight!" the king said, "You’ve done me a lot of damage with this sword today, but now you are going to meet your end, for I cannot promise you won’t suffer a bit of what you've made me endure before we part." With that, King Arthur attacked him with all his strength, bringing him to the ground, struck off his helmet, and dealt him a terrifying blow to the head that made blood spray out. "Now I will kill you!" shouted King Arthur, his heart hardened, and his body burning with fever, for a moment forgetting his knightly mercy. "You can kill me," replied Sir Accolon, "because you’re the best knight I've ever faced, and I can clearly see that God is with you. Just like you, I have vowed to fight this battle to the very end, and I will never surrender while I live; therefore, I will never yield with my words, and God can decide what happens to my body." As Sir Accolon spoke, King Arthur thought he recognized his voice; and pushing his blood-soaked hair out of his eyes and leaning closer, he saw that it was indeed his friend and true knight. Then he said—keeping his visor down—"Please tell me where you’re from and what court you belong to?" "Sir knight," he replied, "I am from King Arthur's court, and my name is Sir Accolon of Gaul." Then the king said, "Oh, sir knight! I urge you to tell me who gave you this sword and from whom you received it?"

Then said Sir Accolon, "Woe worth this sword, for by it I have gotten my death. This sword hath been in my keeping now for almost twelve months, and yesterday Queen Morgan le Fay, wife of King Urience, sent it to me by a dwarf, that therewith I might in some way slay her brother, King Arthur; for thou must understand that King Arthur is the man she hateth most in all the world, being full of envy and jealousy because he is of greater worship and renown than any other of her blood. She loveth me also as much as she doth hate him; and if she might contrive to slay King Arthur by her craft and magic, then would she straightway kill her husband also, and make me the king of all this land, and herself my queen, to reign with me; but now," said he, "all that is over, for this day I am come to my death."

Then Sir Accolon said, "Damn this sword, because it has brought me to my end. I've had this sword for almost a year, and yesterday Queen Morgan le Fay, the wife of King Urience, sent it to me through a dwarf, so I could somehow kill her brother, King Arthur. You need to understand that King Arthur is the one she hates the most in the world, filled with envy and jealousy because he is more celebrated and renowned than anyone else in her family. She loves me as much as she hates him; and if she could find a way to kill King Arthur through her tricks and magic, she would immediately kill her husband too and make me the king of this land, with her as my queen to rule alongside me. But now," he said, "that's all over, because today I face my death."

"It would have been sore treason of thee to destroy thy lord," said Arthur. "Thou sayest truly," answered he; "but now that I have told thee, and openly confessed to thee all that foul treason whereof I now do bitterly repent, tell me, I pray thee, whence art thou, and of what court?" "O, Sir Accolon!" said King Arthur, "learn that I am myself King Arthur." When Sir Accolon heard this he cried aloud, "Alas, my gracious lord! have mercy on me, for I knew thee not." "Thou shalt have mercy," said he, "for thou knewest not my person at this time; and though by thine own confession thou art a traitor, yet do I blame thee less, because thou hast been blinded by the false crafts of my sister Morgan le Fay, whom I have trusted more than all others of my kin, and whom I now shall know well how to punish." Then did Sir Accolon cry loudly, "O, lords, and all good people! this noble knight that I have fought with is the noblest and most worshipful in all the world; for it is King Arthur, our liege lord and sovereign king; and full sorely I repent that I have ever lifted lance against him, though in ignorance I did it."

"It would have been a serious betrayal to harm your lord," said Arthur. "You're right," he replied; "but now that I've told you and openly confessed to all the vile treason I truly regret, please tell me, where are you from, and what court do you belong to?" "Oh, Sir Accolon!" said King Arthur, "you need to know that I am King Arthur." When Sir Accolon heard this, he cried out, "Alas, my gracious lord! Have mercy on me, for I did not recognize you." "You shall receive mercy," Arthur replied, "because you didn't know who I was at this time; and even though your own admission makes you a traitor, I blame you less, since you've been misled by the deceitful tricks of my sister Morgan le Fay, whom I've trusted more than anyone else in my family, and whom I will now make sure to punish." Then Sir Accolon shouted, "O, lords and all good people! This noble knight that I have fought with is the most honorable and respected man in the world; it's King Arthur, our rightful lord and sovereign king; and I truly regret ever raising my lance against him, although I did so in ignorance."

Then all the people fell down on their knees and prayed the pardon of the king for suffering him to come to such a strait. But he replied, "Pardon ye cannot have, for, truly, ye have nothing sinned; but here ye see what ill adventure may ofttimes befall knights-errant, for to my own hurt, and his danger also, I have fought with one of my own knights."

Then all the people got down on their knees and asked the king for forgiveness for allowing him to get into such a situation. But he replied, "You cannot have forgiveness, because you haven't done anything wrong; but here you see what kind of trouble can often happen to knights-errant, for at my own expense and his risk as well, I have fought with one of my own knights."

Then the king commanded Sir Damas to surrender to his brother the whole manor, Sir Outzlake only yielding him a palfrey every year; "for," said he scornfully, "it would become thee better to ride on than a courser;" and ordered Damas, upon pain of death, never again to touch or to distress knights-errant riding on their adventures; and also to make full compensation and satisfaction to the twenty knights whom he had held in prison. "And if any of them," said the king, "come to my court complaining that he hath not had full satisfaction of thee for his injuries, by my head, thou shalt die therefor."

Then the king ordered Sir Damas to hand over the entire manor to his brother, with Sir Outzlake only giving him a horse every year; "because," he said mockingly, "you’d be better off riding that than a fancy horse." He also commanded Damas, under threat of death, to never again harass or trouble knights-errant on their quests, and to make full restitution to the twenty knights he had imprisoned. "And if any of them," the king said, "comes to my court complaining that you haven’t fully compensated him for his injuries, I swear you will pay for it with your life."

Afterwards, King Arthur asked Sir Outzlake to come with him to his court, where he should become a knight of his, and, if his deeds were noble, be advanced to all he might desire.

Afterward, King Arthur asked Sir Outzlake to join him at his court, where he would become one of his knights, and if his actions were honorable, he would be promoted to anything he desired.

So then he took his leave of all the people and mounted upon horseback, and Sir Accolon went with him to an abbey hard by, where both their wounds were dressed. But Sir Accolon died within four days after. And when he was dead, the king sent his body to Queen Morgan, to Camelot, saying that he sent her a present in return for the sword Excalibur which she had sent him by the damsel.

So he said goodbye to everyone and got on his horse, and Sir Accolon rode with him to a nearby abbey, where their wounds were treated. But Sir Accolon died four days later. After his death, the king sent his body to Queen Morgan at Camelot, saying it was a gift to repay her for the sword Excalibur that she had sent him through the damsel.

So, on the morrow, there came a damsel from Queen Morgan to the king, and brought with her the richest mantle that ever was seen, for it was set as full of precious stones as they could stand against each other, and they were the richest stones that ever the king saw. And the damsel said, "Your sister sendeth you this mantle, and prayeth you to take her gift, and in whatsoever thing she hath offended you, she will amend it at your pleasure." To this the king replied not, although the mantle pleased him much. With that came in the lady of the lake, and said, "Sir, put not on this mantle till thou hast seen more; and in nowise let it be put upon thee, or any of thy knights, till ye have made the bringer of it first put it on her." "It shall be done as thou dost counsel," said the king. Then said he to the damsel that came from his sister, "Damsel, I would see this mantle ye have brought me upon yourself." "Sir," said she, "it will not beseem me to wear a knight's garment." "By my head," said King Arthur, "thou shalt wear it ere it go on any other person's back!" And so they put it on her by force, and forthwith the garment burst into a flame and burned the damsel into cinders. When the king saw that, he hated that false witch Morgan le Fay with all his heart, and evermore was deadly quarrel between her and Arthur to their lives' end.

So, the next day, a young woman sent by Queen Morgan came to the king, bringing with her the most luxurious cloak anyone had ever seen. It was covered in as many precious stones as could fit, and they were the most valuable stones the king had ever laid eyes on. The young woman said, "Your sister sends you this cloak and asks you to accept her gift. Whatever wrongs she has done to you, she promises to make right at your convenience." The king didn’t reply, even though he found the cloak very appealing. Just then, the Lady of the Lake entered and said, "Sir, don’t wear this cloak until you’ve seen more; and under no circumstances should it be worn by you or any of your knights until it has been tried on by the one who brought it." "It will be done as you advise," said the king. He then turned to the young woman from his sister and said, "Ma'am, I want to see this cloak you brought on you." "Sir," she replied, "it wouldn’t be appropriate for me to wear a knight's garment." "By my head," King Arthur insisted, "you will wear it before anyone else does!" And they obliged, putting it on her by force. Immediately, the garment burst into flames and incinerated the young woman. When the king witnessed this, he detested the deceptive witch Morgan le Fay with all his heart, and a deadly feud between her and Arthur ensued that lasted until the end of their lives.


VIII

ARTHUR IS CROWNED EMPEROR AT ROME

And now again the second time there came ambassadors from Lucius Tiberius, Emperor of Rome, demanding, under pain of war, tribute and homage from King Arthur, and the restoration of all Gaul, which he had conquered from the tribune Flollo.

And once again, the second time, ambassadors arrived from Lucius Tiberius, Emperor of Rome, demanding tribute and respect from King Arthur, under the threat of war, and the return of all of Gaul that he had taken from the tribune Flollo.

When they had delivered their message, the king bade them withdraw while he consulted with his knights and barons what reply to send. Then some of the younger knights would have slain the ambassadors, saying that their speech was a rebuke to all who heard the king insulted by it. But when King Arthur heard that, he ordered none to touch them upon pain of death; and sending officers, he had them taken to a noble lodging, and there entertained with the best cheer. "And," said he, "let no dainty be spared, for the Romans are great lords; and though their message please me not, yet must I remember mine honor."

When they finished delivering their message, the king told them to leave while he discussed with his knights and barons what response to send. Some of the younger knights wanted to kill the ambassadors, claiming their words insulted everyone who heard the king being disrespected. But when King Arthur heard this, he commanded that no one touch them under threat of death. He sent officers to take them to a fine lodge and treated them with the best hospitality. "And," he said, "don’t hold back on anything, because the Romans are important lords; even though I don’t like their message, I must uphold my honor."

Then the lords and knights of the Round Table were called on to declare their counsel—what should be done upon this matter; and Sir Cador of Cornwall speaking first, said, "Sir, this message is the best news I have heard for a long time, for we have been now idle and at rest for many days, and I trust that thou wilt make sharp war upon the Romans, wherein, I doubt not, we shall all gain honor."

Then the lords and knights of the Round Table were asked to share their advice on what should be done about this situation, and Sir Cador of Cornwall spoke up first, saying, "Sir, this news is the best I've heard in a while, as we've been idle and at rest for many days. I hope you will lead us to fight fiercely against the Romans, and I have no doubt that we will all earn honor from it."

"I believe well," said Arthur, "that thou art pleased, Sir Cador; but that is scarce an answer to the Emperor of Rome, and his demand doth grieve me sorely, for truly I will never pay him tribute; wherefore, lords, I pray ye counsel me. Now, I have understood that Belinus and Brennius, knights of Britain, held the Roman Empire in their hands for many days, and also Constantine, the son of Helen, which is open evidence, not only that we owe Rome no tribute, but that I, being descended from them, may, of right, myself claim the empire."

"I believe you’re pleased, Sir Cador," said Arthur, "but that’s hardly an answer for the Emperor of Rome, and his demand really troubles me, because I will never pay him tribute. So, lords, I ask for your advice. I’ve learned that Belinus and Brennius, knights of Britain, held the Roman Empire in their hands for many days, and also Constantine, the son of Helen, which clearly shows that we owe Rome no tribute. Therefore, since I am descended from them, I can rightfully claim the empire myself."

Then said King Anguish of Scotland, "Sir, thou oughtest of right to be above all other kings, for in all Christendom is there not thine equal; and I counsel thee never to obey the Romans. For when they reigned here they grievously distressed us, and put the land to great and heavy burdens; and here, for my part, I swear to avenge me on them when I may, and will furnish thee with twenty thousand men-at-arms, whom I will pay and keep, and who shall wait on thee with me, when it shall please thee."

Then King Anguish of Scotland said, "Sir, you deserve to be above all other kings, for there’s no one in all of Christendom who is your equal. I advise you never to submit to the Romans. When they ruled here, they caused us great suffering and imposed heavy burdens on the land. I swear, on my part, to take my revenge on them whenever I can, and I will provide you with twenty thousand armed men, whom I will pay and maintain, and who will be at your service alongside me whenever you need them."

Then the King of Little Britain rose and promised King Arthur thirty thousand men; and likewise many other kings, and dukes, and barons, promised aid—as the lord of West Wales thirty thousand men, Sir Ewaine and his cousin thirty thousand men, and so forth; Sir Lancelot also, and every other knight of the Round Table, promised each man a great host.

Then the King of Little Britain stood up and promised King Arthur thirty thousand men; also, many other kings, dukes, and barons pledged their support—like the lord of West Wales, who promised thirty thousand men, Sir Ewaine and his cousin, who also promised thirty thousand men, and so on; Sir Lancelot too, along with every other knight of the Round Table, each promised a large army.

So the king, passing joyful at their courage and good will, thanked them all heartily, and sent for the ambassadors again, to hear his answer. "I will," said he, "that ye now go back straightway unto the Emperor your master, and tell him that I give no heed to his words, for I have conquered all my kingdoms by the will of God and by my own right arm, and I am strong enough to keep them, without paying tribute to any earthly creature. But, on the other hand, I claim both tribute and submission from himself, and also claim the sovereignty of all his empire, whereto I am entitled by the right of my own ancestors—sometime kings of this land. And say to him that I will shortly come to Rome, and by God's grace will take possession of my empire and subdue all rebels. Wherefore, lastly, I command him and all the lords of Rome that they forthwith pay me their homage, under pain of my chastisement and wrath."

So the king, feeling pleased by their bravery and good intentions, thanked them all sincerely and called the ambassadors back to give his response. "I want you to go straight back to your Emperor and tell him that I dismiss his words, for I have conquered all my kingdoms by the will of God and my own strength, and I am powerful enough to keep them without paying tribute to anyone. However, I demand both tribute and submission from him, and I also assert my claim to the sovereignty of his entire empire, which I am entitled to by the rights of my ancestors—who were once kings of this land. Let him know that I will soon come to Rome, and with God’s help, I will take possession of my empire and defeat any rebels. Therefore, I command him and all the lords of Rome to pay me their allegiance immediately, or they will face my punishment and anger."

Then he commanded his treasurers to give the ambassadors great gifts, and defray all their charges, and appointed Sir Cador to convey them worshipfully out of the land.

Then he instructed his treasurers to give the ambassadors generous gifts, cover all their expenses, and assigned Sir Cador to escort them respectfully out of the country.

So when they returned to Rome and came before Lucius, he was sore angry at their words, and said, "I thought this Arthur would have instantly obeyed my orders and have served me as humbly as any other king; but because of his fortune in Gaul, he hath grown insolent."

So when they got back to Rome and met with Lucius, he was really angry at what they said and said, "I thought Arthur would have immediately followed my orders and served me as humbly as any other king; but because of his success in Gaul, he has become arrogant."

"Ah, lord," said one of the ambassadors, "refrain from such vain words, for truly I and all with me were fearful at his royal majesty and angry countenance. I fear me thou hast made a rod for thee more sharp than thou hast counted on. He meaneth to be master of this empire; and is another kind of man than thou supposest, and holdeth the most noble court of all the world. We saw him on the new year's day, served at his table by nine kings, and the noblest company of other princes, lords, and knights that ever was in all the world; and in his person he is the most manly-seeming man that liveth, and looketh like to conquer all the earth."

"Ah, lord," said one of the ambassadors, "please stop with such foolish words, because honestly, everyone with me was afraid of his royal majesty and his angry expression. I fear you've created a situation for yourself that's tougher than you realize. He intends to be the master of this empire; he's not the kind of person you think he is, and he has the most prestigious court in the entire world. We saw him on New Year's Day, served at his table by nine kings, along with the noblest gathering of other princes, lords, and knights that has ever existed; and in person, he is the most impressive-looking man alive, and he seems ready to conquer the whole earth."

Then Lucius sent messengers to all the subject countries of Rome, and brought together a mighty army, and assembled sixteen kings, and many dukes, princes, lords, and admirals, and a wondrous great multitude of people. Fifty giants also, born of fiends, were set around him for a body-guard. With all that host he straightway went from Rome, and passed beyond the mountains into Gaul, and burned the towns and ravaged all the country of that province, in rage for its submission to King Arthur. Then he moved on towards Little Britain.

Then Lucius sent messengers to all the territories under Roman rule, gathered a massive army, and assembled sixteen kings, along with many dukes, princes, lords, and admirals, creating an astonishing multitude of people. Fifty giants, born of demons, were also set around him as bodyguards. With this entire force, he immediately left Rome, crossed the mountains into Gaul, and burned the towns, laying waste to the land as revenge for its submission to King Arthur. He then continued his march towards Little Britain.

Meanwhile, King Arthur having held a parliament at York, left the realm in charge of Sir Badewine and Sir Constantine, and crossed the sea from Sandwich to meet Lucius. And so soon as he was landed, he sent Sir Gawain, Sir Bors, Sir Lionel, and Sir Bedivere to the Emperor, commanding him "to move swiftly and in haste out of his land, and, if not, to make himself ready for battle, and not continue ravaging the country and slaying harmless people." Anon, those noble knights attired themselves and set forth on horseback to where they saw, in a meadow, many silken tents of divers colors, and the Emperor's pavilion in the midst, with a golden eagle set above it.

Meanwhile, King Arthur held a parliament in York, leaving the realm under the care of Sir Badewine and Sir Constantine as he crossed the sea from Sandwich to meet Lucius. As soon as he landed, he sent Sir Gawain, Sir Bors, Sir Lionel, and Sir Bedivere to the Emperor, commanding him "to swiftly leave his land, or if not, to prepare for battle and stop ravaging the country and killing innocent people." Soon after, those noble knights got dressed and set off on horseback to where they saw many colorful silk tents in a meadow, with the Emperor's pavilion in the center, topped with a golden eagle.

Then Sir Gawain and Sir Bors rode forward, leaving the other two behind in ambush, and gave King Arthur's message. To which the Emperor replied, "Return, and tell your lord that I am come to conquer him and all his land."

Then Sir Gawain and Sir Bors rode ahead, leaving the other two hidden, and delivered King Arthur's message. The Emperor responded, "Go back and tell your lord that I have come to defeat him and take all his land."

At this, Sir Gawain burned with anger, and cried out, "I had rather than all France that I might fight with thee alone!"

At this, Sir Gawain was filled with rage and shouted, "I would prefer to fight you alone than have all of France!"

"And I also," said Sir Bors.

"And I also," said Sir Bors.

Then a knight named Ganius, a near cousin of the Emperor, laughed out aloud, and said, "Lo! how these Britons boast and are full of pride, bragging as though they bare up all the world!"

Then a knight named Ganius, a distant cousin of the Emperor, laughed out loud and said, "Look at how these Britons boast and are so full of pride, acting like they hold up the whole world!"

At these words, Sir Gawain could refrain no longer, but drew forth his sword and with one blow shore off Ganius' head; then with Sir Bors, he turned his horse and rode over waters and through woods, back to the ambush, where Sir Lionel and Sir Bedivere were waiting. The Romans followed fast behind them till the knights turned and stood, and then Sir Bors smote the foremost of them through the body with a spear, and slew him on the spot. Then came on Calibere, a huge Pavian, but Sir Bors overthrew him also. And then the company of Sir Lionel and Sir Bedivere brake forth from their ambush and fell on the Romans, and slew and hewed them down, and forced them to return and flee, chasing them to their tents.

At these words, Sir Gawain couldn't hold back any longer, so he pulled out his sword and, with one strike, took off Ganius' head. Then, along with Sir Bors, he turned his horse and rode through the waters and woods back to the ambush, where Sir Lionel and Sir Bedivere were waiting. The Romans quickly pursued them until the knights turned to face them, and then Sir Bors struck the first of them through the body with a spear and killed him instantly. Next came Calibere, a huge man from Pa via, but Sir Bors took him down as well. Then Sir Lionel and Sir Bedivere's group burst out of their ambush and attacked the Romans, cutting them down and forcing them to retreat, chasing them all the way to their tents.

But as they neared the camp, a great host more rushed forth, and turned the battle backwards, and in the turmoil, Sir Bors and Sir Berel fell into the Romans' hands. When Sir Gawain saw that, he drew his good sword Galotine, and swore to see King Arthur's face no more if those two knights were not delivered; and then, with good Sir Idrus, made so sore an onslaught that the Romans fled and left Sir Bors and Sir Berel to their friends. So the Britons returned in triumph to King Arthur, having slain more than ten thousand Romans, and lost no man of worship from amongst themselves.

But as they got closer to the camp, a huge group came rushing out and turned the tide of the battle. In the chaos, Sir Bors and Sir Berel were captured by the Romans. When Sir Gawain saw this, he drew his trusty sword Galotine and vowed he wouldn’t see King Arthur again if those two knights weren’t rescued. Then, alongside good Sir Idrus, he launched such a fierce attack that the Romans fled, leaving Sir Bors and Sir Berel safe with their allies. The Britons returned in victory to King Arthur, having killed over ten thousand Romans and losing none of their honorable men.

When the Emperor Lucius heard of that discomfiture he arose, with all his army, to crush King Arthur, and met him in the vale of Soissons. Then speaking to all his host, he said, "Sirs, I admonish you that this day ye fight and acquit yourselves as men; and remembering how Rome is chief of all the earth, and mistress of the universal world, suffer not these barbarous and savage Britons to abide our onset." At that, the trumpets blew so loud, that the ground trembled and shook.

When Emperor Lucius heard about that defeat, he rallied his entire army to take down King Arthur and confronted him in the valley of Soissons. Addressing his troops, he said, "Gentlemen, I urge you to fight today and prove yourselves as men; remember that Rome is the greatest of all nations and the ruler of the world, so do not let these barbaric Britons withstand our attack." At that moment, the trumpets sounded so loudly that the ground shook.

Then did the rival hosts draw near each other with great shoutings; and when they closed, no tongue can tell the fury of their smiting, and the sore struggling, wounds, and slaughter. Then King Arthur, with his mightiest knights, rode down into the thickest of the fight, and drew Excalibur, and slew as lightning slays for swiftness and for force. And in the midmost crowd he met a giant, Galapas by name, and struck off both his legs at the knee-joints; then saying, "Now art thou a better size to deal with!" smote his head off at a second blow: and the body killed six men in falling down.

Then the opposing armies moved closer to each other with loud shouts; and when they clashed, no one could describe the intensity of their blows, the fierce struggle, the injuries, and the death toll. King Arthur, along with his bravest knights, charged into the heart of the battle, drew Excalibur, and struck down enemies with the speed and power of lightning. In the midst of the crowd, he faced a giant named Galapas and cut off both of his legs at the knees; then saying, "Now you’re a better size to deal with!" he decapitated him with a second strike: and the giant's body killed six men as it fell.

Anon, King Arthur spied where Lucius fought and worked great deeds of prowess with his own hands. Forthwith he rode at him, and each attacked the other passing fiercely; till at the last, Lucius struck King Arthur with a fearful wound across the face, and Arthur, in return, lifting up Excalibur on high, drove it with all his force upon the Emperor's head, shivering his helmet, crashing his head in halves, and splitting his body to the breast. And when the Romans saw their Emperor dead, they fled in hosts of thousands; and King Arthur and his knights, and all his army followed them, and slew one hundred thousand men.

Soon, King Arthur saw Lucius battling bravely, accomplishing great feats with his own hands. Without hesitation, he charged at him, and they both fiercely clashed; eventually, Lucius delivered a terrible blow to King Arthur's face. In response, Arthur lifted Excalibur high and struck down with all his might on the Emperor's head, shattering his helmet, splitting his head in two, and cutting his body down to the chest. When the Romans witnessed their Emperor's death, they fled in thousands, and King Arthur, along with his knights and army, pursued them, killing a hundred thousand men.

Then returning to the field, King Arthur rode to the place where Lucius lay dead, and round him the kings of Egypt and Ethiopia, and seventeen other kings, with sixty Roman senators, all noble men. All these he ordered to be carefully embalmed with aromatic gums, and laid in leaden coffins, covered with their shields and arms and banners. Then calling for three senators who were taken prisoners, he said to them, "As the ransom of your lives, I will that ye take these dead bodies and carry them to Rome, and there present them for me, with these letters saying I will myself be shortly there. And I suppose the Romans will beware how they again ask tribute of me; for tell them, these dead bodies that I send them are for the tribute they have dared to ask of me; and if they wish for more, when I come I will pay them the rest."

Then King Arthur returned to the battlefield and rode to the spot where Lucius lay dead, surrounded by the kings of Egypt and Ethiopia, along with seventeen other kings and sixty Roman senators, all noble men. He ordered that they be carefully embalmed with fragrant gums and placed in lead coffins, covered with their shields, arms, and banners. He then called for three senators who had been captured and said to them, "As the ransom for your lives, I want you to take these dead bodies and bring them to Rome, where you will present them for me, along with these letters stating that I will be there shortly. I expect the Romans will think twice before asking me for tribute again; tell them that these dead bodies I am sending are for the tribute they had the nerve to demand from me, and if they want more, I’ll settle that when I arrive."

So, with that charge, the three senators departed with the dead bodies, and went to Rome; the body of the Emperor being carried in a chariot blazoned with the arms of the empire, all alone, and the bodies of the kings two and two in chariots following.

So, with that directive, the three senators left with the dead bodies and headed to Rome; the Emperor's body was transported in a chariot adorned with the empire's insignia, all by itself, while the bodies of the two kings were carried two by two in following chariots.

After the battle, King Arthur entered Lorraine, Brabant, and Flanders, and thence, subduing all the countries as he went, passed into Germany, and so beyond the mountains into Lombardy and Tuscany. At length he came before a city which refused to obey him, wherefore he sat down before it to besiege it. And after a long time thus spent, King Arthur called Sir Florence, and told him they began to lack food for his hosts—"And not far from hence," said he, "are great forests full of cattle belonging to my enemies. Go then, and bring by force all that thou canst find; and take with thee Sir Gawain, my nephew, and Sir Clegis, Sir Claremond, the Captain of Cardiff, and a strong band."

After the battle, King Arthur entered Lorraine, Brabant, and Flanders, and continued to conquer the lands as he went, moving into Germany, and then beyond the mountains into Lombardy and Tuscany. Eventually, he arrived at a city that refused to submit to him, so he decided to lay siege to it. After a long time spent in this manner, King Arthur called Sir Florence and told him they were running low on food for his troops—"And not far from here," he said, "there are great forests full of livestock belonging to my enemies. Go and forcefully gather all that you can find; take with you Sir Gawain, my nephew, and Sir Clegis, Sir Claremond, the Captain of Cardiff, along with a strong group."

Anon, those knights made ready, and rode over holts and hills, and through forests and woods, till they came to a great meadow full of fair flowers and grass, and there they rested themselves and their horses that night. And at the dawn of the next day, Sir Gawain took his horse and rode away from his fellows to seek some adventure. Soon he saw an armed knight walking his horse by a wood's side, with his shield laced to his shoulder, and no attendant with him save a page, bearing a mighty spear; and on his shield were blazoned three gold griffins. When Sir Gawain spied him, he put his spear in rest, and riding straight to him, asked who he was. "A Tuscan," said he; "and thou mayest prove me when thou wilt, for thou shalt be my prisoner ere we part."

Soon, the knights got ready and rode over hills and through forests until they reached a large meadow filled with beautiful flowers and grass. They rested themselves and their horses there for the night. At dawn the next day, Sir Gawain took his horse and rode away from his companions in search of an adventure. Before long, he spotted an armed knight walking his horse by the edge of the woods, with his shield fastened to his shoulder and only a page with him holding a large spear. His shield displayed three golden griffins. When Sir Gawain saw him, he readied his spear and rode straight towards him, asking who he was. "A Tuscan," he replied, "and you may challenge me whenever you like, for I intend to make you my prisoner before we part."

Then said Sir Gawain, "Thou vauntest thee greatly, and speakest proud words; yet I counsel thee, for all thy boastings, look to thyself the best thou canst."

Then Sir Gawain said, "You brag a lot and speak with arrogance; but I advise you, despite all your boasting, to take care of yourself as best as you can."

At that they took their spears and ran at each other with all the might they had, and smote each other through their shields into their shoulders; and then drawing swords smote with great strokes, till the fire sprang out of their helms. Then was Sir Gawain enraged, and with his good sword Galotine struck his enemy through shield and hauberk, and splintered into piece all the precious stones of it, and made so huge a wound that men might see both lungs and liver. At that the Tuscan, groaning loudly, rushed on to Sir Gawain, and gave him a deep slanting stroke, and made a mighty wound and cut a great vein asunder, so that he bled fast. Then he cried out, "Bind thy wound quickly up, Sir knight, for thou be-bloodest all thy horse and thy fair armor, and all the surgeons of the world shall never staunch thy blood; for so shall it be to whomsoever is hurt with this good sword."

At that, they grabbed their spears and charged at each other with all their strength, piercing through their shields into their shoulders. Then, drawing their swords, they struck hard enough that sparks flew from their helmets. Sir Gawain, furious, used his fine sword Galotine to cut through his enemy's shield and armor, shattering all the precious stones on it and creating such a massive wound that both lungs and liver were visible. The Tuscan, groaning loudly, charged at Sir Gawain and delivered a deep, slashing blow, causing a huge wound and severing a major vein, resulting in heavy bleeding. He then shouted, "Quick, bind up your wound, Sir knight, or you'll bleed out all over your horse and beautiful armor, and no surgeon in the world will stop your blood; that's what happens to anyone wounded by this great sword."

Then answered Sir Gawain, "It grieveth me but little, and thy boastful words give me no fear, for thou shalt suffer greater grief and sorrow ere we part; but tell me quickly who can staunch this blood."

Then Sir Gawain replied, "It doesn’t trouble me much, and your bragging doesn’t scare me, because you’ll feel even more pain before we’re done; but tell me quickly who can stop this bleeding."

"That can I do," said the strange knight, "and will, if thou wilt aid and succor me to become christened, and to believe in God, which now I do require of thee upon thy manhood."

"That I can do," said the strange knight, "and I will, if you help and support me to get baptized and believe in God, which I now ask of you as a man."

"I am content," said Sir Gawain; "and may God help me to grant all thy wishes. But tell me first, what soughtest thou thus here alone, and of what land art thou?"

"I’m happy," said Sir Gawain; "and may God help me fulfill all your wishes. But first, tell me, what are you looking for here alone, and where are you from?"

"Sir," said the knight, "my name is Prianius, and my father is a great prince, who hath rebelled against Rome. He is descended from Alexander and Hector, and of our lineage also were Joshua and Maccabæus. I am of right the king of Alexandria, and Africa, and all the outer isles, yet I would believe in the Lord thou worshipest, and for thy labor I will give thee treasure enough. I was so proud in heart that I thought none my equal, but now have I encountered with thee, who hast given me my fill of fighting; wherefore, I pray thee, Sir knight, tell me of thyself."

"Sir," said the knight, "my name is Prianius, and my father is a powerful prince who has rebelled against Rome. He is descended from Alexander and Hector, and our lineage also includes Joshua and Maccabæus. I am the rightful king of Alexandria, Africa, and all the outer islands, yet I would like to believe in the Lord you worship, and in return for your efforts, I will give you plenty of treasure. I used to be so proud that I thought no one was my equal, but now I’ve met you, who have challenged me in battle; therefore, I ask you, Sir knight, tell me about yourself."

"I am no knight," said Sir Gawain; "I have been brought up many years in the wardrobe of the noble prince King Arthur, to mind his armor and array."

"I’m not a knight," said Sir Gawain; "I’ve spent many years in the wardrobe of the noble Prince King Arthur, taking care of his armor and outfits."

"Ah," said Prianius, "if his varlets be so keen and fierce, his knights must be passing good! Now, for the love of heaven, whether thou be knight or knave, tell me thy name."

"Ah," said Prianius, "if his servants are so eager and fierce, his knights must be really impressive! Now, for heaven's sake, whether you are a knight or a rogue, tell me your name."

"By heaven!" said Gawain, "now will I tell thee the truth. My name is Sir Gawain, and I am a knight of the Round Table."

"By heaven!" said Gawain, "now I will tell you the truth. My name is Sir Gawain, and I am a knight of the Round Table."

"Now am I better pleased," said Prianius, "than if thou hadst given me all the province of Paris the rich. I had rather have been torn by wild horses than that any varlet should have won such victory over me as thou hast done. But now, Sir knight, I warn thee that close by is the Duke of Lorraine, with sixty thousand good men of war; and we had both best flee at once, for he will find us else, and we be sorely wounded and never likely to recover. And let my page be careful that he blow no horn, for hard by are a hundred knights, my servants; and if they seize thee, no ransom of gold or silver would acquit thee."

"Now I'm actually happier," said Prianius, "than if you had given me the entire province of rich Paris. I would prefer to be torn apart by wild horses than to let any lowlife achieve the kind of victory over me that you just did. But now, Sir Knight, I warn you that the Duke of Lorraine is nearby, with sixty thousand skilled soldiers; we should both flee immediately, or he will find us, and we are severely wounded and unlikely to recover. And let my page be careful not to blow any horn, as there are a hundred knights, my servants, nearby; if they capture you, no amount of gold or silver would set you free."

Then Sir Gawain rode over a river to save himself, and Sir Prianius after him, and so they both fled till they came to his companions who were in the meadow, where they spent the night. When Sir Whishard saw Sir Gawain so hurt, he ran to him weeping, and asked him who it was had wounded him; and Sir Gawain told him how he had fought with that man—pointing to Prianius—who had salves to heal them both. "But I can tell ye other tidings," said he—"that soon we must encounter many enemies, for a great army is close to us in our front."

Then Sir Gawain rode across a river to save himself, followed by Sir Prianius, and they both escaped until they reached their companions in the meadow, where they spent the night. When Sir Whishard saw Sir Gawain so injured, he rushed to him in tears and asked who had hurt him. Sir Gawain explained how he had fought with that man—pointing to Prianius—who had remedies to heal them both. "But I have more news," he said, "that soon we will face many enemies, as a large army is approaching us from the front."

Then Prianius and Sir Gawain alighted and let their horses graze while they unarmed, and when they took this armor and their clothing off, the hot blood ran down freshly from their wounds till it was piteous to see. But Prianius took from his page a vial filled from the four rivers that flow out of Paradise, and anointed both their wounds with a certain balm, and washed them with that water, and within an hour afterwards they were both as sound and whole as ever they had been. Then, at the sound of a trumpet, all the knights were assembled to council; and after much talking, Prianius said, "Cease your words, for I warn you in yonder wood ye shall find knights out of number, who will put out cattle for a decoy to lead you on; and ye are not seven hundred!"

Then Prianius and Sir Gawain got off their horses and let them graze while they took off their armor. When they removed their armor and clothes, fresh hot blood streamed down from their wounds, and it was a sad sight. But Prianius took a vial from his page that was filled with water from the four rivers flowing out of Paradise, and he anointed both of their wounds with a special balm, washing them with that water. Within an hour, they were both as healthy and whole as they had ever been. Then, at the sound of a trumpet, all the knights gathered for a council; after much discussion, Prianius said, "Stop talking, because I warn you that in that wood you will find countless knights who will use cattle as bait to lead you on, and you are not even seven hundred strong!"

"Nevertheless," said Sir Gawain, "let us at once encounter them, and see what they can do; and may the best have the victory."

"Still," said Sir Gawain, "let's confront them right away and see what they're capable of; may the best one win."

Then they saw suddenly an earl named Sir Ethelwold, and the Duke of Duchmen come leaping out of ambush of the woods in front, with many a thousand after them, and all rode straight down to the battle. And Sir Gawain, full of ardor and courage, comforted his knights, saying, "They all are ours." Then the seven hundred knights, in one close company, set spurs to their horses and began to gallop, and fiercely met their enemies. And then were men and horses slain and overthrown on every side, and in and out amidst them all, the knights of the Round Table pressed and thrust, and smote down to the earth all who withstood them, till at length the whole of them turned back and fled.

Then they suddenly saw an earl named Sir Ethelwold and the Duke of Duchmen leap out of the woods in front of them, followed by thousands of men, all charging straight into the battle. Sir Gawain, filled with excitement and bravery, encouraged his knights, saying, "They’re all ours." Then the seven hundred knights, gathered closely together, spurred their horses and began to gallop, fiercely confronting their enemies. Men and horses were slain and toppled all around, and amidst it all, the knights of the Round Table pushed through, striking down everyone who opposed them, until eventually, their enemies turned and fled.

"By heaven!" said Sir Gawain, "this gladdeneth well my heart, for now behold them as they flee! they are full seventy thousand less in number than they were an hour ago!"

"By heaven!" said Sir Gawain, "this really makes my heart happy, for look at them as they run away! They are a full seventy thousand fewer in number than they were an hour ago!"

Thus was the battle quickly ended, and a great host of high lords and knights of Lombardy and Saracens left dead upon the field. Then Sir Gawain and his company collected a great plenty of cattle, and of gold and silver, and all kind of treasure, and returned to King Arthur, where he still kept the siege.

Thus, the battle was quickly over, and a large number of noble lords and knights from Lombardy and Saracens lay dead on the field. Then Sir Gawain and his team gathered a vast amount of cattle, gold, silver, and all kinds of treasures, and returned to King Arthur, who was still holding the siege.

"Now God be thanked," cried he; "but who is he that standeth yonder by himself, and seemeth not a prisoner?"

"Thank God," he exclaimed; "but who is that standing there by himself, looking like he isn't a prisoner?"

"Sir," said Sir Gawain, "he is a good man with his weapons, and hath matched me; but cometh hither to be made a Christian. Had it not been for his warnings, we none of us should have been here this day. I pray thee, therefore, let him be baptized, for there can be few nobler men, or better knights."

"Sir," said Sir Gawain, "he's skilled with his weapons and has bested me; but he has come here to be baptized as a Christian. If it weren't for his warnings, none of us would be here today. So I ask you, please let him be baptized, because there are few men as noble or as good as knights."

So Prianius was christened, and made a duke and knight of the Round Table.

So Prianius was baptized, and became a duke and a knight of the Round Table.

Presently afterwards, they made a last attack upon the city, and entered by the walls on every side; and as the men were rushing to the pillage, came the Duchess forth, with many ladies and damsels, and kneeled before King Arthur; and besought him to receive their submission. To whom the king made answer, with a noble countenance, "Madam, be well assured that none shall harm ye, or your ladies; neither shall any that belong to thee be hurt; but the Duke must abide my judgment." Then he commanded to stay the assault and took the keys from the Duke's eldest son, who brought them kneeling. Anon the Duke was sent a prisoner to Dover for his life, and rents and taxes were assigned for dowry of the Duchess and her children.

Afterward, they launched one final attack on the city and entered through the walls on all sides. As the men rushed to plunder, the Duchess came out with many ladies and young women and knelt before King Arthur, asking him to accept their surrender. The king replied, with a noble demeanor, "Madam, rest assured that no one will harm you or your ladies; neither will anyone associated with you be hurt. However, the Duke must face my judgment." He then ordered the assault to stop and took the keys from the Duke's eldest son, who handed them over while kneeling. Soon after, the Duke was sent to Dover as a prisoner for life, and lands and taxes were designated as the dowry for the Duchess and her children.

Then went he on with all his hosts, winning all towns and castles, and wasting them that refused obedience, till he came to Viterbo. From thence he sent to Rome, to ask the senators whether they would receive him for their lord and governor. In answer, came out to him all the Senate who remained alive, and the Cardinals, with a majestic retinue and procession; and laying great treasures at his feet, they prayed him to come in at once to Rome, and there be peaceably crowned as Emperor. "At this next Christmas," said King Arthur, "will I be crowned, and hold my Round Table in your city."

Then he set out with all his troops, conquering every town and castle, and destroying those that refused to submit, until he reached Viterbo. From there, he sent a message to Rome, asking the senators if they would accept him as their lord and governor. In response, all the surviving members of the Senate and the Cardinals came out to meet him in a grand procession, bringing valuable gifts and begging him to enter Rome and be peacefully crowned as Emperor. "This coming Christmas," King Arthur said, "I will be crowned and hold my Round Table in your city."

Anon he entered Rome, in mighty pomp and state; and after him came all his hosts, and his knights, and princes, and great lords, arrayed in gold and jewels, such as never were beheld before. And then was he crowned Emperor by the Pope's hands, with all the highest solemnity that could be made.

Soon he entered Rome with great pomp and ceremony; following him were all his troops, knights, princes, and noblemen, adorned in gold and jewels like never seen before. Then he was crowned Emperor by the Pope with all the utmost solemnity possible.

Then after his coronation, he abode in Rome for a season, settling his lands and giving kingdoms to his knights and servants, to each one after his deserving, and in such wise fashion that no man among them all complained. Also he made many dukes and earls, and loaded all his men-at-arms with riches and great treasures.

Then, after his coronation, he stayed in Rome for a while, organizing his territories and granting kingdoms to his knights and servants, rewarding each one according to their merit, and in such a way that no one among them complained. He also created many dukes and earls, and filled all his warriors with wealth and great treasures.

When all this was done, the lords and knights, and all the men of great estate, came together before him, and said, "Noble Emperor! by the blessing of Eternal God, thy mortal warfare is all finished, and thy conquests all achieved; for now in all the world is none so great and mighty as to dare make war with thee. Wherefore we beseech and heartily pray thee of thy noble grace, to turn thee homeward, and give us also leave to see our wives and homes again, for now we have been from them a long season, and all thy journey is completed with great honor and worship."

When all this was done, the lords and knights, along with all the people of high status, gathered before him and said, "Noble Emperor! By the grace of Eternal God, your mortal battles are done, and your victories are complete; for now, there is no one in the world so great and powerful as to dare challenge you in war. Therefore, we humbly and sincerely ask for your kind grace to let us return home, so we can see our wives and families again, as we have been away from them for a long time, and all your journey has been completed with great honor and respect."

"Ye say well," replied he, "and to tempt God is no wisdom; therefore make ready in all haste, and turn we home to England."

"You’re right," he replied, "and it's not wise to test God; so let's get ready quickly and head back home to England."

So King Arthur returned with his knights and lords and armies, in great triumph and joy, through all the countries he had conquered, and commanded that no man, upon pain of death, should rob or do any violence by the way. And crossing the sea, he came at length to Sandwich, where Queen Guinevere received him, and made great joy at his arrival. And through all the realm of Britain was there such rejoicing as no tongue can tell.

So King Arthur came back with his knights, lords, and armies, celebrating his victories throughout all the lands he had conquered. He ordered that no one should rob or harm others along the way, under penalty of death. After crossing the sea, he finally arrived at Sandwich, where Queen Guinevere welcomed him and was overjoyed at his return. Across the entire realm of Britain, the celebrations were so great that no words could describe them.


IX

SIR GAWAIN AND THE MAID WITH THE NARROW SLEEVES

Now it happened that as Sir Gawain was riding one day through the country he encountered a troop of knights, followed by a squire, who led a Spanish charger, and about whose neck was hung a shield. Gawain rode up to the squire and said, "Tell me, what is yonder troop that hath ridden by?"

Now it happened that while Sir Gawain was riding through the countryside one day, he came across a group of knights, followed by a squire who was leading a Spanish horse, with a shield hung around his neck. Gawain approached the squire and asked, "Can you tell me who that group of knights is that just passed by?"

The squire answered, "Sir, Meliance of Lis, a brave and hardy knight."

The squire replied, "Sir, it's Meliance of Lis, a fearless and strong knight."

"Is it to him you belong?" Sir Gawain asked.

"Do you belong to him?" Sir Gawain asked.

"Nay, sir," said the squire, "my master is Teudaves, a knight as worthy as this one."

"Nah, sir," said the squire, "my master is Teudaves, a knight just as worthy as this one."

"Teudaves I know," said Gawain. "Whither fareth he? Tell me the truth."

"Teudaves, I know," said Gawain. "Where is he going? Please tell me the truth."

"He proceedeth to a tourney, sir, which this Meliance of Lis hath undertaken against Thiébault of Tintagel. If you will take my advice you will throw yourself into the castle, and take part against the outsiders."

"He is heading to a tournament, sir, which this Meliance of Lis has organized against Thiébault of Tintagel. If you take my advice, you should rush into the castle and join the fight against the outsiders."

"Was it not," cried Gawain, "in the house of this Thiébault that Meliance of Lis was nurtured?"

"Wasn't it," shouted Gawain, "in the house of this Thiébault that Meliance of Lis was raised?"

"Aye, sir, so God save me!" said the squire. "His father loved Thiébault and trusted him so much that on his death-bed he committed to his care his little son, whom Thiébault cherished and protected, until the time came when the youth petitioned his daughter to give him her love; but she replied that she would never do that until he should be made a knight. The youth, being ardent, forthwith had himself knighted, and then returned to the maiden. 'Nay,' answered the girl to his renewed suit, 'it shall never be, until in my presence you shall have achieved such feats of arms that I will know my love hath cost you somewhat; for those things which come suddenly are not so sweet as those we earn. If you wish my love, take a tournament of my father. I desire to be certain that my love would be well placed in case I were to grant it.' What she suggested he performed, for love hath such lordship over lovers that those who are under his power would never dare refuse whatever it pleased him to enjoin. And you, sir, sluggish will you be if you do not enter the castle, for they will need you greatly, if you might help them."

"Yes, sir, God save me!" said the squire. "His father loved Thiébault and trusted him so much that on his deathbed he entrusted his little son to his care, and Thiébault cherished and protected him until the time came when the young man asked his daughter for her love. But she said she would never do that until he became a knight. The young man, being eager, immediately had himself knighted and then returned to the girl. 'No,' the girl replied to his renewed request, 'that will never happen until you’ve accomplished such feats of arms in my presence that I will know my love has cost you something; for things that come easily are not as sweet as those we have to earn. If you want my love, take on a tournament for my father. I want to be sure that my love would be well placed if I granted it.' What she suggested, he did, for love has such control over lovers that those under his influence would never dare refuse whatever he asked. And you, sir, will be useless if you do not enter the castle, for they will need your help greatly."

To which Sir Gawain answered, "Brother, go thy way, it would be wise of you, and let my affairs be." So the squire departed, and Gawain rode towards Tintagel, for there was no other way by which he could pass.

To which Sir Gawain replied, "Brother, just go on your way, that would be smart, and let me handle my own matters." So the squire left, and Gawain rode toward Tintagel, since there was no other route he could take.

Now Thiébault had summoned all his kith and kin, who had come, high and low, old and young; but he could not get the permission of his council to joust with his master, for the councillors feared lest he should utterly ruin their castle. Therefore the gates had been walled up with stones and mortar, leaving as the only approach one small postern, which had a gate made of copper, as much as a cart could haul. Sir Gawain rode to the gate, behind the troop that bore his harness, for there was no other road within seven leagues. He found the postern shut and so he turned into a close below the tower, that was fenced with a palisade. He dismounted under an oak and hung up his shields. Thither came the folk from the castle, most of them sorry that the tourney had been abandoned; in the fortress was an aged nobleman, great in land and lineage, whose word no one disputed. A long way off the troop had been pointed out to him, and before they rode into the close he went to Thiébault, and said, "Sir, so God save me, I have seen two companions of King Arthur, worthy men, who ride this way; I advise you to tourney with good hope, for we have brave knights, and servants, and archers, who will slay their horses, and I am certain they will joust before this gate; if their pride shall bring them the gain will be ours, and theirs will be the loss and the shame."

Now Thiébault had gathered all his family and friends, both young and old; however, he couldn't get his council's permission to joust with his master because they feared he would completely ruin their castle. So, they had sealed the gates with stones and mortar, leaving only one small postern for access, which had a copper gate that was as heavy as a cartload. Sir Gawain rode up to the gate, following the group carrying his armor, since there was no other path within seven leagues. He found the postern closed, so he turned into a courtyard below the tower, which was surrounded by a palisade. He got off his horse under an oak tree and hung up his shields. The people from the castle arrived, most disappointed that the tournament had been called off; in the fortress was an elderly nobleman, influential and respected, whose opinion was never challenged. From a distance, he had spotted the group, and before they entered the courtyard, he approached Thiébault and said, "Sir, I swear to God, I’ve seen two companions of King Arthur, honorable men, riding this way; I suggest you prepare for the tournament with confidence because we have brave knights, soldiers, and archers who will take down their horses. I’m sure they will joust before this gate; if their pride leads to their downfall, the victory will be ours, and their loss and shame will follow."

As a result of this counsel Thiébault allowed those who wished to take their arms and sally forth. The knights were right glad, and their squires ran after their horses, while the dames and the damsels climbed high places to see the tourney. Below, in the meadow, they saw the arms of Sir Gawain, and at first thought that there were two knights, because two shields hung from the tree. They cried out that they were fortunate to see two such knights arm. So some thought; but others exclaimed, "Fair Lord God, this knight hath arms and steeds sufficient for two; if he hath no companion, what will he do with two shields? Never was seen a knight who carried two shields at one and the same time. It is very strange if one man means to bear two shields."

As a result of this advice, Thiébault allowed those who wanted to grab their weapons and head out. The knights were very happy, and their squires rushed to get their horses, while the ladies climbed to higher ground to watch the tournament. Below, in the meadow, they spotted Sir Gawain's armor and initially thought there were two knights because two shields hung from the tree. They exclaimed how lucky they were to see two such knights getting ready. Some believed that, while others shouted, "Oh dear Lord, this knight has enough armor and horses for two; if he doesn’t have a partner, what’s he going to do with two shields? No knight has ever carried two shields at the same time. It’s really odd if one man intends to wield two shields."

While the ladies talked and the knights went forth from the castle the elder daughter of Thiébault mounted to the tower, she on account of whom the tournament had been undertaken, and with her her younger sister, whose sleeves were so quaint that she was called the Maid with the Narrow Sleeves, for she wore them tight. Dames and damsels climbed the tower with them, and the tourney was joined in front of the castle. None bore himself so well as Meliance of Lis, by the testimony of his fair friend, who said to those about her, "Ladies, never did I see a knight who delighted me as doth Meliance of Lis. Is it not a pleasure to see such a knight? That man must have a good seat and be skillful in the use of lance and shield who beareth himself so excellently."

While the ladies chatted and the knights rode out from the castle, Thiébault's elder daughter climbed up to the tower. She was the reason for the tournament, and with her was her younger sister, known as the Maid with the Narrow Sleeves because she wore her sleeves tight. Other ladies and damsels followed them up the tower, and the tournament commenced in front of the castle. No one performed better than Meliance of Lis, according to his fair friend, who said to those around her, "Ladies, I've never seen a knight who captivates me as much as Meliance of Lis. Isn't it wonderful to see such a knight? That man must have a good seat and be skilled with lance and shield to carry himself so well."

Thereupon her sister, who sat by her side, said that she saw a fairer knight. The elder maiden was angry and rose to strike her sister. But the ladies interfered, and held her back, so that she missed her blow, which greatly incensed her.

Thereupon her sister, who sat next to her, said that she saw a more handsome knight. The older girl got upset and stood up to hit her sister. But the other ladies stepped in and stopped her, causing her to miss her strike, which only made her angrier.

In the tournament many lances were shivered, shields pierced, and knights unhorsed; and it went hard with the knight who met Meliance of Lis, for there was none he did not throw on the hard ground. If his lance broke, he dealt great blows with his sword; and he bore himself better than any other knight on either side, to the great joy of his fair friend, who could not resist exclaiming, "Ladies, it is wonderful! Behold the best bachelor knight of whom minstrel hath ever sung or whom eyes have ever seen, the fairest and bravest of all those in the tourney!"

In the tournament, many lances were shattered, shields were broken, and knights were thrown off their horses; and it was tough for the knight who faced Meliance of Lis, because he knocked everyone to the hard ground. If his lance broke, he delivered powerful blows with his sword; and he performed better than any other knight on either side, to the great delight of his beautiful friend, who couldn't help but exclaim, "Ladies, it's amazing! Look at the best bachelor knight ever sung about by a minstrel or seen by anyone, the fairest and bravest of all those in the tournament!"

Then the little girl cried, "I see a handsomer one, and 'tis like, a better!"

Then the little girl shouted, "I see a more handsome one, and it’s probably better!"

The elder sister grew hot. "Ha, girl, you were malapert when you were so unlucky as to blame one whom I praised! Take that, to teach you better another time!" So saying, she slapped her sister, so hard that she left on the little girl's cheek the print of her five fingers. But the ladies who sat near scolded her and took her away.

The older sister got angry. "Ha, girl, you were so bold when you were unfortunate enough to blame someone I praised! Take that, so you'll think twice next time!" Saying this, she slapped her sister hard enough to leave the imprint of her five fingers on the little girl's cheek. But the women sitting nearby scolded her and pulled her away.

After that they fell to talking of Sir Gawain. One of the damsels said, "The knight beneath yonder tree, why doth he delay to take arms?" A second damsel, who was ruder, exclaimed, "He hath sworn to keep the peace." And a third added, "He is a merchant. Don't tell me that he desireth to joust; he bringeth horses to market." "He is a money-changer," said a fourth. "The goods he hath he meaneth to sell to poor bachelors. Trust me, he hath money or raiment in those chests."

After that, they started talking about Sir Gawain. One of the ladies said, "Why is the knight under that tree taking so long to get ready?" A second lady, who was a bit rude, replied, "He’s sworn to keep the peace." A third one added, "He’s a merchant. Don’t tell me he wants to joust; he’s here to sell horses." "He’s a money-changer," said a fourth. "The goods he has are meant to be sold to poor bachelors. Believe me, he has money or clothes in those chests."

"You have wicked tongues!" cried the little girl. "And you lie! Do you think a merchant would bear such huge lances? You tire me to death, talking such nonsense! By the faith that I owe the Holy Spirit, he seemeth to me a knight rather than a merchant or a money-changer. He is a knight, and he looketh like one!"

"You have wicked tongues!" shouted the little girl. "And you lie! Do you think a merchant would carry such enormous lances? You’re exhausting me with this nonsense! I swear by the Holy Spirit, he looks more like a knight than a merchant or a money-changer. He is a knight, and he looks like one!"

The ladies all cried with one voice, "Fair sweet friend, if he looketh so, it doth not follow that he is so. He putteth it on because he wisheth to cheat the tariff. But in spite of all his cleverness he is a fool, for he will be taken up and hung for a cheat."

The women all shouted together, "Dear sweet friend, just because he looks that way doesn’t mean he is. He’s putting on an act because he wants to avoid the taxes. But despite all his cleverness, he’s a fool, because he’ll get caught and hanged for being a fraud."

Now Gawain heard all that the ladies said about him, and he was ashamed and annoyed. But he thought, and thought rightly, that he lay under an accusation of treason, and that it was his duty to keep his pledge or forever disgrace himself and his line. It was for this reason that he took no part in the tourney, lest, if he fought, he should be wounded or taken prisoner.

Now Gawain heard everything the ladies were saying about him, and he felt embarrassed and irritated. However, he rightly figured that he was being accused of treason, and he knew it was his duty to honor his promise or else bring shame upon himself and his family. This was why he chose not to participate in the tournament, so that if he fought, he wouldn't end up getting injured or captured.

Meliance of Lis called for great lances, to strike harder blows. Until night fell the tourney continued before the gate; the man who took any booty carried it to some place where he thought it would be safe. Then the ladies saw a squire, tall and strong, who held a piece of a lance and bore on his neck a steel cap. One of the ladies, who was foolish, called to him, saying, "Sir squire, so God help me, it is foolish of you to make prize of that tester, those arms and croup-piece. If you do a squire's duty you deserve a squire's wage. Below, in yonder meadow, is a man who hath riches he cannot defend. Unwise is he who misseth his gain while he hath the power to take it. He seemeth the most debonair of knights, and yet he would not stir if one plucked his beard. If you are wise, take the armor and the treasure, none will hinder you."

Meliance of Lis called for great lances, to strike harder blows. Until night fell, the tournament continued outside the gate; the man who took any loot carried it to a place he thought would be safe. Then the ladies noticed a squire, tall and strong, holding a broken lance and wearing a steel cap around his neck. One of the ladies, who was rather foolish, called out to him, saying, "Sir squire, I swear to God, it's silly of you to claim that broken lance, those weapons, and that armor. If you do your duty as a squire, you deserve a squire's reward. Down there in that meadow is a man with riches he can’t protect. It's foolish to miss out on what you can take while you still have the chance. He looks like the most charming of knights, yet he wouldn’t budge if someone pulled his beard. If you’re smart, take the armor and the treasure; no one will stop you."

The squire went into the meadow and struck one of Gawain's horses, crying, "Vassal, are you sick that all day long you gape here and have done nothing, neither pierced shield nor shivered lance?"

The squire went into the meadow and hit one of Gawain's horses, shouting, "Vassal, are you sick that you’ve just been standing around all day, not doing anything, neither piercing a shield nor breaking a lance?"

Sir Gawain answered, "Pray, what is it to you why I tarry? You shall know, but not now. Get you gone about your business."

Sir Gawain replied, "Why do you care how long I stay? You'll find out, but not right now. Go on and mind your own business."

The squire withdrew, for Gawain was not the type of man to whom he would dare say anything unpleasant.

The squire stepped back, since Gawain wasn’t the kind of man he would ever feel comfortable saying anything unpleasant to.

The tourney ended, after many knights had been killed and many horses captured. The outsiders had had the best, and the people of the castle gained by the intermission. At parting they all agreed that on the morrow with songs they would meet again and continue the encounter. So for that night they separated and those who had sallied forth returned to the castle, followed by Sir Gawain. At the gate he met the nobleman who had advised his lord to engage in the tourney. This man accosted him pleasantly, and said, "Fair sir, in this castle your hostel is ready. If it pleaseth you, remain here, for if you should go on it would be long before you arrived at a lodging; therefore I urge you to stay."

The tournament ended, with many knights injured and a lot of horses taken. The outsiders had the upper hand, and the castle's people benefited from the break. As they parted ways, everyone agreed they would meet again the next day to continue the competition with songs. So that night, they went their separate ways, and those who had ventured out returned to the castle, with Sir Gawain following behind. At the gate, he ran into the nobleman who had suggested his lord participate in the tournament. The man greeted him warmly and said, "Good sir, your lodging is ready in this castle. If you're willing, stay here, because if you leave now, it could be a while before you find somewhere to rest; so I encourage you to stay."

"I will tarry, your mercy!" said Gawain. "I have heard worse words."

"I'll wait, your grace!" said Gawain. "I've heard worse things."

The man led the guest to his house, talking of this and that, and asked him why on that day he had not borne arms. Sir Gawain explained how he had been accused of treason and was bound to be on his guard against prison and wounds until he could free himself from the reproach that was cast upon him, for it would be to the dishonor of himself and his friends if he should fail to appear at the time appointed.

The man brought the guest to his house, chatting about various topics, and asked him why he hadn’t carried any weapons that day. Sir Gawain explained that he had been accused of treason and needed to be cautious about imprisonment and injury until he could clear himself of the allegations against him, as it would bring shame to himself and his friends if he didn't show up at the appointed time.

The nobleman praised him, and said that if this was the reason he had done right. With that he led Gawain to his house, where they dismounted. The people of the castle blamed him, wondering how his lord would take it; while the elder daughter of Thiébault did her best to make trouble for Gawain, on account of her sister, with whom she was angry. "Sir," she said to her father, "on this day you have suffered no loss, but made a gain, greater than you think; you have only to go and take it. The man who hath brought it will not dare to defend it, for he is wily. Lances and shields he bringeth, with palfreys and chargers, and maketh himself resemble a knight to cheat the customs, so that he may pass free when he cometh to sell his wares. Render him his deserts. He is with Garin, the son of Bertan, who hath taken him to lodge at his house. I just saw him pass."

The nobleman praised him, saying that if this was the reason, he had done well. With that, he took Gawain to his house, where they got off their horses. The castle's people criticized him, wondering how his lord would react; meanwhile, Thiébault's elder daughter tried to cause trouble for Gawain because of her anger toward her sister. "Sir," she said to her father, "you haven't suffered a loss today; you've actually gained more than you realize; you just have to go and get it. The man who brought it won’t dare to defend it because he’s clever. He’s got lances and shields, along with riding horses, and pretends to be a knight to avoid customs, so he can pass freely when he comes to sell his goods. Give him what he deserves. He's with Garin, the son of Bertan, who’s taken him into his home. I just saw him pass by."

Thiébault took his horse, for he himself wished to go there. The little girl, who saw him leave, went out secretly by a back gate and straight down the hill to the house of Garin, who had two fair daughters. When these saw their little lady they should have been glad, and glad they were, each took her by a hand and led her into the house, kissing her eyes and lips.

Thiébault took his horse because he wanted to go there himself. The little girl, who saw him leave, quietly went out through a back gate and headed straight down the hill to Garin's house, where he had two beautiful daughters. When they saw their little lady, they should have been happy, and they were; each took her by the hand and led her into the house, kissing her eyes and lips.

In the meantime Garin and his son Herman had left the house and were going up to the castle to speak to their lord. Midway there they met Thiébault and saluted him. He asked whither Garin was going and said he had intended to pay him a visit. "By my faith," said the nobleman, "that will not displease me, and at my house you shall see the fairest of knights."

In the meantime, Garin and his son Herman had left the house and were heading up to the castle to talk to their lord. On the way, they ran into Thiébault and greeted him. He asked where Garin was going and mentioned that he had planned to pay him a visit. "I swear," said the nobleman, "that won't bother me, and at my place, you'll meet the finest of knights."

"It is even he whom I seek," said Thiébault, "to arrest him. He is a merchant who selleth horses and pretendeth to be a knight."

"It’s him I’m looking for," said Thiébault, "to capture him. He’s a merchant who sells horses and pretends to be a knight."

"Alas," said Garin, "'tis a churlish speech I hear you make! I am your man and you are my master, but on the spot I renounce your homage, and in the name of all my line now defy you, rather than suffer you to disgrace my house."

"Unfortunately," said Garin, "that's a rude thing for you to say! I am your servant and you're my boss, but right here and now, I reject your loyalty, and in the name of my entire family, I challenge you, rather than let you bring shame to my home."

"Indeed," answered Thiébault, "I have no wish to do any such thing. Neither you nor your house shall ever receive aught but honor from me; not but what I have been counseled so to proceed."

"Sure," replied Thiébault, "I have no desire to do anything like that. Neither you nor your home will ever get anything but respect from me; although I have been advised to act this way."

"Your great mercy!" exclaimed the nobleman. "It will be my honor if you will visit my guest."

"Your incredible kindness!" the nobleman exclaimed. "It would be my privilege if you could visit my guest."

So side by side they went on until they reached the house. When Sir Gawain saw them, he rose out of courtesy, and said, "Welcome!" The two saluted him and took their seats beside him. Then the nobleman, who was the lord of that country, asked why he had taken no part in the tourney, and Gawain narrated how a knight had accused him of treason and how he was on his way to defend himself in a royal court. "Doubtless," answered the lord, "that is sufficient excuse. But where is the battle to be held?"

So they walked side by side until they arrived at the house. When Sir Gawain saw them, he stood up out of politeness and said, "Welcome!" The two greeted him and sat down next to him. Then the nobleman, who was the lord of that land, asked why he hadn’t participated in the tournament, and Gawain explained how a knight had accused him of treason and that he was on his way to defend himself in a royal court. "Surely," replied the lord, "that's a good enough reason. But where will the battle take place?"

"Sir, before the king of Cavalon, whither I am journeying."

"Sir, before the king of Cavalon, where I am traveling."

"And I," said the nobleman, "will guide you. Since you must needs pass through a poor country, I will provide you with food and packbeasts to carry it."

"And I," said the nobleman, "will lead you. Since you have to travel through a poor area, I will provide you with food and pack animals to carry it."

Gawain answered that he had no need to accept anything, for if it could be bought he would have food and lodging wherever he went.

Gawain replied that he didn't need to accept anything because if it could be purchased, he'd have food and a place to stay wherever he went.

With these words Thiébault took leave. As he departed, from the opposite direction he saw come his little daughter, who embraced Gawain's leg, and said, "Fair sir, listen! I have come to complain of my sister, who hath beaten me. So please you, do me justice!"

With these words, Thiébault said goodbye. As he was leaving, he noticed his little daughter coming from the opposite direction. She hugged Gawain's leg and said, "Excuse me, kind sir! I've come to complain about my sister, who hit me. Please, can you help me get justice?"

Gawain made no answer, for he did not know what she meant. He put his hand on her head, while the girl pulled him, saying, "To you, fair sir, I complain of my sister. I do not love her, since to-day she hath done me great shame for your sake."

Gawain didn’t respond because he didn’t understand what she meant. He placed his hand on her head, while the girl tugged at him, saying, "I’m here to complain about my sister, kind sir. I don’t love her, since today she has brought me great shame because of you."

"Fair one, what have I to do with that? How can I do you justice against your sister?"

"Fair one, what does that have to do with me? How can I treat you fairly when it involves your sister?"

Thiébault, who had taken leave, heard his child's entreaty, and said, "Girl, who bade you come here and complain to this knight?"

Thiébault, who had taken a break, heard his child's plea and said, "Girl, who told you to come here and complain to this knight?"

Gawain asked, "Fair sweet sir, is this maid your daughter?"

Gawain asked, "Excuse me, kind sir, is this young woman your daughter?"

"Aye; but never mind what she says. A girl is a silly creature."

"Yeah; but don't pay attention to what she says. Girls can be pretty silly."

"Certes," said Gawain, "I should be churlish if I did not do what she desires. Tell me, my sweet child and fair, in what manner I can justify you against your sister."

"Of course," said Gawain, "I would be rude if I didn't do what she wants. Tell me, my sweet girl and beautiful, how can I defend you against your sister?"

"If it pleaseth you, for love of me, bear arms in the tourney."

"If you would, for my sake, compete in the tournament."

"Tell me, dear friend," said Gawain, "have you ever before made petition to any knight?"

"Tell me, dear friend," Gawain said, "have you ever asked any knight for help before?"

"No, sir."

"No way."

"Never mind her," exclaimed her father. "Pay no heed to her folly."

"Forget her," her father said. "Don't pay attention to her nonsense."

Sir Gawain answered, "Sir, so aid me the Lord God, for so little a girl, she hath spoken very well, and I will not refuse her. To-morrow, if she wisheth, I will be her knight."

Sir Gawain replied, "Sir, may the Lord God help me, for such a young girl, she has spoken very well, and I will not turn her down. Tomorrow, if she wants, I will be her knight."

"Your mercy, fair sweet sir!" cried the child, who was overjoyed, and bowed down to his feet.

"Please have mercy, kind sir!" cried the child, who was thrilled, and bowed down at his feet.

Without more words they parted. Thiébault carried his daughter back on the neck of his palfrey. As they rode up the hill be asked her what the quarrel had been about, and she told him the story from beginning to end, saying, "Sir, I was vexed with my sister, who declared that Meliance of Lis was the best of all the knights; and I, who had seen this knight in the meadow, could not help saying that I had seen a fairer, whereupon my sister called me a silly girl and beat me. Fie on me, if I take it from her! I would cut off both my braids close to my head, which would be a great loss, if to-morrow in the tourney this knight would conquer Meliance of Lis, and put an end to the fuss of madam, my sister! She talked so much that she tired all the ladies; but a little rain will hush a great wind."

Without saying more, they went their separate ways. Thiébault lifted his daughter onto the back of his horse. As they rode up the hill, he asked her what the argument was about, and she told him the whole story, saying, "Dad, I was annoyed with my sister, who claimed that Meliance of Lis was the best knight of all; and I, having seen him in the meadow, couldn't help saying that I'd seen a more handsome one, which made my sister call me a silly girl and hit me. Shame on me for putting up with that! I'd cut off both my braids close to my head, which would be such a loss, especially if tomorrow in the tournament this knight defeats Meliance of Lis and puts an end to my sister's fuss! She talked so much that she exhausted all the ladies; but a little rain can calm a strong wind."

"Fair child," said her father, "I command and allow you, in courtesy, to send him some love-token, a sleeve or a wimple."

"Dear child," her father said, "I permit you, out of kindness, to send him a token of affection, like a sleeve or a wimple."

The child, who was simple, answered, "With pleasure since you bid me. But my sleeves are so small, I should not like to send them. Most likely he would not care for them."

The child, who was innocent, replied, "Sure, I'd love to help since you asked me. But my sleeves are pretty small, so I wouldn’t want to send them. He probably wouldn’t want them anyway."

"Daughter, say no more," said Thiébault. "I will think about it. I am very glad." So saying, he took her in his arms, and had great joy of embracing and kissing her, until he came in front of his palace. But when his elder daughter saw him approach, with the child before him, she was vexed, and exclaimed, "Sir, whence cometh my sister, the Maid with the Narrow Sleeves? She is full of her tricks; she hath been quick about it; where did you find her?"

"Daughter, no need to say more," Thiébault said. "I'll think it over. I'm really happy." With that, he picked her up, embracing and kissing her joyfully until they reached his palace. But when his older daughter saw him approaching with the little girl in front of him, she was annoyed and exclaimed, "Sir, where did my sister, the girl in the narrow sleeves, come from? She's always up to something; she's been quick about this; where did you find her?"

"And you," he answered, "what is it to you? Hush, for she is better than you are. You pulled her hair and beat her, which grieveth me. You acted rudely; you were discourteous."

"And you," he replied, "what does it matter to you? Be quiet, because she's better than you. You pulled her hair and hit her, which upsets me. You were rude; you were disrespectful."

When she heard her father's rebuke, the maid was greatly abashed.

When she heard her father's scolding, the maid was very embarrassed.

Thiébault had brought from his chests a piece of red samite, and he bade his people cut out and make a sleeve, wide and long. Then he called his daughter and said, "Child, to-morrow rise betimes and visit the knight before he leaveth his hostel. For love's sake you will give him this new sleeve, which he will wear in the tourney when he goeth thither."

Thiébault took a piece of red fabric from his chests and told his people to cut it into a wide, long sleeve. Then he called his daughter and said, "Sweetheart, wake up early tomorrow and visit the knight before he leaves the inn. For love's sake, you will give him this new sleeve, which he will wear in the tournament when he goes there."

The girl answered that so soon as ever she saw the clear dawn she would dress herself and go. With that her father went his way, while she, in great glee, charged her companions that they should not let her oversleep but should wake her when day broke, if they would have her love them. They did as she wished, and when it dawned caused her to wake and dress. All alone she went to the house where Sir Gawain lodged, but, early though it was, the knights had risen and gone to the monastery to hear mass sung. She waited until they had offered long orisons and listened to the service, as much as was right. When they returned the child rose to greet Sir Gawain, and cried, "Sir, on this day may God save and honor you! For love of me, wear the sleeve which I carry in my hand."

The girl said that as soon as she saw the bright dawn, she would get dressed and leave. With that, her father went on his way, while she, feeling very happy, told her friends not to let her oversleep and to wake her when the day broke if they wanted her to love them. They did as she asked, and when dawn came, they woke her up so she could get ready. All by herself, she went to the house where Sir Gawain was staying, but even though it was early, the knights had already gotten up and gone to the monastery to attend mass. She waited until they had prayed for a long time and listened to the service as was appropriate. When they returned, the girl stood up to greet Sir Gawain and said, "Sir, on this day may God save and honor you! For my love, please wear the sleeve I’m holding in my hand."

"With pleasure," he answered; "friend, your mercy!"

"Sure thing," he replied; "buddy, please be merciful!"

After that the knights were not slow to take arms, and came pouring out of the town, while the damsels again went up to the walls and the dames of the castle saw the troops of brave and hardy knights approach.

After that, the knights quickly armed themselves and rushed out of the town, while the ladies went back up to the walls and the women of the castle watched the brave and strong knights approach.

They rode with loose rein, and in front was Meliance of Lis, who went so fast that he left the rest in the rear, two rods and more. When his maiden saw her friend she could not keep quiet, but cried, "Ladies, yonder comes the man who hath the lordship of chivalry!"

They rode with relaxed reins, and ahead was Meliance of Lis, who rode so quickly that he left the others behind by a good distance. When his lady saw her friend, she couldn't hold back and exclaimed, "Ladies, there comes the man who holds the title of chivalry!"

As swiftly as his horse would carry him Sir Gawain charged Meliance of Lis, who did not evade the blow, but met it boldly, and shivered his lance. On his part Sir Gawain smote so hard that he grieved Meliance, whom he flung on the field; the steed he grasped by the rein and gave to a varlet, bidding him take it to the lady on whose account he had entered the tourney, and say that his master had sent her the first spoil he had made that day. The youth took the charger, saddled as it was, and led it towards the girl, who was sitting at the window of the tower, whence she had watched the joust, and when she saw the encounter she cried to her sister, "Sister, there lies Meliance of Lis, whom you praised so highly! A wise man ought to give praise where it is due. You see, I was right yesterday when I said I saw a better knight."

As fast as his horse could go, Sir Gawain charged at Meliance of Lis, who didn't dodge the strike but faced it head-on, breaking his lance. Sir Gawain hit so hard that he knocked Meliance to the ground. He grabbed the horse by the reins and handed it to a squire, telling him to take it to the lady for whom he had entered the tournament, and say that his master was sending her the first prize he had won that day. The young man took the horse, still saddled, and led it towards the girl, who was sitting at the tower window, watching the joust. When she saw the fight, she called to her sister, "Sister, there lies Meliance of Lis, the one you praised so much! A wise person should give credit where it’s deserved. See, I was right yesterday when I said I spotted a better knight."

Thus she teased her sister, who grew angry, and cried, "Child, hold your tongue! If you say another word, I will slap you so that you will not have a foot to stand on!" "Oh, sister," answered the little girl, "remember God! You ought not to beat me because I told you the truth. I saw him tumble as well as you; I think he will not be able to get up. Be as cross as you please, I must say that there is not a lady here who did not see him fall flat on the ground."

Thus she teased her sister, who got angry and said, "Shut up! If you say another word, I’ll slap you so hard you won’t know what hit you!" "Oh, sister," replied the little girl, "remember God! You shouldn't hit me just because I told you the truth. I saw him fall just like you did; I don’t think he’ll be able to get up. Be as mad as you want, but I have to say that there isn’t a lady here who didn’t see him fall flat on the ground."

Her sister would have struck her, had she been able, but the ladies around would not allow it.

Her sister would have hit her if she could, but the women around wouldn't let her.

With that came the squire, who held the rein in his right hand. He saw the girl sitting at the window and presented the steed. She thanked him a hundred times, and bade the steed be taken in charge. The squire returned to tell his master, who seemed the lord of the tournament, for there was no knight so gallant that he did not cast from the saddle, if he reached him with the lance. On that day he captured four steeds. The first he sent to the little girl, the second to the wife of the nobleman who had been so kind, and the third and fourth to his own daughters.

With that, the squire arrived, holding the reins in his right hand. He noticed the girl sitting by the window and offered her the horse. She thanked him repeatedly and asked for the horse to be taken care of. The squire went back to report to his master, who looked like the lord of the tournament, since there wasn't a knight so brave that he could stay on his horse if the master struck him with the lance. That day he won four horses. The first one he sent to the little girl, the second to the wife of the nobleman who had been so kind, and the third and fourth to his own daughters.

The tourney was over and the knights entered the city. On both sides the honor belonged to Sir Gawain. It was not yet noon when he returned from the encounter; the city was full of knights, who ran after him, asking who he was and of what land. At the gate of his hostel he was met by the damsel, who did naught but grasp his stirrup, salute him, and cry, "A thousand mercies, fair sweet sir!" He answered frankly, "Friend, before I am recreant to your service, may I be aged and bald! I shall never be so remote, but a message will bring me. If I know your need, I shall come at the first summons, whatever business be mine!"

The tournament was over and the knights entered the city. On both sides, the honor belonged to Sir Gawain. It wasn't yet noon when he returned from the contest; the city was packed with knights who ran after him, asking who he was and where he was from. At the gate of his inn, he was greeted by a lady, who simply grabbed his stirrup, saluted him, and exclaimed, "A thousand thanks, kind sir!" He replied sincerely, "My friend, before I ever betray your service, may I grow old and bald! I will never be too far away that a message can't reach me. If I know your needs, I will come at the first call, no matter what else I have going on!"

While they talked her father came and wished Sir Gawain to stay with him for that night; but first he begged, that if his guest pleased, he would tell his name. Sir Gawain answered, "Sir, I am called Gawain. My name was never concealed, nor have I ever told it before it hath been asked."

While they talked, her father arrived and invited Sir Gawain to stay with him that night; but first, he asked if his guest would be kind enough to share his name. Sir Gawain replied, "Sir, I am called Gawain. I have never hidden my name, nor have I ever given it before it was asked.”

When Thiébault knew that the knight was Sir Gawain his heart was full of joy, and he exclaimed, "Sir, be pleased to lodge with me, and accept my service. Hitherto I have done you little worship, and never did I set eyes on a knight whom so much I longed to honor."

When Thiébault realized that the knight was Sir Gawain, he felt so happy that he exclaimed, "Sir, please stay with me and let me serve you. Until now, I haven't shown you much respect, and never have I seen a knight whom I've wanted to honor so much."

In spite of urging, Sir Gawain refused to stay. The little girl, who was good and clever, clasped his foot and kissed it, commending him to God. Sir Gawain asked why she had done that, and the girl replied that she had kissed his foot in order that he should remember her wherever he went. He answered, "Doubt it not, fair sweet friend! I shall never forget you, after I have parted hence."

In spite of being urged, Sir Gawain refused to stay. The little girl, who was kind and clever, held onto his foot and kissed it, asking God to watch over him. Sir Gawain asked why she did that, and the girl replied that she kissed his foot so he would remember her wherever he went. He responded, "Don’t worry, dear friend! I will never forget you once I leave."

With that Sir Gawain took leave of his host and the others, who one and all commended him to God. That night he slept in an abbey, and had all that was necessary.

With that, Sir Gawain said goodbye to his host and the others, who all wished him well. That night he stayed at an abbey and had everything he needed.


THE CHAMPIONS OF THE ROUND TABLE


X

THE ADVENTURES OF SIR LANCELOT

Then, at the following Pentecost, was held a feast of the Round Table at Caerleon, with high splendor; and all the knights thereof resorted to the court, and held many games and jousts. And therein Sir Lancelot increased in fame and worship above all men, for he overthrew all comers, and never was unhorsed or worsted, save by treason and enchantment.

Then, at the next Pentecost, there was a grand feast of the Round Table at Caerleon, filled with great splendor; and all the knights gathered at the court, participating in various games and jousts. During this time, Sir Lancelot gained more fame and respect than anyone else, as he defeated all challengers and was never unseated or beaten, except by treachery and magic.

When Queen Guinevere had seen his wondrous feats, she held him in great favor, and smiled more on him than on any other knight. And ever since he first had gone to bring her to King Arthur, had Lancelot thought on her as fairest of all ladies, and done his best to win her grace. So the queen often sent for him, and bade him tell of his birth and strange adventures: how he was only son of great King Ban of Brittany, and how, one night, his father, with his mother Helen and himself, fled from his burning castle; how his father, groaning deeply, fell to the ground and died of grief and wounds, and how his mother, running to her husband, left himself alone; how, as he thus lay wailing, came the lady of the lake, and took him in her arms and went with him into the midst of the waters, where, with his cousins Lionel and Bors, he had been cherished all his childhood until he came to King Arthur's court; and how this was the reason why men called him Lancelot du Lake.

When Queen Guinevere saw his amazing feats, she favored him greatly and smiled at him more than any other knight. Ever since he first went to fetch her for King Arthur, Lancelot had thought of her as the fairest of all ladies and had done his best to win her favor. So the queen often summoned him, asking him to share his story and strange adventures: how he was the only son of the great King Ban of Brittany, and how one night, his father, along with his mother Helen and himself, fled from their burning castle; how his father, groaning deeply, collapsed and died from grief and wounds, and how his mother, rushing to her husband, left him all alone; how, as he lay there crying, the lady of the lake came, took him in her arms, and went with him into the middle of the waters, where, along with his cousins Lionel and Bors, he was cared for throughout his childhood until he came to King Arthur's court; and how this is why people called him Lancelot du Lake.

Anon it was ordained by King Arthur, that in every year at Pentecost there should be held a festival of all the knights of the Round Table at Caerleon, or such other place as he should choose. And at those festivals should be told publicly the most famous adventures of any knight during the past year.

Soon it was decided by King Arthur that every year at Pentecost there would be a festival for all the knights of the Round Table at Caerleon, or wherever else he wanted. During these festivals, the most notable adventures of any knight from the past year would be shared publicly.

So, when Sir Lancelot saw Queen Guinevere rejoiced to hear his wanderings and adventures, he resolved to set forth yet again, and win more worship still, that he might more increase her favor. Then he bade his cousin Sir Lionel make ready, "for," said he, "we two will seek adventure." So they mounted their horses—armed at all points—and rode into a vast forest; and when they had passed through it, they came to a great plain, and the weather being very hot about noontide, Sir Lancelot greatly longed to sleep. Then Sir Lionel espied a great apple-tree standing by a hedge, and said, "Brother, yonder is a fair shadow where we may rest ourselves and horses."

So, when Sir Lancelot saw Queen Guinevere happy to hear about his travels and adventures, he decided to set out again to earn even more glory and win her favor. He then told his cousin Sir Lionel to get ready, saying, "We’re going to seek out adventure." They mounted their horses—fully armed—and rode into a vast forest. After making it through, they arrived at a wide plain, and with the hot sun blazing down at noon, Sir Lancelot really wanted to take a nap. Then Sir Lionel noticed a large apple tree by a hedge and said, "Brother, over there is a nice shady spot where we can rest ourselves and the horses."

"I am full glad of it," said Sir Lancelot, "for all these seven years I have not been so sleepy."

"I’m really glad about it," said Sir Lancelot, "because I haven’t been this sleepy in all seven years."

So they alighted there, and tied their horses up to sundry trees; and Sir Lionel waked and watched while Sir Lancelot fell asleep, and slept passing fast.

So they got off there and tied their horses to various trees; and Sir Lionel stayed awake and watched while Sir Lancelot fell asleep and quickly dozed off.

In the meanwhile came three knights, riding as fast flying as ever they could ride, and after them followed a single knight; but when Sir Lionel looked at him, he thought he had never seen so great and strong a man, or so well furnished and appareled. Anon he saw him overtake the last of those who fled, and smite him to the ground; then came he to the second, and smote him such a stroke that horse and man went to the earth; then rode he to the third, likewise, and struck him off his horse more than a spear's length. With that he lighted from his horse, and bound all three knights fast with the reins of their own bridles.

In the meantime, three knights came riding as fast as they could, and behind them followed a single knight. When Sir Lionel looked at him, he thought he had never seen such a large and strong man, or one so well equipped and dressed. Soon, he saw him catch up to the last of the fleeing knights and strike him to the ground. Then he moved to the second knight and delivered such a blow that both horse and man fell to the ground. Next, he rode to the third knight and knocked him off his horse, sending him flying more than a spear's length away. With that, he dismounted and tied up all three knights using the reins of their own bridles.

When Sir Lionel saw this he thought the time was come to prove himself against him, so quietly and cautiously, lest he should wake Sir Lancelot, he took his horse and mounted and rode after him. Presently overtaking him, he cried aloud to him to turn, which instantly he did, and smote Sir Lionel so hard that horse and man went down forthwith. Then took he up Sir Lionel, and threw him bound over his own horse's back; and so he served the three other knights, and rode them away to his own castle. There they were disarmed, stripped naked, and beaten with thorns, and afterwards thrust into a deep prison, where many more knights, also, made great moans and lamentations, saying, "Alas, alas! there is no man can help us but Sir Lancelot, for no other knight can match this tyrant Turquine, our conqueror."

When Sir Lionel saw this, he thought it was time to prove himself against him. So, quietly and carefully, so as not to wake Sir Lancelot, he took his horse, mounted it, and rode after him. After a while, when he caught up, he called out to him to turn around, and he immediately did, striking Sir Lionel so hard that both horse and rider fell to the ground. He then picked up Sir Lionel and threw him over his horse's back, binding him. He did the same with the three other knights and rode them back to his castle. There, they were disarmed, stripped of their clothes, and beaten with thorns. Afterwards, they were thrown into a deep prison, where many other knights were also moaning and lamenting, saying, "Alas, alas! There’s no one who can help us except Sir Lancelot, for no other knight can match this tyrant Turquine, our conqueror."

But all this while, Sir Lancelot lay sleeping soundly under the apple-tree. And, as it chanced, there passed that way four queens, of high estate, riding upon four white mules, under four canopies of green silk borne on spears, to keep them from the sun. As they rode thus, they heard a great horse grimly neigh, and, turning them about, soon saw a sleeping knight that lay all armed under an apple-tree; and when they saw his face, they knew it was Sir Lancelot of the Lake.

But all this time, Sir Lancelot was sleeping peacefully under the apple tree. As it happened, four queens of high status rode by on four white mules, sheltered by four green silk canopies held up on spears to shield them from the sun. While they were riding, they heard a horse neigh loudly, and turning around, they soon spotted a knight sleeping in full armor beneath the apple tree. When they saw his face, they recognized him as Sir Lancelot of the Lake.

Then they began to strive which of them should have the care of him. But Queen Morgan le Fay, King Arthur's half sister, the great sorceress, was one of them, and said, "We need not strive for him, I have enchanted him, so that for six hours more he shall not wake. Let us take him to my castle, and, when he wakes, himself shall choose which one of us he would rather serve." So Sir Lancelot was laid upon his shield and borne on horseback between two knights, to the castle, and there laid in a cold chamber, till the spell should pass.

Then they started to argue about who would take care of him. But Queen Morgan le Fay, King Arthur's half-sister and the powerful sorceress, was among them and said, "We don't need to fight over him; I've put him under a spell so he won't wake for another six hours. Let's take him to my castle, and when he wakes up, he can choose who he wants to serve." So, Sir Lancelot was placed on his shield and carried on horseback between two knights to the castle, where he was laid in a cold room until the spell wore off.

Anon, they sent him a fair damsel, bearing his supper, who asked him, "What cheer?"

Soon, they sent him a lovely young woman with his dinner, who asked him, "How's it going?"

"I cannot tell, fair damsel," said he, "for I know not how I came into this castle, if it were not by enchantment."

"I can't say, beautiful lady," he replied, "because I don't know how I ended up in this castle, unless it was magic."

"Sir," said she, "be of good heart, and to-morrow at dawn of day, ye shall know more."

"Sir," she said, "stay positive, and tomorrow at dawn, you'll know more."

And so she left him alone, and there he lay all night. In the morning early came the four queens to him, passing richly dressed; and said, "Sir knight, thou must understand that thou art our prisoner, and that we know thee well for King Ban's son, Sir Lancelot du Lake. And though we know full well there is one lady only in this world may have thy love, and she Queen Guinevere—King Arthur's wife—yet now are we resolved to have thee to serve one of us; choose, therefore, of us four which thou wilt serve. I am Queen Morgan le Fay, Queen of the land of Gore, and here also is the Queen of Northgales, and the Queen of Eastland, and the Queen of the Out Isles. Choose, then, at once, for else shalt thou abide here, in this prison, till thy death."

And so she left him alone, and there he lay all night. In the early morning, the four queens came to him, dressed in fine clothes, and said, "Sir knight, you need to understand that you are our prisoner, and we know you well as King Ban's son, Sir Lancelot du Lake. Although we know that there is only one lady in this world who can have your love, and that's Queen Guinevere—King Arthur's wife—now we are determined to have you serve one of us. So, choose quickly from among us four whom you will serve. I am Queen Morgan le Fay, Queen of the land of Gore, and here with me are the Queen of Northgales, the Queen of Eastland, and the Queen of the Out Isles. So choose at once, or you will stay here in this prison until you die."

"It is a hard case," said Sir Lancelot, "that either I must die, or choose one of you for my mistress! Yet had I rather die in this prison than serve any living creature against my will. So take this for my answer. I will serve none of ye, for ye be false enchantresses. And as for my lady, Queen Guinevere, whom lightly ye have spoken of, were I at liberty I would prove it upon you or upon yours she is the truest lady living to her lord the king."

"It’s a tough situation," said Sir Lancelot, "where I either have to die or pick one of you to be my mistress! But I would rather die in this prison than serve anyone against my will. So take this as my answer: I won’t serve any of you, because you’re deceitful enchantresses. And about my lady, Queen Guinevere, whom you’ve spoken of so casually, if I were free, I would show you or your kind that she is the truest lady alive to her husband, the king."

"Well," said the queen, "is this your answer, that ye refuse us all?"

"Well," said the queen, "is this your answer, that you refuse us all?"

"Yea, on my life," said Lancelot, "refused ye be of me."

"Yeah, I swear," said Lancelot, "you refused to be with me."

So they departed from him in great wrath, and left him sorrowfully grieving in his dungeon.

So they left him in a fit of anger, walking away sadly while he remained heartbroken in his dungeon.

At noon the damsel came to him and brought his dinner, and asked him as before, "What cheer?"

At noon, the young woman came to him and brought his lunch, and asked him as before, "How's it going?"

"Truly, fair damsel," said Sir Lancelot, "in all my life never so ill."

"Honestly, fair lady," said Sir Lancelot, "I've never felt so bad in my life."

"Sir," replied she, "I grieve to see ye so, but if ye do as I advise, I can help ye out of this distress, and will do so if you promise me a boon."

"Sir," she replied, "I'm sorry to see you like this, but if you follow my advice, I can help you out of this situation, and I will do so if you promise me a favor."

"Fair damsel," said Sir Lancelot, "right willingly will I grant it thee, for sorely do I dread these four witch-queens, who have destroyed and slain many a good knight with their enchantments."

"Fair lady," said Sir Lancelot, "I’m more than willing to grant your request, for I fear these four witch queens greatly, as they have destroyed and killed many brave knights with their magic."

Then said the damsel, "Sir, wilt thou promise me to help my father on next Tuesday, for he hath a tournament with the King of Northgales, and last Tuesday lost the field through three knights of King Arthur's court, who came against him. And if next Tuesday thou wilt aid him, to-morrow, before daylight, by God's grace, I will deliver thee."

Then the young woman said, "Sir, will you promise to help my father next Tuesday? He has a tournament against the King of Northgales, and last Tuesday he lost because of three knights from King Arthur's court who came against him. If you help him next Tuesday, then tomorrow morning, by God's grace, I will set you free."

"Fair maiden," said Sir Lancelot, "tell me thy father's name and I will answer thee."

"Fair maiden," Sir Lancelot said, "tell me your father's name and I will answer you."

"My father is King Bagdemagus," said she.

"My dad is King Bagdemagus," she said.

"I know him well," replied Sir Lancelot, "for a noble king and a good knight; and by the faith of my body I will do him all the service I am able on that day."

"I know him well," replied Sir Lancelot, "as a noble king and a good knight; and I swear on my life that I will do everything I can to serve him on that day."

"Gramercy to thee, Sir knight," said the damsel. "To-morrow, when thou art delivered from this place, ride ten miles hence unto an abbey of white monks, and there abide until I bring my father to thee."

"Thank you, Sir knight," said the damsel. "Tomorrow, when you leave this place, ride ten miles to an abbey of white monks, and wait there until I bring my father to you."

"So be it," said Sir Lancelot, "as I am a true knight."

"So be it," said Sir Lancelot, "as I am a true knight."

So she departed, and on the morrow, early, came again, and let him out of twelve gates, differently locked, and brought him to his armor; and when he was all armed, she brought him his horse also, and lightly he saddled him, and took a great spear in his hand, and mounted and rode forth, saying, as he went, "Fair damsel, I shall not fail thee, by the grace of God."

So she left, and the next morning, she returned early and let him out through twelve different locked gates. She brought him his armor; and when he was fully equipped, she also brought him his horse. He quickly saddled it, took a large spear in his hand, and mounted up, riding off while saying, "Fair maiden, I won’t let you down, with God's grace."

And all that day he rode in a great forest, and could find no highway, and spent the night in the wood; but the next morning found his road, and came to the abbey of white monks. And there he saw King Bagdemagus and his daughter waiting for him. So when they were together in a chamber, Sir Lancelot told the king how he had been betrayed by an enchantment, and how his brother Lionel was gone he knew not where, and how the damsel had delivered him from the castle of Queen Morgan le Fay. "Wherefore while I live," said he, "I shall do service to herself and all her kindred."

And all that day he rode through a vast forest, unable to find any road, and spent the night in the woods; but the next morning he found his way and arrived at the abbey of white monks. There he saw King Bagdemagus and his daughter waiting for him. Once they were alone in a room, Sir Lancelot told the king how he had been betrayed by magic, how his brother Lionel was missing, and how the lady had rescued him from the castle of Queen Morgan le Fay. "As long as I live," he said, "I will serve her and all her family."

"Then am I sure of thy aid," said the king, "on Tuesday now next coming?"

"Then I'm sure of your help," said the king, "on the upcoming Tuesday?"

"Yea, sir, I shall not fail thee," said Sir Lancelot; "but what knights were they who last week defeated thee, and took part with the King of Northgales?"

"Yes, sir, I won't let you down," said Sir Lancelot; "but who were the knights that defeated you last week and sided with the King of Northgales?"

"Sir Mador de la Port, Sir Modred, and Sir Gahalatine," replied the king.

"Sir Mador de la Port, Sir Modred, and Sir Gahalatine," the king replied.

"Sir," said Sir Lancelot, "as I understand, the tournament shall take place but three miles from this abbey; send then to me here, three knights of thine, the best thou hast, and let them all have plain white shields, such as I also will; then will we four come suddenly into the midst between both parties, and fall upon thy enemies, and grieve them all we can, and none will know us who we are."

"Sir," said Sir Lancelot, "as far as I know, the tournament is happening just three miles from this abbey; so send me three of your best knights to join me here, and make sure they all have plain white shields, just like mine. Then the four of us will charge right into the middle of both sides and attack your enemies as much as we can, and no one will know who we are."

So, on the Tuesday, Sir Lancelot and the three knights lodged themselves in a small grove hard by the lists. Then came into the field the King of Northgales, with one hundred and sixty helms, and the three knights of King Arthur's court, who stood apart by themselves. And when King Bagdemagus had arrived, with eighty helms, both companies set all their spears in rest and came together with a mighty clash, wherein were slain twelve knights of King Bagdemagus, and six of the King of Northgales; and the party of King Bagdemagus was driven back.

So, on Tuesday, Sir Lancelot and the three knights settled in a small grove near the tournament grounds. Then the King of Northgales entered the field with one hundred and sixty knights, and the three knights from King Arthur's court stood off to the side. When King Bagdemagus showed up with eighty knights, both groups readied their spears and charged at each other with a loud crash, resulting in the deaths of twelve knights from King Bagdemagus's side and six from the King of Northgales. King Bagdemagus's group was pushed back.

With that, came Sir Lancelot, and thrust into the thickest of the press, and smote down with one spear five knights, and brake the backs of four, and cast down the King of Northgales, and brake his thigh by the fall. When the three knights of Arthur's court saw this, they rode at Sir Lancelot, and each after other attacked him; but he overthrew them all, and smote them nigh to death. Then, taking a new spear, he bore down to the ground sixteen more knights, and hurt them all so sorely, that they could carry arms no more that day. And when his spear at length was broken, he took yet another, and smote down twelve knights more, the most of whom he wounded mortally, till in the end the party of the King of Northgales would joust no more, and the victory was cried to King Bagdemagus.

With that, Sir Lancelot arrived and plunged into the crowd, knocking down five knights with one spear, breaking the backs of four, and toppling the King of Northgales, breaking his thigh in the process. When the three knights from Arthur's court saw this, they charged at Sir Lancelot one after another, but he defeated them all, nearly killing them. Then, grabbing a new spear, he knocked down another sixteen knights, injuring them so badly that they couldn't fight anymore that day. Eventually, when his spear broke, he picked up another one and took down twelve more knights, most of whom he seriously wounded, until finally the King of Northgales's party refused to joust any longer, and the victory was announced to King Bagdemagus.

Then Sir Lancelot rode forth with King Bagdemagus to his castle, and there he feasted with great cheer and welcome, and received many royal gifts. And on the morrow he took leave and went to find his brother Lionel.

Then Sir Lancelot rode out with King Bagdemagus to his castle, where they celebrated with a joyful feast and warm hospitality, and he received many royal gifts. The next day, he said his goodbyes and set out to find his brother Lionel.

Anon, by chance, he came to the same forest where the four queens had found him sleeping, and there he met a damsel riding on a white palfrey. When they had saluted each other, Sir Lancelot said, "Fair damsel, knowest thou where any adventures may be had in this country?"

Anon, by chance, he came to the same forest where the four queens had found him sleeping, and there he met a young woman riding a white horse. After they greeted each other, Sir Lancelot said, "Fair lady, do you know if there are any adventures to be had in this area?"

"Sir knight," said she, "there are adventures great enough close by if thou darest prove them."

"Sir knight," she said, "there are exciting adventures nearby if you're brave enough to take them on."

"Why should I not," said he, "since for that cause I came here?"

"Why shouldn't I?" he said. "I came here for that reason."

"Sir," said the damsel, "hard by this place there dwelleth a knight that cannot be defeated by any man, so great and perilously strong he is. His name is Sir Turquine, and in the prisons of his castle lie three score knights and four, mostly from King Arthur's court, whom he hath taken with his own hands. But promise me, ere thou undertakest their deliverance, to go and help me afterwards, and free me and many other ladies that are distressed by a false knight."

"Sir," said the woman, "not far from here lives a knight who can't be beaten by any man; he’s incredibly strong and dangerous. His name is Sir Turquine, and in the dungeons of his castle are sixty-four knights, mostly from King Arthur's court, whom he has captured himself. But promise me, before you attempt to rescue them, that you will help me afterward and free me and many other ladies who are suffering at the hands of a treacherous knight."

"Bring me but to this felon Turquine," quoth Sir Lancelot, "and I will afterwards fulfill all your wishes."

"Just take me to this criminal Turquine," said Sir Lancelot, "and I'll make sure to fulfill all your wishes afterwards."

So the damsel went before, and brought him to a ford, and a tree whereon a great brass basin hung; and Sir Lancelot beat with his spear-end upon the basin, long and hard, until he beat the bottom of it out, but he saw nothing. Then he rode to and fro before the castle gates for wellnigh half an hour, and anon saw a great knight riding from the distance, driving a horse before him, across which hung an armed man bound. And when they came near, Sir Lancelot knew the prisoner for a knight of the Round Table. By that time, the great knight who drove the prisoner saw Sir Lancelot, and each of them began to settle his spear, and to make ready.

So the lady went ahead and led him to a crossing, and to a tree where a large brass basin was hanging. Sir Lancelot struck the basin with the end of his spear, hitting it long and hard until he broke the bottom out, but he didn't see anything. Then he rode back and forth in front of the castle gates for nearly half an hour, when he suddenly spotted a large knight approaching from a distance, driving a horse in front of him, on which an armed man was tied up. As they got closer, Sir Lancelot recognized the prisoner as a knight of the Round Table. By that time, the large knight who was driving the prisoner saw Sir Lancelot, and both started to ready their spears.

"Fair sir," then said Sir Lancelot, "put off that wounded knight, I pray thee, from his horse, and let him rest while thou and I shall prove our strength upon each other; for, as I am told, thou doest, and hast done, great shame and injury to knights of the Round Table. Wherefore, I warn thee now, defend thyself."

"Kind sir," Sir Lancelot said, "please help that injured knight down from his horse and let him rest while you and I test our strength against each other; because I've heard that you have brought great shame and harm to the knights of the Round Table. So, I warn you now, get ready to defend yourself."

"If thou mayest be of the Round Table," answered Turquine, "I defy thee, and all thy fellows."

"If you can be part of the Round Table," replied Turquine, "I challenge you and all your friends."

"That is saying overmuch," said Sir Lancelot.

"That's saying too much," said Sir Lancelot.

Then, setting their lances in rest, they spurred their horses towards each other, as fast as they could go, and smote so fearfully upon each other's shields, that both their horses' backs brake under them. As soon as they could clear their saddles, they took their shields before them, and drew their swords, and came together eagerly, and fought with great and grievous strokes; and soon they both had many grim and fearful wounds, and bled in streams. Thus they fought two hours and more, thrusting and smiting at each other, wherever they could hit.

Then, bracing their lances, they urged their horses toward each other as fast as they could and struck each other's shields so hard that both horses collapsed underneath them. Once they managed to get clear of their saddles, they raised their shields and drew their swords, charging at each other with intensity, delivering powerful and brutal blows. Soon, they both suffered numerous serious and horrifying wounds and bled profusely. They fought for over two hours, attacking and striking at each other whenever possible.

Anon, they both were breathless, and stood leaning on their swords.

Soon, they were both out of breath and leaned on their swords.

"Now, comrade," said Sir Turquine, "let us wait awhile, and answer me what I shall ask thee."

"Now, buddy," Sir Turquine said, "let's wait a bit, and answer me what I'm going to ask you."

"Say on," said Lancelot.

"Go ahead," said Lancelot.

"Thou art," said Turquine, "the best man I ever met, and seemest like one that I hate above all other knights that live; but if thou be not he, I will make peace with thee, and for sake of thy great valor, will deliver all the three score prisoners and four who lie within my dungeons, and thou and I will be companions evermore. Tell me, then, thy name."

"You're," said Turquine, "the best man I've ever met, and you seem like the one I hate more than any other knight alive; but if you're not him, I'll make peace with you, and for the sake of your great bravery, I'll release all the sixty-four prisoners who are in my dungeons, and you and I will be friends forever. So, tell me your name."

"Thou sayest well," replied Sir Lancelot; "but who is he thou hatest so above all others?"

"You speak well," replied Sir Lancelot; "but who is it that you hate the most?"

"His name," said Turquine, "is Sir Lancelot of the Lake; and he slew my brother Sir Carados, at the dolorous tower; wherefore, if ever I shall meet with him, one of us two shall slay the other; and thereto I have sworn by a great oath. And to discover and destroy him I have slain a hundred knights, and crippled utterly as many more, and many have died in my prisons; and now, as I have told thee, I have many more therein, who all shall be delivered, if thou tell me thy name, and it be not Sir Lancelot."

"His name," said Turquine, "is Sir Lancelot of the Lake; and he killed my brother Sir Carados at the dolorous tower. So, if I ever come across him, one of us will kill the other; I’ve sworn a serious oath to that. To find and eliminate him, I’ve killed a hundred knights and completely crippled just as many more, and many have died in my dungeons. Now, as I’ve said, I have many more prisoners, who will all be set free if you tell me your name, and it’s not Sir Lancelot."

"Well," said Lancelot, "I am that knight, son of King Ban of Benwick, and Knight of the Round Table; so now I defy thee to do thy best!"

"Well," said Lancelot, "I’m that knight, son of King Ban of Benwick, and a Knight of the Round Table; so now I challenge you to do your best!"

"Aha!" said Turquine, with a shout, "is it then so at last! Thou art more welcome to my sword than ever knight or lady was to feast, for never shall we part till one of us be dead."

"Aha!" shouted Turquine, "is it finally true! You are more welcome to my sword than any knight or lady has ever been to a feast, for we shall never part until one of us is dead."

Then did they hurtle together like two wild bulls, slashing and lashing with their shields and swords, and sometimes falling both on to the ground. For two more hours they fought so, and at the last Sir Turquine grew very faint, and gave a little back, and bare his shield full low for weariness. When Sir Lancelot saw him thus, he leaped upon him fiercely as a lion, and took him by the crest of his helmet, and dragged him to his knees; and then he tore his helmet off and smote his neck asunder.

Then they charged at each other like two wild bulls, clashing with their shields and swords, and sometimes both ended up on the ground. They fought like this for another two hours, and eventually, Sir Turquine became very weak and stumbled back, lowering his shield in exhaustion. When Sir Lancelot saw this, he jumped at him fiercely like a lion, grabbed him by the top of his helmet, and pulled him down to his knees; then he ripped off his helmet and struck his neck clean through.

Then he arose, and went to the damsel who had brought him to Sir Turquine, and said, "I am ready, fair lady, to go with thee upon thy service, but I have no horse."

Then he got up and went to the young woman who had brought him to Sir Turquine, and said, "I’m ready, pretty lady, to go with you on your mission, but I don’t have a horse."

"Fair sir," said she, "take ye this horse of the wounded knight whom Turquine but just now was carrying to his prisons, and send that knight on to deliver all the prisoners."

"Kind sir," she said, "take this horse from the wounded knight that Turquine just brought to his prison, and send that knight to free all the prisoners."

So Sir Lancelot went to the knight and prayed him for the loan of his horse.

So Sir Lancelot approached the knight and asked to borrow his horse.

"Fair lord," said he, "ye are right welcome, for to-day ye have saved both me and my horse; and I see that ye are the best knight in all the world, for in my sight have ye slain the mightiest man and the best knight, except thyself, I ever saw."

"Fair lord," he said, "you are very welcome, for today you have saved both me and my horse; and I see that you are the best knight in the whole world, for you have killed the strongest man and the best knight, except for yourself, that I have ever seen."

"Sir," said Sir Lancelot, "I thank thee well; and now go into yonder castle, where thou shalt find many noble knights of the Round Table, for I have seen their shields hung on the trees around. On yonder tree alone there are Sir Key's, Sir Brandel's, Sir Marhaus', Sir Galind's, and Sir Aliduke's, and many more; and also my two kinsmen's shields, Sir Ector de Maris' and Sir Lionel's. And I pray you greet them all from me, Sir Lancelot of the Lake, and tell them that I bid them help themselves to any treasures they can find within the castle; and that I pray my brethren, Lionel and Ector, to go to King Arthur's court and stay there till I come. And by the high feast at Pentecost I must be there; but now I must ride forth with this damsel to fulfill my promise."

"Sir," said Sir Lancelot, "thank you very much; now go into that castle over there, where you’ll find many noble knights of the Round Table, since I’ve seen their shields hanging on the trees around. On that one tree alone are Sir Key's, Sir Brandel's, Sir Marhaus's, Sir Galind's, and Sir Aliduke's shields, along with my two relatives' shields, Sir Ector de Maris and Sir Lionel. Please send my regards to all of them from me, Sir Lancelot of the Lake, and let them know that I encourage them to take any treasures they find in the castle. Also, I ask my brothers, Lionel and Ector, to head to King Arthur's court and wait there until I arrive. I must be there by the high feast at Pentecost, but for now, I need to ride out with this damsel to keep my promise."

So, as they went, the damsel told him, "Sir, we are now near the place where the foul knight haunteth, who robbeth and distresseth all ladies and gentlewomen traveling past this way, against whom I have sought thy aid."

So, as they walked, the young woman said to him, "Sir, we're now close to where the wicked knight hangs out, who robs and harasses all the ladies and gentlewomen traveling this way, and I have sought your help against him."

Then they arranged that she should ride on foremost, and Sir Lancelot should follow under cover of the trees by the roadside, and if he saw her come to any mishap, he should ride forth and deal with him that troubled her. And as the damsel rode on at a soft ambling pace, a knight and page burst forth from the roadside and forced the damsel from her horse, till she cried out for help.

Then they decided that she would ride ahead, while Sir Lancelot would follow along the tree line by the road. If he saw her getting into any trouble, he would ride out and handle whoever was bothering her. As the young woman rode at a slow, gentle pace, a knight and his page suddenly emerged from the side of the road and forced her off her horse, causing her to cry out for help.

Then came Sir Lancelot rushing through the wood as fast as he might fly, and all the branches of the trees crackled and waved around him. "O thou false knight and traitor to all knighthood!" shouted he, "who taught thee to distress fair ladies thus?"

Then came Sir Lancelot racing through the woods as fast as he could go, and all the branches of the trees crackled and swayed around him. "Oh you false knight and traitor to all chivalry!" he shouted, "who taught you to treat noble ladies this way?"

The foul knight answered nothing, but drew out his sword and rode at Sir Lancelot, who threw his spear away and drew his own sword likewise, and struck him such a mighty blow as clave his head down to the throat. "Now hast thou the wages thou long hast earned!" said he; and so departed from the damsel.

The wicked knight didn't say a word but pulled out his sword and charged at Sir Lancelot, who discarded his spear and drew his own sword as well. He delivered a powerful blow that split the knight's head down to his throat. "Now you have the reward you've long deserved!" he said, and then left the maiden.

Then for two days he rode in a great forest, and had but scanty food and lodging, and on the third day he rode over a long bridge, when suddenly there started up a passing foul churl, and smote his horse across the nose, so that he started and turned back, rearing with pain. "Why ridest thou over here without my leave?" said he.

Then for two days he rode through a vast forest, barely finding food and shelter, and on the third day, he crossed a long bridge when suddenly a rough man appeared and struck his horse across the nose, causing it to rear back in pain. "Why are you riding over here without my permission?" he asked.

"Why should I not?" said Sir Lancelot; "there is no other way to ride."

"Why shouldn't I?" said Sir Lancelot; "there's no other way to ride."

"Thou shalt not pass by here," cried out the churl, and dashed at him with a great club full of iron spikes, till Sir Lancelot was fain to draw his sword and smite him dead upon the earth.

"You're not passing through here," shouted the rude man, and charged at him with a huge club covered in iron spikes, forcing Sir Lancelot to draw his sword and strike him dead on the ground.

At the end of the bridge was a fair village, and all the people came and cried, "Ah, sir! a worse deed for thyself thou never didst, for thou hast slain the chief porter of the castle yonder!" But he let them talk as they pleased, and rode straight forward to the castle.

At the end of the bridge was a quiet village, and everyone gathered and shouted, "Oh, sir! You’ve never done a worse thing for yourself, for you’ve killed the chief gatekeeper of that castle over there!" But he ignored their chatter and rode straight toward the castle.

There he alighted, and tied his horse to a ring in the wall; and going in, he saw a wide green court, and thought it seemed a noble place to fight in. And as he looked about, he saw many people watching him from doors and windows, making signs of warning, and saying, "Fair knight, thou art unhappy." In the next moment came upon him two great giants, well armed save their heads, and with two horrible clubs in their hands. Then he put his shield before him, and with it warded off one giant's stroke, and clove the other with his sword from the head downward to the chest. When the first giant saw that, he ran away mad with fear; but Sir Lancelot ran after him, and smote him through the shoulder, and shore him down his back, so that he fell dead.

There he got off his horse and tied it to a ring in the wall. As he entered, he saw a large green courtyard and thought it looked like a great place to fight. As he looked around, he noticed many people watching him from doors and windows, warning him and saying, "Fair knight, you are in trouble." Suddenly, two huge giants appeared, well-armed except for their heads, holding terrible clubs. He raised his shield to block one giant's attack and swung his sword, slicing the other giant from head to chest. When the first giant saw that, he ran away in a panic, but Sir Lancelot chased after him, struck him in the shoulder, and cut him down his back, killing him.

Then he walked onward to the castle hall, and saw a band of sixty ladies and young damsels coming forth, who knelt to him, and thanked him for their freedom. "For, sir," said they, "the most of us have been prisoners here these seven years; and have been kept at all manner of work to earn our meat, though we be all great gentlewomen born. Blessed be the time that thou wast born, for never did a knight a deed of greater worship than thou hast this day, and thereto will we all bear witness in all times and places! Tell us, therefore, noble knight, thy name and court, that we may tell them to our friends!" And when they heard it, they all cried aloud, "Well may it be so, for we knew that no knight save thou shouldst ever overcome those giants; and many a long day have we sighed for thee; for the giants feared no other name among all knights but thine."

Then he walked on to the castle hall and saw a group of sixty ladies and young women coming out, who knelt before him and thanked him for their freedom. "For, sir," they said, "most of us have been prisoners here for seven years, forced to do all kinds of work just to earn our food, even though we are all born gentlewomen. Blessed be the time you were born, for no knight has ever done a more honorable deed than you have today, and we will all testify to that at all times and places! So tell us, noble knight, your name and court, so we can share it with our friends!" And when they heard it, they all cried out, "It’s no surprise, for we knew that no knight other than you would ever defeat those giants; many a long day have we longed for you, for the giants feared no other name among all knights but yours."

Then he told them to take the treasures of the castle as a reward for their grievances; and to return to their homes, and so rode away into many strange and wild countries. And at last, after many days, by chance he came, near the night time, to a fair mansion, wherein he found an old gentlewoman, who gave him and his horse good cheer. And when bed time was come, his host brought him to a chamber over a gate, and there he unarmed, and went to bed and fell asleep.

Then he told them to take the treasures of the castle as a reward for what they had lost, and to go back to their homes. After that, he rode off into many strange and wild lands. Eventually, after many days, he happened upon a beautiful house near evening, where he met an old woman who welcomed him and his horse kindly. When it was time for bed, his host led him to a room above a gate, and there he took off his armor, got into bed, and fell asleep.

But soon thereafter came one riding in great haste, and knocking vehemently at the gate below, which when Sir Lancelot heard, he rose and looked out of the window, and, by the moonlight, saw three knights come riding fiercely after one man, and lashing on him all at once with their swords, while the one knight nobly fought them all.

But soon after, someone came riding in a hurry, banging hard on the gate below. When Sir Lancelot heard this, he got up and looked out the window. By the moonlight, he saw three knights fiercely chasing one man, all attacking him at once with their swords, while the lone knight bravely fought them all.

Then Sir Lancelot quickly armed himself, and getting through the window, let himself down by a sheet into the midst of them, crying out, "Turn ye on me, ye cowards, and leave fighting with that knight!" Then they all left Sir Key, for the first knight was he, and began to fall upon Sir Lancelot furiously. And when Sir Key would have come forward to assist him, Sir Lancelot refused, and cried, "Leave me alone to deal with them." And presently, with six great strokes, he felled them all.

Then Sir Lancelot quickly put on his armor and climbed out the window, lowering himself down by a sheet into the middle of them, shouting, "Turn on me, you cowards, and stop fighting that knight!" They all abandoned Sir Kay, since he was the first knight, and rushed at Sir Lancelot with fury. When Sir Kay tried to step in to help him, Sir Lancelot turned him down and shouted, "Leave me to handle this." Soon enough, with six powerful strikes, he brought them all down.

Then they cried out, "Sir knight, we yield us unto thee, as to a man of might!"

Then they shouted, "Sir knight, we surrender to you, as to a man of strength!"

"I will not take your yielding!" said he; "yield ye to Sir Key, the seneschal, or I will have your lives."

"I won't accept your surrender!" he said; "surrender to Sir Key, the steward, or I'll take your lives."

"Fair knight," said they, "excuse us in that thing, for we have chased Sir Key thus far, and should have overcome him but for thee."

"Brave knight," they said, "please forgive us for this, as we've been pursuing Sir Key all this way and would have defeated him if it weren't for you."

"Well," said Sir Lancelot, "do as ye will, for ye may live or die; but, if ye live, ye shall be holden to Sir Key."

"Well," said Sir Lancelot, "do what you want, because you could live or die; but if you live, you’ll be indebted to Sir Key."

Then they yielded to him; and Sir Lancelot commanded them to go unto King Arthur's court at the next Pentecost, and say, Sir Key had sent them prisoners to Queen Guinevere. And this they sware to do upon their swords.

Then they gave in to him; and Sir Lancelot ordered them to go to King Arthur's court at the next Pentecost and say that Sir Kay had sent them as prisoners to Queen Guinevere. And they swore to do this on their swords.

Then Sir Lancelot knocked at the gate with his sword-hilt till his hostess came and let him in again, and Sir Key also. And when the light came, Sir Key knew Sir Lancelot, and knelt and thanked him for his courtesy, and gentleness, and kindness. "Sir," said he, "I have done no more than what I ought to do, and ye are welcome; therefore let us now take rest."

Then Sir Lancelot knocked on the gate with the hilt of his sword until his hostess came and let him and Sir Kay in again. When the light came on, Sir Kay recognized Sir Lancelot, knelt, and thanked him for his kindness and generosity. "Sir," he said, "I've only done what I should do, and you're welcome; so let's rest now."

So when Sir Key had supped, they went to sleep, and Sir Lancelot and he slept in the same bed. On the morrow, Sir Lancelot rose early, and took Sir Key's shield and armor and set forth. When Sir Key arose, he found Sir Lancelot's armor by his bedside, and his own arms gone. "Now, by my faith," thought he, "I know that he will grieve some knights of our king's court; for those who meet him will be bold to joust with him, mistaking him for me, while I, dressed in his shield and armor, shall surely ride in peace."

So when Sir Key had finished his dinner, they went to bed, and Sir Lancelot and he shared the same bed. The next morning, Sir Lancelot woke up early, took Sir Key's shield and armor, and set out. When Sir Key got up, he found Sir Lancelot's armor by his bedside and his own gear missing. "Now, by my word," he thought, "I know that he will upset some knights from our king's court; because those who encounter him will be brave enough to challenge him, thinking he’s me, while I, dressed in his shield and armor, will surely ride along without any issues."

Then Sir Lancelot, dressed in Sir Key's apparel, rode long in a great forest, and came at last to a low country, full of rivers and fair meadows, and saw a bridge before him, whereon were three silk tents of divers colors, and to each tent was hung a white shield, and by each shield stood a knight. So Sir Lancelot went by without speaking a word. And when he had passed, the three knights said it was the proud Sir Key, "who thinketh no knight equal to himself, although the contrary is full often proved upon him."

Then Sir Lancelot, wearing Sir Kay's clothes, rode for a long time through a large forest and finally arrived in a flat area filled with rivers and beautiful meadows. He saw a bridge ahead of him, where there were three silk tents of different colors, and each tent had a white shield hanging from it, with a knight standing by each shield. Sir Lancelot rode past without saying anything. After he passed, the three knights said it was the arrogant Sir Kay, "who believes no knight is his equal, even though that's often proven wrong."

"By my faith!" said one of them, named Gaunter, "I will ride after and attack him for all his pride, and ye shall watch my speed."

"By my faith!" said one of them, named Gaunter, "I will chase him down and confront him for all his arrogance, and you will see how fast I am."

Then, taking shield and spear, he mounted and rode after Sir Lancelot, and cried, "Abide, proud knight, and turn, for thou shalt not pass free!"

Then, grabbing his shield and spear, he got on his horse and rode after Sir Lancelot, shouting, "Wait, proud knight, and turn around, for you won't get by without a fight!"

So Sir Lancelot turned, and each one put his spear in rest and came with all his might against the other. And Sir Gaunter's spear brake short, but Sir Lancelot smote him down, both horse and man.

So Sir Lancelot turned, and each of them readied their spear and charged at each other with all their strength. Sir Gaunter's spear broke short, but Sir Lancelot knocked him down, horse and rider.

When the other knights saw this, they said, "Yonder is not Sir Key, but a bigger man."

When the other knights saw this, they said, "That’s not Sir Key; it’s a taller guy."

"I dare wager my head," said Sir Gilmere, "yonder knight hath slain Sir Key, and taken his horse and harness."

"I bet my head," said Sir Gilmere, "that knight over there has killed Sir Key and taken his horse and gear."

"Be it so, or not," said Sir Reynold, the third brother; "let us now go to our brother Gaunter's rescue; we shall have enough to do to match that knight, for, by his stature, I believe it is Sir Lancelot or Sir Tristram."

"Whether that's the case or not," said Sir Reynold, the third brother; "let's go to our brother Gaunter's rescue now; we’ll have our hands full trying to match that knight, because by his size, I think it's Sir Lancelot or Sir Tristram."

Anon, they took their horses and galloped after Sir Lancelot; and Sir Gilmere first assailed him, but was smitten down forthwith, and lay stunned on the earth. Then said Sir Reynold, "Sir knight, thou art a strong man, and, I believe, hast slain my two brothers, wherefore my heart is sore against thee; yet, if I might with honor, I would avoid thee. Nevertheless, that cannot be, so keep thyself." And so they hurtled together with all their might, and each man shivered his spear to pieces; and then they drew their swords and lashed out eagerly.

Soon, they took their horses and raced after Sir Lancelot. Sir Gilmere attacked him first, but he was quickly struck down and lay motionless on the ground. Then Sir Reynold said, "Sir knight, you are a strong man, and I believe you have killed my two brothers, which is why I feel so much hatred toward you. However, if it were honorable, I would avoid fighting you. But that's not possible, so prepare yourself." They charged at each other with all their strength, and both men shattered their spears. Then they drew their swords and began to strike fiercely.

And as they fought, Sir Gaunter and Sir Gilmere presently arose and mounted once again, and came down at full tilt upon Sir Lancelot. But, when he saw them coming, he put forth all his strength, and struck Sir Reynold off his horse. Then, with two other strokes, he served the others likewise.

And as they fought, Sir Gaunter and Sir Gilmere quickly got up and mounted their horses again, charging full speed at Sir Lancelot. But when he saw them approaching, he summoned all his strength and knocked Sir Reynold off his horse. Then, with two more strikes, he took down the others in the same way.

Anon, Sir Reynold crept along the ground, with his head all bloody, and came towards Sir Lancelot. "It is enough," said Lancelot, "I was not far from thee when thou wast made a knight, Sir Reynold, and know thee for a good and valiant man, and was full loth to slay thee."

Anon, Sir Reynold crawled along the ground, his head covered in blood, and approached Sir Lancelot. "That's enough," said Lancelot, "I wasn’t far from you when you were made a knight, Sir Reynold, and I know you’re a good and brave man, and I really didn’t want to kill you."

"Gramercy for thy gentleness!" said Sir Reynold. "I and my brethren will straightway yield to thee when we know thy name, for well we know that thou art not Sir Key."

"Thank you for your kindness!" said Sir Reynold. "My brothers and I will immediately submit to you once we know your name, for we know you are not Sir Key."

"As for that," said Sir Lancelot, "be it as it may, but ye shall yield to Queen Guinevere at the next Feast of Pentecost as prisoners, and say that Sir Key sent ye."

"As for that," said Sir Lancelot, "it is what it is, but you will surrender to Queen Guinevere at the next Feast of Pentecost as prisoners and say that Sir Kay sent you."

Then they swore to him it should be done as he commanded. And so Sir Lancelot passed on, and the three brethren helped each other's wounds as best they might.

Then they promised him that it would be done as he instructed. So Sir Lancelot went on, and the three brothers tended to each other's wounds as best they could.

Then rode Sir Lancelot forward into a deep forest, and came upon four knights of King Arthur's court, under an oak tree—Sir Sagramour, Sir Ector, Sir Gawain, and Sir Ewaine. And when they spied him, they thought he was Sir Key. "Now by my faith," said Sir Sagramour, "I will prove Sir Key's might!" and taking his spear he rode towards Sir Lancelot.

Then Sir Lancelot rode into a deep forest and came across four knights from King Arthur's court sitting under an oak tree—Sir Sagramour, Sir Ector, Sir Gawain, and Sir Ewaine. When they saw him, they thought he was Sir Kay. "Well, I’ll be," said Sir Sagramour, "I’m going to test Sir Kay's strength!" and grabbing his spear, he rode toward Sir Lancelot.

But Sir Lancelot was aware of him, and, setting his spear in rest, smote him so sorely, that horse and man fell to the earth.

But Sir Lancelot noticed him and, steadying his spear, struck him so hard that both horse and rider fell to the ground.

"Lo!" cried Sir Ector, "I see by the buffet that knight hath given our fellow he is stronger than Sir Key. Now will I try what I can do against him!" So Sir Ector took his spear, and galloped at Sir Lancelot; and Sir Lancelot met him as he came, and smote him through shield and shoulder, so that he fell, but his own spear was not broken.

"Look!" shouted Sir Ector, "I can tell from the buffet that knight has given our friend that he’s stronger than Sir Kay. Now I’ll see what I can do against him!" So Sir Ector took his spear and charged at Sir Lancelot; and Sir Lancelot met him head-on, striking him through shield and shoulder, causing him to fall, but his spear remained intact.

"By my faith," cried Sir Ewaine, "yonder is a strong knight, and must have slain Sir Key, and taken his armor! By his strength, I see it will be hard to match him." So saying he rode towards Sir Lancelot, who met him halfway and struck him so fiercely, that at one blow he overthrew him also.

"Honestly," exclaimed Sir Ewaine, "there's a strong knight over there who must have killed Sir Key and taken his armor! I can tell by his strength that it'll be tough to take him on." With that, he rode toward Sir Lancelot, who met him halfway and struck him so hard that with one blow he knocked him down as well.

"Now," said Sir Gawain, "will I encounter him." So he took a good spear in his hand, and guarded himself with his shield. And he and Sir Lancelot rode against each other, with their horses at full speed, and furiously smote each other on the middle of their shields; but Sir Gawain's spear broke short asunder, and Sir Lancelot charged so mightily upon him, that his horse and he both fell, and rolled upon the ground.

"Now," said Sir Gawain, "I will face him." He took a sturdy spear in his hand and readied his shield. He and Sir Lancelot charged at each other full speed, crashing their horses together in the center of their shields. However, Sir Gawain's spear snapped in half, and Sir Lancelot struck him with such force that both he and his horse fell and tumbled to the ground.

"Ah," said Sir Lancelot, smiling, as he rode away from the four knights, "heaven give joy to him who made this spear, for never held I better in my hand."

"Ah," said Sir Lancelot, smiling, as he rode away from the four knights, "may heaven bring joy to the one who crafted this spear, for I've never held a better one in my hand."

But the four knights said to each other, "Truly one spear hath felled us all."

But the four knights said to each other, "Honestly, one spear has taken us all down."

"I dare lay my life," said Sir Gawain, "it is Sir Lancelot. I know him by his riding."

"I bet my life on it," said Sir Gawain, "it's Sir Lancelot. I recognize him by the way he rides."

So they all departed for the court.

So they all set off for the court.

And as Sir Lancelot rode still in the forest, he saw a black bloodhound, running with its head towards the ground, as if it tracked a deer. And following after it, he came to a great pool of blood. But the hound, ever and anon looking behind, ran through a great marsh, and over a bridge, towards an old manor house. So Sir Lancelot followed, and went into the hall, and saw a dead knight lying there, whose wounds the hound licked. And a lady stood behind him, weeping and wringing her hands, who cried, "O knight! too great is the sorrow which thou hast brought me!"

And as Sir Lancelot continued riding through the forest, he spotted a black bloodhound, running with its nose to the ground as if it was tracking a deer. Following the hound, he came across a large pool of blood. The hound, occasionally glancing back, ran through a wet marsh and over a bridge toward an old manor house. So Sir Lancelot followed and entered the hall, where he saw a dead knight lying there, and the hound was licking his wounds. A lady stood behind him, crying and wringing her hands, who exclaimed, "Oh knight! The sorrow you have brought me is too great!"

"Why say ye so?" replied Sir Lancelot; "for I never harmed this knight, and am full sorely grieved to see thy sorrow."

"Why do you say that?" replied Sir Lancelot; "I never hurt this knight, and I'm truly sorry to see your grief."

"Nay, sir," said the lady, "I see it is not thou hast slain my husband, for he that truly did that deed is deeply wounded, and shall never more recover."

"Nah, sir," said the lady, "I can see that it wasn't you who killed my husband, because the one who actually did it is gravely injured and will never recover."

"What is thy husband's name?" said Sir Lancelot.

"What is your husband's name?" said Sir Lancelot.

"His name," she answered, "was Sir Gilbert—one of the best knights in all the world; but I know not his name who hath slain him."

"His name," she replied, "was Sir Gilbert—one of the greatest knights in the world; but I don’t know the name of the one who killed him."

"God send thee comfort," said Sir Lancelot, and departed again into the forest.

"May God give you comfort," said Sir Lancelot, and he left again for the forest.

And as he rode, he met with a damsel who knew him, who cried out, "Well found, my lord! I pray ye of your knighthood help my brother, who is sore wounded and ceases not to bleed, for he fought this day with Sir Gilbert, and slew him, but was himself well nigh slain. And there is a sorceress, who dwelleth in a castle hard by, and she this day hath told me that my brother's wound shall never be made whole until I find a knight to go into the Chapel Perilous, and bring from thence a sword and the bloody cloth in which the wounded knight was wrapped."

And as he rode, he came across a young woman who recognized him and exclaimed, "It's good to see you, my lord! I ask you, as a knight, to help my brother, who is seriously wounded and won’t stop bleeding. He fought Sir Gilbert today and killed him, but he nearly lost his own life. There's a sorceress living in a nearby castle, and she told me today that my brother’s wound will never heal until I find a knight to enter the Chapel Perilous and bring back a sword along with the bloody cloth that was wrapped around the wounded knight."

"This is a marvelous thing!" said Sir Lancelot; "but what is your brother's name?"

"This is amazing!" said Sir Lancelot; "but what’s your brother's name?"

"His name, sir," she replied, "is Sir Meliot de Logres."

"His name, sir," she answered, "is Sir Meliot de Logres."

"He is a Fellow of the Round Table," said Sir Lancelot, "and truly will I do my best to help him."

"He’s a Fellow of the Round Table," said Sir Lancelot, "and I will really do my best to help him."

"Then, sir," said she, "follow this way, and it will bring ye to the Chapel Perilous. I will abide here till God send ye hither again; for if ye speed not, there is no living knight who may achieve that adventure."

"Then, sir," she said, "follow this way, and it will take you to the Chapel Perilous. I will wait here until God brings you back; for if you don't succeed, there is no living knight who can complete that quest."

So Sir Lancelot departed, and when he came to the Chapel Perilous he alighted, and tied his horse to the gate. And as soon as he was within the churchyard, he saw on the front of the chapel many shields of knights whom he had known, turned upside down. Then saw he in the pathway thirty mighty knights, taller than any men whom he had ever seen, all armed in black armor, with their swords drawn; and they gnashed their teeth upon him as he came. But he put his shield before him, and took his sword in hand, ready to do battle with them. And when he would have cut his way through them, they scattered on every side and let him pass. Then he went into the chapel, and saw therein no light but of a dim lamp burning. Then he was aware of a corpse in the midst of the chapel, covered with a silken cloth, and so stooped down and cut off a piece of the cloth, whereat the earth beneath him trembled. Then saw he a sword lying by the dead knight, and taking it in his hand, he hied him from the chapel. As soon as he was in the churchyard again, all the thirty knights cried out to him with fierce voices, "Sir Lancelot! lay that sword from thee, or thou diest!"

So Sir Lancelot left, and when he arrived at the Chapel Perilous, he got off his horse and tied it to the gate. As soon as he stepped into the churchyard, he noticed many knight shields he recognized, all turned upside down on the front of the chapel. Then he saw thirty huge knights in the pathway, taller than anyone he had ever seen, all dressed in black armor with their swords drawn; they bared their teeth at him as he approached. But he raised his shield and drew his sword, ready to fight them. When he tried to cut through their ranks, they scattered and let him pass. He then entered the chapel and saw only the dim light of a small lamp burning. He noticed a corpse in the middle of the chapel, covered with a silk cloth, so he bent down and cut off a piece of the cloth, causing the ground beneath him to tremble. He then saw a sword lying beside the dead knight, picked it up, and hurried out of the chapel. As soon as he was back in the churchyard, all thirty knights shouted at him with fierce voices, "Sir Lancelot! Put down that sword, or you will die!"

"Whether I live or die," said he, "ye shall fight for it ere ye take it from me."

"Whether I live or die," he said, "you will have to fight for it before you take it from me."

With that they let him pass.

With that, they let him go.

And further on, beyond the chapel, he met a fair damsel, who said, "Sir Lancelot, leave that sword behind thee, or thou diest."

And further along, past the chapel, he encountered a beautiful woman who said, "Sir Lancelot, leave that sword behind or you'll die."

"I will not leave it," said Sir Lancelot, "for any asking."

"I won't leave it," said Sir Lancelot, "for anything."

"Then, gentle knight," said the damsel, "I pray thee kiss me once."

"Then, kind knight," said the young woman, "I ask you to kiss me just once."

"Nay," said Sir Lancelot, "that God forbid!"

"Nah," said Sir Lancelot, "God forbid!"

"Alas!" cried she, "I have lost all my labor! but hadst thou kissed me, thy life's days had been all done!"

"Ugh!" she exclaimed, "I've wasted all my effort! But if you had kissed me, your life would have been over!"

"Heaven save me from thy subtle crafts!" said Sir Lancelot; and therewith took his horse and galloped forth.

"Heaven save me from your cunning tricks!" said Sir Lancelot; and with that, he took his horse and galloped away.

And when he was departed, the damsel sorrowed greatly, and died in fifteen days. Her name was Ellawes, the sorceress.

And when he left, the young woman was deeply saddened and died fifteen days later. Her name was Ellawes, the sorceress.

Then came Sir Lancelot to Sir Meliot's sister, who, when she saw him, clapped her hands and wept for joy, and took him to the castle hard by, where Sir Meliot was. And when Sir Lancelot saw Sir Meliot, he knew him, though he was pale as ashes for loss of blood. And Sir Meliot, when he saw Sir Lancelot, kneeled to him and cried aloud, "O lord, Sir Lancelot! help me!"

Then Sir Lancelot arrived at Sir Meliot's sister's place, and when she saw him, she clapped her hands and cried tears of joy, leading him to the nearby castle where Sir Meliot was. When Sir Lancelot saw Sir Meliot, he recognized him, even though he looked as pale as a ghost from losing so much blood. Sir Meliot, upon seeing Sir Lancelot, knelt before him and shouted, "Oh Lord, Sir Lancelot! Please help me!"

And thereupon, Sir Lancelot went to him and touched his wounds with the sword, and wiped them with the piece of bloody cloth. And immediately he was as whole as though he had been never wounded. Then was there great joy between him and Sir Meliot; and his sister made Sir Lancelot good cheer. So on the morrow, he took his leave, that he might go to King Arthur's court, "for," said he, "it draweth nigh the Feast of Pentecost, and there, by God's grace, shall ye then find me."

And then, Sir Lancelot went to him and touched his wounds with the sword, wiping them with a bloody cloth. Immediately, he was completely healed as if he had never been hurt. There was great joy between him and Sir Meliot, and his sister treated Sir Lancelot with kindness. So the next day, he said his goodbyes so he could go to King Arthur's court, saying, "It's almost time for the Feast of Pentecost, and hopefully, you'll find me there by God's grace."

And riding through many strange countries, over marshes and valleys, he came at length before a castle. As he passed by he heard two little bells ringing, and looking up, he saw a falcon flying overhead, with bells tied to her feet, and long strings dangling from them. And as the falcon flew past an elm-tree, the strings caught in the boughs, so that she could fly no further.

And traveling through many unfamiliar lands, over swamps and valleys, he finally arrived at a castle. As he went by, he heard two small bells ringing, and when he looked up, he saw a falcon flying overhead, with bells tied to her feet and long strings hanging from them. When the falcon flew past an elm tree, the strings got caught in the branches, preventing her from flying any further.

In the meanwhile, came a lady from the castle, and cried, "Oh, Sir Lancelot! as thou art the flower of all knights in the world, help me to get my hawk, for she hath slipped away from me, and if she be lost, my lord my husband is so hasty, he will surely slay me!"

In the meantime, a lady from the castle came and shouted, "Oh, Sir Lancelot! You are the best knight in the world, please help me get my hawk back. She has flown away from me, and if I don’t find her, my husband is so quick-tempered that he will definitely kill me!"

"What is thy lord's name?" said Sir Lancelot.

"What is your lord's name?" said Sir Lancelot.

"His name," said she, "is Sir Phelot, a knight of the King of Northgales."

"His name," she said, "is Sir Phelot, a knight of the King of Northgales."

"Fair lady," said Sir Lancelot, "since you know my name, and require me, on my knighthood, to help you, I will do what I can to get your hawk."

"Fair lady," said Sir Lancelot, "since you know my name and need my help, I promise to do what I can to retrieve your hawk."

And thereupon alighting, he tied his horse to the same tree, and prayed the lady to unarm him. So when he was unarmed, he climbed up and reached the falcon, and threw it to the lady.

And after getting off, he tied his horse to the same tree and asked the lady to help him take off his armor. Once he was unarmed, he climbed up, grabbed the falcon, and threw it to the lady.

Then suddenly came down, out of the wood, her husband, Sir Phelot, all armed, with a drawn sword in his hand, and said, "Oh, Sir Lancelot! now have I found thee as I would have thee!" and stood at the trunk of the tree to slay him.

Then suddenly, her husband, Sir Phelot, emerged from the woods, fully armed with a drawn sword in his hand, and said, "Oh, Sir Lancelot! Now I’ve found you just as I wanted!" He stood at the base of the tree ready to kill him.

"Ah, lady!" cried Sir Lancelot, "why have ye betrayed me?"

"Ah, lady!" yelled Sir Lancelot, "why have you betrayed me?"

"She hath done as I commanded her," said Sir Phelot, "and thine hour is come that thou must die."

"She has done what I told her to," said Sir Phelot, "and your time has come; you must die."

"It were shame," said Lancelot, "for an armed to slay an unarmed man."

"It would be shameful," said Lancelot, "for an armed man to kill an unarmed one."

"Thou hast no other favor from me," said Sir Phelot.

"You have no other favor from me," said Sir Phelot.

"Alas!" cried Sir Lancelot, "that ever any knight should die weaponless!" And looking overhead, he saw a great bough without leaves, and wrenched it off the tree, and suddenly leaped down. Then Sir Phelot struck at him eagerly, thinking to have slain him, but Sir Lancelot put aside the stroke with the bough, and therewith smote him on the side of the head, till he fell swooning to the ground. And tearing his sword from out his hands, he shore his neck through from the body. Then did the lady shriek dismally, and swooned as though she would die. But Sir Lancelot put on his armor, and with haste took his horse and departed thence, thanking God he had escaped that peril.

"Alas!" cried Sir Lancelot, "that any knight should die without a weapon!" Looking up, he saw a large, bare branch and broke it off the tree, then jumped down quickly. Sir Phelot attacked him eagerly, thinking he could kill him, but Sir Lancelot deflected the blow with the branch and struck him on the side of the head, knocking him to the ground in a faint. Then he wrenched the sword from Phelot's hands and cut his neck off from the body. The lady let out a terrible scream and fainted as if she would die. But Sir Lancelot put on his armor, quickly mounted his horse, and rode away, thanking God he had escaped that danger.

And as he rode through a valley, among many wild ways, he saw a knight, with a drawn sword, chasing a lady to slay her. And seeing Sir Lancelot, she cried and prayed to him to come and rescue her.

And as he rode through a valley, along various wild paths, he saw a knight with his sword drawn, chasing after a lady with the intent to kill her. Spotting Sir Lancelot, she cried out and begged him to come and save her.

At that he went up, saying, "Fie on thee, knight! why wilt thou slay this lady? Thou doest shame to thyself and all knights."

At that, he stood up and said, "Shame on you, knight! Why would you kill this lady? You're bringing shame on yourself and all knights."

"What hast thou to do between me and my wife?" replied the knight. "I will slay her in spite of thee."

"What do you have to do with me and my wife?" replied the knight. "I will kill her despite you."

"Thou shalt not harm her," said Lancelot, "till we have first fought together."

"Don't harm her," said Lancelot, "until we’ve fought together first."

"Sir," answered the knight, "thou doest ill, for this lady hath betrayed me."

"Sir," the knight replied, "you are wrong, because this lady has betrayed me."

"He speaketh falsely," said the lady, "for he is jealous of me without cause, as I shall answer before Heaven; but as thou art named the most worshipful knight in the world, I pray thee of thy true knighthood to save me, for he is without mercy."

"He's lying," said the lady, "because he's jealous of me for no reason, as I will answer to Heaven; but since you are known as the most honorable knight in the world, I ask you, for the sake of your true knighthood, to save me, because he shows no mercy."

"Be of good cheer," said Sir Lancelot; "it shall not lie within his power to harm thee."

"Stay positive," said Sir Lancelot; "he won't be able to hurt you."

"Sir," said the knight, "I will be ruled as ye will have me."

"Sir," said the knight, "I will do what you want me to."

So Sir Lancelot rode between the knight and the lady. And when they had ridden awhile, the knight cried out suddenly to Sir Lancelot to turn and see what men they were who came riding after them; and while Sir Lancelot, thinking not of treason, turned to look, the knight, with one great stroke, smote off the lady's head.

So Sir Lancelot rode between the knight and the lady. After they had ridden for a bit, the knight suddenly shouted at Sir Lancelot to turn around and see who was approaching them. While Sir Lancelot, not suspecting any betrayal, turned to look, the knight struck with one powerful blow and decapitated the lady.

Then was Sir Lancelot passing wroth, and cried, "Thou traitor! Thou hast shamed me forever!" and, alighting from his horse, he drew his sword to have slain him instantly; but the knight fell on the ground and clasped Sir Lancelot's knees, and cried out for mercy. "Thou shameful knight," answered Lancelot, "thou mayest have no mercy, for thou showedst none, therefore arise and fight with me."

Then Sir Lancelot was extremely angry and shouted, "You traitor! You've brought me shame forever!" He got off his horse and drew his sword, ready to kill him right away; but the knight fell to the ground and clasped Sir Lancelot's knees, pleading for mercy. "You shameful knight," Lancelot replied, "you don’t deserve mercy, because you showed none. So get up and fight me."

"Nay," said the knight, "I will not rise till thou dost grant me mercy."

"Nah," said the knight, "I won't get up until you show me mercy."

"Now will I deal fairly by thee," said Sir Lancelot; "I will unarm me to my shirt, and have my sword only in my hand, and if thou canst slay me thou shalt be quit forever."

"Now I'll treat you fairly," said Sir Lancelot. "I'll take off my armor down to my shirt and hold just my sword in my hand, and if you can kill me, you'll be free forever."

"That will I never do," said the knight.

"That I will never do," said the knight.

"Then," answered Sir Lancelot, "take this lady and the head, and bear it with thee, and swear to me upon thy sword never to rest until thou comest to Queen Guinevere."

"Then," replied Sir Lancelot, "take this lady and the head, and carry it with you, and promise me on your sword that you will never stop until you reach Queen Guinevere."

"That will I do," said he.

"Sure, I'll do that," he said.

"Now," said Sir Lancelot, "tell me thy name."

"Now," said Sir Lancelot, "what's your name?"

"It is Pedivere," answered the knight.

"It's Pedivere," said the knight.

"In a shameful hour wert thou born," said Sir Lancelot.

"In a shameful hour you were born," said Sir Lancelot.

So Sir Pedivere departed, bearing with him the dead lady and her head. And when he came to Winchester, where the Queen was with King Arthur, he told them all the truth; and afterwards did great and heavy penance many years, and became an holy hermit.

So Sir Pedivere left, taking the dead lady and her head with him. When he arrived in Winchester, where the Queen was with King Arthur, he shared the whole truth with them. Later, he did serious penance for many years and became a holy hermit.

So, two days before the Feast of Pentecost, Sir Lancelot returned to the court, and King Arthur was full glad of his coming. And when Sir Gawain, Sir Ewaine, Sir Sagramour, and Sir Ector, saw him in Sir Key's armor, they knew well it was he who had smitten them all down with one spear. Anon, came all the knights Sir Turquine had taken prisoners, and gave worship and honor to Sir Lancelot. Then Sir Key told the King how Sir Lancelot had rescued him when he was in near danger of his death; "and," said Sir Key, "he made the knights yield, not to himself, but me. And by Heaven! because Sir Lancelot took my armor and left me his, I rode in peace, and no man would have aught to do with me." Then came the knights who fought with Sir Lancelot at the long bridge and yielded themselves also to Sir Key, but he said nay, he had not fought with them. "It is Sir Lancelot," said he, "that overcame ye." Next came Sir Meliot de Logres, and told King Arthur how Sir Lancelot had saved him from death.

So, two days before the Feast of Pentecost, Sir Lancelot returned to the court, and King Arthur was very happy to see him. When Sir Gawain, Sir Ewaine, Sir Sagramour, and Sir Ector saw him in Sir Key's armor, they knew it was him who had knocked them all down with one spear. Soon, all the knights Sir Turquine had taken prisoner came and showed respect and honor to Sir Lancelot. Then Sir Key told the King how Sir Lancelot had rescued him when he was in serious danger of dying; "and," said Sir Key, "he made the knights surrender, not to him, but to me. And by Heaven! because Sir Lancelot took my armor and left me his, I rode in peace, and no one would have anything to do with me." Then the knights who fought with Sir Lancelot at the long bridge also surrendered to Sir Key, but he said no, he hadn’t fought with them. "It was Sir Lancelot," he said, "who defeated you." Next came Sir Meliot de Logres, and he told King Arthur how Sir Lancelot had saved him from death.

And so all Sir Lancelot's deeds and great adventures were made known; how the four sorceress-queens had him in prison; how he was delivered by the daughter of King Bagdemagus, and what deeds of arms he did at the tournament between the King of North Wales and King Bagdemagus. And so, at that festival, Sir Lancelot had the greatest name of any knight in all the world, and by high and low was he the most honored of all men.

And so all of Sir Lancelot's feats and amazing adventures were revealed; how the four sorceress queens had imprisoned him; how he was rescued by the daughter of King Bagdemagus, and what heroic acts he performed at the tournament between the King of North Wales and King Bagdemagus. At that event, Sir Lancelot was renowned as the greatest knight in the entire world, honored by everyone, both high and low.


XI

THE ADVENTURES OF SIR BEAUMAINS OR SIR GARETH

Again King Arthur held the Feast of Pentecost, with all the Table Round, and after his custom sat in the banquet hall, before beginning meat, waiting for some adventure. Then came there to the king a squire and said, "Lord, now may ye go to meat, for here a damsel cometh with some strange adventure." So the king was glad, and sat down to meat.

Again, King Arthur held the Feast of Pentecost with all the Knights of the Round Table. As was his custom, he sat in the banquet hall, waiting for the meal to start and for some adventure to present itself. Then a squire approached the king and said, "My lord, you may begin your meal now, for here comes a lady with a strange quest." The king was pleased and sat down to eat.

Anon the damsel came in and saluted him, praying him for succor. "What wilt thou?" said the king. "Lord," answered she, "my mistress is a lady of great renown, but is at this time besieged by a tyrant, who will not suffer her to go out of her castle; and because here in thy court the knights are called the noblest in the world, I come to pray thee for thy succor." "Where dwelleth your lady?" answered the king. "What is her name, and who is he that hath besieged her?" "For her name," replied the damsel, "as yet I may not tell it; but she is a lady of worship and great lands. The tyrant that besiegeth her and wasteth her lands is called the Red Knight of the Redlands." "I know him not," said Arthur. "But I know him, lord," said Sir Gawain, "and he is one of the most perilous knights in all the world. Men say he hath the strength of seven; and from him I myself once hardly escaped with life." "Fair damsel," said the king, "there be here many knights that would gladly do their uttermost to rescue your lady, but unless ye tell me her name, and where she dwelleth, none of my knights shall go with you by my leave."

Soon, the young woman entered and greeted him, asking for help. "What do you want?" said the king. "Sir," she replied, "my mistress is a well-known lady, but she is currently under siege by a tyrant who won’t let her leave her castle; and since the knights here in your court are considered the noblest in the world, I come to ask for your assistance." "Where does your lady live?" asked the king. "What is her name, and who is the one that has besieged her?" "As for her name," the young woman answered, "I cannot reveal it yet; but she is a respected lady with large estates. The tyrant besieging her and ruining her lands is known as the Red Knight of the Redlands." "I do not know him," said Arthur. "But I know him, my lord," replied Sir Gawain, "and he is one of the most dangerous knights in the world. People say he has the strength of seven; and I barely escaped with my life from him once." "Fair young woman," said the king, "there are many knights here who would gladly do their best to save your lady, but unless you tell me her name and where she lives, none of my knights shall go with you with my permission."

Now, there was a stripling at the court called Beaumains, who served in the king's kitchen, a fair youth and of great stature. Twelve months before this time he had come to the king as he sat at meat, at Whitsuntide, and prayed three gifts of him. And being asked what gifts, he answered, "As for the first gift I will ask it now, but the other two gifts I will ask on this day twelve months, wheresoever ye hold your high feast." Then said King Arthur, "What is thy first request?" "This, lord," said he, "that thou wilt give me meat and drink enough for twelve months from this time, and then will I ask my other two gifts." And the king seeing that he was a goodly youth, and deeming that he was come of honorable blood, had granted his desire, and given him into the charge of Sir Key, the steward. But Sir Key scorned and mocked the youth, calling Beaumains, because his hands were large and fair, and putting him into the kitchen, where he had served for twelve months as a scullion, and, in spite of all his churlish treatment, had faithfully obeyed Sir Key. But Sir Lancelot and Sir Gawain were angered when they saw Sir Key so churlish to a youth that had so worshipful a bearing, and ofttimes had they given him gold and clothing.

Now, there was a young man at the court named Beaumains, who worked in the king's kitchen, a handsome and tall youth. Twelve months prior, he had approached the king while he was eating at Whitsuntide and requested three gifts from him. When asked what those gifts were, he replied, "I'll ask for the first one now, but I'll request the other two on this day next year, wherever you hold your grand feast." King Arthur then asked, "What is your first request?" "This, my lord," he said, "that you provide me with enough food and drink for twelve months from now, and then I'll ask for my other two gifts." The king, seeing the young man was good-looking and believing he came from noble lineage, granted his wish and placed him under the care of Sir Key, the steward. However, Sir Key mocked the youth, calling him Beaumains because of his large and fair hands, and assigned him to the kitchen, where he had served as a scullion for twelve months. Despite the rude treatment, he remained obedient to Sir Key. Sir Lancelot and Sir Gawain were angered when they saw Sir Key being so disrespectful to a youth with such a noble demeanor and often gave him gold and clothing.

And now at this time came young Beaumains to the king, while the damsel was there, and said, "Lord, now I thank thee well and heartily that I have been twelve months kept in thy kitchen, and have had full sustenance. Now will I ask my two remaining gifts." "Ask," said King Arthur, "on my good faith." "These, lord," said he, "shall be my two gifts—the one, that thou wilt grant me this adventure of the damsel, for to me of right it belongeth; and the other, that thou wilt bid Sir Lancelot make me a knight, for of him only will I have that honor; and I pray that he may ride after me and make me a knight when I require him." "Be it as thou wilt," replied the king. But thereupon the damsel was full wroth, and said, "Shall I have a kitchen page for this adventure?" and so she took horse and departed.

And now, at that moment, young Beaumains approached the king, while the young lady was present, and said, "Lord, I genuinely thank you for keeping me in your kitchen for twelve months and providing me with plenty of food. Now I would like to request my two remaining gifts." "Ask," said King Arthur, "on my word." "These, my lord," he replied, "will be my two gifts—first, that you grant me this quest with the young lady, as it rightly belongs to me; and second, that you ask Sir Lancelot to make me a knight, for he is the only one I wish to give me that honor; and I request that he rides after me and knights me when I need him." "So be it," the king replied. But the young lady became very angry and said, "Am I to have a kitchen page for this quest?" and then she got on her horse and rode away.

Then came one to Beaumains, and told him that a dwarf with a horse and armor were waiting for him. And all men marveled whence these things came. But when he was on horseback and armed, scarce any one at the court was a goodlier man than he. And coming into the hall, he took his leave of the king and Sir Gawain, and prayed Sir Lancelot to follow him. So he rode after the damsel, and many of the court went out to see him, so richly arrayed and horsed; yet he had neither shield nor spear. Then Sir Key cried, "I also will ride after the kitchen boy, and see whether he will obey me now." And taking his horse, he rode after him, and said, "Know ye not me, Beaumains?" "Yea," said he, "I know thee for an ungentle knight, therefore beware of me." Then Sir Key put his spear in rest and ran at him, but Beaumains rushed upon him with his sword in his hand, and therewith, putting aside the spear, struck Sir Key so sorely in the side, that he fell down, as if dead. Then he alighted, and took his shield and spear, and bade his dwarf ride upon Sir Key's horse.

Then someone came to Beaumains and told him that a dwarf with a horse and armor was waiting for him. Everyone marveled at where these things had come from. But once he was on horseback and geared up, hardly anyone at the court looked better than he did. Upon entering the hall, he took his leave of the king and Sir Gawain, and asked Sir Lancelot to follow him. So he rode after the lady, and many from the court went out to see him, so richly dressed and mounted; yet he had neither shield nor spear. Then Sir Kay shouted, "I’m going to ride after that kitchen boy and see if he’ll listen to me now." He took his horse and rode after him, saying, "Don’t you know me, Beaumains?" "Yes," he replied, "I know you as an ungracious knight, so be careful with me." Then Sir Kay readied his spear and charged at him, but Beaumains rushed at him with his sword drawn and, with a swift movement, knocked aside the spear and struck Sir Kay so hard in the side that he fell down as if dead. Then he dismounted, took his shield and spear, and told his dwarf to ride on Sir Kay's horse.

By this time, Sir Lancelot had come up, and Beaumains offering to tilt with him, they both made ready. And their horses came together so fiercely that both fell to the earth, full sorely bruised. Then they arose, and Beaumains, putting up his shield before him, offered to fight Sir Lancelot, on foot. So they rushed upon each other, striking, and thrusting, and parrying, for the space of an hour. And Lancelot marveled at the strength of Beaumains, for he fought more like a giant than a man, and his fighting was passing fierce and terrible. So, at the last, he said, "Fight not so sorely, Beaumains; our quarrel is not such that we may not now cease." "True," answered Beaumains; "yet it doth me good to feel thy might, though I have not yet proved my uttermost." "By my faith," said Lancelot, "I had as much as I could do to save myself from you unshamed, therefore be in no doubt of any earthly knight." "May I, then, stand as a proved knight?" said Beaumains. "For that will I be thy warrant," answered Lancelot. "Then, I pray thee," said he, "give me the order of knighthood." "First, then, must thou tell me of thy name and kindred," said Sir Lancelot. "If thou wilt tell them to no other, I will tell thee," answered he. "My name is Gareth of Orkney, and I am own brother to Sir Gawain." "Ah!" said Sir Lancelot, "at that am I full glad; for, truly, I deemed thee to be of gentle blood." So then he knighted Beaumains, and, after that, they parted company, and Sir Lancelot, returning to the court, took up Sir Key on his shield. And hardly did Sir Key escape with his life, from the wound Beaumains had given him; but all men blamed him for his ungentle treatment of so brave a knight.

By this time, Sir Lancelot had arrived, and Beaumains, offering to compete with him, they both got ready. Their horses collided so violently that both fell to the ground, badly bruised. They then got up, and Beaumains, raising his shield in front of him, challenged Sir Lancelot to fight on foot. They charged at each other, striking, thrusting, and parrying for about an hour. Lancelot was amazed by Beaumains' strength, as he fought more like a giant than a man, and his fighting was incredibly fierce and intense. Finally, he said, "Don't fight so fiercely, Beaumains; our argument isn’t such that we can't stop now." "True," Beaumains replied; "but it feels good to feel your strength, even though I haven't reached my full potential yet." "I swear," Lancelot said, "it took everything I had to defend myself against you without shame, so don’t doubt any earthly knight." "So can I consider myself a proven knight?" Beaumains asked. "For that, I will be your guarantee," Lancelot replied. "Then, please," he said, "give me the title of knight." "First, you need to tell me your name and lineage," Sir Lancelot said. "If you promise not to tell anyone else, I will," he answered. "My name is Gareth of Orkney, and I'm the brother of Sir Gawain." "Ah!" said Sir Lancelot, "I’m very glad to hear that; I truly thought you were of noble blood." Then he knighted Beaumains, and after that, they parted ways. Sir Lancelot returned to the court carrying Sir Kay on his shield. Sir Kay barely escaped with his life from the wound Beaumains had given him; however, everyone criticized him for his ungentle treatment of such a brave knight.

Then Sir Beaumains rode forward, and soon overtook the damsel; but she said to him, in scorn, "Return again, base kitchen page! What art thou, but a washer-up of dishes!" "Damsel," said he, "say to me what thou wilt, I will not leave thee; for I have undertaken to King Arthur to relieve thy adventure, and I will finish it to the end, or die." "Thou finish my adventure!" said she—"anon, thou shalt meet one, whose face thou wilt not even dare to look at." "I shall attempt it," answered he. So, as they rode thus, into a wood, there met them a man, fleeing, as for his life. "Whither fleest thou?" said Sir Beaumains. "O lord!" he answered, "help me; for, in a valley hard by, there are six thieves, who have taken my lord, and bound him, and I fear will slay him." "Bring me thither," said Sir Beaumains. So they rode to the place, and Sir Beaumains rushed after the thieves, and smote one, at the first stroke, so that he died; and then, with two other blows, slew a second and third. Then fled the other three, and Sir Beaumains rode after them, and overtook and slew them all. Then he returned and unbound the knight. And the knight thanked him, and prayed him to ride to his castle, where he would reward him. "Sir," answered Sir Beaumains, "I will have no reward of thee, for but this day was I made knight by the most noble Sir Lancelot; and besides, I must go with this damsel." Then the knight begged the damsel to rest that night at his castle. So they all rode thither, and ever the damsel scoffed at Sir Beaumains as a kitchen boy, and laughed at him before the knight their host, so that he set his meat before him at a lower table, as though he were not of their company.

Then Sir Beaumains rode ahead and quickly caught up to the damsel, but she mockingly said to him, "Go back, you lowly kitchen servant! What are you, but someone who cleans dishes?" "Damsel," he replied, "you can say whatever you want, but I won’t leave you. I’ve promised King Arthur that I’ll help you with your quest, and I’m going to see it through to the end, or die trying." "You finish my quest!" she scoffed—"soon, you’ll face someone whose face you won’t even dare to look at." "I’ll try it," he answered. As they rode on into a forest, they saw a man fleeing for his life. "Where are you running to?" Sir Beaumains asked. "Oh, lord!" the man replied, "help me! In a nearby valley, there are six thieves who have captured my lord, and they've tied him up. I'm afraid they'll kill him." "Take me there," said Sir Beaumains. So they rode to the location, and Sir Beaumains charged at the thieves, striking one with a blow that killed him instantly; then he took down a second and a third with two more strikes. The last three fled, but Sir Beaumains chased them down and killed them all. Afterward, he returned and untied the knight. The knight thanked him and invited him to his castle for a reward. "Sir," Sir Beaumains replied, "I don’t want anything from you, as I was just made a knight by the honorable Sir Lancelot today. Besides, I must accompany this damsel." The knight then asked the damsel to spend the night at his castle. They all rode there, and the damsel continued to mock Sir Beaumains, calling him a kitchen boy and laughing at him in front of their host, so that the knight set his meal before him at a lower table, treating him as if he were not part of their company.

And on the morrow, the damsel and Sir Beaumains took their leave of the knight, and thanking him departed. Then they rode on their way till they came to a great forest, through which flowed a river, and there was but one passage over it, whereat stood two knights armed to hinder the way. "Wilt thou match those two knights," said the damsel to Sir Beaumains, "or return again?" "I would not return," said he, "though they were six." Therewith he galloped into the water, and swam his horse into the middle of the stream. And there, in the river, one of the knights met him, and they brake their spears together, and then drew their swords, and smote fiercely at each other. And at the last, Sir Beaumains struck the other mightily upon the helm, so that he fell down stunned into the water, and was drowned. Then Sir Beaumains spurred his horse on to the land, where instantly the other knight fell on him. And they also brake their spears upon each other, and then drew their swords, and fought savagely and long together. And after many blows, Sir Beaumains clove through the knight's skull down to the shoulders. Then rode Sir Beaumains to the damsel, but ever she still scoffed at him, and said, "Alas! that a kitchen page should chance to slay two such brave knights! Thou deemest now that thou hast done a mighty deed, but it is not so; for the first knight's horse stumbled, and thus was he drowned—not by thy strength; and as for the second knight, thou wentest by chance behind him, and didst kill him shamefully." "Damsel," said Sir Beaumains, "say what ye list, I care not so I may win your lady; and wouldst thou give me but fair language, all my care were past; for whatsoever knights I meet, I fear them not." "Thou shalt see knights that shall abate thy boast, base kitchen knave," replied she; "yet say I this for thine advantage, for if thou followest me thou wilt be surely slain, since I see all thou doest is but by chance, and not by thy own prowess." "Well, damsel," said he, "say what ye will, wherever ye go I will follow."

And the next day, the girl and Sir Beaumains said goodbye to the knight and thanked him before leaving. They continued on their journey until they reached a large forest where a river flowed, and there was only one way across it, guarded by two knights in armor. "Are you going to take on those two knights," the girl asked Sir Beaumains, "or turn back?" "I won't turn back," he replied, "even if there were six of them." With that, he charged into the water and swam his horse into the middle of the stream. There, one of the knights confronted him, and they broke their spears against each other before drawing their swords and fighting fiercely. Eventually, Sir Beaumains landed a powerful blow on the knight's helmet, knocking him out and causing him to drown. Sir Beaumains then urged his horse to the shore, but the other knight immediately attacked him. They broke their spears on each other as well, then drew their swords and fought savagely for a long time. After many strikes, Sir Beaumains cleaved through the knight's skull down to his shoulders. Then he rode back to the girl, but she continued to mock him, saying, "Oh no! A kitchen page has managed to kill two brave knights! You think you’ve accomplished something great, but that’s not true; the first knight’s horse stumbled, which is why he drowned—not because of your strength. And about the second knight, you happened to sneak up on him and killed him dishonorably." "Girl," said Sir Beaumains, "say whatever you want, I don’t care as long as I can win your lady; and if you would just speak kindly to me, then all my worries would be gone, because I’m not afraid of any knights I meet." "You’ll encounter knights who will put you in your place, you lowly kitchen servant," she shot back; "but I'm saying this for your own good, because if you keep following me, you’ll surely be killed, as I see everything you do is just by chance, not due to your own skill." "Well, girl," he said, "say what you want, I will follow you wherever you go."

So they rode on until the eventide, and still the damsel evermore kept chiding Sir Beaumains. Then came they to a black space of land, whereon was a black hawthorn tree, and on the tree there hung a black banner, and on the other side was a black shield and spear, and by them a great black horse, covered with silk; and hard by sat a knight armed in black armor, whose name was the Knight of the Blacklands. When the damsel saw him, she cried out to Beaumains, "Flee down the valley, for thy horse is not saddled!" "Wilt thou forever deem me coward?" answered he. With that came the Black Knight to the damsel, and said, "Fair damsel, hast thou brought this knight from Arthur's court to be thy champion?" "Not so, fair knight," said she; "he is but a kitchen knave." "Then wherefore cometh he in such array?" said he; "it is a shame that he should bear thee company." "I cannot be delivered from him," answered she: "for in spite of me he rideth with me; and would to Heaven you would put him from me, or now slay him, for he hath slain two knights at the river passage yonder, and done many marvelous deeds through pure mischance." "I marvel," said the Black Knight, "that any man of worship will fight with him." "They know him not," said the damsel, "and think, because he rideth with me, that he is well born." "Truly, he hath a goodly person, and is likely to be a strong man," replied the knight; "but since he is no man of worship, he shall leave his horse and armor with me, for it were a shame for me to do him more harm."

So they rode on until evening, and the damsel kept criticizing Sir Beaumains. Then they arrived at a dark patch of land, where there was a black hawthorn tree, with a black banner hanging from it. On the other side was a black shield and spear, and next to them stood a large black horse, covered in silk. Sitting nearby was a knight in black armor, known as the Knight of the Blacklands. When the damsel saw him, she shouted to Beaumains, "Run down the valley, because your horse isn't saddled!" "Will you always think I'm a coward?" he replied. Just then, the Black Knight approached the damsel and asked, "Fair damsel, did you bring this knight from Arthur's court to be your champion?" "Not at all, fair knight," she replied; "he's just a kitchen servant." "Then why is he dressed like that?" the Knight asked. "It's shameful that he should be with you." "I can't get rid of him," she answered. "Despite my wishes, he's riding with me; I wish to Heaven you would help me get rid of him or kill him, for he has slain two knights at the river crossing over there, and has done many remarkable things purely by accident." "I find it strange," said the Black Knight, "that any man of honor would fight with him." "They don't know him," said the damsel, "and think that because he rides with me, he must be well-born." "Truly, he has a handsome appearance and seems likely to be strong," replied the knight; "but since he is not a man of honor, he shall leave his horse and armor with me, for it would be shameful for me to do him any more harm."

When Sir Beaumains heard him speak thus, he said, "Horse or armor gettest thou none of me, Sir knight, save thou winnest them with thy hands; therefore defend thyself, and let me see what thou canst do." "How sayest thou?" answered the Black Knight. "Now quit this lady also, for it beseemeth not a kitchen knave like thee to ride with such a lady." "I am of higher lineage than thou," said Sir Beaumains, "and will straightway prove it on thy body." Then furiously they drove their horses at each other, and came together as it had been thunder. But the Black Knight's spear brake short, and Sir Beaumains thrust him through the side, and his spear breaking at the head, left its point sticking fast in the Black Knight's body. Yet did the Black Knight draw his sword, and smite at Sir Beaumains with many fierce and bitter blows; but after they had fought an hour and more, he fell down from his horse in a swoon, and forthwith died. Then Sir Beaumains lighted down and armed himself in the Black Knight's armor, and rode on after the damsel. But notwithstanding all his valor, still she scoffed at him, and said, "Away! for thou savorest ever of the kitchen. Alas! that such a knave should by mishap destroy so good a knight; yet once again I counsel thee to flee, for hard by is a knight who shall repay thee!" "It may chance that I am beaten or slain," answered Sir Beaumains, "but I warn thee, fair damsel, that I will not flee away, nor leave thy company, or my quest, for all that ye can say."

When Sir Beaumains heard him speak like that, he said, "You won't get any horse or armor from me, Sir Knight, unless you earn it with your own strength; so defend yourself and show me what you can do." "What did you say?" replied the Black Knight. "Now let this lady go, because a kitchen servant like you has no business riding with someone like her." "I come from a higher lineage than you," Sir Beaumains said, "and I'll prove it right on your body." Then they charged at each other fiercely, colliding as if it were thunder. But the Black Knight's spear broke short, and Sir Beaumains drove his spear through the Knight's side, the head breaking off and leaving the point lodged firmly in the Black Knight's body. Still, the Black Knight drew his sword and struck at Sir Beaumains with many fierce and bitter blows; but after they fought for over an hour, he fell from his horse, unconscious, and quickly died. Sir Beaumains then dismounted, put on the Black Knight's armor, and rode after the lady. However, despite all his bravery, she still mocked him, saying, "Leave! You always smell like the kitchen. It's a shame that a rogue like you should accidentally take down such a good knight. But once again, I advise you to flee, because there’s a knight nearby who will deal with you!" "I might get beaten or killed," Sir Beaumains replied, "but I warn you, fair damsel, that I will not run away or leave your company or my quest, no matter what you say."

Anon, as they rode, they saw a knight come swiftly towards them, dressed all in green, who, calling to the damsel said, "Is that my brother, the Black Knight, that ye have brought with you?" "Nay, and alas!" said she, "this kitchen knave hath slain thy brother through mischance." "Alas!" said the Green Knight, "that such a noble knight as he was should be slain by a knave's hand. Traitor!" cried he to Sir Beaumains, "thou shalt die for this! Sir Pereard was my brother, and a full noble knight." "I defy thee," said Sir Beaumains, "for I slew him knightly and not shamefully." Then the Green Knight rode to a thorn whereon hung a green horn, and, when he blew three notes, there came three damsels forth, who quickly armed him, and brought him a great horse and a green shield and spear. Then did they run at one another with their fullest might, and break their spears asunder; and, drawing their swords, they closed in fight, and sorely smote and wounded each other with many grievous blows.

As they rode along, they saw a knight coming quickly towards them, dressed all in green. He called to the lady, "Is that my brother, the Black Knight, that you've brought with you?" "No, and unfortunately!" she replied. "This kitchen servant has accidentally killed your brother." "Oh no!" said the Green Knight, "that such a noble knight as he was should be killed by a servant’s hand. Traitor!" he shouted at Sir Beaumains, "you will pay for this! Sir Pereard was my brother, and a truly noble knight." "I challenge you," said Sir Beaumains, "for I killed him honorably, not disgracefully." The Green Knight then rode to a thorn tree where a green horn hung, and when he blew three notes, three ladies came out, quickly gearing him up and bringing him a large horse, a green shield, and a spear. They then charged at each other with all their strength, shattering their spears; and, drawing their swords, they engaged in a fierce battle, wounding each other with many heavy blows.

At last, Sir Beaumains' horse jostled against the Green Knight's horse, and overthrew him. Then both alighted, and, hurtling together like mad lions, fought a great while on foot. But the damsel cheered the Green Knight, and said, "My lord, why wilt thou let a kitchen knave so long stand up against thee?" Hearing these words, he was ashamed, and gave Sir Beaumains such a mighty stroke as clave his shield asunder. When Sir Beaumains heard the damsel's words, and felt that blow, he waxed passing wroth, and gave the Green Knight such a buffet on the helm that he fell on his knees, and with another blow Sir Beaumains threw him on the ground. Then the Green Knight yielded, and prayed him to spare his life. "All thy prayers are vain," said he, "unless this damsel who came with me pray for thee." "That will I never do, base kitchen knave," said she. "Then shall he die," said Beaumains. "Alas! fair lady," said the Green Knight, "suffer me not to die for a word! O, Sir knight," cried he to Beaumains, "give me my life, and I will ever do thee homage; and thirty knights, who owe me service, shall give allegiance to thee." "All availeth not," answered Sir Beaumains, "unless the damsel ask me for thy life"; and thereupon he made as though he would have slain him. Then cried the damsel, "Slay him not; for if thou do thou shalt repent it." "Damsel," said Sir Beaumains, "at thy command, he shall obtain his life. Arise, Sir knight of the green armor, I release thee!" Then the Green Knight knelt at his feet, and did him homage with his words. "Lodge with me this night," said he, "and to-morrow will I guide ye through the forest." So, taking their horses, they rode to his castle, which was hard by.

At last, Sir Beaumains' horse bumped against the Green Knight's horse and knocked him over. Then both got off their horses and, clashing together like crazy lions, fought for a long time on foot. But the lady encouraged the Green Knight, saying, "My lord, why do you let this kitchen servant stand against you for so long?" Hearing this, he felt ashamed and struck Sir Beaumains with such force that his shield shattered. When Sir Beaumains heard the lady's words and felt that blow, he became extremely angry and hit the Green Knight so hard on the helmet that he fell to his knees, and with another strike, Sir Beaumains knocked him to the ground. Then the Green Knight surrendered and begged for his life. "All your pleas are useless," he replied, "unless this lady who came with me asks for your life." "I will never do that, you lowly kitchen servant," she said. "Then he shall die," said Beaumains. "Alas! fair lady," said the Green Knight, "don't let me die over a word! O, Sir knight," he cried to Beaumains, "give me my life, and I will always owe you my loyalty; and thirty knights who serve me will pledge their allegiance to you." "None of that matters," answered Sir Beaumains, "unless the lady asks me for your life." Then he acted as if he would kill him. The lady shouted, "Don't kill him; if you do, you'll regret it." "Lady," said Sir Beaumains, "at your command, he shall have his life. Get up, Sir knight of the green armor; I release you!" Then the Green Knight knelt at his feet and pledged his loyalty with his words. "Stay with me tonight," he said, "and tomorrow I will guide you through the forest." So, after taking their horses, they rode to his nearby castle.

Yet still did the damsel rebuke and scoff at Sir Beaumains, and would not suffer him to sit at her table. "I marvel," said the Green Knight to her, "that ye thus chide so noble a knight, for truly I know none to match him; and be sure, that whatsoever he appeareth now, he will prove, at the end, of noble blood and royal lineage." But of all this would the damsel take no heed, and ceased not to mock at Sir Beaumains. On the morrow, they arose and heard mass; and when they had broken their fast, took their horses and rode on their way, the Green Knight conveying them through the forest. Then, when he had led them for a while, he said to Sir Beaumains, "My lord, my thirty knights and I shall always be at thy command whensoever thou shalt send for us." "It is well said," replied he; "and when I call upon you, you shall yield yourself and all your knights unto King Arthur." "That will we gladly do," said the Green Knight, and so departed.

Yet the lady continued to scold and mock Sir Beaumains, refusing to let him sit at her table. "I'm surprised," said the Green Knight to her, "that you berate such a noble knight, for I truly know no one who can match him; and be sure, that no matter how he appears now, he will ultimately prove to be of noble blood and royal lineage." But the lady paid no attention to this and kept mocking Sir Beaumains. The next day, they got up and attended mass; and after they had eaten breakfast, they took their horses and continued on their journey, with the Green Knight guiding them through the forest. After leading them for a while, he said to Sir Beaumains, "My lord, my thirty knights and I will always be at your service whenever you call for us." "Well said," Sir Beaumains replied; "and when I call upon you, you will bring yourself and all your knights to King Arthur." "We will gladly do that," said the Green Knight, and then he left.

And the damsel rode on before Sir Beaumains, and said to him, "Why dost thou follow me, thou kitchen boy? I counsel thee to throw aside thy spear and shield, and flee betimes, for wert thou as mighty as Sir Lancelot or Sir Tristram, thou shouldest not pass a valley near this place, called the Pass Perilous." "Damsel," answered he, "let him that feareth flee; as for me, it were indeed a shameful thing to turn after so long a journey." As he spake, they came upon a tower as white as snow, with mighty battlements, and double moats round it, and over the tower-gate hung fifty shields of divers colors. Before the tower walls, they saw a fair meadow, wherein were many knights and squires in pavilions, for on the morrow there was a tournament at that castle.

And the girl rode ahead of Sir Beaumains and said to him, "Why are you following me, you kitchen boy? I suggest you drop your spear and shield and run away quickly, because even if you were as strong as Sir Lancelot or Sir Tristram, you shouldn't venture near this valley, called the Pass Perilous." "Girl," he replied, "let those who are afraid flee; for me, it would be a disgrace to turn back after such a long journey." As he spoke, they arrived at a tower as white as snow, with strong battlements and double moats surrounding it, and above the tower gate hung fifty shields of different colors. In front of the tower walls, they saw a lovely meadow filled with many knights and squires in pavilions, because there was going to be a tournament at that castle the next day.

Then the lord of the castle, seeing a knight armed at all points, with a damsel and a page, riding towards the tower, came forth to meet them; and his horse and harness, with his shield and spear, were all of a red color. When he came near Sir Beaumains, and saw his armor all of black, he thought him his own brother, the Black Knight, and so cried aloud, "Brother! what do ye here, within these borders?" "Nay!" said the damsel, "it is not thy brother, but a kitchen knave of Arthur's court, who hath slain thy brother, and overcome thy other brother also, the Green Knight." "Now do I defy thee!" cried the Red Knight to Sir Beaumains, and put his spear in rest and spurred his horse. Then both knights turned back a little space, and ran together with all their might, till their horses fell to the earth. Then, with their swords, they fought fiercely for the space of three hours. And at last, Sir Beaumains overcame his foe, and smote him to the ground. Then the Red Knight prayed his mercy, and said, "Slay me not, noble knight, and I will yield to thee with sixty knights that do my bidding." "All avails not," answered Sir Beaumains, "save this damsel pray me to release thee." Then did he lift his sword to slay him; but the damsel cried aloud, "Slay him not, Beaumains, for he is a noble knight." Then Sir Beaumains bade him rise up and thank the damsel, which straightway he did, and afterwards invited them to his castle, and made them goodly cheer.

Then the lord of the castle, seeing a fully armored knight accompanied by a lady and a page riding toward the tower, went out to meet them; his horse and armor, along with his shield and spear, were all red. When he got closer to Sir Beaumains and saw his black armor, he thought he was his brother, the Black Knight, and shouted, "Brother! What are you doing here, in this land?" "No!" said the lady, "It's not your brother, but a kitchen servant from Arthur's court, who has killed your brother and defeated your other brother, the Green Knight." "Now I defy you!" shouted the Red Knight at Sir Beaumains, then he positioned his spear and urged his horse forward. Both knights turned back a little and charged at each other with all their strength until their horses fell to the ground. Then, with their swords, they fought fiercely for three hours. Finally, Sir Beaumains defeated his opponent and knocked him down. The Red Knight begged for mercy, saying, "Don't kill me, noble knight, and I will surrender to you with sixty knights who will do my bidding." "That won't matter," replied Sir Beaumains, "unless this lady asks me to release you." Then he raised his sword to strike him down; but the lady shouted, "Don't kill him, Beaumains, for he is a noble knight." Then Sir Beaumains told him to get up and thank the lady, which he immediately did, and afterwards invited them to his castle and treated them with great hospitality.

But notwithstanding all Sir Beaumains' mighty deeds, the damsel ceased not to revile and chide him, at which the Red Knight marveled much; and caused his sixty knights to watch Sir Beaumains, that no villainy might happen to him. And on the morrow, they heard mass and broke their fast, and the Red Knight came before Sir Beaumains, with his sixty knights, and proffered him homage and fealty. "I thank thee," answered he; "and when I call upon thee thou shalt come before my lord King Arthur at his court, and yield yourselves to him." "That will we surely do," said the Red Knight. So Sir Beaumains and the damsel departed.

But despite all of Sir Beaumains' impressive accomplishments, the damsel continued to insult and scold him, which puzzled the Red Knight. He had his sixty knights keep an eye on Sir Beaumains to ensure no harm would come to him. The next day, they attended mass and had breakfast, and then the Red Knight approached Sir Beaumains, along with his sixty knights, to offer his loyalty and service. "Thank you," Sir Beaumains replied, "and when I need you, you will come before my lord King Arthur at his court and present yourselves to him." "We will definitely do that," said the Red Knight. So Sir Beaumains and the damsel continued on their way.

And as she constantly reviled him and tormented him, he said to her, "Damsel, ye are discourteous thus always to rebuke me, for I have done you service; and for all your threats of knights that shall destroy me, all they who come lie in the dust before me. Now, therefore, I pray you rebuke me no more till you see me beaten or a recreant, and then bid me go from you." "There shall soon meet thee a knight who shall repay thee all thy deeds, thou boaster," answered she, "for, save King Arthur, he is the man of most worship in the world." "It will be the greater honor to encounter him," said Sir Beaumains.

And as she constantly insulted and tormented him, he said to her, "Lady, it's really rude of you to keep criticizing me when I've helped you. And for all your threats about knights who will defeat me, everyone who comes before me ends up in the dust. So please, don't scold me again until you see me defeated or dishonored, and then you can tell me to leave." "Soon you'll meet a knight who will make you pay for all your arrogance, you show-off," she replied, "because, except for King Arthur, he's the most respected man in the world." "It will be even more of an honor to face him," said Sir Beaumains.

Soon after, they saw before them a city passing fair, and between them and the city was a meadow newly mown, wherein were many goodly tents. "Seest thou yonder blue pavilion?" said the damsel to Sir Beaumains; "it is Sir Perseant's, the lord of that great city, whose custom is, in all fair weather, to lie in this meadow, and joust with his knights."

Soon after, they saw an incredibly beautiful city in front of them, and between them and the city was a freshly cut meadow filled with many nice tents. "Do you see that blue tent over there?" the lady said to Sir Beaumains; "it's Sir Perseant's, the lord of that great city, who usually stays in this meadow during good weather to joust with his knights."

And as she spake, Sir Perseant, who had espied them coming, sent a messenger to meet Sir Beaumains, and to ask him if he came in war or peace. "Say to thy lord," he answered, "that I care not whether of the twain it be." So when the messenger gave this reply, Sir Perseant came out to fight with Sir Beaumains. And making ready, they rode their steeds against each other; and when their spears were shivered asunder, they fought with their swords. And for more than two hours did they hack and hew at each other, till their shields and hauberks were all dented with many blows, and they themselves were sorely wounded. And at the last, Sir Beaumains smote Sir Perseant on the helm, so that he fell groveling on the earth. And when he unlaced his helm to slay him, the damsel prayed for his life. "That will I grant gladly," answered Sir Beaumains, "for it were pity such a noble knight should die." "Gramercy!" said Sir Perseant, "for now I certainly know that it was thou who slewest my brother, the Black Knight, Sir Pereard; and overcame my brothers, the Green Knight, Sir Pertolope, and the Red Knight, Sir Perimones; and since thou hast overcome me also, I will do thee homage and fealty, and place at thy command one hundred knights to do thy bidding."

And as she spoke, Sir Perseant, who had spotted them approaching, sent a messenger to meet Sir Beaumains and ask whether he came for war or peace. "Tell your lord," he replied, "that I don't care which it is." When the messenger relayed this response, Sir Perseant came out to fight Sir Beaumains. Ready for battle, they rode towards each other, and when their spears broke, they fought with swords. They fought fiercely for over two hours, hacking at each other until their shields and armor were battered and they were both seriously wounded. In the end, Sir Beaumains struck Sir Perseant on the helmet, knocking him to the ground. As he lifted his helmet to kill him, the lady pleaded for his life. "I will gladly grant that," said Sir Beaumains, "for it would be a shame for such a noble knight to die." "Thank you!" said Sir Perseant, "for now I know for sure that you were the one who killed my brother, the Black Knight, Sir Pereard; and defeated my other brothers, the Green Knight, Sir Pertolope, and the Red Knight, Sir Perimones; and since you have also bested me, I will pledge my loyalty and service to you, placing one hundred knights at your command to do your bidding."

But when the damsel saw Sir Perseant overthrown, she marveled greatly at the might of Sir Beaumains, and said, "What manner of man may ye be, for now am I sure that ye be come of noble blood? And truly, never did woman revile knight as I have done thee, and yet ye have ever courteously borne with me, which surely never had been were ye not of gentle blood and lineage."

But when the young woman saw Sir Perseant defeated, she was greatly amazed by Sir Beaumains' strength and said, "What kind of man are you? Now I'm certain you come from noble blood. Honestly, I've never insulted a knight the way I have with you, and yet you've always treated me with kindness, which surely wouldn't have happened if you weren't of noble birth."

"Lady," replied Sir Beaumains, "a knight is little worth who may not bear with a damsel; and so whatsoever ye said to me I took no heed, save only that at times when your scorn angered me, it made me all the stronger against those with whom I fought, and thus have ye furthered me in my battles. But whether I be born of gentle blood or no, I have done you gentle service, and peradventure will do better still, ere I depart from you."

"Lady," replied Sir Beaumains, "a knight isn’t worth much if he can’t endure a lady’s words; so whatever you said, I didn’t pay much attention to it, except that sometimes your scorn made me angry, which only made me stronger against my enemies in battle. So in a way, you have helped me win my fights. But whether I am of noble birth or not, I have served you honorably, and I might even do better before I leave you."

"Alas!" said she, weeping at his courtesy, "forgive me, fair Sir Beaumains, all that I have missaid and misdone against you." "With all my heart," said he; "and since you now speak fairly to me, I am passing glad of heart, and methinks I have the strength to overcome whatever knights I shall henceforth encounter."

"Alas!" she said, crying at his kindness, "forgive me, dear Sir Beaumains, for everything I've said and done wrong to you." "With all my heart," he replied; "and now that you’re speaking kindly to me, I’m really happy, and I feel like I have the strength to face whatever knights I meet from now on."

Then Sir Perseant prayed them to come to his pavilion, and set before them wines and spices, and made them great cheer. So they rested that night; and on the morrow, the damsel and Sir Beaumains rose, and heard mass. And when they had broken their fast, they took their leave of Sir Perseant. "Fair damsel," said he, "whither lead ye this knight?" "Sir," answered she, "to the Castle Dangerous, where my sister is besieged by the Knight of the Redlands." "I know him well," said Sir Perseant, "for the most perilous knight alive—a man without mercy, and with the strength of seven men. God save thee, Sir Beaumains, from him! and enable thee to overcome him, for the Lady Lyones, whom he besiegeth, is as fair a lady as there liveth in this world." "Thou sayest truth, sir," said the damsel; "for I am her sister; and men call me Linet, or the Wild Maiden." "Now, I would have thee know," said Sir Perseant to Sir Beaumains, "that the Knight of the Redlands hath kept that siege more than two years, and prolongeth the time hoping that Sir Lancelot, or Sir Tristram, or Sir Lamoracke, may come and battle with him; for these three knights divide between them all knighthood; and thou if thou mayest match the Knight of the Redlands, shalt well be called the fourth knight of the world." "Sir," said Sir Beaumains, "I would fain have that good fame; and truly, I am come of great and honorable lineage. And so that you and this fair damsel will conceal it, I will tell ye my descent." And when they swore to keep it secret, he told them, "My name is Sir Gareth of Orkney, my father was King Lot, and my mother the Lady Belisent, King Arthur's sister. Sir Gawain, Sir Agravain, and Sir Gaheris, are my brethren, and I am the youngest of them all. But, as yet King Arthur and the court know me not, who I am." When he had thus told them, they both wondered greatly.

Then Sir Perseant invited them to his tent and served them wine and spices, treating them warmly. They rested that night, and the next morning, the lady and Sir Beaumains woke up and attended mass. After they had breakfast, they took their leave of Sir Perseant. "Fair lady," he asked, "where are you taking this knight?" "Sir," she replied, "to the Castle Dangerous, where my sister is being besieged by the Knight of the Redlands." "I know him well," said Sir Perseant, "he is the most dangerous knight alive—a man without pity and as strong as seven men. God protect you, Sir Beaumains, from him! And may you triumph over him, for the Lady Lyones, whom he is besieging, is one of the most beautiful ladies in the world." "You speak the truth, sir," the lady said; "I am her sister; people call me Linet, or the Wild Maiden." "Now, I must inform you," Sir Perseant told Sir Beaumains, "that the Knight of the Redlands has maintained that siege for more than two years, hoping that Sir Lancelot, Sir Tristram, or Sir Lamoracke will come to fight him; for these three knights share all knighthood among them, and if you can match the Knight of the Redlands, you will be known as the fourth greatest knight in the world." "Sir," Sir Beaumains said, "I would dearly like that kind of fame, and I truly come from a noble and honorable lineage. And if you and this fair lady will keep it a secret, I will tell you my background." Once they promised to keep it confidential, he revealed, "My name is Sir Gareth of Orkney, my father was King Lot, and my mother is Lady Belisent, King Arthur's sister. Sir Gawain, Sir Agravain, and Sir Gaheris are my brothers, and I am the youngest of them all. But as of now, King Arthur and the court do not know who I am." After he shared this, both of them were greatly astonished.

And the damsel Linet sent the dwarf forward to her sister, to tell her of their coming. Then did Dame Lyones inquire what manner of man the knight was who was coming to her rescue. And the dwarf told her of all Sir Beaumains' deeds by the way: how he had overthrown Sir Key, and left him for dead; how he had battled with Sir Lancelot, and was knighted of him; how he had fought with, and slain, the thieves; how he had overcome the two knights who kept the river passage; how he had fought with, and slain, the Black Knight; and how he had overcome the Green Knight, the Red Knight, and last of all, the Blue Knight, Sir Perseant. Then was Dame Lyones passing glad, and sent the dwarf back to Sir Beaumains with great gifts, thanking him for his courtesy, in taking such a labor on him for her sake, and praying him to be of good heart and courage. And as the dwarf returned, he met the Knight of the Redlands, who asked him whence he came. "I came here with the sister of my lady of the castle," said the dwarf, "who hath been now to King Arthur's court and brought a knight with her to take her battle on him." "Then is her travail lost," replied the knight; "for, though she had brought Sir Lancelot, Sir Tristram, Sir Lamoracke, or Sir Gawain, I count myself their equal, and who besides shall be so called?" Then the dwarf told the knight what deeds Sir Beaumains had done; but he answered, "I care not for him, whosoever he be, for I shall shortly overcome him, and give him shameful death, as to so many others I have done."

And the young woman Linet sent the dwarf to her sister to tell her about their arrival. Then Lady Lyones asked what kind of man the knight was who was coming to rescue her. The dwarf recounted all of Sir Beaumains' exploits on the way: how he had defeated Sir Key and left him for dead; how he had battled with Sir Lancelot and was knighted by him; how he had fought and killed the thieves; how he had defeated the two knights guarding the river passage; how he had fought and slain the Black Knight; and how he had beaten the Green Knight, the Red Knight, and finally, the Blue Knight, Sir Perseant. Lady Lyones was very pleased and sent the dwarf back to Sir Beaumains with great gifts, thanking him for his kindness in taking on such a task for her sake, and encouraging him to stay brave and strong. As the dwarf was on his way back, he encountered the Knight of the Redlands, who asked him where he was coming from. "I came with the sister of my lady from the castle," said the dwarf, "who has just been to King Arthur's court and brought a knight with her to take on her battle." "Then her effort is in vain," replied the knight; "for even if she had brought Sir Lancelot, Sir Tristram, Sir Lamorack, or Sir Gawain, I consider myself their equal, and who else can claim to be?" The dwarf then told the knight about Sir Beaumains' achievements, but he replied, "I don't care who he is, for I will soon defeat him and give him a shameful death, just as I have done to so many others."

Then the damsel Linet and Sir Beaumains left Sir Perseant, and rode on through a forest to a large plain, where they saw many pavilions, and hard by, a castle passing fair.

Then Linet and Sir Beaumains left Sir Perseant and rode through a forest to a large open field, where they saw many tents and nearby, a beautiful castle.

But as they came near Sir Beaumains saw upon the branches of some trees which grew there, the dead bodies of forty knights hanging, with rich armor on them, their shields and swords about their necks, and golden spurs upon their heels. "What meaneth this?" said he, amazed. "Lose not thy courage, fair sir," replied the damsel, "at this shameful sight, for all these knights came hither to rescue my sister; and when the Knight of the Redlands had overcome them, he put them to this piteous death, without mercy; and in such wise will he treat thee also unless thou bearest thee more valiantly than they." "Truly he useth shameful customs," said Sir Beaumains; "and it is a marvel that he hath endured so long."

But as they got closer, Sir Beaumains saw the bodies of forty knights hanging from the branches of some trees that grew there. They wore rich armor, had their shields and swords around their necks, and golden spurs on their heels. "What does this mean?" he asked, amazed. "Don’t lose your courage, good sir," the damsel replied, "at this disgraceful sight, because all these knights came here to rescue my sister; and when the Knight of the Redlands defeated them, he dealt them this cruel death without mercy. He will treat you the same way unless you show more courage than they did." "Truly, he uses disgraceful tactics," said Sir Beaumains; "and it's a wonder he has lasted this long."

So they rode onward to the castle walls, and found them double-moated, and heard the sea waves dashing on one side the walls. Then said the damsel, "See you that ivory horn hanging upon the sycamore-tree? The Knight of the Redlands hath hung it there, that any knight may blow thereon, and then will he himself come out and fight with him. But I pray thee sound it not till high noontide, for now it is but daybreak, and till noon his strength increases to the might of seven men." "Let that be as it may, fair damsel," answered he, "for were he stronger knight than ever lived, I would not fail him. Either will I defeat him at his mightiest, or die knightly in the field." With that he spurred his horse unto the sycamore, and blew the ivory horn so eagerly, that all the castle rang its echoes. Instantly, all the knights who were in the pavilions ran forth, and those within the castle looked out from the windows, or above the walls. And the Knight of the Redlands, arming himself quickly in blood-red armor, with spear, and shield, and horse's trappings of like color, rode forth into a little valley by the castle walls, so that all in the castle, and at the siege, might see the battle.

So they rode on toward the castle walls and found them surrounded by two moats, hearing the waves of the sea crashing against one side of the walls. The damsel said, "Do you see that ivory horn hanging on the sycamore tree? The Knight of the Redlands put it there so that any knight can blow it, and he will come out to fight. But please, don't blow it until high noon, because right now it’s just daybreak, and until noon, his strength grows to the power of seven men." "Whatever you say, fair damsel," he replied, "because even if he were the strongest knight ever, I wouldn't shy away. I will either defeat him at his strongest or die honorably in battle.” With that, he urged his horse toward the sycamore and blew the ivory horn so passionately that it echoed throughout the castle. Immediately, all the knights in the pavilions rushed out, and those inside the castle looked out from the windows or over the walls. The Knight of the Redlands, quickly putting on his blood-red armor, along with his spear, shield, and matching horse gear, rode into a little valley by the castle walls so that everyone in the castle and at the siege could witness the battle.

"Be of good cheer," said the damsel Linet to Sir Beaumains, "for thy deadly enemy now cometh; and at yonder window is my lady and sister, Dame Lyones." "In good sooth," said Sir Beaumains, "she is the fairest lady I have ever seen, and I would wish no better quarrel than to fight for her." With that, he looked up to the window, and saw the Lady Lyones, who waved her handkerchief to her sister and to him to cheer them. Then called the Knight of the Redlands to Sir Beaumains, "Leave now thy gazing, Sir knight, and turn to me, for I warn thee that lady is mine." "She loveth none of thy fellowship," he answered; "but know this, that I love her, and will rescue her from thee, or die." "Say ye so!" said the Red Knight. "Take ye no warning from those knights that hang on yonder trees?" "For shame that thou so boastest!" said Sir Beaumains. "Be sure that sight hath raised a hatred for thee that will not lightly be put out, and given me not fear, but rage." "Sir knight, defend thyself," said the Knight of the Redlands, "for we will talk no longer."

"Be happy," said the young woman Linet to Sir Beaumains, "because your deadly enemy is coming; and at that window is my lady and sister, Dame Lyones." "Honestly," said Sir Beaumains, "she is the most beautiful lady I've ever seen, and I wouldn't want a better reason to fight than for her." With that, he looked up at the window and saw Lady Lyones waving her handkerchief to her sister and to him to encourage them. Then the Knight of the Redlands called out to Sir Beaumains, "Stop staring, Sir knight, and face me, for I warn you that lady is mine." "She loves none of your group," he replied; "but know this, I love her, and I will rescue her from you, or die trying." "Is that so?" said the Red Knight. "Do you not take warning from those knights hanging on those trees?" "It's shameful that you boast like that!" said Sir Beaumains. "Be assured that seeing that has filled me with a hatred for you that won't easily fade, and it has given me not fear, but rage." "Sir knight, defend yourself," said the Knight of the Redlands, "for we won't talk any longer."

Then did they put their spears in rest, and came together at the fullest speed of their horses, and smote each other in the midst of their shields, so that their horses' harness sundered by the shock, and they fell to the ground. And both lay there so long time, stunned, that many deemed their necks were broken. And all men said the strange knight was a strong man, and a noble jouster, for none had ever yet so matched the Knight of the Redlands. Then, in a while, they rose, and putting up their shields before them, drew their swords, and fought with fury, running at each other like wild beasts—now striking such buffets that both reeled backwards, now hewing at each other till they shore the harness off in pieces, and left their bodies naked and unarmed. And thus they fought till noon was past, when, for a time, they rested to get breath, so sorely staggering and bleeding, that many who beheld them wept for pity. Then they renewed the battle—sometimes rushing so furiously together, that both fell to the ground, and anon changing swords in their confusion. Thus they endured, and lashed, and struggled, until eventide, and none who saw knew which was the likeliest to win; for though the Knight of the Redlands was a wily and subtle warrior, his subtlety made Sir Beaumains wilier and wiser too. So once again they rested for a little space, and took their helms off to find breath.

Then they lowered their spears and charged at full speed on their horses, crashing into each other in the center of their shields, causing their horses' gear to break apart from the impact, and they both fell to the ground. They lay there for such a long time, dazed, that many thought they had broken their necks. Everyone said the strange knight was strong and a skilled jouster, for no one had ever matched the Knight of the Redlands like this. After a while, they got up, raised their shields in front of them, drew their swords, and fought fiercely, charging at each other like wild animals—sometimes landing blows that made them stagger back, other times chopping at each other until they tore their armor to shreds, leaving their bodies exposed and unprotected. They continued fighting until after noon when they paused to catch their breath, badly bruised and bleeding, which made many spectators weep in sympathy. Then they resumed the battle—sometimes charging at each other with such force that both ended up on the ground, switching swords in the chaos. They fought and struggled until evening, and no one watching could tell who was more likely to win; although the Knight of the Redlands was clever and cunning, his cleverness only made Sir Beaumains more cunning and wise. So they took another short break and removed their helmets to catch their breath.

But when Sir Beaumains' helm was off, he looked up to Dame Lyones, where she leaned, gazing and weeping, from her window. And when he saw the sweetness of her smiling, all his heart was light and joyful, and starting up, he bade the Knight of the Redlands make ready. Then did they lace their helms and fight together yet afresh, as though they had never fought before. And at the last, the Knight of the Redlands with a sudden stroke smote Sir Beaumains on the hand, so that his sword fell from it, and with a second stroke upon the helm he drove him to the earth. Then cried aloud the damsel Linet, "Alas! Sir Beaumains, see how my sister weepeth to behold thee fallen!" And when Sir Beaumains heard her words, he sprang upon his feet with strength, and leaping to his sword, he caught it; and with many heavy blows pressed so sorely on the Knight of the Redlands, that in the end he smote his sword from out his hand, and, with a mighty blow upon the head, hurled him upon the ground.

But when Sir Beaumains took off his helmet, he looked up at Dame Lyones, who was leaning from her window, gazing and crying. When he saw her sweet smile, his heart felt light and joyful. He quickly told the Knight of the Redlands to get ready. Then they fastened their helmets and fought again, as if they had never fought before. In the end, the Knight of the Redlands struck Sir Beaumains on the hand with a sudden blow, causing his sword to fall. With a second strike to his helmet, he knocked him to the ground. Then the damsel Linet cried out, "Oh no! Sir Beaumains, look how my sister is crying to see you fallen!" When Sir Beaumains heard her words, he sprang to his feet with determination, leaped for his sword, and with powerful strikes pressed hard against the Knight of the Redlands. Eventually, he knocked the sword from his hand and, with a mighty blow to the head, sent him crashing to the ground.

Then Sir Beaumains unlaced his helm, and would have straightway slain him, but the Knight of the Redlands yielded, and prayed for mercy. "I may not spare thee," answered he, "because of the shameful death which thou hast given to so many noble knights." "Yet hold thy hand, Sir knight," said he, "and hear the cause. I loved once a fair damsel, whose brother was slain, as she told me, by a knight of Arthur's court, either Sir Lancelot, or Sir Gawain; and she prayed me, as I truly loved her, and by the faith of my knighthood, to labor daily in deeds of arms, till I should meet with him; and to put all knights of the Round Table whom I should overcome to a villainous death. And this I swore to her." Then prayed the earls, and knights, and barons, who stood round Sir Beaumains, to spare the Red Knight's life. "Truly," replied he, "I am loth to slay him, notwithstanding he hath done such shameful deeds. And inasmuch as what he did was done to please his lady and to gain her love, I blame him less, and for your sakes I will release him. But on this agreement only shall he hold his life—that straightway he depart into the castle, and yield him to the lady there, and make her such amends as she shall ask, for all the trespass he hath done upon her lands; and afterwards, that he shall go unto King Arthur's court, and ask the pardon of Sir Lancelot and Sir Gawain for all the evil he hath done against them." "All this, Sir knight, I swear to do," said the Knight of the Redlands; and therewith he did him homage and fealty.

Then Sir Beaumains took off his helmet and was about to kill him, but the Knight of the Redlands begged for mercy. "I can’t spare you," he replied, "because of the disgraceful deaths you've caused for so many noble knights." "But wait, Sir knight," said the Knight of the Redlands, "and let me explain my side. I once loved a beautiful lady whose brother was killed, as she told me, by a knight from Arthur's court, either Sir Lancelot or Sir Gawain; she asked me, because I truly loved her and by my knightly honor, to fight bravely every day until I found him, and to bring a shameful end to any knights of the Round Table I defeated. And I pledged that to her." Then the earls, knights, and barons surrounding Sir Beaumains pleaded for the Red Knight's life. "Honestly," he replied, "I don’t want to kill him, even though he has done such disgraceful acts. Since he did it to please his lady and win her love, I hold him less accountable, and for your sake, I will let him go. But he must agree to one condition to keep his life—that he immediately go to the castle, submit to the lady there, and make amends for all the wrongs he has committed against her lands; and afterwards, he must go to King Arthur's court and ask Sir Lancelot and Sir Gawain for forgiveness for all the harm he has done to them." "I swear to do all this, Sir knight," said the Knight of the Redlands; and with that, he pledged his loyalty and service.

Then came the damsel Linet to Sir Beaumains and the Knight of the Redlands, and disarmed them, and staunched their wounds. And when the Knight of the Redlands had made amends for all his trespasses, he departed for the court.

Then Linet came to Sir Beaumains and the Knight of the Redlands, disarmed them, and treated their wounds. After the Knight of the Redlands had made up for all his wrongs, he left for the court.

Then Sir Beaumains, being healed of his wounds, armed himself, and took his horse and spear and rode straight to the castle of Dame Lyones, for greatly he desired to see her. But when he came to the gate they closed it fast, and pulled the drawbridge up. And as he marveled thereat, he saw the Lady Lyones standing at a window, who said, "Go thy way as yet, Sir Beaumains, for thou shalt not wholly have my love until thou be among the worthiest knights of all the world. Go, therefore, and labor yet in arms for twelve months more, and then return to me." "Alas! fair lady," said Sir Beaumains, "I have scarce deserved this of thee, for sure I am that I have bought thy love with all the best blood in my body." "Be not aggrieved, fair knight," said she, "for none of thy service is forgot or lost. Twelve months will soon be passed in noble deeds; and trust that to my death I shall love thee and not another." With that she turned and left the window.

Then Sir Beaumains, fully healed from his injuries, geared up, took his horse and spear, and rode straight to Dame Lyones' castle because he was eager to see her. However, when he arrived at the gate, it was shut tightly, and the drawbridge was pulled up. As he was pondering this, he spotted Lady Lyones at a window, who said, "Go away for now, Sir Beaumains, because you won’t fully have my love until you become one of the greatest knights in the world. So go, and continue to prove yourself in battle for another twelve months, then come back to me." "Alas! beautiful lady," Sir Beaumains replied, "I hardly deserve this from you, as I know I have earned your love with all the best blood in my body." "Don’t be upset, noble knight," she said, "for none of your efforts are forgotten or wasted. Twelve months will pass quickly with great deeds; and you can trust that until my death, I will love you and no one else." With that, she turned and left the window.

So Sir Beaumains rode away from the castle very sorrowful at heart, and rode he knew not whither, and lay that night in a poor man's cottage. On the morrow he went forward, and came at noon to a broad lake, and thereby he alighted, being very sad and weary, and rested his head upon his shield, and told his dwarf to keep watch while he slept.

So Sir Beaumains rode away from the castle feeling very sad, and he rode without knowing where he was going, spending the night in a poor man’s cottage. The next day, he continued on his way and arrived around noon at a wide lake. There, he got off his horse, feeling really down and tired, rested his head on his shield, and asked his dwarf to keep watch while he slept.

Now, as soon as he had departed, the Lady Lyones repented, and greatly longed to see him back, and asked her sister many times of what lineage he was; but the damsel would not tell her, being bound by her oath to Sir Beaumains, and said his dwarf best knew. So she called Sir Gringamors, her brother, who dwelt with her, and prayed him to ride after Sir Beaumains till he found him sleeping, and then to take his dwarf away and bring him back to her. Anon Sir Gringamors departed, and rode till he came to Sir Beaumains, and found him as he lay sleeping by the water-side. Then stepping stealthily behind the dwarf he caught him in his arms and rode off in haste. And though the dwarf cried loudly to his lord for help, and woke Sir Beaumains, yet, though he rode full quickly after him, he could not overtake Sir Gringamors.

Now, as soon as he left, Lady Lyones regretted it and really wanted to see him again. She asked her sister many times about his background, but the young woman wouldn’t tell her because she was sworn to Sir Beaumains and said his dwarf would know best. So, she called her brother Sir Gringamors, who lived with her, and asked him to ride after Sir Beaumains until he found him sleeping, and then to take his dwarf away and bring him back to her. Immediately, Sir Gringamors set off and rode until he found Sir Beaumains, who was sleeping by the water's edge. Then, quietly approaching the dwarf from behind, he grabbed him and rode off quickly. Even though the dwarf shouted loudly for help and woke Sir Beaumains, he couldn't catch up with Sir Gringamors, no matter how fast he rode.

When Dame Lyones saw her brother come back, she was passing glad of heart, and forthwith asked the dwarf his master's lineage. "He is a king's son," said the dwarf, "and his mother is King Arthur's sister. His name is Sir Gareth of Orkney, and he is brother to the good knight, Sir Gawain. But I pray you suffer me to go back to my lord, for truly he will never leave this country till he have me again." But when the Lady Lyones knew her deliverer was come of such a kingly stock, she longed more than ever to see him again.

When Lady Lyones saw her brother return, she was really happy and immediately asked the dwarf about his master’s background. "He’s a king's son," the dwarf replied, "and his mother is King Arthur’s sister. His name is Sir Gareth of Orkney, and he’s the brother of the noble knight, Sir Gawain. But please let me go back to my lord, for he will not leave this country until he has me with him again." Once Lady Lyones learned that her rescuer came from such royal lineage, she wanted to see him again more than ever.

Now as Sir Beaumains rode in vain to rescue his dwarf, he came to a fair green road and met a poor man of the country, and asked him had he seen a knight on a black horse, riding with a dwarf of a sad countenance behind him. "Yea," said the man, "I met with such a knight an hour agone, and his name is Sir Gringamors. He liveth at a castle two miles from hence; but he is a perilous knight, and I counsel ye not to follow him save ye bear him goodwill." Then Sir Beaumains followed the path which the poor man showed him, and came to the castle. And riding to the gate in great anger, he drew his sword, and cried aloud, "Sir Gringamors, thou traitor! deliver me my dwarf again, or by my knighthood it shall be ill for thee!" Then Sir Gringamors looked out of a window and said, "Sir Gareth of Orkney, leave thy boasting words, for thou wilt not get thy dwarf again." But the Lady Lyones said to her brother, "Nay, brother, but I will that he have his dwarf, for he hath done much for me, and delivered me from the Knight of the Redlands, and well do I love him above all other knights." So Sir Gringamors went down to Sir Gareth and cried him mercy, and prayed him to alight and take good cheer.

Now, as Sir Beaumains rode futilely to rescue his dwarf, he came across a nice green road and met a poor local man. He asked him if he had seen a knight on a black horse, with a sad-looking dwarf behind him. "Yes," said the man, "I saw a knight like that about an hour ago, and his name is Sir Gringamors. He lives at a castle two miles from here, but he’s a dangerous knight, and I advise you not to pursue him unless you approach him with goodwill." Then Sir Beaumains followed the path indicated by the poor man and arrived at the castle. In a fit of rage, he rode up to the gate, drew his sword, and shouted, "Sir Gringamors, you traitor! Give me back my dwarf, or by my knighthood, things will go badly for you!" Sir Gringamors looked out from a window and replied, "Sir Gareth of Orkney, stop your boasting, for you won’t get your dwarf back." But Lady Lyones said to her brother, "No, brother, I want him to have his dwarf back, for he has done a lot for me and rescued me from the Knight of the Redlands, and I care for him more than any other knight." So Sir Gringamors went down to Sir Gareth and asked for his forgiveness, inviting him to come down and enjoy some hospitality.

Then he alighted, and his dwarf ran to him. And when he was in the hall came the Lady Lyones dressed royally like a princess. And Sir Gareth was right glad of heart when he saw her. Then she told him how she had made her brother take away his dwarf and bring him back to her. And then she promised him her love, and faithfully to cleave to him and none other all the days of her life. And so they plighted their troth to each other. Then Sir Gringamors prayed him to sojourn at the castle, which willing he did. "For," said he, "I have promised to quit the court for twelve months, though sure I am that in the meanwhile I shall be sought and found by my lord King Arthur and many others." So he sojourned long at the castle.

Then he got down, and his dwarf ran to him. When he entered the hall, the Lady Lyones appeared, dressed like a princess. Sir Gareth felt really happy when he saw her. She then explained how she had made her brother send away his dwarf and bring him back to her. After that, she promised him her love and to stay true to him and no one else for the rest of her life. And so they committed to each other. Then Sir Gringamors invited him to stay at the castle, which he happily agreed to. "For," he said, "I've promised to leave the court for twelve months, although I'm sure I'll be sought out and found by my lord King Arthur and many others in the meantime." So he stayed at the castle for a long time.

Anon the knights, Sir Perseant, Sir Perimones, and Sir Pertolope, whom Sir Gareth had overthrown, went to King Arthur's court with all the knights who did them service, and told the king they had been conquered by a knight of his named Beaumains. And as they yet were talking, it was told the king there came another great lord with five hundred knights, who, entering in, did homage, and declared himself to be the Knight of the Redlands. "But my true name," said he, "is Ironside, and I am hither sent by one Sir Beaumains, who conquered me, and charged me to yield unto your grace." "Thou art welcome," said King Arthur, "for thou hast been long a foe to me and mine, and truly I am much beholden to the knight who sent thee. And now, Sir Ironside, if thou wilt amend thy life and hold of me, I will entreat thee as a friend, and make thee Knight of the Round Table; but thou mayst no more be a murderer of noble knights." Then the Knight of the Redlands knelt to the king, and told him of his promise to Sir Beaumains to use never more such shameful customs; and how he had so done but at the prayer of a lady whom he loved. Then knelt he to Sir Lancelot and Sir Gawain, and prayed their pardon for the hatred he had borne them.

Soon the knights, Sir Perseant, Sir Perimones, and Sir Pertolope, whom Sir Gareth had defeated, arrived at King Arthur's court with all the knights who supported them, and told the king they had been beaten by a knight of his named Beaumains. As they were still speaking, news came to the king that another great lord with five hundred knights had arrived, who entered and paid homage, declaring himself to be the Knight of the Redlands. "But my real name," he said, "is Ironside, and I am here sent by Sir Beaumains, who conquered me and instructed me to submit to your grace." "You are welcome," said King Arthur, "for you have long been an enemy to me and mine, and I am truly grateful to the knight who sent you. And now, Sir Ironside, if you will change your ways and pledge your loyalty to me, I will treat you as a friend and make you a Knight of the Round Table; but you can no longer be a murderer of noble knights." Then the Knight of the Redlands knelt before the king and told him about his promise to Sir Beaumains to never engage in such disgraceful behavior again; and how he had only done so at the request of a lady he loved. Then he knelt to Sir Lancelot and Sir Gawain, asking for their forgiveness for the hatred he had harbored against them.

But the king and all the court marveled greatly who Sir Beaumains was. "For," said the king, "he is a full noble knight." Then said Sir Lancelot, "Truly he is come of honorable blood, else had I not given him the order of knighthood; but he charged me that I should conceal his secret."

But the king and the whole court were really curious about who Sir Beaumains was. "For," said the king, "he is a truly noble knight." Then Sir Lancelot spoke up, "He definitely comes from a noble lineage, or I wouldn’t have knighted him; but he asked me to keep his secret."

Now as they talked thus it was told King Arthur that his sister, the Queen of Orkney, was come to the court with a great retinue of knights and ladies. Then was there great rejoicing, and the king rose and saluted his sister. And her sons, Sir Gawain, Sir Agravain, and Sir Gaheris knelt before her and asked her blessing, for during fifteen years last past they had not seen her. Anon she said, "Where is my youngest son, Sir Gareth? for I know that he was here a twelve-month with you, and that ye made a kitchen knave of him." Then the king and all the knights knew that Sir Beaumains and Sir Gareth were the same. "Truly," said the king, "I knew him not." "Nor I," said Sir Gawain and both his brothers. Then said the king, "God be thanked, fair sister, that he is proved as worshipful a knight as any now alive, and by the grace of Heaven he shall be found forthwith if he be anywhere within these seven realms." Then said Sir Gawain and his brethren, "Lord, if ye will give us leave we will go seek him." But Sir Lancelot said, "It were better that the king should send a messenger to Dame Lyones and pray her to come hither with all speed, and she will counsel where ye shall find him." "It is well said," replied the king; and sent a messenger quickly unto Dame Lyones.

As they were talking, word reached King Arthur that his sister, the Queen of Orkney, had arrived at the court with a large group of knights and ladies. There was much celebration, and the king stood to greet his sister. Her sons, Sir Gawain, Sir Agravain, and Sir Gaheris knelt before her to ask for her blessing, as they hadn't seen her in fifteen years. Soon, she asked, "Where is my youngest son, Sir Gareth? I know he was here a year ago, and that you turned him into a kitchen servant." Then the king and all the knights realized that Sir Beaumains and Sir Gareth were the same person. "Honestly," the king said, "I didn’t recognize him." "Neither did I," said Sir Gawain and his brothers. Then the king said, "Thank God, dear sister, that he has proven to be as honorable a knight as any alive today, and by God's grace, we will find him right away if he is in these seven realms." Sir Gawain and his brothers said, "Lord, if you allow us, we will go look for him." But Sir Lancelot suggested, "It would be better if the king sent a messenger to Dame Lyones and asked her to come here quickly; she can advise where to find him." "That’s a good idea," the king replied, and he promptly sent a messenger to Dame Lyones.

When she heard the message she promised she would come forthwith, and told Sir Gareth what the messenger had said, and asked him what to do. "I pray you," said he, "tell them not where I am, but when my lord King Arthur asketh for me, advise him thus—that he proclaim a tournament before this castle on Assumption Day, and that the knight who proveth best shall win yourself and all your lands." So the Lady Lyones departed and came to King Arthur's court, and there was right nobly welcomed. And when they asked her where Sir Gareth was, she said she could not tell. "But, lord," said she, "with thy goodwill I will proclaim a tournament before my castle on the Feast of the Assumption, whereof the prize shall be myself and all my lands. Then if it be proclaimed that you, lord, and your knights will be there, I will find knights on my side to fight you and yours, and thus am I sure ye will hear tidings of Sir Gareth." "Be it so done," replied the king.

When she heard the message, she promised to come right away and told Sir Gareth what the messenger said, asking him what to do. "Please," he said, "don't tell them where I am, but when my lord King Arthur asks for me, advise him to proclaim a tournament in front of this castle on Assumption Day, and the knight who performs best will win you and all your lands." So Lady Lyones left and went to King Arthur's court, where she was warmly welcomed. When they asked her where Sir Gareth was, she said she couldn’t tell. "But, my lord," she said, "with your permission, I will announce a tournament in front of my castle on the Feast of the Assumption, with the prize being myself and all my lands. If you and your knights confirm that you’ll be there, I will find knights on my side to challenge you and yours, and then I’m sure you’ll hear news of Sir Gareth." "Let it be done," replied the king.

So Sir Gareth sent messengers privily to Sir Perseant and Sir Ironside, and charged them to be ready on the day appointed, with their companies of knights to aid him and his party against the king. And when they were arrived he said, "Now be ye well assured that we shall be matched with the best knights of the world, and therefore must we gather all the good knights we can find."

So Sir Gareth secretly sent messages to Sir Perseant and Sir Ironside, asking them to be ready on the appointed day with their groups of knights to help him and his team against the king. When they arrived, he said, "Now you can be sure that we will be up against the best knights in the world, so we need to gather as many good knights as we can find."

So proclamation was made throughout all England, Wales, Scotland, Ireland, and Cornwall, and in the out isles and other countries, that at the Feast of the Assumption of our Lady, next coming, all knights who came to joust at Castle Perilous should make choice whether they would side with the king or with the castle. Then came many good knights on the side of the castle. Sir Epinogris, the son of the King of Northumberland, and Sir Palomedes the Saracen, and Sir Grummore Grummorsum, a good knight of Scotland, and Sir Brian des Iles, a noble knight, and Sir Carados of the Tower Dolorous, and Sir Tristram, who as yet was not a knight of the Round Table, and many others. But none among them knew Sir Gareth, for he took no more upon him than any mean person.

So an announcement was made across all of England, Wales, Scotland, Ireland, and Cornwall, as well as in the outer isles and other countries, that during the upcoming Feast of the Assumption of our Lady, all knights coming to joust at Castle Perilous should decide whether they would support the king or the castle. Then many noble knights chose to side with the castle, including Sir Epinogris, the son of the King of Northumberland, Sir Palomedes the Saracen, Sir Grummore Grummorsum, a valiant knight from Scotland, Sir Brian des Iles, a distinguished knight, Sir Carados of the Tower Dolorous, and Sir Tristram, who was not yet a knight of the Round Table, along with many others. However, none of them recognized Sir Gareth, as he did not present himself any differently than a common person.

And on King Arthur's side there came the King of Ireland and the King of Scotland, the noble prince Sir Galahaut, Sir Gawain and his brothers Sir Agravain and Sir Gaheris, Sir Ewaine, Sir Tor, Sir Perceval, and Sir Lamoracke, Sir Lancelot also and his kindred, Sir Lionel, Sir Ector, Sir Bors and Sir Bedivere, likewise Sir Key and the most part of the Table Round. The two queens also, Queen Guinevere and the Queen of Orkney, Sir Gareth's mother, came with the king. So there was a great array both within and without the castle, with all manner of feasting and minstrelsy.

And on King Arthur's side, there came the King of Ireland and the King of Scotland, the noble prince Sir Galahaut, Sir Gawain and his brothers Sir Agravain and Sir Gaheris, Sir Ewaine, Sir Tor, Sir Perceval, and Sir Lamorack, along with Sir Lancelot and his relatives, Sir Lionel, Sir Ector, Sir Bors and Sir Bedivere, as well as Sir Kay and most of the Round Table. The two queens, Queen Guinevere and the Queen of Orkney, who is Sir Gareth's mother, also joined the king. So there was a grand display both inside and outside the castle, with all kinds of feasting and music.

Now before the tournament began, Sir Gareth privily prayed Dame Lyones, Sir Gringamors, Sir Ironside, and Sir Perseant, that they would in nowise disclose his name, nor make more of him than of any common knight. Then said Dame Lyones, "Dear lord, I pray thee take this ring, which hath the power to change the wearer's clothing into any color he may will, and guardeth him from any loss of blood. But give it me again, I pray thee, when the tournament is done, for it greatly increaseth my beauty whensoever I wear it." "Gramercy, mine own lady," said Sir Gareth, "I wished for nothing better, for now I may be certainly disguised as long as I will." Then Sir Gringamors gave Sir Gareth a bay courser that was a passing good horse, with sure armor, and a noble sword, won by his father from a heathen tyrant. And then every knight made him ready for the tournament.

Now, before the tournament started, Sir Gareth privately asked Dame Lyones, Sir Gringamors, Sir Ironside, and Sir Perseant not to reveal his name or treat him any differently than an ordinary knight. Then Dame Lyones said, "Dear lord, please take this ring. It has the power to change the wearer's clothing into any color they want and protects them from losing any blood. But please return it to me when the tournament is over, as it enhances my beauty whenever I wear it." "Thank you, my lady," said Sir Gareth, "I couldn’t have asked for anything better, for now I can be completely disguised for as long as I need." Then Sir Gringamors gave Sir Gareth a fine bay horse, equipped with sturdy armor and a noble sword, which his father had won from a heathen tyrant. After that, every knight prepared for the tournament.

So on the day of the Assumption, when mass and matins were said, the heralds blew their trumpets and sounded for the tourney. Anon came out the knights of the castle and the knights of King Arthur, and matched themselves together.

So on the day of the Assumption, after mass and morning prayers were done, the heralds blew their trumpets to signal the tournament. Soon, the knights from the castle and the knights of King Arthur came out and paired up for the competition.

Then Sir Epinogris, son of the King of Northumberland, a knight of the castle, encountered Sir Ewaine, and both broke off their spears short to their hands. Then came Sir Palomedes from the castle, and met Sir Gawain, and they so hardly smote each other, that both knights and horses fell to the earth. Then Sir Tristram, from the castle, encountered with Sir Bedivere, and smote him to the earth, horse and man. Then the Knight of the Redlands and Sir Gareth met with Sir Bors and Sir Bleoberis; and the Knight of the Redlands and Sir Bors smote together so hard that their spears burst, and their horses fell groveling to the ground. And Sir Bleoberis brake his spear upon Sir Gareth, but himself was hurled upon the ground. When Sir Galihodin saw that, he bade Sir Gareth keep him, but Sir Gareth lightly smote him to the earth. Then Sir Galihud got a spear to avenge his brother, but was served in like manner. And Sir Dinadam, and his brother La-cote-male-taile, and Sir Sagramour le Desirous, and Dodinas le Savage, he bore down all with one spear.

Then Sir Epinogris, the son of the King of Northumberland and a knight from the castle, came face to face with Sir Ewaine, and they both broke their spears short against each other. Then Sir Palomedes came out from the castle and met Sir Gawain, and they hit each other so hard that both knights and their horses fell to the ground. Next, Sir Tristram, also from the castle, charged at Sir Bedivere and knocked him down, horse and all. The Knight of the Redlands and Sir Gareth faced off against Sir Bors and Sir Bleoberis, and the Knight of the Redlands and Sir Bors struck each other so fiercely that their spears shattered and their horses collapsed, groveling on the ground. Sir Bleoberis broke his spear on Sir Gareth, but he ended up on the ground himself. When Sir Galihodin saw this, he told Sir Gareth to keep him down, but Sir Gareth easily threw him to the ground. Then Sir Galihud grabbed a spear to get back at his brother, but he received the same fate. Sir Dinadam, along with his brother La-cote-male-taile, Sir Sagramour le Desirous, and Dodinas le Savage, took them all down with one spear.

When King Anguish of Ireland saw this, he marveled what that knight could be who seemed at one time green and at another blue; for so at every course he changed his color that none might know him. Then he ran towards him and encountered him, and Sir Gareth smote the king from his horse, saddle and all. And in like manner he served the King of Scotland, and King Urience of Gore, and King Bagdemagus.

When King Anguish of Ireland saw this, he wondered who that knight could be who changed from green to blue at different moments; he changed color so often that no one could recognize him. Then he ran toward him and faced him, and Sir Gareth knocked the king off his horse, saddle and all. He did the same to the King of Scotland, King Urience of Gore, and King Bagdemagus.

Then Sir Galahaut, the noble prince, cried out, "Knight of the many colors! thou hast jousted well; now make thee ready to joust with me." When Sir Gareth heard him, he took a great spear and met him swiftly. And the prince's spear broke off, but Sir Gareth smote him on the left side of the helm, so that he reeled here and there, and had fallen down had not his men recovered him. "By my faith," said King Arthur, "that knight of the many colors is a good knight. I pray thee, Sir Lancelot du Lake, encounter with him." "Lord," said Sir Lancelot, "by thy leave I will forbear. I find it in my heart to spare him at this time, for he hath done enough work for one day; and when a good knight doth so well it is no knightly part to hinder him from this honor. And peradventure his quarrel is here to-day, and he may be the best beloved of the Lady Lyones of all that be here; for I see well he paineth and forceth himself to do great deeds. Therefore, as for me, this day he shall have the honor; for though I were able to put him from it, I would not." "You speak well and truly," said the king.

Then Sir Galahaut, the noble prince, yelled, "Knight of many colors! You've jousted well; now get ready to joust with me." When Sir Gareth heard this, he grabbed a spear and quickly met him. The prince's spear broke, but Sir Gareth struck him on the left side of the helmet, causing him to sway back and forth, and he would have fallen if his men hadn't caught him. "By my faith," said King Arthur, "that knight of many colors is a good knight. I ask you, Sir Lancelot du Lake, to face him." "My Lord," replied Sir Lancelot, "with your permission I will hold back. I think it's best to spare him this time since he's done enough for one day; when a good knight performs so well, it's not right to take away his honor. Perhaps his purpose is here today, and he may be the most beloved by Lady Lyones among everyone here; I see that he pushes himself to achieve great things. So, as for me, he shall have the honor today; even though I could take it from him, I won't." "You speak well and truly," said the king.

Then after the tilting, they drew swords, and there began a great tournament, and there Sir Lancelot did marvelous deeds of arms, for first he fought with both Sir Tristram and Sir Carados, albeit they were the most perilous in all the world. Then came Sir Gareth and put them asunder, but would not smite a stroke against Sir Lancelot, for by him he had been knighted. Anon Sir Gareth's helm had need of mending, and he rode aside to see to it and to drink water, for he was sore athirst with all his mighty feats of strength. And while he drank, his dwarf said to him, "Give me your ring, lest ye lose it while ye drink." So Sir Gareth took it off. And when he had finished drinking, he rode back eagerly to the field, and in his haste forgot to take the ring again. Then all the people saw that he wore yellow armor. And King Arthur told a herald, "Ride and espy the cognizance of that brave knight, for I have asked many who he is, and none can tell me."

Then after the jousting, they drew their swords, and a great tournament began. Sir Lancelot performed incredible feats of skill, first fighting both Sir Tristram and Sir Carados, who were the most formidable knights in the world. Then Sir Gareth intervened and separated them, but he didn’t strike a blow against Sir Lancelot, as he had been knighted by him. Soon, Sir Gareth’s helmet needed fixing, so he rode aside to take care of it and to drink some water, as he was very thirsty from all his hard fighting. While he was drinking, his dwarf said to him, "Give me your ring, so you don't lose it while you drink." So Sir Gareth took it off. After he finished drinking, he eagerly rode back to the field, forgetting to put the ring back on. Then everyone noticed that he was wearing yellow armor. King Arthur told a herald, "Go and find out the identity of that brave knight, for I’ve asked many people and no one knows who he is."

Then the herald rode near, and saw written round about his helmet in letters of gold, "Sir Gareth of Orkney." And instantly the herald cried his name aloud, and all men pressed to see him.

Then the herald rode closer and saw the words "Sir Gareth of Orkney" inscribed in gold around his helmet. Immediately, the herald shouted his name, and everyone rushed to see him.

But when he saw he was discovered, he pushed with haste through all the crowd, and cried to his dwarf, "Boy, thou hast beguiled me foully in keeping my ring; give it me again, that I may be hidden." And as soon as he had put it on, his armor changed again, and no man knew where he had gone. Then he passed forth from the field; but Sir Gawain, his brother, rode after him.

But when he realized he was caught, he hurriedly pushed through the crowd and shouted to his dwarf, "Hey, you tricked me by keeping my ring; give it back to me so I can disappear." As soon as he put it on, his armor changed again, and no one knew where he had gone. Then he left the battlefield, but his brother Sir Gawain chased after him.

And when Sir Gareth had ridden far into the forest, he took off his ring, and sent it back by the dwarf to the Lady Lyones, praying her to be true and faithful to him while he was away.

And when Sir Gareth had ridden deep into the forest, he took off his ring and sent it back with the dwarf to Lady Lyones, asking her to stay true and faithful to him while he was gone.

Then rode Sir Gareth long through the forest, till night fell, and coming to a castle he went up to the gate, and prayed the porter to let him in. But churlishly he answered "that he should not lodge there." Then said Sir Gareth, "Tell thy lord and lady that I am a knight of King Arthur's court, and for his sake I pray their shelter." With that the porter went to the duchess who owned the castle. "Let him in straightway," cried she; "for the king's sake he shall not be harborless!" and went down to receive him. When Sir Gareth saw her coming, he saluted her, and said, "Fair lady, I pray you give me shelter for this night, and if there be here any champion or giant with whom I must needs fight, spare me till to-morrow, when I and my horse shall have rested, for we are full weary." "Sir knight," she said, "thou speakest boldly; for the lord of this castle is a foe to King Arthur and his court, and if thou wilt rest here to-night thou must agree, that wheresoever thou mayest meet my lord, thou must yield to him as a prisoner." "What is thy lord's name, lady?" said Sir Gareth. "The Duke de la Rowse," said she. "I will promise thee," said he, "to yield to him, if he promise to do me no harm; but if he refuse, I will release myself with my sword and spear."

Then Sir Gareth rode through the forest for a long time until night fell. When he arrived at a castle, he went up to the gate and asked the porter to let him in. The porter rudely replied, "You can't stay here." Sir Gareth said, "Tell your lord and lady that I'm a knight from King Arthur's court, and I'm asking for their hospitality." The porter then went to the duchess, who owned the castle. "Let him in at once," she cried. "For the king's sake, he won't be left without shelter!" She then went down to greet him. When Sir Gareth saw her approaching, he greeted her and said, "Fair lady, I ask you for shelter tonight, and if there is any champion or giant here that I must fight, please spare me until tomorrow so my horse and I can rest, as we are very tired." "Sir knight," she replied, "you speak boldly; however, the lord of this castle is an enemy of King Arthur and his court. If you wish to stay here tonight, you must agree that if you meet my lord, you must surrender as his prisoner." "What is your lord's name, lady?" asked Sir Gareth. "The Duke de la Rowse," she replied. "I promise you," he said, "that I will yield to him if he agrees to do me no harm; but if he refuses, I will defend myself with my sword and spear."

"It is well," said the duchess; and commanded the drawbridge to be let down. So he rode into the hall and alighted. And when he had taken off his armor, the duchess and her ladies made him passing good cheer. And after supper his bed was made in the hall, and there he rested that night. On the morrow he rose and heard mass, and having broken his fast, took his leave and departed.

"It’s all good," said the duchess, and she ordered the drawbridge to be let down. So he rode into the hall and dismounted. After he took off his armor, the duchess and her ladies welcomed him warmly. After supper, his bed was set up in the hall, and he rested there that night. The next morning he got up, attended mass, and after breakfast, he said his goodbyes and left.

And as he rode past a certain mountain there met him a knight named Sir Bendelaine, and cried unto him, "Thou shalt not pass unless thou joust with me or be my prisoner!" "Then will we joust," replied Sir Gareth. So they let their horses run at full speed, and Sir Gareth smote Sir Bendelaine through his body so sorely that he scarcely reached his castle ere he fell dead. And as Sir Gareth presently came by the castle, Sir Bendelaine's knights and servants rode out to revenge their lord. And twenty of them fell on him at once, although his spear was broken. But drawing his sword he put his shield before him. And though they brake their spears upon him, one and all, and sorely pressed on him, yet ever he defended himself like a noble knight. Anon, finding they could not overcome him, they agreed to slay his horse; and having killed it with their spears, they set upon Sir Gareth as he fought on foot. But every one he struck he slew, and drave at them with fearful blows, till he had slain them all but four, who fled. Then taking the horse of one of those that lay there dead, he rode upon his way.

And as he rode past a certain mountain, he came across a knight named Sir Bendelaine, who shouted at him, "You can't pass unless you joust with me or become my prisoner!" "Then let's joust," replied Sir Gareth. They spurred their horses at full speed, and Sir Gareth struck Sir Bendelaine so hard that he barely made it back to his castle before he collapsed dead. When Sir Gareth soon approached the castle, Sir Bendelaine's knights and servants rushed out to avenge their lord. Twenty of them attacked him at once, even though his spear was broken. But he drew his sword and held his shield up. Although they broke their spears against him and pressed him hard, he defended himself like a true knight. Soon realizing they couldn't defeat him, they decided to kill his horse; once they had done so with their spears, they charged at Sir Gareth while he fought on foot. Yet every one he hit he killed, and he struck them with terrifying blows until he had taken down all but four, who ran away. Then, taking the horse from one of the fallen, he continued on his way.

Anon he came to another castle and heard from within a sound as of many women moaning and weeping. Then said he to a page who stood without, "What noise is this I hear?" "Sir knight," said he, "there be within thirty ladies, the widows of thirty knights who have been slain by the lord of this castle. He is called the Brown Knight without pity, and is the most perilous knight living, wherefore I warn thee to flee." "That will I never do," said Sir Gareth, "for I fear him not." Then the page saw the Brown Knight coming and said to Gareth, "Lo! my lord is near."

Soon, he arrived at another castle and heard a sound coming from inside, like many women moaning and crying. He asked a page standing outside, "What noise is this I hear?" "Sir knight," the page replied, "there are thirty ladies inside, the widows of thirty knights who were killed by the lord of this castle. He is known as the Brown Knight without mercy, and he is the most dangerous knight alive, so I warn you to run away." "I will never do that," said Sir Gareth, "for I am not afraid of him." Then the page saw the Brown Knight approaching and said to Gareth, "Look! My lord is coming."

So both knights made them ready and galloped their horses towards each other, and the Brown Knight brake his spear upon Sir Gareth's shield; but Sir Gareth smote him through the body so that he fell dead. At that he rode into the castle and told the ladies he had slain their foe. Then were they right glad of heart and made him all the cheer they could, and thanked him out of measure. But on the morrow as he went to mass he found the ladies weeping in the chapel upon divers tombs that were there. And he knew that in those tombs their husbands lay. Then he bade them be comforted, and with noble and high words he desired and prayed them all to be at Arthur's court on the next Feast of Pentecost.

So both knights got ready and rode their horses toward each other, and the Brown Knight broke his spear against Sir Gareth's shield; but Sir Gareth struck him in the body, causing him to fall dead. Then he rode into the castle and told the ladies he had killed their enemy. They were very happy and made him as welcome as they could, thanking him endlessly. However, the next day as he went to mass, he found the ladies crying in the chapel over various tombs that were there. He realized that their husbands were buried in those tombs. Then he urged them to find comfort, and with noble and uplifting words, he invited and encouraged them all to come to Arthur's court on the next Feast of Pentecost.

So he departed and rode past a mountain where was a goodly knight waiting, who said to him, "Abide, Sir knight, and joust with me!" "How are ye named?" said Sir Gareth. "I am the Duke de la Rowse," answered he. "In good sooth," then said Sir Gareth, "not long ago I lodged within your castle, and there promised I would yield to you whenever we might meet." "Art thou that proud knight," said the duke, "who was ready to fight with me? Guard thyself therefore and make ready." So they ran together, and Sir Gareth smote the duke from his horse. Then they alighted and drew their swords, and fought full sorely for the space of an hour; and at the last Sir Gareth smote the duke to the earth and would have slain him, but he yielded. "Then must ye go," said Sir Gareth, "to my lord King Arthur at the next Feast of Pentecost and say that I, Sir Gareth, sent ye." "As ye will be it," said the duke; and gave him up his shield for pledge.

So he left and rode past a mountain where a noble knight was waiting, who said to him, "Stop, Sir Knight, and fight me!" "What’s your name?" asked Sir Gareth. "I am the Duke de la Rowse," he replied. "I remember," said Sir Gareth, "not long ago, I stayed at your castle and promised to face you whenever we met." "Are you that arrogant knight," asked the duke, "who was eager to duel with me? Prepare yourself then." They charged at each other, and Sir Gareth knocked the duke off his horse. Then they dismounted and drew their swords, battling fiercely for about an hour; finally, Sir Gareth brought the duke to the ground and was about to kill him, but the duke surrendered. "Then you must go," said Sir Gareth, "to my lord King Arthur at the next Feast of Pentecost and tell him that I, Sir Gareth, sent you." "As you wish," said the duke, and gave him his shield as a token.

And as Sir Gareth rode alone he saw an armed knight coming towards him. And putting the duke's shield before him he rode fast to tilt with him; and so they ran together as it had been thunder, and brake their spears upon each other. Then fought they fiercely with their swords, and lashed together with such mighty strokes that blood ran to the ground on every side. And after they had fought together for two hours and more, it chanced the damsel Linet passed that way; and when she saw them, she cried out, "Sir Gawain and Sir Gareth, leave your fighting, for ye are brethren!" At that they threw away their shields and swords, and took each other in their arms, and wept a great while ere they could speak. And each gave to the other the honor of the battle, and there was many a kind word between them. Then said Sir Gawain, "O my brother, for your sake have I had great sorrow and labor! But truly I would honor you though ye were not my brother, for ye have done great worship to King Arthur and his court, and sent more knights to him than any of the Table Round, except Sir Lancelot."

And as Sir Gareth rode alone, he spotted an armed knight coming towards him. He held the duke's shield in front of him and charged forward to engage in a joust; they collided like thunder, smashing their lances against each other. Then they fought fiercely with their swords, striking so powerfully that blood spilled onto the ground around them. After battling for over two hours, the damsel Linet happened to pass by; when she saw them, she shouted, "Sir Gawain and Sir Gareth, stop fighting, for you are brothers!" Hearing this, they dropped their shields and swords and embraced, crying for a long time before they could speak. Each gave the other credit for the battle, sharing many kind words. Then Sir Gawain said, "Oh my brother, I've experienced great sorrow and struggle for your sake! But truly, I would honor you even if you weren't my brother, for you have brought great glory to King Arthur and his court, sending more knights to him than anyone in the Round Table except Sir Lancelot."

Then the damsel Linet staunched their wounds, and their horses being weary she rode her palfrey to King Arthur and told him of this strange adventure. When she had told her tidings, the king himself mounted his horse and bade all come with him to meet them. So a great company of lords and ladies went forth to meet the brothers. And when King Arthur saw them he would have spoken hearty words, but for gladness he could not. And both Sir Gawain and Sir Gareth fell down at their uncle's knees and did him homage, and there was passing great joy and gladness among them all.

Then the young woman Linet bandaged their wounds, and since their horses were tired, she rode her mount to King Arthur and told him about this unusual adventure. After sharing the news, the king himself got on his horse and asked everyone to join him in meeting them. A large group of lords and ladies set out to greet the brothers. When King Arthur saw them, he wanted to say something heartfelt, but he was so overwhelmed with happiness that he couldn't. Both Sir Gawain and Sir Gareth fell to their uncle's knees and showed their respect, and there was immense joy and happiness among them all.

Then said the king to the damsel Linet, "Why cometh not the Lady Lyones to visit her knight, Sir Gareth, who hath had such travail for her love?" "She knoweth not, my lord, that he is here," replied the damsel, "for truly she desireth greatly to see him." "Go ye and bring her hither," said the king. So the damsel rode to tell her sister where Sir Gareth was, and when she heard it she rejoiced full heartily and came with all the speed she could. And when Sir Gareth saw her, there was great joy and comfort between them.

Then the king said to the young lady Linet, "Why hasn’t Lady Lyones come to see her knight, Sir Gareth, who has worked so hard for her love?" "She doesn't know, my lord, that he’s here," replied Linet, "because she truly wants to see him." "Go and bring her here," said the king. So the young lady rode off to tell her sister where Sir Gareth was, and when she heard the news, she was overjoyed and rushed there as fast as she could. When Sir Gareth saw her, there was great joy and comfort between them.

Then the king asked Sir Gareth whether he would have that lady for his wife? "My lord," replied Sir Gareth, "know well that I love her above all ladies living." "Now, fair lady," said King Arthur, "what say ye?" "Most noble king," she answered, "my lord, Sir Gareth, is my first love and shall be my last, and if I may not have him for my husband I will have none." Then said the king to them, "Be well assured that for my crown I would not be the cause of parting your two hearts."

Then the king asked Sir Gareth if he would take that lady as his wife. "My lord," replied Sir Gareth, "I want her more than any other woman alive." "Now, beautiful lady," said King Arthur, "what do you say?" "Most noble king," she answered, "my lord, Sir Gareth, is my first love and will be my last. If I can’t have him as my husband, I won’t marry anyone." The king then said to them, "Rest assured, for the sake of my crown, I would never want to be the reason for separating your two hearts."

Then was high preparation made for the marriage, for the king desired it should be at the Michaelmas next following, at Kinkenadon-by-the-Sea.

Then there was a lot of preparation for the wedding, as the king wanted it to be at the next Michaelmas, at Kinkenadon-by-the-Sea.

So Sir Gareth sent out messages to all the knights whom he had overcome in battle that they should be there upon his marriage-day.

So Sir Gareth sent messages to all the knights he had defeated in battle, asking them to be there on his wedding day.

Therefore, at the next Michaelmas, came a goodly company to Kinkenadon-by-the-Sea. And there did the Archbishop of Canterbury marry Sir Gareth and the Lady Lyones with all solemnity. And all the knights whom Sir Gareth had overcome were at the feast; and every manner of revels and games was held with music and minstrelsy. And there was a great jousting for three days. But because of his bride the king would not suffer Sir Gareth to joust. Then did King Arthur give great lands and fair, with store of gold, to Sir Gareth and his wife, that so they might live royally together to their lives' end.

Therefore, at the next Michaelmas, a large group gathered at Kinkenadon-by-the-Sea. The Archbishop of Canterbury married Sir Gareth and Lady Lyones with all due ceremony. All the knights whom Sir Gareth had defeated were at the feast, and there were all kinds of festivities and games with music and performers. There was a grand jousting event for three days. However, because of his bride, the king would not allow Sir Gareth to participate in the jousting. King Arthur then granted Sir Gareth and his wife vast lands and plenty of gold so that they could live royally together for the rest of their lives.


XII

THE ADVENTURES OF SIR TRISTRAM

Again King Arthur held high festival at Caerleon, at Pentecost, and gathered round him all the fellowship of the Round Table, and so, according to his custom, sat and waited till some adventure should arise, or some knight return to court whose deeds and perils might be told.

Again, King Arthur hosted a grand celebration at Caerleon during Pentecost, bringing together all the members of the Round Table. As was his custom, he sat and waited for an adventure to unfold or for a knight to return to court with stories of their exploits and challenges.

Anon he saw Sir Lancelot and a crowd of knights coming through the doors and leading in their midst the mighty knight, Sir Tristram. As soon as King Arthur saw him, he rose up and went through half the hall, and held out both his hands and cried, "Right welcome to thee, good Sir Tristram, as welcome art thou as any knight that ever came before into this court. A long time have I wished for thee amongst my fellowship." Then all the knights and barons rose up with one accord and came around, and cried out, "Welcome." Queen Guinevere came also, and many ladies with her, and all with one voice said the same.

Soon he saw Sir Lancelot and a group of knights coming through the doors, escorting the great knight, Sir Tristram, among them. As soon as King Arthur saw him, he stood up and walked across half the hall, extending both his hands and exclaiming, "Welcome, good Sir Tristram! You are as welcome here as any knight who has ever entered this court. I have long wished for you to join my fellowship." Then all the knights and barons rose in unison and gathered around, shouting, "Welcome!" Queen Guinevere also came forward, along with many ladies, and they all echoed the same sentiment.

Then the king took Sir Tristram by the hand and led him to the Round Table and said, "Welcome again for one of the best and gentlest knights in all the world; a chief in war, a chief in peace, a chief in field and forest, a chief in the ladies' chamber—right heartily welcome to this court, and mayest thou long abide in it."

Then the king took Sir Tristram by the hand and led him to the Round Table and said, "Welcome back, one of the best and kindest knights in the world; a leader in battle, a leader in peace, a leader in the field and the forest, a leader in the ladies' chamber—thank you for coming to this court, and may you stay here for a long time."

When he had so said he looked at every empty seat until he came to what had been Sir Marhaus', and there he found written in gold letters, "This is the seat of the noble knight, Sir Tristram." Whereat they made him, with great cheer and gladness, a Fellow of the Round Table.

When he said this, he looked at every empty seat until he reached the one that belonged to Sir Marhaus, and there he saw written in gold letters, "This is the seat of the noble knight, Sir Tristram." At this, they joyfully welcomed him as a Fellow of the Round Table.

Now the story of Sir Tristram was as follows:—

Now the story of Sir Tristram goes like this:—

There was a king of Lyonesse, named Meliodas, married to the sister of King Mark of Cornwall, a right fair lady and a good. And so it happened that King Meliodas hunting in the woods was taken by enchantment and made prisoner in a castle. When his wife Elizabeth heard it she was nigh mad with grief, and ran into the forest to seek out her lord. But after many days of wandering and sorrow she found no trace of him, and laid her down in a deep valley and prayed to meet her death. And so indeed she did, but ere she died she gave birth in the midst of all her sorrow to child, a boy, and called him with her latest breath Tristram; for she said, "His name shall show how sadly he hath come into this world."

There was a king of Lyonesse named Meliodas, who was married to the sister of King Mark of Cornwall, a truly beautiful and good woman. One day, while King Meliodas was out hunting in the woods, he fell under a spell and was taken prisoner in a castle. When his wife Elizabeth heard about it, she was nearly driven mad with grief and ran into the forest to search for her husband. But after many days of wandering and sorrow, she found no sign of him and lay down in a deep valley, praying for her death. And indeed, she did die, but before she passed, she gave birth to a son in the midst of all her sorrow and named him Tristram with her last breath, saying, "His name will reflect how sadly he has come into this world."

Therewith she gave up her ghost, and the gentlewoman who was with her took the child and wrapped it from the cold as well as she was able, and lay down with it in her arms beneath the shadow of a tree hard by, expecting death to come to her in turn.

There, she took her last breath, and the woman who was with her took the child and wrapped it up as best as she could to keep it warm, lying down with it in her arms under the shade of a nearby tree, waiting for death to come for her next.

But shortly after came a company of lords and barons seeking for the queen, and found the lady and the child and took them home. And on the next day came King Meliodas, whom Merlin had delivered, and when he heard of the queen's death his sorrow was greater than tongue can tell. And anon he buried her solemnly and nobly, and called the child Tristram as she had desired.

But soon after, a group of lords and barons came looking for the queen, and they found the lady and the child and took them home. The next day, King Meliodas, whom Merlin had rescued, arrived, and when he learned of the queen's death, his grief was beyond words. He then buried her with great honor and dignity, naming the child Tristram as she had wished.

Then for seven years King Meliodas mourned and took no comfort, and all that time young Tristram was well nourished; but in a while he wedded with the daughter of Howell, King of Brittany, who, that her own children might enjoy the kingdom, cast about in her mind how she might destroy Tristram. So on a certain day she put poison in a silver cup, where Tristram and her children were together playing, that when he was athirst he might drink of it and die. But so it happened that her own son saw the cup, and, thinking it must hold good drink, he climbed and took it, and drank deeply of it, and suddenly thereafter burst and fell down dead.

Then for seven years King Meliodas mourned and found no solace, and during that time, young Tristram was well cared for. Eventually, he married the daughter of Howell, King of Brittany, who, wanting her own children to inherit the kingdom, began to plot against Tristram. One day, she poisoned a silver cup, intending for Tristram to drink from it while he was playing with her children, hoping he would die of thirst. However, her own son saw the cup and, thinking it contained something good to drink, reached for it and drank deeply. Suddenly, he collapsed and died.

When the queen heard that, her grief was very great, but her anger and envy were fiercer than before, and soon again she put more poison in the cup. And by chance one day her husband finding it when thirsty, took it up and was about to drink therefrom, when, seeing him, she sprang up with a mighty cry and dashed it from his hands.

When the queen heard that, her sadness was overwhelming, but her anger and jealousy were even stronger than before. Soon after, she added more poison to the cup. One day, her husband found it when he was thirsty, picked it up, and was about to drink from it when she saw him. With a loud scream, she jumped up and knocked it from his hands.

At that King Meliodas, wondering greatly, called to mind the sudden death of his young child, and taking her fiercely by the hand he cried:

At that, King Meliodas, feeling a deep sense of wonder, remembered the unexpected death of his young child, and grabbing her hand tightly, he shouted:

"Traitress, tell me what drink is in this cup or I will slay thee in a moment;" and therewith pulling out his sword he swore by a great oath to slay her if she straightway told him not the truth.

"Traitor, tell me what drink is in this cup or I will kill you in an instant;" and with that, pulling out his sword, he swore a serious oath to kill her if she didn’t tell him the truth right away.

"Ah, mercy, lord," said she, and fell down at his feet; "mercy, and I will tell thee all."

"Please, my lord," she said, falling to her knees at his feet. "Have mercy, and I'll tell you everything."

And then she told him of her plot to murder Tristram, so that her own sons might enjoy the kingdom.

And then she told him about her plan to kill Tristram, so that her own sons could take the kingdom.

"The law shall judge thee," said the king.

"The law will judge you," said the king.

And so anon she was tried before the barons, and condemned to be burnt to death.

And so soon she was tried before the barons and sentenced to be burned to death.

But when the fire was made, and she brought out, came Tristram kneeling at his father's feet and besought of him a favor.

But when the fire was set, and she brought it out, Tristram came kneeling at his father's feet and asked him for a favor.

"Whatsoever thou desirest I will give thee," said the king.

"Whatever you wish, I will give you," said the king.

"Give me the life, then, of the queen, my step-mother," said he.

"Then tell me about the life of the queen, my stepmother," he said.

"Thou doest wrong to ask it," said Meliodas; "for she would have slain thee with her poisons if she could, and chiefly for thy sake she ought to die."

"You're wrong to ask that," said Meliodas; "she would have killed you with her poisons if she could, and especially for your sake, she should die."

"Sir," said he, "as for that, I beseech thee of thy mercy to forgive it her, and for my part may God pardon her as I do; and so I pray thee grant me my boon, and for God's sake hold thee to thy promise."

"Sir," he said, "for that, I ask you out of mercy to forgive her, and as for me, may God forgive her as I do; so I ask you to grant me my request, and for God's sake, please keep your promise."

"If it must be so," said the king, "take thou her life, for to thee I give it, and go and do with her as thou wilt."

"If that's what has to happen," said the king, "then take her life; it's yours to take, so go and do with her as you wish."

Then went young Tristram to the fire and loosed the queen from all her bonds and delivered her from death.

Then young Tristram went to the fire, untied the queen from all her restraints, and saved her from death.

And after a great while by his good means the king again forgave and lived in peace with her, though never more in the same lodgings.

And after a long time, thanks to his good efforts, the king forgave her again and they lived in peace, although they never shared the same living space again.

Anon was Tristram sent abroad to France in care of one named Governale. And there for seven years he learned the language of the land, and all knightly exercises and gentle crafts, and especially was he foremost in music and in hunting, and was a harper beyond all others. And when at nineteen years of age he came back to his father, he was as lusty and strong of body and as noble of heart as ever man was seen.

Tristram was soon sent to France under the care of a man named Governale. There, for seven years, he learned the local language, all the knightly skills and noble crafts. He especially excelled in music and hunting, becoming a better harp player than anyone else. When he returned to his father at the age of nineteen, he was as vigorous and strong as anyone had ever seen, and his heart was as noble as ever.

Now shortly after his return it befell that King Anguish of Ireland sent to King Mark of Cornwall for the tribute due to Ireland, but which was now seven years behindhand. To whom King Mark sent answer, if he would have it he must send and fight for it, and they would find a champion to fight against it.

Now, shortly after his return, King Anguish of Ireland sent a message to King Mark of Cornwall for the tribute owed to Ireland, which was now seven years overdue. King Mark replied that if Anguish wanted it, he would have to come and fight for it, and they would find a champion to battle against it.

So King Anguish called for Sir Marhaus, his wife's brother, a good knight of the Round Table, who lived then at his court, and sent him with a knightly retinue in six great ships to Cornwall. And, casting anchor by the castle of Tintagil, he sent up daily to King Mark for the tribute or the champion. But no knight there would venture to assail him, for his fame was very high in all the realm for strength and hardihood.

So King Anguish called for Sir Marhaus, his wife's brother, a good knight of the Round Table, who was staying at his court, and sent him with a group of knights in six big ships to Cornwall. After anchoring by the castle of Tintagil, he sent daily messages to King Mark for the tribute or the champion. But no knight there was willing to challenge him, as he was very renowned throughout the land for his strength and bravery.

Then made King Mark a proclamation throughout Cornwall, that if any knight would fight Sir Marhaus he should stand at the king's right hand forevermore, and have great honor and riches all the rest of his days. Anon this news came to the land of Lyonesse, and when young Tristram heard it he was angry and ashamed to think no knight of Cornwall durst assail the Irish champion. "Alas," said he, "that I am not a knight, that I might match this Marhaus! I pray you give me leave, sir, to depart to King Mark's court and beg him of his grace to make me knight."

Then King Mark made an announcement all over Cornwall that any knight willing to fight Sir Marhaus would have the honor of standing at the king's right hand forever and would enjoy great wealth for the rest of his life. Soon, this news reached the land of Lyonesse, and when young Tristram heard it, he felt angry and ashamed that no knight from Cornwall dared to challenge the Irish champion. "Alas," he said, "if only I were a knight, I would take on Marhaus! Please, sir, allow me to go to King Mark's court and ask him to knight me."

"Be ruled by thy own courage," said his father.

"Let your own courage guide you," said his father.

So Tristram rode away forthwith to Tintagil to King Mark, and went up boldly to him and said, "Sir, give me the order of knighthood and I will fight to the uttermost with Sir Marhaus of Ireland."

So Tristram rode away immediately to Tintagil to see King Mark, and approached him confidently and said, "Sir, grant me the title of knight and I will fight to the finish with Sir Marhaus of Ireland."

"What are ye, and whence come ye?" said the king, seeing he was but a young man, though strong and well made both in body and limb.

"What are you, and where do you come from?" said the king, noticing he was just a young man, though strong and well-built in both body and limb.

"My name is Tristram," said he, "and I was born in the country of Lyonesse."

"My name is Tristram," he said, "and I was born in the land of Lyonesse."

"But know ye," said the king, "this Irish knight will fight with none who be not come of royal blood and near of kin to kings or queens, as he himself is, for his sister is the Queen of Ireland."

"But understand," said the king, "this Irish knight will only fight those who are of royal blood and closely related to kings or queens, just like he is, because his sister is the Queen of Ireland."

Then said Tristram, "Let him know that I am come both on my father's and my mother's side of blood as good as his, for my father is King Meliodas and my mother was that Queen Elizabeth, thy sister, who died in the forest at my birth."

Then Tristram said, "Let him know that I come from good blood on both my father's and mother's side, because my father is King Meliodas and my mother was Queen Elizabeth, your sister, who died in the forest when I was born."

When King Mark heard that he welcomed him with all his heart, and knighted him forthwith, and made him ready to go forth as soon as he would choose, and armed him royally in armor covered with gold and silver.

When King Mark heard this, he welcomed him wholeheartedly, knighted him right away, and prepared him to set out whenever he was ready. He equipped him in royal armor adorned with gold and silver.

Then he sent Sir Marhaus word, "That a better man than he should fight with him, Sir Tristram of Lyonesse, son of King Meliodas and of King Mark's own sister." So the battle was ordained to be fought in an island near Sir Marhaus' ships, and there Sir Tristram landed on the morrow, with Governale alone attending him for squire, and him he sent back to the land when he had made himself ready.

Then he sent word to Sir Marhaus, "A better man than you will fight him, Sir Tristram of Lyonesse, son of King Meliodas and King Mark's sister." So the battle was set to take place on an island near Sir Marhaus' ships, and the next day Sir Tristram landed there, accompanied only by his squire, Governale, whom he sent back to the shore once he was ready.

When Sir Marhaus and Sir Tristram were thus left alone, Sir Marhaus said, "Young knight Sir Tristram, what doest thou here? I am full sorry for thy rashness, for ofttimes have I been assailed in vain, and by the best knights of the world. Be warned in time, return to them that sent thee."

When Sir Marhaus and Sir Tristram were left alone, Sir Marhaus said, "Young knight Sir Tristram, what are you doing here? I'm really sorry about your recklessness, because I've often faced attacks in vain, even from the best knights in the world. Take my advice and head back to those who sent you."

"Fair knight, and well-proved knight," replied Sir Tristram, "be sure that I shall never quit this quarrel till one of us be overcome. For this cause have I been made knight, and thou shalt know before we part that though as yet unproved, I am a king's son and firstborn of a queen. Moreover I have promised to deliver Cornwall from this ancient burden, or to die. Also, thou shouldst have known, Sir Marhaus, that thy valor and thy might are but the better reasons why I should assail thee; for whether I win or lose I shall gain honor to have met so great a knight as thou art."

"Brave knight, and well-tested knight," replied Sir Tristram, "know that I will never back down from this fight until one of us is defeated. This is why I became a knight, and you will see before we part that even though I am still untested, I am a king's son and the firstborn of a queen. Furthermore, you should know, Sir Marhaus, that your courage and strength are even more reason for me to challenge you; because whether I win or lose, I will gain honor just from facing such a great knight like you."

Then they began the battle, and tilted at their hardest against each other, so that both knights and horses fell to the earth. But Sir Marhaus' spear smote Sir Tristram a great wound in the side. Then, springing up from their horses, they lashed together with their swords like two wild boars. And when they had stricken together a great while they left off strokes and lunged at one another's breasts and visors; but seeing this availed not they hurtled together again to bear each other down.

Then they started the battle and charged at each other as hard as they could, causing both knights and horses to crash to the ground. However, Sir Marhaus' spear struck Sir Tristram with a serious wound in the side. Then, jumping off their horses, they fought with their swords like two wild boars. After exchanging blows for a long time, they stopped hitting and aimed for each other’s chests and helmets; but realizing this wasn’t working, they crashed into each other again to try to take each other down.

Thus fought they more than half the day, till both were sorely spent and blood ran from them to the ground on every side. But by this time Sir Tristram remained fresher than Sir Marhaus and better winded, and with a mighty stroke he smote him such a buffet as cut through his helm into his brain-pan, and there his sword stuck in so fast that thrice Sir Tristram pulled ere he could get it from his head. Then fell Sir Marhaus down upon his knees, and the edge of Sir Tristram's sword broke off into his brain-pan. And suddenly when he seemed dead, Sir Marhaus rose and threw his sword and shield away from him and ran and fled into his ship. And Tristram cried out after him, "Aha! Sir knight of the Round Table, dost thou withdraw thee from so young a knight? it is a shame to thee and all thy kin; I would rather have been hewn into a hundred pieces than have fled from thee."

They fought for more than half the day until both were exhausted and blood was spilling from them onto the ground all around. By this time, Sir Tristram was still fresher than Sir Marhaus and had better stamina. With a powerful strike, he hit Marhaus so hard that his sword cut through his helmet and into his skull, getting stuck so deep that Tristram had to pull it out three times before he could free it. Then Sir Marhaus fell to his knees, and the edge of Tristram's sword broke off in his skull. Just when he seemed dead, Sir Marhaus suddenly got up, threw away his sword and shield, and ran back to his ship. Tristram shouted after him, "Aha! Sir knight of the Round Table, are you retreating from such a young knight? It’s a disgrace to you and your family; I’d rather be chopped into a hundred pieces than run away from you."

But Sir Marhaus answered nothing, and sorely groaning fled away.

But Sir Marhaus said nothing and, groaning in pain, ran away.

"Farewell, Sir knight, farewell," laughed Tristram, whose own voice now was hoarse and faint with loss of blood; "I have thy sword and shield in my safe keeping, and will wear them in all places where I ride on my adventures, and before King Arthur and the Table Round."

"Goodbye, Sir knight, goodbye," laughed Tristram, whose voice was now hoarse and weak from blood loss; "I have your sword and shield in my safe keeping, and I will wear them wherever I go on my adventures, and before King Arthur and the Round Table."

Then was Sir Marhaus taken back to Ireland by his company; and as soon as he arrived his wounds were searched, and when they searched his head they found therein a piece of Tristram's sword; but all the skill of surgeons was in vain to move it out. So anon Sir Marhaus died.

Then Sir Marhaus was taken back to Ireland by his companions; and as soon as he arrived, his wounds were examined, and when they checked his head, they found a piece of Tristram's sword lodged in it; but no matter how skilled the surgeons were, they couldn't remove it. So soon after, Sir Marhaus died.

But the queen, his sister, took the piece of sword-blade and put it safely by, for she thought that some day it might help her to revenge her brother's death.

But the queen, his sister, took the piece of sword blade and set it aside safely, believing that one day it might help her avenge her brother's death.

Meanwhile, Sir Tristram, being sorely wounded, sat down softly on a little mound and bled passing fast; and in that evil case was found anon by Governale and King Mark's knights. Then they gently took him up and brought him in a barge back to the land, and lifted him into a bed within the castle, and had his wounds dressed carefully.

Meanwhile, Sir Tristram, severely wounded, sat down gently on a small mound and bled quickly; and in that terrible state, he was soon found by Governale and King Mark's knights. They carefully picked him up and brought him back to shore in a boat, then lifted him into a bed inside the castle and treated his wounds with care.

But for a great while he lay sick, and was likely to have died of the first stroke Sir Marhaus had given him with the spear, for the point of it was poisoned. And, though the wisest surgeons and leeches—both men and women—came from every part, yet could he be by no means cured. At last came a wise lady, and said plainly that Sir Tristram never should be healed, until he went and stayed in that same country when the poison came. When this was understood, the king sent Sir Tristram in a fair and goodly ship to Ireland, and by fortune he arrived fast by a castle where the king and queen were. And as the ship was being anchored, he sat upon his bed and harped a merry lay, and made so sweet a music as was never equaled.

But for a long time, he lay sick and was close to dying from the first blow Sir Marhaus had struck him with the spear, because the tip was poisoned. Even though the best doctors and healers—both men and women—came from all over, he could not be cured. Finally, a wise woman came and clearly stated that Sir Tristram wouldn’t heal until he went back to the same country where the poison originated. Once this was understood, the king sent Sir Tristram on a fine ship to Ireland, and by chance, he arrived near a castle where the king and queen were. As the ship was being anchored, he sat on his bed and played a cheerful tune on his harp, creating such sweet music that had never been matched.

When the king heard that the sweet harper was a wounded knight, he sent for him, and asked his name. "I am of the country of Lyonesse," he answered, "and my name is Tramtrist;" for he dared not tell his true name lest the vengeance of the queen should fall upon him for her brother's death.

When the king found out that the talented harper was actually a wounded knight, he called for him and asked for his name. "I'm from the land of Lyonesse," he replied, "and my name is Tramtrist;" for he was afraid to reveal his real name, fearing the queen's wrath would come after him for her brother's death.

"Well," said King Anguish, "thou art right welcome here, and shalt have all the help this land can give thee; but be not anxious if I am at times cast down and sad, for but lately in Cornwall the best knight in the world, fighting for my cause, was slain; his name was Sir Marhaus, a knight of King Arthur's Round Table." And then he told Sir Tristram all the story of Sir Marhaus' battle, and Sir Tristram made pretense of great surprise and sorrow, though he knew all far better than the king himself.

"Well," said King Anguish, "you are very welcome here, and you will have all the help this land can offer you; but don't worry if I seem down and sad at times, because just recently in Cornwall, the best knight in the world, fighting for my cause, was killed; his name was Sir Marhaus, a knight of King Arthur's Round Table." Then he told Sir Tristram the whole story of Sir Marhaus's battle, and Sir Tristram pretended to be very surprised and saddened, even though he knew the truth much better than the king himself.

Then was he put in charge of the king's daughter, La Belle Isault, to be healed of his wound, and she was as fair and noble a lady as men's eyes might see. And so marvelously was she skilled in medicine, that in a few days she fully cured him; and in return Sir Tramtrist taught her the harp; so, before long, they two began to love each other greatly.

Then he was put in charge of the king's daughter, La Belle Isault, to heal his wound, and she was as beautiful and noble a lady as anyone could see. And she was so wonderfully skilled in medicine that she fully cured him in just a few days; in return, Sir Tramtrist taught her to play the harp, so before long, they both fell deeply in love with each other.

But at that time a heathen knight, Sir Palomedes, was in Ireland, and much cherished by the king and queen. He also loved mightily La Belle Isault, and never wearied of making her great gifts, and seeking for her favor, and was ready even to be christened for her sake. Sir Tramtrist therefore hated him out of measure, and Sir Palomedes was full of rage and envy against Tramtrist.

But at that time, a non-Christian knight, Sir Palomedes, was in Ireland and was greatly appreciated by the king and queen. He was also deeply in love with La Belle Isault and constantly showered her with extravagant gifts, trying to win her favor, even willing to convert to Christianity for her. This made Sir Tramtrist intensely hate him, while Sir Palomedes was filled with anger and jealousy towards Tramtrist.

And so it befell that King Anguish proclaimed a great tournament to be held, the prize whereof should be a lady called the Lady of the Launds, of near kindred to the king: and her the winner of the tournament should wed in three days afterwards, and possess all her lands. When La Belle Isault told Sir Tramtrist of this tournament, he said, "Fair lady! I am yet a feeble knight, and but for thee had been a dead man now: what wouldest thou I should do? Thou knowest well I may not joust."

And so it happened that King Anguish announced a big tournament, and the winner would get a lady named the Lady of the Launds, who was closely related to the king. The winner of the tournament would marry her three days later and inherit all her lands. When La Belle Isault informed Sir Tramtrist about this tournament, he replied, "Fair lady! I'm still a weak knight, and if it weren't for you, I would be dead by now: what do you want me to do? You know I can't joust."

"Ah, Tramtrist," said she, "why wilt thou not fight in this tournament? Sir Palomedes will be there, and will do his mightiest; and therefore be thou there, I pray thee, or else he will be winner of the prize."

"Ah, Tramtrist," she said, "why won’t you compete in this tournament? Sir Palomedes will be there, and he will give it his all; so please be there, or else he’ll take home the prize."

"Madam," said Tramtrist, "I will go, and for thy sake will do my best; but let me go unknown to all men; and do thou, I pray thee, keep my counsel, and help me to a disguise."

"Ma'am," said Tramtrist, "I'll go, and I'll do my best for you; but please let me leave without anyone knowing; and I ask you to keep this a secret and help me with a disguise."

So on the day of jousting came Sir Palomedes, with a black shield, and overthrew many knights. And all the people wondered at his prowess; for on the first day he put to the worse Sir Gawain, Sir Gaheris, Sir Agravaine, Sir Key, and many more from far and near. And on the morrow he was conqueror again, and overthrew the king with a hundred knights and the King of Scotland. But presently Sir Tramtrist rode up to the lists, having been let out at a privy postern of the castle, where none could see. La Belle Isault had dressed him in white armor and given him a white horse and shield, and so he came suddenly into the field as it had been a bright angel.

So on the day of the tournament, Sir Palomedes arrived with a black shield and defeated many knights. Everyone was amazed by his skill; on the first day, he bested Sir Gawain, Sir Gaheris, Sir Agravaine, Sir Kay, and many others from far and wide. The next day, he was victorious again, beating the king along with a hundred knights and the King of Scotland. But soon, Sir Tristram rode up to the tournament, having slipped out through a secret gate of the castle where no one could see. La Belle Isault had outfitted him in white armor and given him a white horse and shield, so he suddenly entered the field like a bright angel.

As soon as Sir Palomedes saw him he ran at him with a great spear in rest, but Sir Tramtrist was ready, and at the first encounter hurled him to the ground. Then there arose a great cry that the knight with the black shield was overthrown. And Palomedes, sorely hurt and shamed, sought out a secret way and would have left the field; but Tramtrist watched him, and rode after him, and bade him stay, for he had not yet done with him. Then did Sir Palomedes turn with fury, and lash at Sir Tramtrist with his sword; but at the first stroke Sir Tramtrist smote him to the earth, and cried, "Do now all my commands, or take thy death." Then he yielded to Sir Tristram's mercy, and promised to forsake La Belle Isault, and for twelve months to wear no arms or armor. And rising up, he cut his armor off him into shreds with rage and madness, and turned and left the field: and Sir Tramtrist also left the lists, and rode back to the castle through the postern gate.

As soon as Sir Palomedes saw him, he charged with a large spear at the ready, but Sir Tramtrist was prepared and quickly knocked him to the ground at their first clash. A loud cry went up that the knight with the black shield had been defeated. Hurt and embarrassed, Palomedes tried to find a hidden exit to leave the battlefield, but Tramtrist kept an eye on him and rode after him, insisting he stay, as their fight wasn't over yet. In a fit of rage, Sir Palomedes attacked Sir Tramtrist with his sword, but with one strike, Sir Tramtrist brought him down again and shouted, "Follow my commands now, or face your death." Palomedes then submitted to Sir Tristram's mercy, agreeing to abandon La Belle Isault and to not wear any arms or armor for a year. Rising to his feet, he angrily tore his armor into shreds and left the field, while Sir Tramtrist also exited the lists and rode back to the castle through the postern gate.

Then was Sir Tramtrist long cherished by the King and Queen of Ireland, and ever with La Belle Isault. But on a certain day, while he was bathing, came the queen with La Belle Isault by chance into his chamber, and saw his sword lie naked on the bed: anon she drew it from the scabbard and looked at it a long while, and both thought it a passing fair sword; but within a foot and a half of the end there was a great piece broken out, and while the queen was looking at the gap, she suddenly remembered the piece of sword-blade that was found in the brain-pan of her brother Sir Marhaus.

Then Sir Tramtrist was greatly valued by the King and Queen of Ireland and was always with La Belle Isault. But one day, while he was bathing, the queen and La Belle Isault happened to enter his chamber and saw his sword lying naked on the bed. She quickly drew it from the scabbard and examined it for a long time, and they both admired the beautiful sword; however, there was a significant chunk broken off about a foot and a half from the tip. As the queen looked at the gap, she suddenly remembered the piece of sword blade that had been found in the skull of her brother, Sir Marhaus.

Therewith she turned and cried, "By my faith, this is the felon knight who slew thy uncle!" And running to her chamber she sought in her casket for the piece of iron from Sir Marhaus' head and brought it back, and fitted it in Tristram's sword; and surely did it fit therein as closely as it had been but yesterday broke out.

Thereupon, she turned and shouted, "I swear, this is the guilty knight who killed your uncle!" Then she dashed to her room to search her chest for the piece of iron from Sir Marhaus' head. She returned with it and fitted it into Tristram's sword, and it fit perfectly as if it had just broken off yesterday.

Then the queen caught the sword up fiercely in her hand, and ran into the room where Sir Tristram was yet in his bath, and making straight for him, had run him through the body, had not his squire, Sir Hebes, got her in his arms, and pulled the sword away from her.

Then the queen fiercely grabbed the sword and rushed into the room where Sir Tristram was still in his bath. She was heading straight for him and would have run him through if his squire, Sir Hebes, hadn't caught her in his arms and pulled the sword away from her.

Then ran she to the king, and fell upon her knees before him, saying, "Lord and husband, thou hast here in thy house that felon knight who slew my brother Marhaus!"

Then she ran to the king and fell to her knees before him, saying, "Lord and husband, you have in your house that criminal knight who killed my brother Marhaus!"

"Who is it?" said the king.

"Who is it?" the king asked.

"It is Sir Tramtrist!" said she, "whom Isault hath healed."

"It’s Sir Tramtrist!" she said, "whom Isault has healed."

"Alas!" replied the king, "I am full grieved thereat, for he is a good knight as ever I have seen in any field; but I charge thee leave thou him, and let me deal with him."

"Unfortunately!" replied the king, "I am very saddened by this, for he is the best knight I have ever seen in any battle; but I insist that you leave him, and let me handle it."

Then the king went to Sir Tramtrist's chamber and found him all armed and ready to mount his horse, and said to him, "Sir Tramtrist, it is not to prove me against thee I come, for it were shameful of thy host to seek thy life. Depart in peace, but tell me first thy name, and whether thou slewest my brother, Sir Marhaus."

Then the king went to Sir Tramtrist's room and found him fully armored and ready to ride his horse. He said, "Sir Tramtrist, I haven't come here to challenge you, as it would be disgraceful for your host to seek your life. Leave in peace, but first tell me your name and if you killed my brother, Sir Marhaus."

Then Sir Tristram told him all the truth, and how he had hid his name, to be unknown in Ireland; and when he had ended, the king declared he held him in no blame. "Howbeit, I cannot for mine honor's sake retain thee at this court, for so I should displease my barons, and my wife, and all her kin."

Then Sir Tristram told him the whole truth and explained how he had concealed his name to remain unknown in Ireland. When he finished, the king said he held no grudge against him. "However, for the sake of my honor, I can't keep you at this court, as it would upset my barons, my wife, and all her family."

"Sir," said Sir Tristram, "I thank thee for the goodness thou hast shown me here, and for the great goodness my lady, thy daughter, hath shown me; and it may chance to be more for thy advantage if I live than if I die; for wheresoever I may be, I shall ever seek thy service, and shall be my lady thy daughter's servant in all places, and her knight in right and wrong, and shall never fail to do for her as much as knight can do."

"Sir," said Sir Tristram, "I appreciate the kindness you've shown me here, and the incredible kindness your daughter, my lady, has shown me; and it might turn out to be more beneficial for you if I live than if I die; because no matter where I am, I will always be at your service, and I will be my lady your daughter's servant everywhere, her knight in both good and bad, and I will never fail to do as much for her as any knight can."

Then Sir Tristram went to La Belle Isault, and took his leave of her. "O gentle knight," said she, "full of grief am I at your departing, for never yet I saw a man to love so well."

Then Sir Tristram went to La Belle Isault and said goodbye to her. "O gentle knight," she said, "I am so sad to see you go, for I have never met a man I loved so deeply."

"Madam," said he, "I promise faithfully that all my life I shall be your knight."

"Ma'am," he said, "I promise wholeheartedly that I will always be your knight."

Then Sir Tristram gave her a ring, and she gave him another, and after that he left her, weeping and lamenting, and went among the barons, and openly took his leave of them all, saying, "Fair lords, it so befalleth that I now must depart hence; therefore, if there be any here whom I have offended or who is grieved with me, let him now say it, and before I go I will amend it to the utmost of my power. And if there be but one who would speak shame of me behind my back, let him say it now or never, and here is my body to prove it on—body against body."

Then Sir Tristram gave her a ring, and she gave him another. After that, he left her, crying and mourning, and went to the barons. He openly said goodbye to them all, saying, "Gentle lords, I have to leave now; so if there’s anyone here who I've upset or who is hurt by me, please speak up, and I’ll do my best to make it right before I go. And if there’s even one person who would speak ill of me behind my back, say it now or never, and here I am, ready to face you—body against body."

And all stood still and said no word, though some there were of the queen's kindred who would have assailed him had they dared.

And everyone stayed quiet and said nothing, although some of the queen's relatives would have attacked him if they had the courage.

So Sir Tristram departed from Ireland and took the sea and came with a fair wind to Tintagil. And when the news came to King Mark that Sir Tristram was returned, healed of his wound, he was passing glad, and so were all his barons. And when he had visited the king his uncle, he rode to his father, King Meliodas, and there had all the heartiest welcome that could be made him. And both the king and queen gave largely to him of their lands and goods.

So Sir Tristram left Ireland, set out to sea, and arrived at Tintagil with a good wind. When King Mark heard that Sir Tristram had returned, healed from his wound, he was very happy, and so were all his barons. After visiting his uncle the king, he rode to see his father, King Meliodas, where he received the warmest welcome possible. Both the king and queen generously gifted him lands and possessions.

Anon he came again to King Mark's court, and there lived in great joy and pleasure, till within a while the king grew jealous of his fame, and of the love and favor shown him by all damsels. And as long as King Mark lived, he never after loved Sir Tristram, though there was much fair speech between them.

Soon he returned to King Mark's court, where he lived in great joy and happiness. But after a while, the king became jealous of his fame and the love and attention he received from all the ladies. From that point on, as long as King Mark lived, he never again loved Sir Tristram, even though they exchanged many kind words.

Then it befell upon a certain day that the good knight Sir Bleoberis de Ganis, brother to Sir Blamor de Ganis, and nigh cousin to Sir Lancelot of the Lake, came to King Mark's court and asked of him a favor. And though the king marveled, seeing he was a man of great renown, and a knight of the Round Table, he granted him all his asking. Then said Sir Bleoberis, "I will have the fairest lady in your court, at my own choosing."

Then one day, the good knight Sir Bleoberis de Ganis, brother to Sir Blamor de Ganis and a close relative of Sir Lancelot of the Lake, arrived at King Mark's court and requested a favor from him. Although the king was surprised, knowing he was a man of great fame and a knight of the Round Table, he agreed to all his requests. Sir Bleoberis then said, "I want the most beautiful lady in your court, chosen by me."

"I may not say thee nay," replied the king; "choose therefore, but take all the issues of thy choice."

"I can't say no to you," replied the king; "so go ahead and choose, but be prepared for all the consequences of your choice."

So when he had looked around, he chose the wife of Earl Segwarides, and took her by the hand, and set her upon horseback behind his squire, and rode forth on his way.

So after he looked around, he picked the wife of Earl Segwarides, took her by the hand, helped her onto the horse behind his squire, and rode off on his way.

Presently thereafter came in the earl, and rode out straightway after him in rage. But all the ladies cried out shame upon Sir Tristram that he had not gone, and one rebuked him foully and called him coward knight, that he would stand and see a lady forced away from his uncle's court. But Sir Tristram answered her, "Fair lady, it is not my place to take part in this quarrel while her lord and husband is here to do it. Had he not been at this court, peradventure I had been her champion. And if it so befall that he speed ill, then may it happen that I speak with that foul knight before he pass out of this realm."

Soon after, the earl arrived and immediately rode out after him in anger. But all the ladies shouted shame at Sir Tristram for not going, and one scolded him harshly, calling him a cowardly knight for standing by while a lady was taken from his uncle's court. Sir Tristram replied, "Fair lady, it's not my place to get involved in this dispute while her lord and husband is here to handle it. If he weren't at this court, perhaps I would have been her champion. And if he happens to fail, then I may have the chance to confront that vile knight before he leaves this realm."

Anon ran in one of Sir Segwarides' squires, and told that his master was sore wounded, and at the point of death. When Sir Tristram heard that, he was soon armed and on his horse, and Governale, his servant, followed him with shield and spear.

Anon, one of Sir Segwarides' squires, ran up and reported that his master was badly wounded and near death. When Sir Tristram heard this, he quickly put on his armor and mounted his horse, while his servant Governale followed him with a shield and spear.

And as he rode, he met his cousin Sir Andret, who had been commanded by King Mark to bring home to him two knights of King Arthur's court who roamed the country thereabouts seeking adventures.

And as he rode, he met his cousin Sir Andret, who had been sent by King Mark to bring back two knights from King Arthur's court who were wandering around the area looking for adventures.

"What tidings?" said Sir Tristram.

"What news?" said Sir Tristram.

"God help me, never worse," replied his cousin; "for those I went to bring have beaten and defeated me, and set my message at naught."

"God help me, it’s never been worse," replied his cousin. "The people I went to find have beaten me and disregarded my message."

"Fair cousin," said Sir Tristram, "ride ye on your way, perchance if I should meet them ye may be revenged."

"Dear cousin," said Sir Tristram, "continue on your way; maybe I’ll run into them and you can get your revenge."

So Sir Andret rode into Cornwall, but Sir Tristram rode after the two knights who had misused him, namely, Sir Sagramour le Desirous, and Sir Dodinas le Savage. And before long he saw them but a little way before him.

So Sir Andret rode into Cornwall, but Sir Tristram followed the two knights who had wronged him, Sir Sagramour le Desirous and Sir Dodinas le Savage. Before long, he spotted them just a short distance ahead of him.

"Sir," said Governale, "by my advice thou wilt leave them alone, for they be two well-proved knights of Arthur's court."

"Sir," Governale said, "I advise you to leave them alone, as they are two well-proven knights from Arthur's court."

"Shall I not therefore rather meet them!" said Sir Tristram, and, riding swiftly after them, he called to them to stop, and asked them whence they came, and whither they were going, and what they were doing in those marches.

"Shouldn't I just catch up with them!" said Sir Tristram, and, riding quickly after them, he shouted for them to stop, asking where they came from, where they were going, and what they were doing in those borders.

Sir Sagramour looked haughtily at Sir Tristram, and made mocking of his words, and said, "Fair knight, be ye a knight of Cornwall?"

Sir Sagramour looked down at Sir Tristram with disdain and mocked his words, saying, "Noble knight, are you a knight from Cornwall?"

"Wherefore askest thou that?" said Tristram.

"Why are you asking that?" said Tristram.

"Truly, because it is full seldom seen," replied Sir Sagramour, "that Cornish knights are valiant with their arms as with their tongues. It is but two hours since there met us such a Cornish knight, who spoke great words with might and prowess, but anon, with little mastery, he was laid on earth, as I trow wilt thou be also."

"Honestly, it's really rare," replied Sir Sagramour, "for Cornish knights to be as brave with their swords as they are with their words. Just two hours ago, we came across a Cornish knight who boasted a lot about his strength and skill, but soon enough, he was taken down to the ground, just like I believe you will be too."

"Fair lords," said Sir Tristram, "it may chance I be a better man than he; but, be that as it may, he was my cousin, and for his sake I will assail ye both; one Cornish knight against ye two."

"Dear lords," said Sir Tristram, "I may be a better man than he; but regardless, he was my cousin, and for his sake, I will challenge you both; one Cornish knight against the two of you."

When Sir Dodinas le Savage heard this speech, he caught at his spear and said, "Sir knight, keep well thyself;" and then they parted and came together as it had been thunder, and Sir Dodinas' spear split asunder; but Sir Tristram smote him with so full a stroke as hurled him over his horse's crupper, and nearly brake his neck. Sir Sagramour, seeing his fellow's fall, marveled who this new knight be, and dressed his spear, and came against Sir Tristram as a whirlwind; but Sir Tristram smote him a mighty buffet, and rolled him with his horse down on the ground; and in the falling he brake his thigh.

When Sir Dodinas le Savage heard this, he grabbed his spear and said, "Knight, take care of yourself;" and then they separated and charged at each other like a storm, causing Sir Dodinas' spear to snap in half; but Sir Tristram struck him with such force that he was thrown over his horse's back and nearly broke his neck. Sir Sagramour, seeing his companion fall, wondered who this new knight was, prepared his spear, and charged at Sir Tristram like a whirlwind; but Sir Tristram delivered a powerful blow that sent him and his horse crashing to the ground, and in the fall, he broke his thigh.

Then, looking at them both as they lay groveling on the grass, Sir Tristram said, "Fair knights, will ye joust any more? Are there no bigger knights in King Arthur's court? Will ye soon again speak shame of Cornish knights?"

Then, looking at both of them as they lay on the grass, Sir Tristram said, "Noble knights, are you going to joust again? Are there no stronger knights in King Arthur's court? Will you soon start mocking Cornish knights again?"

"Thou hast defeated us, in truth," replied Sir Sagramour, "and on the faith of knighthood I require thee tell us thy right name?"

"You have truly defeated us," replied Sir Sagramour, "and in the spirit of chivalry, I ask you to tell us your real name?"

"Ye charge me by a great thing," said Sir Tristram, "and I will answer ye."

"You're asking me something really important," said Sir Tristram, "and I will respond to you."

And when they heard his name the two knights were right glad that they had met Sir Tristram, for his deeds were known through all the land, and they prayed him to abide in their company.

And when they heard his name, the two knights were very happy that they had met Sir Tristram, since his exploits were famous throughout the land, and they asked him to stay with them.

"Nay," said he, "I must find a fellow-knight of yours, Sir Bleoberis de Ganis, whom I seek."

"Nah," he said, "I need to find your fellow knight, Sir Bleoberis de Ganis, whom I'm looking for."

"God speed you well," said the two knights; and Sir Tristram rode away.

"Good luck to you," said the two knights; and Sir Tristram rode away.

Soon he saw before him in a valley Sir Bleoberis with Sir Segwarides' wife riding behind his squire upon a palfrey. At that he cried out aloud, "Abide, Sir knight of King Arthur's court, bring back again that lady or deliver her to me."

Soon he saw in a valley Sir Bleoberis with Sir Segwarides' wife riding behind his squire on a palfrey. At that, he shouted, "Wait, Sir knight of King Arthur's court, either bring back that lady or hand her over to me."

"I will not," said Bleoberis, "for I dread no Cornish knight."

"I won’t," Bleoberis said, "because I’m not afraid of any Cornish knight."

"Why," said Sir Tristram, "may not a Cornish knight do well as any other? This day, but three miles back, two knights of thy own court met me, and found one Cornish knight enough for both before we parted."

"Why," said Sir Tristram, "can’t a Cornish knight do just as well as anyone else? Just three miles back today, two knights from your own court ran into me, and they found one Cornish knight enough for both of them before we went our separate ways."

"What were their names?" said Sir Bleoberis.

"What were their names?" Sir Bleoberis asked.

"Sir Sagramour le Desirous and Sir Dodinas le Savage," said Sir Tristram.

"Sir Sagramour the Desirous and Sir Dodinas the Savage," said Sir Tristram.

"Ah," said Sir Bleoberis, amazed; "hast thou then met with them? By my faith, they were two good knights and men of worship, and if thou hast beat both thou must needs be a good knight; but for all that, thou shalt beat me also ere thou hast this lady."

"Ah," said Sir Bleoberis, amazed; "have you really encountered them? I swear, they were two excellent knights and honorable men, and if you defeated both, you must be a good knight too; but still, you'll have to beat me before you can have this lady."

"Defend thee, then," cried out Sir Tristram, and came upon him swiftly with his spear in rest. But Sir Bleoberis was as swift as he, and each bore down the other, horse and all, on to the earth.

"Defend yourself, then," shouted Sir Tristram, charging at him quickly with his spear ready. But Sir Bleoberis was just as quick, and both of them, horses and all, crashed to the ground.

Then they sprang clear of their horses, and lashed together full eagerly and mightily with their swords, tracing and traversing on the right hand and on the left more than two hours, and sometimes rushing together with such fury that they both lay groveling on the ground. At last Sir Bleoberis started back and said, "Now, gentle knight, hold hard awhile, and let us speak together."

Then they jumped off their horses and fiercely clashed with their swords, moving back and forth on the right and left for more than two hours. Sometimes they charged at each other with such intensity that they both ended up on the ground. Finally, Sir Bleoberis stepped back and said, "Now, gentle knight, let's pause for a moment and talk."

"Say on," said Sir Tristram, "and I will answer thee."

"Go ahead," said Sir Tristram, "and I will respond to you."

"Sir," said Sir Bleoberis, "I would know thy name, and court, and country."

"Sir," said Sir Bleoberis, "I would like to know your name, and court, and country."

"I have no shame to tell them," said Sir Tristram. "I am King Meliodas' son, and my mother was sister to King Mark, from whose court I now come. My name is Sir Tristram de Lyonesse."

"I have no shame in telling them," said Sir Tristram. "I am the son of King Meliodas, and my mother was the sister of King Mark, whose court I just left. My name is Sir Tristram de Lyonesse."

"Truly," said Sir Bleoberis, "I am right glad to hear it, for thou art he that slew Sir Marhaus hand-to-hand, fighting for the Cornish tribute; and overcame Sir Palomedes at the great Irish tournament, where also thou didst overthrow Sir Gawain and his nine companions."

"Honestly," said Sir Bleoberis, "I'm really glad to hear it, because you're the one who took down Sir Marhaus in a fair fight while defending the Cornish tribute; and you defeated Sir Palomedes at the big Irish tournament, where you also knocked out Sir Gawain and his nine companions."

"I am that knight," said Sir Tristram, "and now I pray thee tell me thy name."

"I am that knight," said Sir Tristram, "and now I kindly ask you to tell me your name."

"I am Sir Bleoberis de Ganis, cousin of Sir Lancelot of the Lake, one of the best knights in all the world," he answered.

"I am Sir Bleoberis de Ganis, cousin of Sir Lancelot of the Lake, one of the greatest knights in the world," he replied.

"Thou sayest truth," said Sir Tristram; "for Sir Lancelot, as all men know, is peerless in courtesy and knighthood, and for the great love I bear to his name I will not willingly fight more with thee his kinsman."

"You're right," said Sir Tristram; "because Sir Lancelot, as everyone knows, is unmatched in courtesy and knighthood, and out of the great love I have for his name, I will not intentionally fight you, his relative."

"In good faith, sir," said Sir Bleoberis, "I am as loth to fight thee more; but since thou hast followed me to win this lady, I proffer thee kindness, courtesy, and gentleness; this lady shall be free to go with which of us she pleaseth best."

"In good faith, sir," said Sir Bleoberis, "I really don’t want to fight you anymore; but since you’ve followed me to win this lady, I offer you kindness, courtesy, and respect. This lady should be free to choose whoever she prefers."

"I am content," said Sir Tristram, "for I doubt not she will come to me."

"I’m happy," said Sir Tristram, "because I’m sure she’ll come to me."

"That shalt thou shortly prove," said he, and called his squire, and set the lady in the midst between them, who forthwith walked to Sir Bleoberis and elected to abide with him. Which, when Sir Tristram saw, he was in wondrous anger with her, and felt that he could scarce for shame return to King Mark's court. But Sir Bleoberis said, "Hearken to me, good knight, Sir Tristram, because King Mark gave me free choice of any gift, and because this lady chose to go with me, I took her; but now I have fulfilled my quest and my adventure, and for thy sake she shall be sent back to her husband at the abbey where he lieth."

"You're about to find out," he said, and called his squire, placing the lady between them. She immediately walked over to Sir Bleoberis and chose to stay with him. When Sir Tristram saw this, he was filled with anger towards her and felt he could hardly return to King Mark's court out of shame. But Sir Bleoberis said, "Listen to me, good knight, Sir Tristram. King Mark gave me the freedom to choose any gift, and since this lady decided to come with me, I accepted her; but now that I have completed my quest and adventure, for your sake, she will be sent back to her husband at the abbey where he is."

So Sir Tristram rode back to Tintagil, and Sir Bleoberis to the abbey where Sir Segwarides lay wounded, and there delivered up his lady, and departed as a noble knight.

So Sir Tristram rode back to Tintagil, and Sir Bleoberis went to the abbey where Sir Segwarides was injured, and there he returned his lady and left as a noble knight.

After this adventure Sir Tristram abode still at his uncle's court, till in the envy of his heart King Mark devised a plan to be rid of him. So on a certain day he desired him to depart again for Ireland, and there demand La Belle Isault on his behalf, to be his queen—forever had Sir Tristram praised her beauty and her goodness, till King Mark desired to wed her for himself. Moreover, he believed his nephew surely would be slain by the queen's kindred if he once were found again in Ireland.

After this adventure, Sir Tristram stayed at his uncle's court until King Mark, fueled by envy, came up with a scheme to get rid of him. One day, he asked Tristram to return to Ireland and request La Belle Isault on his behalf, to be his queen—Tristram had always praised her beauty and kindness, which made King Mark want to marry her himself. Furthermore, he thought his nephew would definitely be killed by the queen's family if he ever returned to Ireland.

But Sir Tristram, scorning fear, made ready to depart, and took with him the noblest knights that could be found, arrayed in the richest fashion.

But Sir Tristram, disregarding fear, prepared to leave, taking with him the finest knights available, dressed in the most lavish way.

And when they were come to Ireland, upon a certain day Sir Tristram gave his uncle's message, and King Anguish consented thereto.

And when they arrived in Ireland, one day Sir Tristram delivered his uncle's message, and King Anguish agreed to it.

But when La Belle Isault was told the tidings she was very sorrowful and loth—yet made she ready to set forth with Sir Tristram, and took with her Dame Bragwaine, her chief gentlewoman. Then the queen gave Dame Bragwaine, and Governale, Sir Tristram's servant, a little flask, and charged them that La Belle Isault and King Mark should both drink of it on their marriage day, and then should they surely love each other all their lives.

But when La Belle Isault heard the news, she was very sad and reluctant—still, she prepared to leave with Sir Tristram and took her maid, Dame Bragwaine, with her. Then the queen gave Dame Bragwaine and Governale, Sir Tristram's servant, a small flask and instructed them that La Belle Isault and King Mark should both drink from it on their wedding day, and then they would surely love each other for their entire lives.

Anon, Sir Tristram and Isault, with a great company, took the sea and departed. And so it chanced that one day sitting in their cabin they were athirst, and saw a little flask of gold which seemed to hold good wine. So Sir Tristram took it up, and said, "Fair lady, this looketh to be the best of wines, and your maid, Dame Bragwaine, and my servant, Governale, have kept it for themselves." Thereat they both laughed merrily, and drank each after other from the flask, and never before had they tasted any wine which seemed so good and sweet. But by the time they had finished drinking they loved each other so well that their love nevermore might leave them for weal or woe. And thus it came to pass that though Sir Tristram might never wed La Belle Isault, he did the mightiest deeds of arms for her sake only all his life.

Soon, Sir Tristram and Isault, along with a large group, set sail. One day, while sitting in their cabin, they became thirsty and noticed a small gold flask that looked like it contained fine wine. Sir Tristram picked it up and said, "Fair lady, this looks like the best wine, and your maid, Dame Bragwaine, and my servant, Governale, have saved it for themselves." They both laughed heartily and took turns drinking from the flask, and they had never tasted any wine that seemed so delicious and sweet. By the time they finished drinking, they loved each other so deeply that their love would never leave them, for better or for worse. Thus, it happened that although Sir Tristram could never marry La Belle Isault, he accomplished extraordinary feats of valor for her sake throughout his life.

Then they sailed onwards till they came to a castle called Pluere, where they would have rested. But anon there ran forth a great company and took them prisoners. And when they were in prison, Sir Tristram asked a knight and lady whom they found therein wherefore they were so shamefully dealt with; "for," said he, "it was never the custom of any place of honor that I ever came unto to seize a knight and lady asking shelter and thrust them into prison, and a full evil and discourteous custom is it."

Then they sailed on until they reached a castle called Pluere, where they planned to rest. But soon a large group came out and took them as prisoners. Once they were in prison, Sir Tristram asked a knight and lady he found there why they were treated so shamefully. "Because," he said, "it has never been the custom of any honorable place I've visited to seize a knight and lady seeking refuge and throw them into prison. That’s a very bad and disrespectful custom."

"Sir," said the knight, "know ye not that this is called the Castle Pluere, or the weeping castle, and that it is an ancient custom here that whatsoever knight abideth in it must needs fight the lord of it, Sir Brewnor, and he that is the weakest shall lose his head. And if the lady he hath with him be less fair than the lord's wife, she shall lose her head; but if she be fairer, then must the lady of the castle lose her head."

"Sir," said the knight, "don’t you know that this is called the Castle Pluere, or the weeping castle? It's an old tradition here that any knight who stays must fight the lord, Sir Brewnor, and the one who is weaker will lose his head. If the lady he brings along is less beautiful than the lord's wife, she will lose her head; but if she is more beautiful, then the lady of the castle must lose her head."

"Now Heaven help me," said Sir Tristram, "but this is a foul and shameful custom. Yet have I one advantage, for my lady is the fairest that doth live in all the world, so that I nothing fear for her; and as for me, I will full gladly fight for my own head in a fair field."

"Now Heaven help me," said Sir Tristram, "but this is a horrible and disgraceful custom. Still, I have one advantage: my lady is the most beautiful in all the world, so I don’t worry about her; and as for me, I will gladly fight for my own life in a fair duel."

Then said the knight, "Look ye be up betimes to-morrow, and make you ready and your lady."

Then the knight said, "Make sure you're up early tomorrow and get yourself and your lady ready."

And on the morrow came Sir Brewnor to Sir Tristram, and put him and Isault forth out of prison, and brought him a horse and armor, and bade him make ready, for all the commons and estates of that lordship waited in the field to see and judge the battle.

And the next day, Sir Brewnor came to Sir Tristram and released him and Isault from prison. He provided them with a horse and armor and told him to get ready, as all the common people and nobles of that lordship were waiting in the field to witness and judge the battle.

Then Sir Brewnor, holding his lady by the hand, all muffled, came forth, and Sir Tristram went to meet him with La Belle Isault beside him, muffled also. Then said Sir Brewnor, "Sir knight, if thy lady be fairer than mine, with thy sword smite off my lady's head; but if my lady be fairer than thine, with my sword I will smite off thy lady's head. And if I overcome thee thy lady shall be mine, and thou shalt lose thy head."

Then Sir Brewnor, holding his lady's hand, all wrapped up, stepped forward, and Sir Tristram approached him with La Belle Isault beside him, also wrapped up. Then Sir Brewnor said, "Knight, if your lady is prettier than mine, use your sword to cut off my lady's head; but if my lady is prettier than yours, I will use my sword to cut off your lady's head. And if I beat you, your lady will be mine, and you will lose your head."

"Sir knight," replied Sir Tristram, "this is a right foul and felon custom, and rather than my lady shall lose her head will I lose my own."

"Sir knight," Sir Tristram replied, "this is a terrible and wicked custom, and rather than let my lady lose her head, I will lose my own."

"Nay," said Sir Brewnor, "but the ladies shall be now compared together and judgment shall be had."

"Not at all," said Sir Brewnor, "but the ladies will now be compared, and a decision will be made."

"I consent not," cried Sir Tristram, "for who is here that will give rightful judgment? Yet doubt not that my lady is far fairer than thine own, and that will I prove and make good." Therewith Sir Tristram lifted up the veil from off La Belle Isault, and stood beside her with his naked sword drawn in his hand.

"I won't agree to that," shouted Sir Tristram, "for who here can give a fair judgment? But don't doubt that my lady is much more beautiful than yours, and I will prove it." With that, Sir Tristram lifted the veil from La Belle Isault and stood next to her with his drawn sword in hand.

Then Sir Brewnor unmuffled his lady and did in like manner. But when he saw La Belle Isault he knew that none could be so fair, and all there present gave their judgment so. Then said Sir Tristram, "Because thou and thy lady have long used this evil custom, and have slain many good knights and ladies, it were a just thing to destroy thee both."

Then Sir Brewnor uncovered his lady and did the same. But when he saw La Belle Isault, he realized that none could be as beautiful, and everyone present agreed with that. Then Sir Tristram said, "Because you and your lady have long practiced this harmful custom and have killed many good knights and ladies, it would be fair to put an end to both of you."

"In good sooth," said Sir Brewnor, "thy lady is fairer than mine, and of all women I never saw any so fair. Therefore, slay my lady if thou wilt, and I doubt not but I shall slay thee and have thine."

"In truth," said Sir Brewnor, "your lady is more beautiful than mine, and I’ve never seen anyone so stunning. So, go ahead and kill my lady if you want, but I’m confident that I’ll defeat you and claim yours."

"Thou shalt win her," said Sir Tristram, "as dearly as ever knight won lady; and because of thy own judgment and of the evil custom that thy lady hath consented to, I will slay her as thou sayest."

"You will win her," said Sir Tristram, "as dearly as any knight has ever won a lady; and because of your own judgment and the bad custom that your lady has agreed to, I will kill her as you said."

And therewithal Sir Tristram went to him and took his lady from him, and smote off her head at a stroke.

And with that, Sir Tristram approached him, took his lady away, and struck off her head in one blow.

"Now take thy horse," cried out Sir Brewnor, "for since I have lost my lady I will win thine and have thy life."

"Now get on your horse," shouted Sir Brewnor, "because since I lost my lady, I'm determined to win yours and take your life."

So they took their horses and came together as fast as they could fly, and Sir Tristram lightly smote Sir Brewnor from his horse. But he rose right quickly, and when Sir Tristram came again he thrust his horse through both the shoulders, so that it reeled and fell. But Sir Tristram was light and nimble, and voided his horse, and rose up and dressed his shield before him, though meanwhile, ere he could draw out his sword, Sir Brewnor gave him three or four grievous strokes. Then they rushed furiously together like two wild boars, and fought hurtling and hewing here and there for nigh two hours, and wounded each other full sorely. Then at the last Sir Brewnor rushed upon Sir Tristram and took him in his arms to throw him, for he trusted greatly in his strength. But Sir Tristram was at that time called the strongest and biggest knight of the world; for he was bigger than Sir Lancelot, though Sir Lancelot was better breathed. So anon he thrust Sir Brewnor groveling to the earth, and then unlaced his helm and struck off his head. Then all they that belonged to the castle came and did him homage and fealty, and prayed him to abide there for a season and put an end to that foul custom.

So they got on their horses and dashed off as fast as they could, and Sir Tristram quickly knocked Sir Brewnor off his horse. But Brewnor got back up right away, and when Sir Tristram charged again, he pierced his horse through both shoulders, causing it to stagger and fall. But Sir Tristram was light and quick, managed to jump off his horse, and got back on his feet while preparing his shield, even though in the meantime, before he could draw his sword, Sir Brewnor landed three or four painful blows on him. Then they both lunged at each other like two wild boars and fought fiercely for almost two hours, wounding each other badly. Finally, Sir Brewnor lunged at Sir Tristram and tried to throw him down, believing strongly in his own strength. But at that time, Sir Tristram was known as the strongest and largest knight in the world; he was bigger than Sir Lancelot, even though Lancelot was better at endurance. So immediately, he shoved Sir Brewnor down to the ground and then unfastened his helmet and chopped off his head. Then everyone from the castle came and pledged their loyalty to him, asking him to stay for a while and put an end to that terrible practice.

But within a while he departed and came to Cornwall, and there King Mark was forthwith wedded to La Belle Isault with great joy and splendor.

But after a while, he left and arrived in Cornwall, where King Mark was immediately married to La Belle Isault with great joy and splendor.

And Sir Tristram had high honor, and ever lodged at the king's court. But for all he had done him such services King Mark hated him, and on a certain day he set two knights to fall upon him as he rode in the forest. But Sir Tristram lightly smote one's head off, and sorely wounded the other, and made him bear his fellow's body to the king. At that the king dissembled and hid from Sir Tristram that the knights were sent by him; yet more than ever he hated him in secret, and sought to slay him.

And Sir Tristram was highly respected and always stayed at the king's court. Despite all the services he had done for him, King Mark hated him. One day, he sent two knights to ambush him while he was riding in the forest. However, Sir Tristram easily cut off one knight’s head and seriously wounded the other, forcing him to carry his companion's body to the king. In response, the king pretended not to know that the knights were sent by him; yet, he secretly harbored even more hatred for Sir Tristram and plotted to kill him.

So on a certain day, by the assent of Sir Andret, a false knight, and forty other knights, Sir Tristram was taken prisoner in his sleep and carried to a chapel on the rocks above the sea to be cast down. But as they were about to cast him in, suddenly he brake his bonds asunder, and rushing at Sir Andret, took his sword and smote him down therewith. Then, leaping down the rocks where none could follow, he escaped them. But one shot after him and wounded him full sorely with a poisoned arrow in the arm.

So one day, with the agreement of Sir Andret, a deceitful knight, and forty other knights, Sir Tristram was captured while he slept and taken to a chapel on the cliffs by the sea to be thrown down. Just as they were about to throw him in, he suddenly broke his bonds, charged at Sir Andret, grabbed his sword, and struck him down. Then, jumping down the rocks where no one could follow, he escaped. But someone shot at him and severely wounded him in the arm with a poisoned arrow.

Anon, his servant Governale, with Sir Lambegus, sought him and found him safe among the rocks, and told him that King Mark had banished him and all his followers to avenge Sir Andret's death. So they took ship and came to Brittany.

Anon, his servant Governale, along with Sir Lambegus, searched for him and found him safe among the rocks. They informed him that King Mark had exiled him and all his followers to take revenge for Sir Andret's death. So they boarded a ship and sailed to Brittany.

Now Sir Tristram, suffering great anguish from his wound, was told to seek Isoude, the daughter of the King of Brittany, for she alone could cure such wounds. Wherefore he went to King Howell's court, and said, "Lord, I am come into this country to have help from thy daughter, for men tell me none but she may help me." And Isoude gladly offering to do her best, within a month he was made whole.

Now Sir Tristram, in a lot of pain from his wound, was advised to find Isoude, the daughter of the King of Brittany, because only she could heal such injuries. So, he went to King Howell's court and said, "Lord, I've come to this land to seek help from your daughter, as I've been told that none but she can assist me." Isoude gladly agreed to do her best, and within a month, he was completely healed.

While he abode still at that court, an earl named Grip made war upon King Howell, and besieged him; and Sir Kay Hedius, the king's son, went forth against him, but was beaten in battle and sore wounded. Then the king praying Sir Tristram for his help, he took with him such knights as he could find, and on the morrow, in another battle, did such deeds of arms that all the land spake of him. For there he slew the earl with his own hands, and more than a hundred knights besides.

While he was still at the court, an earl named Grip waged war against King Howell and laid siege to him. Sir Kay Hedius, the king's son, went out to face him but was defeated in battle and gravely injured. The king then asked Sir Tristram for his help, and he gathered as many knights as he could find. The next day, in another battle, he performed such heroic feats that everyone in the land talked about him. He personally killed the earl and over a hundred knights as well.

When he came back King Howell met him, and saluted him with every honor and rejoicing that could be thought of, and took him in his arms, and said, "Sir Tristram, all my kingdom will I resign to thee."

When he returned, King Howell greeted him with all the respect and joy imaginable, embraced him, and said, "Sir Tristram, I will give you my entire kingdom."

"Nay," answered he, "God forbid, for truly am I beholden to you forever for your daughter's sake."

"Nah," he replied, "God forbid, because I'm truly grateful to you forever for your daughter's sake."

Then the king prayed him to take Isoude in marriage, with a great dower of lands and castles. To this Sir Tristram presently consenting anon they were wedded at the court.

Then the king asked him to marry Isoude, offering a large dowry of lands and castles. Sir Tristram immediately agreed, and they were married at the court.

But within a while Sir Tristram greatly longed to see Cornwall, and Sir Kay Hedius desired to go with him. So they took ship; but as soon as they were at sea the wind blew them upon the coast of North Wales, nigh to Castle Perilous, hard by a forest wherein were many strange adventures ofttimes to be met. Then said Sir Tristram to Sir Kay Hedius, "Let us prove some of them ere we depart." So they took their horses and rode forth.

But after a while, Sir Tristram really wanted to see Cornwall, and Sir Kay Hedius wanted to go with him. So they set sail; but as soon as they were at sea, the wind pushed them onto the coast of North Wales, near Castle Perilous, close to a forest filled with many strange adventures often to be found. Then Sir Tristram said to Sir Kay Hedius, "Let’s check out some of those adventures before we leave." So they took their horses and rode out.

When they had ridden a mile or more, Sir Tristram spied a goodly knight before him well armed, who sat by a clear fountain with a strong horse near him, tied to an oak-tree. "Fair sir," said he, when they came near, "ye seem to be a knight errant by your arms and harness, therefore make ready now to joust with one of us, or both."

When they had ridden a mile or more, Sir Tristram spotted a well-equipped knight ahead of him, sitting by a clear fountain with a strong horse tied to an oak tree nearby. "Good sir," he said as they approached, "you look like a knight-errant with your armor and gear, so get ready to joust with one of us, or both."

Thereat the knight spake not, but took his shield and buckled it round his neck, and leaping on his horse caught a spear from his squire's hand.

There, the knight didn't say anything, but he picked up his shield and strapped it around his neck. Then, he jumped on his horse and grabbed a spear from his squire's hand.

Then said Sir Kay Hedius to Sir Tristram, "Let me assay him."

Then Sir Kay Hedius said to Sir Tristram, "Let me give it a try."

"Do thy best," said he.

"Do your best," he said.

So the two knights met, and Sir Kay Hedius fell sorely wounded in the breast.

So the two knights met, and Sir Kay Hedius was seriously injured in the chest.

"Thou hast well jousted," cried Sir Tristram to the knight; "now make ready for me!"

"Well done in the joust," Sir Tristram shouted to the knight; "now get ready for me!"

"I am ready," answered he, and encountered him, and smote him so heavily that he fell down from his horse. Whereat, being ashamed, he put his shield before him, and drew his sword, crying to the strange knight to do likewise. Then they fought on foot for well nigh two hours, till they were both weary.

"I’m ready," he replied, and faced him, striking him so hard that he fell off his horse. Ashamed, he raised his shield and drew his sword, asking the unknown knight to do the same. Then they fought on foot for almost two hours, until they were both exhausted.

At last Sir Tristram said, "In all my life I never met a knight so strong and well-breathed as ye be. It were a pity we should further hurt each other. Hold thy hand, fair knight, and tell me thy name."

At last, Sir Tristram said, "In all my life, I've never met a knight as strong and capable as you. It would be a shame for us to keep hurting each other. Please, hold your hand, noble knight, and tell me your name."

"That will I," answered he, "if thou wilt tell me thine."

"Sure, I will," he replied, "if you tell me yours."

"My name," said he, "is Sir Tristram of Lyonesse."

"My name," he said, "is Sir Tristram of Lyonesse."

"And mine, Sir Lamoracke of Gaul."

"And mine, Sir Lamorack of Gaul."

Then both cried out together, "Well met;" and Sir Lamoracke said, "Sir for your great renown, I will that ye have all the worship of this battle, and therefore will I yield me unto you." And therewith he took his sword by the point to yield him.

Then both shouted together, "Nice to meet you;" and Sir Lamoracke said, "Sir, because of your great reputation, I will give you all the glory of this battle, so I will surrender to you." With that, he took his sword by the tip to yield.

"Nay," said Sir Tristram, "ye shall not do so, for well I know ye do it of courtesy, and not of dread." And therewith he offered his sword to Sir Lamoracke, saying, "Sir, as an overcome knight, I yield me unto you as unto the man of noblest powers I have ever met with."

"Nah," Sir Tristram said, "you won’t do that, because I know you're just being polite, not scared." Then he offered his sword to Sir Lamoracke, saying, "Sir, as a defeated knight, I submit to you as the most noble person I've ever encountered."

"Hold," said Sir Lamoracke, "let us now swear together nevermore to fight against each other."

"Wait," said Sir Lamoracke, "let's swear together that we'll never fight against each other again."

Then did they swear as he said.

Then they swore as he said.

Then Sir Tristram returned to Sir Kay Hedius, and when he was whole of his wounds, they departed together in a ship, and landed on the coast of Cornwall. And when they came ashore, Sir Tristram eagerly sought news of La Belle Isault. And one told him in mistake that she was dead. Whereat, for sore and grievous sorrow, he fell down in a swoon, and so lay for three days and nights.

Then Sir Tristram went back to Sir Kay Hedius, and once he had healed from his wounds, they left together on a ship and landed on the coast of Cornwall. As soon as they got ashore, Sir Tristram eagerly asked for news about La Belle Isault. Someone mistakenly told him that she was dead. Overcome with deep sorrow, he fainted and lay unconscious for three days and nights.

When he awoke therefrom he was crazed, and ran into the forest and abode there like a wild man many days; whereby he waxed lean and weak of body, and would have died, but that a hermit laid some meat beside him as he slept. Now in that forest was a giant named Tauleas, who, for fear of Tristram, had hid himself within a castle, but when they told him he was mad, came forth and went at large again. And on a certain day he saw a knight of Cornwall, named Sir Dinaunt, pass by with a lady, and when he had alighted by a well to rest, the giant leaped out from his ambush, and took him by the throat to slay him. But Sir Tristram, as he wandered through the forest, came upon them as they struggled; and when the knight cried out for help, he rushed upon the giant, and taking up Sir Dinaunt's sword, struck off therewith the giant's head, and straightway disappeared among the trees.

When he woke up, he was out of his mind and ran into the forest, living there like a wild man for many days. He became thin and weak and would have died if a hermit hadn’t left some food beside him while he slept. In that forest was a giant named Tauleas, who had hidden himself in a castle out of fear of Tristram, but when he heard that Tristram was mad, he came out and wandered freely again. One day, he saw a knight from Cornwall named Sir Dinaunt passing by with a lady. When the knight stopped to rest by a well, the giant jumped out from his hiding spot and grabbed him by the throat to kill him. Just then, Sir Tristram, wandering through the forest, found them struggling, and when the knight called for help, Tristram rushed at the giant, took Sir Dinaunt’s sword, and beheaded the giant before disappearing into the trees.

Anon, Sir Dinaunt took the head of Tauleas, and bare it with him to the court of King Mark, whither he was bound, and told of his adventures. "Where had ye this adventure?" said King Mark.

Anon, Sir Dinaunt took the head of Tauleas and carried it with him to the court of King Mark, where he was headed, and shared his adventures. "Where did you have this adventure?" asked King Mark.

"At a fair fountain in thy forest," answered he.

"At a beautiful fountain in your forest," he replied.

"I would fain see that wild man," said the king.

"I would love to see that wild man," said the king.

So within a day or two he commanded his knights to a great hunting in the forest. And when the king came to the well, he saw a wild man lying there asleep, having a sword beside him; but he knew not that it was Sir Tristram. Then he blew his horn, and summoned all his knights to take him gently up and bear him to the court.

So within a day or two, he ordered his knights to go on a big hunt in the forest. When the king reached the well, he saw a wild man sleeping there with a sword next to him, but he didn't realize it was Sir Tristram. Then he blew his horn and called all his knights to gently lift him up and carry him to the court.

And when they came thereto they bathed and washed him, and brought him somewhat to his right mind. Now La Belle Isault knew not that Sir Tristram was in Cornwall; but when she heard that a wild man had been found in the forest, she came to see him. And so sorely was he changed, she knew him not. "Yet," said she to Dame Bragwaine, "in good faith I seem to have beheld him ofttimes before."

And when they arrived there, they bathed and cleaned him up, bringing him back to his senses a bit. Now La Belle Isault didn’t know that Sir Tristram was in Cornwall, but when she heard that a wild man had been found in the forest, she came to see him. And he had changed so much that she didn't recognize him. "Still," she told Dame Bragwaine, "I feel like I've seen him many times before."

As she thus spoke a little hound, which Sir Tristram had given her when she first came to Cornwall, and which was ever with her, saw Sir Tristram lying there, and leapt upon him, licking his hands and face, and whined and barked for joy.

As she spoke, a small dog that Sir Tristram had given her when she first arrived in Cornwall, and that was always with her, saw Sir Tristram lying there. The dog jumped on him, licking his hands and face, and whimpered and barked with joy.

"Alas," cried out La Belle Isault, "it is my own true knight, Sir Tristram."

"Alas," shouted La Belle Isault, "it's my own true knight, Sir Tristram."

And at her voice Sir Tristram's senses wholly came again, and wellnigh he wept for joy to see his lady living.

And at her voice, Sir Tristram's senses completely returned, and he almost cried from joy to see his lady alive.

But never would the hound depart from Tristram; and when King Mark and other knights came up to see him, it sat upon his body and bayed at all who came too near. Then one of the knights said, "Surely this is Sir Tristram; I see it by the hound."

But the hound never left Tristram's side; and when King Mark and the other knights approached to see him, it sat on his body and barked at anyone who got too close. Then one of the knights said, "This must be Sir Tristram; I can tell by the hound."

"Nay," said the king, "it cannot be," and asked Sir Tristram on his faith who he was.

"Nah," said the king, "it can't be," and he asked Sir Tristram, based on his word, who he was.

"My name," said he, "is Sir Tristram of Lyonesse, and now ye may do what ye list with me."

"My name," he said, "is Sir Tristram of Lyonesse, and now you can do whatever you want with me."

Then the king said, "It repents me that ye are recovered," and sought to make his barons slay him. But most of them would not assent thereto, and counseled him instead to banish Tristram for ten years again from Cornwall, for returning without orders from the king. So he was sworn to depart forthwith.

Then the king said, "I'm sorry that you are better," and tried to convince his barons to kill him. But most of them refused to agree and instead advised him to banish Tristram from Cornwall for another ten years for coming back without the king's permission. So he was sworn to leave immediately.

And as he went towards the ship a knight of King Arthur, named Sir Dinadan, who sought him, came and said, "Fair knight, ere that you pass out of this country, I pray you joust with me!"

And as he walked toward the ship, a knight of King Arthur named Sir Dinadan, who was looking for him, approached and said, "Hey, knight, before you leave this country, I ask you to duel with me!"

"With a good will," said he.

"With good intentions," he said.

Then they ran together, and Sir Tristram lightly smote him from his horse. Anon he prayed Sir Tristram's leave to bear him company, and when he had consented they rode together to the ship.

Then they ran together, and Sir Tristram lightly struck him from his horse. Soon after, he asked Sir Tristram for permission to join him, and when he agreed, they rode together to the ship.

Then was Sir Tristram full of bitterness of heart, and said to all the knights who took him to the shore, "Greet well King Mark and all mine enemies from me, and tell them I will come again when I may. Well am I now rewarded for slaying Sir Marhaus, and delivering this kingdom from its bondage, and for the perils wherewithal I brought La Belle Isault from Ireland to the king, and rescued her at the Castle Pluere, and for the slaying of the giant Tauleas, and all the other deeds that I have done for Cornwall and King Mark." Thus angrily and passing bitterly he spake, and went his way.

Then Sir Tristram was filled with bitterness and said to all the knights who took him to the shore, "Send my regards to King Mark and all my enemies, and tell them I’ll return when I can. I’m now well rewarded for killing Sir Marhaus and freeing this kingdom from its oppression, and for the dangers I faced while bringing La Belle Isault from Ireland to the king, and rescuing her at Castle Pluere, as well as for killing the giant Tauleas, and all the other things I’ve done for Cornwall and King Mark." He spoke these words angrily and with deep resentment, and then went on his way.

And after sailing awhile the ship stayed at a landing-place upon the coast of Wales; and there Sir Tristram and Sir Dinadan alighted, and on the shore they met two knights, Sir Ector and Sir Bors. And Sir Ector encountered with Sir Dinadan and smote him to the ground; but Sir Bors would not encounter with Sir Tristram, "For," said he, "no Cornish knights are men of worship." Thereat Sir Tristram was full wroth, but presently there met them two more knights, Sir Bleoberis and Sir Driant; and Sir Bleoberis proffered to joust with Sir Tristram, who shortly smote him down.

And after sailing for a while, the ship docked at a landing spot on the coast of Wales. There, Sir Tristram and Sir Dinadan got off, and on the shore, they ran into two knights, Sir Ector and Sir Bors. Sir Ector confronted Sir Dinadan and knocked him to the ground; however, Sir Bors refused to face Sir Tristram, saying, "No Cornish knights are men of honor." This angered Sir Tristram, but soon after, two more knights, Sir Bleoberis and Sir Driant, approached them. Sir Bleoberis offered to joust with Sir Tristram, who quickly knocked him down.

"I had not thought," cried out Sir Bors, "that any Cornish knight could do so valiantly."

"I never thought," exclaimed Sir Bors, "that any knight from Cornwall could be so brave."

Then Sir Tristram and Sir Dinadan departed, and rode into a forest, and as they rode a damsel met them, who for Sir Lancelot's sake was seeking any noble knights to rescue him. For Queen Morgan le Fay, who hated him, had ordered thirty men-at-arms to lie in ambush for him as he passed, with the intent to kill him. So the damsel prayed them to rescue him.

Then Sir Tristram and Sir Dinadan left and rode into a forest, and as they rode, a young woman met them. She was looking for noble knights to help rescue Sir Lancelot because Queen Morgan le Fay, who despised him, had sent thirty soldiers to ambush him as he passed by, intending to kill him. So the young woman begged them to save him.

Then said Sir Tristram, "Bring me to that place, fair damsel."

Then Sir Tristram said, "Take me to that place, fair lady."

But Sir Dinadan cried out, "It is not possible for us to meet with thirty knights! I will take no part in such a hardihood, for to match one or two or three knights is enough; but to match fifteen I will never assay."

But Sir Dinadan shouted, "There's no way we can face thirty knights! I won't take part in such a reckless challenge, as facing one, two, or three knights is manageable; but I will never attempt to face fifteen."

"For shame," replied Sir Tristram, "do but your part."

"For shame," Sir Tristram replied, "just do your part."

"That will I not," said he; "wherefore, I pray ye, lend me your shield, for it is of Cornwall, and because men of that country are deemed cowards, ye are but little troubled as ye ride with knights to joust with."

"That's not going to happen," he said; "so please, lend me your shield, because it's from Cornwall, and since people from that area are considered cowards, you won’t have much trouble while riding with knights to joust against."

"Nay," said Sir Tristram, "I will never give my shield up for her sake who gave it me; but if thou wilt not stand by me to-day I will surely slay thee; for I ask no more of thee than to fight one knight, and if thy heart will not serve thee that much, thou shalt stand by and look on me and them."

"Nah," said Sir Tristram, "I will never give up my shield for the woman who gave it to me; but if you won't support me today, I will definitely take you down; because all I ask of you is to fight one knight, and if you can't even manage that, then you can just stand by and watch me and them."

"Would God that I had never met with ye!" cried Sir Dinadan; "but I promise to look on and do all that I may to save myself."

"God, I wish I had never met you!" shouted Sir Dinadan; "but I promise to watch and do everything I can to save myself."

Anon they came to where the thirty knights lay waiting, and Sir Tristram rushed upon them, saying, "Here is one who fights for love of Lancelot!" Then slew he two of them at the first onset with his spear, and ten more swiftly after with his sword. At that Sir Dinadan took courage, and assailed the others with him, till they turned and fled.

Anon they arrived at the spot where the thirty knights were waiting, and Sir Tristram charged at them, shouting, "Here’s someone fighting for the love of Lancelot!" He then killed two of them at the first strike with his spear, and quickly took down ten more with his sword. At that moment, Sir Dinadan found his courage and joined the attack against the others, forcing them to turn and run.

But Sir Tristram and Sir Dinadan rode on till nightfall, and meeting with a shepherd, asked him if he knew of any lodging thereabouts.

But Sir Tristram and Sir Dinadan rode on until nightfall, and when they came across a shepherd, they asked him if he knew of any nearby places to stay.

"Truly, fair lords," said he, "there is good lodging in a castle hard by, but it is a custom there that none shall lodge therein save ye first joust with two knights, and as soon as ye be within, ye shall find your match."

"Really, noble lords," he said, "there's nice lodging in a castle nearby, but it's a tradition there that no one can stay unless you first joust with two knights, and as soon as you're inside, you'll find your match."

"That is an evil lodging," said Sir Dinadan; "lodge where ye will, I will not lodge there."

"That's a terrible place to stay," said Sir Dinadan; "stay wherever you want, but I’m not staying there."

"Shame on thee!" said Sir Tristram; "art thou a knight at all?"

"Shame on you!" said Sir Tristram; "are you even a knight?"

Then he required him on his knighthood to go with him, and they rode together to the castle. As soon as they were near, two knights came out and ran full speed against them; but both of them they overthrew, and went within the castle, and had noble cheer. Now, when they were unarmed and ready to take rest, there came to the castle-gate two knights, Sir Palomedes and Sir Gaheris, and desired the custom of the castle.

Then he insisted that he, as a knight, accompany him, and they rode together to the castle. As soon as they got close, two knights charged at them; but they managed to knock both of them down and entered the castle, where they were treated with great hospitality. Once they were unarmed and ready to rest, two knights, Sir Palomedes and Sir Gaheris, arrived at the castle gate and requested the usual hospitality.

"I would far rather rest than fight," said Sir Dinadan.

"I would much rather relax than battle," said Sir Dinadan.

"That may not be," replied Sir Tristram, "for we must needs defend the custom of the castle, seeing we have overcome its lords; therefore, make ready."

"That might not be true," replied Sir Tristram, "because we have to uphold the customs of the castle, since we’ve defeated its lords; so, get ready."

"Alas that I ever came into your company," said Sir Dinadan.

"Unfortunately, I ever joined your company," said Sir Dinadan.

So they made ready, and Sir Gaheris encountered Sir Tristram and fell before him; but Sir Palomedes overthrew Sir Dinadan. Then would all fight on foot save Sir Dinadan, for he was sorely bruised and frighted by his fall. And when Sir Tristram prayed him to fight, "I will not," answered he, "for I was wounded by those thirty knights with whom we fought this morning; and as to you, ye are in truth like one gone mad, and who would cast himself away! There be but two knights in the world so mad, and the other is Sir Lancelot, with whom I once rode forth, who kept me evermore at battling so that for a quarter of a year thereafter I lay in my bed. Heaven defend me again from either of your fellowships!"

So they got ready, and Sir Gaheris faced Sir Tristram and was defeated; meanwhile, Sir Palomedes took down Sir Dinadan. Then everyone wanted to fight on foot except for Sir Dinadan, who was badly hurt and scared from his fall. When Sir Tristram urged him to join the fight, he replied, "I won't, because I was wounded by those thirty knights we fought this morning; and as for you, you behave like someone who's gone crazy and just wants to throw themselves away! There are only two knights in the world as reckless, and the other one is Sir Lancelot, with whom I once rode out and who kept pushing me to fight so much that I ended up in bed for a whole quarter of a year afterward. May heaven protect me from joining either of your crazy adventures!"

"Well," said Sir Tristram, "if it must be, I will fight them both."

"Well," said Sir Tristram, "if it has to be, I'll fight them both."

Therewith he drew his sword and assailed Sir Palomedes and Sir Gaheris together; but Sir Palomedes said, "Nay, but it is a shame for two to fight with one." So he bade Sir Gaheris stand by, and he and Sir Tristram fought long together; but in the end Sir Tristram drave him backward, whereat Sir Gaheris and Sir Dinadan with one accord sundered them. Then Sir Tristram prayed the two knights to lodge there; but Dinadan departed and rode away into a priory hard by, and there he lodged that night.

Then he drew his sword and attacked Sir Palomedes and Sir Gaheris together; but Sir Palomedes said, "No, it's unfair for two to fight one." So he told Sir Gaheris to stand back, and he and Sir Tristram fought for a long time; but in the end, Sir Tristram pushed him back, which led Sir Gaheris and Sir Dinadan to separate them. Then Sir Tristram invited the two knights to stay there; but Dinadan left and rode away to a nearby priory, where he stayed the night.

And on the morrow came Sir Tristram to the priory to find him, and seeing him so weary that he could not ride, he left him, and departed. At that same priory was lodged Sir Pellinore, who asked Sir Dinadan Sir Tristram's name, but could not learn it, for Sir Tristram had charged that he should remain unknown. Then said Sir Pellinore, "Since ye will not tell it me, I will ride after him and find it myself."

And the next day, Sir Tristram arrived at the priory to find him, and seeing him so exhausted that he couldn't ride, he left and went on his way. Staying at the same priory was Sir Pellinore, who asked Sir Dinadan for Sir Tristram's name, but couldn't find out, as Sir Tristram had insisted that he should stay anonymous. Then Sir Pellinore said, "Since you won't tell me, I'll ride after him and discover it myself."

"Beware, Sir knight," said Sir Dinadan, "ye will repent it if ye follow him."

"Watch out, Knight," said Sir Dinadan, "you'll regret it if you follow him."

But Sir Pellinore straightway mounted and overtook him, and cried to him to joust; whereat Sir Tristram forthwith turned and smote him down; and wounded him full sorely in the shoulder.

But Sir Pellinore immediately got on his horse and caught up with him, shouting for him to fight; to which Sir Tristram promptly turned and knocked him down, severely injuring his shoulder.

On the day after, Sir Tristram met a herald, who told him of a tournament proclaimed between King Carados of Scotland, and the King of North Wales, to be held at the Maiden's Castle. Now King Carados sought Sir Lancelot to fight there on his side, and the King of North Wales sought Sir Tristram. And Sir Tristram purposed to be there. So as he rode, he met Sir Key, the seneschal, and Sir Sagramour, and Sir Key proffered to joust with him. But he refused, desiring to keep himself unwearied for the tourney. Then Sir Key cried, "Sir knight of Cornwall, joust with me, or yield as recreant." When Sir Tristram heard that, he fiercely turned and set his spear in rest, and spurred his horse towards him. But when Sir Key saw him so madly coming on, he in his turn refused, whereat Sir Tristram called him coward, till for shame he was compelled to meet him. Then Sir Tristram lightly smote him down, and rode away. But Sir Sagramour pursued him, crying loudly to joust with him also. So Sir Tristram turned and quickly overthrew him likewise, and departed.

The next day, Sir Tristram encountered a herald who informed him about a tournament announced between King Carados of Scotland and the King of North Wales, set to take place at Maiden's Castle. King Carados wanted Sir Lancelot to fight on his behalf, while the King of North Wales sought Sir Tristram. Sir Tristram planned to attend. As he rode, he met Sir Kay, the seneschal, and Sir Sagramour, and Sir Kay challenged him to a joust. But Sir Tristram declined, wanting to save his strength for the tournament. Then Sir Kay shouted, "Sir knight of Cornwall, joust with me, or give up like a coward." When Sir Tristram heard this, he angrily turned, set his spear in place, and urged his horse forward. But when Sir Kay saw him charging, he backed down, which made Sir Tristram call him a coward until he felt ashamed and had to face him. Sir Tristram easily knocked him down and rode off. However, Sir Sagramour chased after him, loudly asking to joust as well. Sir Tristram turned and quickly toppled him too before leaving.

Anon a damsel met him as he rode, and told him of a knight adventurous who did great harm thereby, and prayed him for his help. But as he went with her he met Sir Gawain, who knew the damsel for a maiden of Queen Morgan le Fay. Knowing, therefore, that she needs must have evil plots against Sir Tristram, Sir Gawain demanded of him courteously whither he went.

Soon, a young woman approached him as he rode and told him about a troublesome knight who was causing a lot of harm, asking for his help. As they walked together, he encountered Sir Gawain, who recognized the young woman as a maid of Queen Morgan le Fay. Understanding that she likely had malicious plans against Sir Tristram, Sir Gawain politely asked him where he was going.

"I know not whither," said he, "save as this damsel leadeth me."

"I don't know where," he said, "except that this lady is guiding me."

"Sir," said Sir Gawain, "ye shall not ride with her, for she and her lady never yet did good to any;" and, drawing his sword, he said to the damsel, "Tell me now straightway for what cause thou leadest this knight, or else shalt thou die; for I know of old thy lady's treason."

"Sir," said Sir Gawain, "you won’t ride with her because she and her lady have never done any good for anyone." Drawing his sword, he said to the lady, "Now tell me right away why you’re leading this knight, or you'll die; I already know about your lady's betrayal."

"Mercy, Sir Gawain," cried the damsel, "and I will tell thee all." Then she told him that Queen Morgan had ordained thirty fair damsels to seek out Sir Lancelot and Sir Tristram, and by their wiles persuade them to her castle, where she had thirty knights in wait to slay them.

"Please, Sir Gawain," the lady begged, "and I’ll share everything with you." Then she explained that Queen Morgan had sent thirty beautiful ladies to find Sir Lancelot and Sir Tristram, using their tricks to lure them to her castle, where she had thirty knights ready to kill them.

"Oh shame!" cried Sir Gawain, "that ever such foul treason should be wrought by a queen, and a king's sister." Then said he to Sir Tristram, "Sir knight, if ye will stand with me, we will together prove the malice of these thirty knights."

"Oh shame!" shouted Sir Gawain, "that such horrible treason should be committed by a queen, the sister of a king." Then he said to Sir Tristram, "Sir knight, if you'll stand with me, we'll together expose the wickedness of these thirty knights."

"I will not fail you," answered he, "for but few days since I had to do with thirty knights of that same queen, and trust we may win honor as lightly now as then."

"I won't let you down," he replied, "because just a few days ago I dealt with thirty knights from that same queen, and I hope we can earn honor just as easily now as we did then."

So they rode together, and when they came to the castle, Sir Gawain cried aloud, "Queen Morgan le Fay, send out thy knights that we may fight with them."

So they rode together, and when they reached the castle, Sir Gawain shouted, "Queen Morgan le Fay, send out your knights so we can battle them."

Then the queen urged her knights to issue forth, but they durst not, for they well knew Sir Tristram, and feared him greatly.

Then the queen encouraged her knights to go out, but they didn't dare, because they knew Sir Tristram well and were very afraid of him.

So Sir Tristram and Sir Gawain went on their way, and as they rode they saw a knight, named Sir Brewse-without-pity, chasing a lady, with intent to slay her. Then Sir Gawain prayed Sir Tristram to hold still and let him assail that knight. So he rode up between Sir Brewse and the lady, and cried, "False knight, turn thee to me and leave that lady." Then Sir Brewse turned and set his spear in rest, and rushed against Sir Gawain and overthrew him, and rode his horse upon him as he lay, which when Sir Tristram saw, he cried, "Forbear that villainy," and galloped at him. But when Sir Brewse saw by the shield it was Sir Tristram, he turned and fled. And though Sir Tristram followed swiftly after him, yet he was so well horsed that he escaped.

So Sir Tristram and Sir Gawain continued on their journey, and as they rode, they spotted a knight named Sir Brewse-without-pity chasing a lady with the intention of killing her. Sir Gawain then asked Sir Tristram to stop and let him confront that knight. He rode up between Sir Brewse and the lady, shouting, "Cowardly knight, face me and leave that lady alone." Sir Brewse turned, braced his spear, and charged at Sir Gawain, knocking him down and riding over him while he lay on the ground. When Sir Tristram saw this, he shouted, "Stop that vile act!" and charged at him. But when Sir Brewse recognized Sir Tristram by his shield, he turned and fled. Although Sir Tristram chased after him quickly, Sir Brewse was mounted on such a fine horse that he managed to escape.

Anon Sir Tristram and Sir Gawain came nigh the Maiden's Castle, and there an old knight named Sir Pellonnes gave them lodging. And Sir Persides, the son of Sir Pellonnes, a good knight, came out to welcome them. And, as they stood talking at a bay window of the castle, they saw a goodly knight ride by on a black horse, and carrying a black shield. "What knight is that?" asked Tristram.

Anon, Sir Tristram and Sir Gawain arrived near the Maiden's Castle, and an old knight named Sir Pellonnes offered them a place to stay. Sir Persides, the son of Sir Pellonnes and a good knight, came out to greet them. As they chatted at a bay window of the castle, they saw a noble knight riding by on a black horse and carrying a black shield. "Who is that knight?" Tristram asked.

"One of the best knights in all the world," said Sir Persides.

"One of the best knights in the whole world," said Sir Persides.

"Is he Sir Lancelot?" said Sir Tristram.

"Is he Sir Lancelot?" asked Sir Tristram.

"Nay," answered Sir Persides, "it is Sir Palomedes, who is yet unchristened."

"Nah," answered Sir Persides, "it's Sir Palomedes, who still hasn't been baptized."

Within a while one came and told them that a knight with a black shield had smitten down thirteen knights. "Let us go and see this jousting," said Sir Tristram. So they armed themselves and went down. And when Sir Palomedes saw Sir Persides, he sent a squire to him and proffered him to joust. So they jousted, and Sir Persides was overthrown. Then Sir Tristram made ready to joust, but ere he had his spear in rest, Sir Palomedes took him at advantage, and struck him on the shield so that he fell. At that Sir Tristram was wroth out of measure and sore ashamed, wherefore he sent a squire and prayed Sir Palomedes to joust once again. But he would not, saying, "Tell thy master to revenge himself to-morrow at the Maiden's Castle, where he shall see me again."

After a while, someone came and told them that a knight with a black shield had knocked down thirteen knights. "Let's go check out this jousting," said Sir Tristram. They suited up and went down. When Sir Palomedes saw Sir Persides, he sent a squire to challenge him to a joust. So they jousted, and Sir Persides was defeated. Then Sir Tristram prepared to joust, but just as he was getting his spear ready, Sir Palomedes caught him off guard and struck his shield so hard that he fell. Sir Tristram was extremely angry and very embarrassed, so he sent a squire to ask Sir Palomedes to joust again. But he refused, saying, "Tell your master to get his revenge tomorrow at the Maiden's Castle, where he will see me again."

So on the morrow Sir Tristram commanded his servant to give him a black shield with no cognizance thereon, and he and Sir Persides rode into the tournament and joined King Carados' side.

So the next day, Sir Tristram instructed his servant to give him a black shield with no emblem on it, and he and Sir Persides rode into the tournament and joined King Carados' side.

Then the knights of the King of North Wales came forth, and there was a great fighting and breaking of spears, and overthrow of men and horses.

Then the knights of the King of North Wales came forward, and there was a lot of fighting, breaking of spears, and toppled men and horses.

Now King Arthur sat above in a high gallery to see the tourney and give the judgment, and Sir Lancelot sat beside him. Then came against Sir Tristram and Sir Persides, two knights with them of North Wales, Sir Bleoberis and Sir Gaheris; and Sir Persides was smitten down and nigh slain, for four horsemen rode over him. But Sir Tristram rode against Sir Gaheris and smote him from his horse, and when Sir Bleoberis next encountered him, he overthrew him also. Anon they horsed themselves again, and with them came Sir Dinadan, whom Sir Tristram forthwith smote so sorely, that he reeled off his saddle. Then cried he, "Ah! Sir knight, I know ye better than ye deem, and promise nevermore to come against ye." Then rode Sir Bleoberis at him the second time, and had a buffet that felled him to the earth. And soon thereafter the king commanded to cease for that day, and all men marveled who Sir Tristram was, for the prize of the first day was given him in the name of the Knight of the Black Shield.

Now King Arthur sat high up in a gallery to watch the tournament and make judgments, with Sir Lancelot beside him. Then, facing Sir Tristram and Sir Persides, came two knights from North Wales, Sir Bleoberis and Sir Gaheris. Sir Persides was knocked down and nearly killed, as four horsemen rode over him. But Sir Tristram charged at Sir Gaheris and knocked him off his horse, and when Sir Bleoberis next confronted him, he took him down as well. Soon, they remounted, and then Sir Dinadan arrived, whom Sir Tristram struck so hard that he fell off his saddle. Then he cried, "Ah! Sir knight, I know you better than you think, and I promise never to fight you again." Then Sir Bleoberis charged at him again and received a blow that sent him to the ground. Shortly after, the king ordered a halt for the day, and everyone wondered who Sir Tristram was, as he was awarded the prize for the first day in the name of the Knight of the Black Shield.

Now Sir Palomedes was on the side of the King of North Wales, but knew not Sir Tristram again. And, when he saw his marvelous deeds, he sent to ask his name. "As to that," said Sir Tristram, "he shall not know at this time, but tell him he shall know when I have broken two spears upon him, for I am the knight he smote down yesterday, and whatever side he taketh, I will take the other."

Now Sir Palomedes was supporting the King of North Wales, but he didn’t recognize Sir Tristram. When he saw his amazing feats, he sent someone to ask for his name. "As for that," Sir Tristram replied, "he won't know right now, but tell him he will find out after I break two spears against him, because I’m the knight he knocked down yesterday, and whichever side he chooses, I will choose the opposite."

So when they told him that Sir Palomedes would be on King Carados' side—for he was kindred to King Arthur—"Then will I be on the King of North Wales' side," said he, "but else would I be on my lord King Arthur's."

So when they told him that Sir Palomedes would be on King Carados' side—since he was related to King Arthur—"Then I'll be on the King of North Wales' side," he said, "but otherwise, I'll be on my lord King Arthur's side."

Then on the morrow, when King Arthur was come, the heralds blew unto the tourney. And King Carados jousted with the King of a Hundred Knights and fell before him, and then came in King Arthur's knights and bare back those of North Wales. But anon Sir Tristram came to aid them and bare back the battle, and fought so mightily that none could stand against him, for he smote down on the right and on the left, so that all the knights and common people shouted his praise.

Then the next day, when King Arthur arrived, the heralds announced the tournament. King Carados jousted against the King of a Hundred Knights and was defeated. Then King Arthur's knights entered the fray and pushed back those from North Wales. But soon Sir Tristram came to help them and turned the tide of battle, fighting so fiercely that no one could withstand him, striking down opponents on both sides, causing all the knights and common people to shout his praises.

"Since I bare arms," said King Arthur, "never saw I a knight do more marvelous deeds."

"Since I started fighting," said King Arthur, "I've never seen a knight accomplish more amazing feats."

Then the King of the Hundred Knights and those of North Wales set upon twenty knights who were of Sir Lancelot's kin, who fought all together, none failing the others. When Sir Tristram beheld their nobleness and valor, he marveled much. "Well may he be valiant and full of prowess," said he, "who hath such noble knights for kindred." So, when he had looked on them awhile, he thought it shame to see two hundred men assailing twenty, and riding to the King of a Hundred Knights, he said, "I pray thee, Sir king, leave your fighting with those twenty knights, for ye be too many and they be too few. For ye shall gain no honor if ye win, and that I see verily ye will not do unless ye slay them; but if ye will not stay, I will ride with them and help them."

Then the King of the Hundred Knights and the men from North Wales attacked twenty knights who were related to Sir Lancelot, and they all fought together, none letting the others down. When Sir Tristram saw their nobility and bravery, he was very impressed. "It’s no surprise he’s brave and skilled," he said, "when he has such noble knights in his family." After watching them for a while, he thought it was shameful to see two hundred men attacking just twenty, so he rode up to the King of the Hundred Knights and said, "I urge you, Sir King, to stop fighting those twenty knights because you have too many and they have too few. You won't earn any honor if you win, and I can see that you probably won’t unless you kill them; but if you won't stop, I will ride with them and support them."

"Nay," said the king, "ye shall not do so; for full gladly I will do your courtesy," and with that he withdrew his knights.

"Nah," said the king, "you can't do that; I'm more than happy to return the favor," and with that, he took his knights away.

Then Sir Tristram rode his way into the forest, that no man might know him. And King Arthur caused the heralds to blow that the tourney should end that day, and he gave the King of North Wales the prize, because Sir Tristram was on his side. And in all the field there was such a cry that the sound thereof was heard two miles away—"The knight with the black shield hath won the field."

Then Sir Tristram rode into the forest so no one would recognize him. King Arthur ordered the heralds to announce that the tournament would end that day, and he awarded the prize to the King of North Wales since Sir Tristram was on his side. Throughout the field, there was such a commotion that it could be heard two miles away—"The knight with the black shield has won the match."

"Alas!" said King Arthur, "where is that knight? it is shame to let him thus escape us." Then he comforted his knights, and said, "Be not dismayed, my friends, howbeit ye have lost the day; be of good cheer; to-morrow I myself will be in the field, and fare with you." So they all rested that night.

"Alas!" said King Arthur, "where is that knight? It’s a shame to let him escape like this." Then he encouraged his knights and said, "Don't be disheartened, my friends, even though you lost today; stay positive. Tomorrow, I will be out in the field with you." So they all rested that night.

And on the morrow the heralds blew unto the field. So the King of North Wales and the King of a Hundred Knights encountered with King Carados and the King of Ireland, and overthrew them. With that came King Arthur, and did mighty deeds of arms, and overthrew the King of North Wales and his fellows, and put twenty valiant knights to the worse. Anon came in Sir Palomedes, and made great fight upon King Arthur's side. But Sir Tristram rode furiously against him, and Sir Palomedes was thrown from his horse. Then cried King Arthur, "Knight of the Black Shield, keep thyself." And as he spake he came upon him, and smote him from his saddle to the ground, and so passed on to other knights. Then Sir Palomedes having now another horse rushed at Sir Tristram, as he was on foot, thinking to run over him. But he was aware of him, and stepped aside, and grasped Sir Palomedes by the arms, and pulled him off his horse. Then they rushed together with their swords, and many stood still to gaze on them. And Sir Tristram smote Sir Palomedes with three mighty strokes upon the helm, crying at each stroke, "Take this for Sir Tristram's sake," and with that Sir Palomedes fell to the earth.

And the next day, the heralds sounded their horns on the battlefield. So, the King of North Wales and the King of a Hundred Knights clashed with King Carados and the King of Ireland, and they were defeated. Then King Arthur arrived and performed mighty acts of valor, taking down the King of North Wales and his allies, defeating twenty brave knights. Soon after, Sir Palomedes joined the fight on King Arthur's side. But Sir Tristram charged fiercely at him, and Sir Palomedes was knocked off his horse. Then King Arthur shouted, "Knight of the Black Shield, watch out!" And as he spoke, he attacked him, striking him down from his saddle to the ground, then moved on to other knights. Sir Palomedes, now on a different horse, rushed at Sir Tristram, planning to trample him. But Tristram noticed and sidestepped, grabbing Sir Palomedes by the arms and pulling him off his horse. They then fought fiercely with their swords, and many bystanders stopped to watch. Sir Tristram hit Sir Palomedes with three powerful blows to the helmet, yelling with each strike, "Take this for Sir Tristram!" With that, Sir Palomedes fell to the ground.

Anon the King of North Wales brought Sir Tristram another horse, and Sir Palomedes found one also. Then did they joust again with passing rage, for both by now were like mad lions. But Sir Tristram avoided his spear, and seized Sir Palomedes by the neck, and pulled him from his saddle, and bore him onward ten spears' length, and so let him fall. Then King Arthur drew forth his sword and smote the spear asunder, and gave Sir Tristram two or three sore strokes ere he could get at his own sword. But when he had it in his hand he mightily assailed the king. With that eleven knights of Lancelot's kin went forth against him, but he smote them all down to the earth, so that men marveled at his deeds.

Soon, the King of North Wales brought Sir Tristram another horse, and Sir Palomedes found one too. Then they jousted again with incredible fury, both now acting like wild lions. But Sir Tristram dodged his spear, grabbed Sir Palomedes by the neck, pulled him off his saddle, and dragged him ten spear lengths before letting him fall. Then King Arthur drew his sword and smashed the spear in half, delivering two or three heavy blows to Sir Tristram before he could grab his own sword. But once he had it in hand, he fiercely attacked the king. At that moment, eleven knights from Lancelot's family charged at him, but he knocked them all down to the ground, leaving everyone astonished by his feats.

And the cry was now so great that Sir Lancelot got a spear in his hand, and came down to assay Sir Tristram, saying, "Knight with the black shield, make ready." When Sir Tristram heard him he leveled his spear, and both stooping their heads, they ran together mightily, as it had been thunder. And Sir Tristram's spear brake short, but Sir Lancelot struck him with a deep wound in the side and broke his spear, yet overthrew him not. Therewith Sir Tristram, smarting at his wound, drew forth his sword, and rushing at Sir Lancelot, gave him mighty strokes upon the helm, so that the sparks flew from it, and Sir Lancelot stooped his head down to the saddle-bow. But then Sir Tristram turned and left the field, for he felt his wound so grievous that he deemed he should soon die. Then did Sir Lancelot hold the field against all comers, and put the King of North Wales and his party to the worse. And because he was the last knight in the field the prize was given him.

And the shout was so loud that Sir Lancelot grabbed a spear and came down to challenge Sir Tristram, saying, "Knight with the black shield, get ready." When Sir Tristram heard him, he aimed his spear, and both lowered their heads and charged at each other like thunder. Sir Tristram’s spear broke short, but Sir Lancelot struck him with a deep wound in the side and broke his spear, yet he didn’t knock him over. In pain from his wound, Sir Tristram pulled out his sword and charged at Sir Lancelot, landing powerful blows on his helmet that sent sparks flying, causing Sir Lancelot to lower his head to the saddle. But then Sir Tristram turned and left the arena, feeling his wound was so severe that he thought he might die soon. After that, Sir Lancelot held the field against all challengers and defeated the King of North Wales and his group. Since he was the last knight standing, he was awarded the prize.

But he refused to take it, and when the cry was raised, "Sir Lancelot hath won the day," he cried out, "Nay, but Sir Tristram is the victor, for he first began and last endured, and so hath he done each day." And all men honored Lancelot more for his knightly words than if he had taken the prize.

But he refused to accept it, and when the shout went up, "Sir Lancelot has won the day," he exclaimed, "No, it is Sir Tristram who is the victor, for he started first and endured to the end, just as he has done every day." And everyone respected Lancelot more for his noble words than if he had taken the prize.

This was the tournament ended, and King Arthur departed to Caerleon, for the Whitsun feast was now nigh come, and all the knights adventurous went their ways. And many sought Sir Tristram in the forest whither he had gone, and at last Sir Lancelot found him, and brought him to King Arthur's court, as hath been told already.

This was the end of the tournament, and King Arthur left for Caerleon, as the Whitsun feast was approaching, and all the adventurous knights went their separate ways. Many sought Sir Tristram in the forest where he had gone, and eventually, Sir Lancelot found him and brought him to King Arthur's court, as has already been mentioned.


SIR GALAHAD AND THE QUEST OF THE HOLY GRAIL


XIII

THE KNIGHTS GO TO SEEK THE GRAIL

After these things Merlin fell into a dotage of love for a damsel of the lady of the lake, and would let her have no rest, but followed her in every place. And ever she encouraged him, and made him welcome till she had learned all his crafts that she desired to know.

After this, Merlin fell head over heels in love with a damsel from the lady of the lake, and he wouldn’t give her a moment's peace, following her everywhere. She always encouraged him and welcomed him until she learned all the skills she wanted to know from him.

Then upon a time she went with him beyond the sea to the land of Benwicke, and as they went he showed her many wonders, till at length she was afraid, and would fain have been delivered from him.

Then one time she went with him across the sea to the land of Benwicke, and as they traveled, he showed her many wonders, until eventually she became afraid and wished to be free from him.

And as they were in the forest of Broceliande, they sat together under an oak-tree, and the damsel prayed to see all that charm whereby men might be shut up yet alive in rocks or trees. But he refused her a long time, fearing to let her know, yet in the end, her prayers and kisses overcame him, and he told her all. Then did she make him great cheer, but anon, as he lay down to sleep, she softly rose, and walked about him waving her hands and muttering the charm, and presently enclosed him fast within the tree whereby he slept. And therefrom nevermore he could by any means come out for all the crafts that he could do. And so she departed and left Merlin.

And while they were in the forest of Broceliande, they sat together under an oak tree, and the young woman asked to see the magic that could trap men alive inside rocks or trees. He resisted for a long time, afraid to reveal it to her, but eventually, her pleas and kisses wore him down, and he told her everything. She was very pleased, but just as he lay down to sleep, she quietly got up, walked around him, waved her hands, and whispered the spell. Soon, she had him trapped inside the tree where he was sleeping. There was no way for him to escape, no matter what he tried. And with that, she left Merlin behind.

At the vigil of the next Feast of Pentecost, when all the Knights of the Round Table were met together at Camelot, and had heard mass, and were about to sit down to meat, there rode into the hall a fair lady on horseback, who went straight up to King Arthur where he sat upon his throne, and reverently saluted him.

At the vigil of the next Feast of Pentecost, when all the Knights of the Round Table gathered at Camelot, attended mass, and were about to sit down for a meal, a beautiful lady rode into the hall on horseback. She went right up to King Arthur as he sat on his throne and respectfully greeted him.

"God be with thee, fair damsel," quoth the king; "what desirest thou of me?"

"God be with you, beautiful lady," said the king; "what do you wish from me?"

"I pray thee tell me, lord," she answered, "where Sir Lancelot is."

"I beg you to tell me, my lord," she replied, "where Sir Lancelot is."

"Yonder may ye see him," said King Arthur.

"Over there, you can see him," said King Arthur.

Then went she to Sir Lancelot and said, "Sir, I salute thee in King Pelles' name, and require thee to come with me into the forest hereby."

Then she went to Sir Lancelot and said, "Sir, I greet you in King Pelles' name and ask you to come with me into the forest nearby."

Then asked he her with whom she dwelt, and what she wished of him.

Then he asked her who she lived with and what she wanted from him.

"I dwell with King Pelles," said she, "whom Balin erst so sorely wounded when he smote the dolorous stroke. It is he who hath sent me to call thee."

"I live with King Pelles," she said, "the one whom Balin once severely wounded when he dealt the painful blow. It is he who has sent me to summon you."

"I will go with thee gladly," said Sir Lancelot, and bade his squire straightway saddle his horse and bring his armor.

"I'll go with you gladly," said Sir Lancelot, and told his squire to immediately saddle his horse and get his armor.

Then came the queen to him and said, "Sir Lancelot, will ye leave me thus at this high feast?"

Then the queen came to him and asked, "Sir Lancelot, will you really leave me like this at this grand feast?"

"Madam," replied the damsel, "by dinner-time to-morrow he shall be with you."

"Ma'am," the girl responded, "by dinner time tomorrow, he will be with you."

"If I thought not," said the queen, "he should not go with thee by my goodwill."

"If I didn't think so," said the queen, "he wouldn't go with you if it were up to me."

Then Sir Lancelot and the lady rode forth till they came to the forest, and in a valley thereof found an abbey of nuns, whereby a squire stood ready to open the gates. When they had entered, and descended from their horses, a joyful crowd pressed round Sir Lancelot and heartily saluted him, and led him to the abbess's chamber, and unarmed him. Anon he saw his cousins likewise there, Sir Bors and Sir Lionel, who also made great joy at seeing him, and said, "By what adventure art thou here, for we thought to have seen thee at Camelot to-morrow?"

Then Sir Lancelot and the lady rode out until they reached the forest, where they found an abbey of nuns in a valley, and a squire was there, ready to open the gates. After they entered and got off their horses, a joyful crowd gathered around Sir Lancelot, warmly greeting him and leading him to the abbess's chamber, where they removed his armor. Soon, he saw his cousins there, Sir Bors and Sir Lionel, who were also very happy to see him and asked, "What brings you here? We thought we'd see you at Camelot tomorrow."

"A damsel brought me here," said he, "but as yet I know not for what service."

"A girl brought me here," he said, "but I still don't know what for."

As they thus talked twelve nuns came in, who brought with them a youth so passing fair and well made, that in all the world his match could not be found. His name was Galahad, and though he knew him not, nor Lancelot him, Sir Lancelot was his father.

As they were talking, twelve nuns walked in, bringing a young man with them who was so exceptionally handsome and well-built that there was no one else like him in the world. His name was Galahad, and although he didn't recognize Lancelot and Lancelot didn't know him, Sir Lancelot was in fact his father.

"Sir," said the nuns, "we bring thee here this child whom we have nourished from his youth, and pray thee to make him a knight, for from no worthier hand can he receive that order."

"Sir," said the nuns, "we bring you this child whom we have raised since he was young, and we ask you to make him a knight, for there is no worthier person to give him that honor."

Then Sir Lancelot, looking on the youth, saw that he was seemly and demure as a dove, with every feature good and noble, and thought he never had beheld a better fashioned man of his years. "Cometh this desire from himself?" said he.

Then Sir Lancelot, looking at the young man, saw that he was handsome and gentle like a dove, with every feature good and noble, and thought he had never seen a better-looking guy for his age. "Does this longing come from him?" he said.

"Yea," answered Galahad and all the nuns.

"Yeah," replied Galahad and all the nuns.

"To-morrow, then, in reverence for the feast, he shall have his wish," said Sir Lancelot.

"Tomorrow, then, out of respect for the feast, he will get his wish," said Sir Lancelot.

And the next day at the hour of prime, he knighted him, and said, "God make of thee as good a man as He hath made thee beautiful."

And the next day at prime time, he knighted him and said, "May God make you as good a person as He has made you handsome."

Then with Sir Lionel and Sir Bors he returned to the court, and found all gone to the minster to hear service. When they came into the banquet-hall each knight and baron found his name written in some seat in letters of gold, as "here ought to sit Sir Lionel," "here ought to sit Sir Gawain,"—and so forth. And in the Perilous Seat, at the high center of the table, a name was also written, whereat they marveled greatly, for no living man had ever yet dared sit upon that seat, save one, and him a flame leaped forth and drew down under earth, so that he was no more seen.

Then Sir Lionel and Sir Bors returned to the court and found everyone gone to the church for the service. When they entered the banquet hall, each knight and baron found his name written in gold letters on a designated seat, such as "Sir Lionel should sit here," "Sir Gawain should sit here," and so on. And in the Perilous Seat, at the high center of the table, there was also a name written that greatly surprised them, as no living man had ever dared to sit in that seat, except for one, who was struck by a flame and pulled down into the earth, never to be seen again.

Then came Sir Lancelot and read the letters in that seat, and said, "My counsel is that this inscription be now covered up until the knight be come who shall achieve this great adventure." So they made a veil of silk and put it over the letters.

Then Sir Lancelot arrived and read the letters in that spot, and said, "I suggest we cover this inscription until the knight comes who will complete this great quest." So they created a silk veil and placed it over the letters.

In the meanwhile came Sir Gawain to the court and told the king he had a message to him from beyond the sea, from Merlin.

In the meantime, Sir Gawain arrived at the court and informed the king that he had a message for him from across the sea, from Merlin.

"For," said he, "as I rode through the forest of Broceliande but five days since, I heard the voice of Merlin speaking to me from the midst of an oak-tree, whereat, in great amazement, I besought him to come forth. But he, with many groans, replied he never more might do so, for that none could free him, save the damsel of the Lake, who had enclosed him there by his own spells which he had taught her. 'But go,' said he, 'to King Arthur, and tell him, that he now prepare his knights and all his Table Round to seek the Sangreal, for the time is come when it shall be achieved.'"

"For," he said, "just five days ago, as I was riding through the Broceliande forest, I heard Merlin's voice calling to me from deep within an oak tree. In my astonishment, I begged him to come out. But he replied with many groans that he could never do so again, as the only one who could free him was the Lady of the Lake, who had trapped him there with spells he had taught her. 'But go,' he said, 'to King Arthur, and tell him to prepare his knights and the entire Round Table to seek the Holy Grail, for the time has come for it to be achieved.'"

When Sir Gawain had spoken thus, King Arthur sat pensive in spirit, and mused deeply of the Holy Grail and what saintly knight should come who might achieve it.

When Sir Gawain finished speaking, King Arthur sat lost in thought, seriously contemplating the Holy Grail and which noble knight might be able to attain it.

Anon he bade them hasten to set on the banquet. "Sir," said Sir Key, the seneschal, "if we go now to meat ye will break the ancient custom of your court, for never have ye dined at this high feast till ye have seen some strange adventure."

Soon, he urged them to quickly prepare the banquet. "Sir," said Sir Kay, the steward, "if we go to eat now, you will break the long-standing tradition of your court, for you have never dined at this grand feast until you have encountered some unusual adventure."

"Thou sayest truly," said the king, "but my mind was full of wonders and musings, till I bethought me not of mine old custom."

"You're right," said the king, "but my mind was filled with wonders and thoughts, so I forgot my usual habit."

As they stood speaking thus, a squire ran in and cried, "Lord, I bring thee marvelous tidings."

As they stood talking like this, a squire ran in and shouted, "My lord, I bring you amazing news."

"What be they?" said King Arthur.

"What are they?" said King Arthur.

"Lord," said he, "hereby at the river is a marvelous great stone, which I myself saw swim down hither-wards upon the water, and in it there is set a sword, and ever the stone heaveth and swayeth on the water, but floateth down no further with the stream."

"Lord," he said, "there's a huge stone down by the river that I saw float this way on the water, and there's a sword stuck in it. The stone keeps moving and swaying on the water, but it doesn't float downstream any further."

"I will go and see it," said the king. So all the knights went with him, and when they came to the river, there surely found they a mighty stone of red marble floating on the water, as the squire had said, and therein stuck a fair and rich sword, on the pommel whereof were precious stones wrought skillfully with gold into these words: "No man shall take me hence but he by whose side I should hang, and he shall be the best knight in the world."

"I'll go check it out," said the king. So all the knights went with him, and when they reached the river, they indeed found a huge stone made of red marble floating on the water, just as the squire had said. Stuck in it was a beautiful and valuable sword, and on the hilt were precious stones carefully crafted with gold that read: "No man shall take me from here except for the one by whose side I should hang, and he will be the best knight in the world."

When the king read this, he turned round to Sir Lancelot, and said, "Fair sir, this sword ought surely to be thine, for thou art the best knight in all the world."

When the king read this, he turned to Sir Lancelot and said, "Noble sir, this sword definitely should be yours, because you are the greatest knight in the entire world."

But Lancelot answered soberly, "Certainly, sir, it is not for me; nor will I have the hardihood to set my hand upon it. For he that toucheth it and faileth to achieve it shall one day be wounded by it mortally. But I doubt not, lord, this day will show the greatest marvels that we yet have seen, for now the time is fully come, as Merlin hath forewarned us, when all the prophecies about the Sangreal shall be fulfilled."

But Lancelot replied seriously, "Of course, sir, it’s not for me; I won’t have the boldness to lay my hands on it. Whoever touches it and fails to achieve it will eventually be mortally wounded by it. But I have no doubt, my lord, that today will reveal the greatest wonders we’ve seen so far, for the time has finally come, as Merlin warned us, when all the prophecies about the Holy Grail will be fulfilled."

Then stepped Sir Gawain forward and pulled at the sword, but could not move it, and after him Sir Percival, to keep him fellowship in any peril he might suffer. But no other knight durst be so hardy as to try.

Then Sir Gawain stepped forward and tried to pull the sword, but he couldn't move it. After him came Sir Percival, to stand by him in any danger he might face. But no other knight was brave enough to attempt it.

"Now may ye go to your dinner," said Sir Key, "for a marvelous adventure ye have had."

"Now you can go to your dinner," said Sir Key, "because you've had an amazing adventure."

So all returned from the river, and every knight sat down in his own place, and the high feast and banquet then was sumptuously begun, and all the hall was full of laughter and loud talk and jests, and running to and fro of squires who served their knights, and noise of jollity and mirth.

So everyone came back from the river, and each knight took his seat, and the grand feast and banquet then began in style, filling the hall with laughter, lively conversations, and jokes, along with the hustle and bustle of squires serving their knights, creating a lively and cheerful atmosphere.

Then suddenly befell a wondrous thing, for all the doors and windows of the hall shut violently of themselves, and made thick darkness; and presently there came a fair and gentle light from out the Perilous Seat, and filled the palace with its beams. Then a dead silence fell on all the knights, and each man anxiously beheld his neighbor.

Then suddenly a miraculous thing happened: all the doors and windows of the hall slammed shut on their own, plunging the room into thick darkness. Soon after, a beautiful and gentle light emerged from the Perilous Seat, filling the palace with its rays. A deep silence settled over all the knights, and each man anxiously glanced at his neighbor.

But King Arthur rose and said, "Lords and fair knights, have ye no fear, but rejoice; we have seen strange things to-day, but stranger yet remain. For now I know we shall to-day see him who may sit in the Siege Perilous, and shall achieve the Sangreal. For as ye all well know, that holy vessel, wherefrom at the Supper of our Lord before His death He drank the wine with His disciples, hath been held ever since the holiest treasure of the world, and wheresoever it hath rested peace and prosperity have rested with it on the land. But since the dolorous stroke which Balin gave King Pelles none have seen it, for Heaven, wroth with that presumptuous blow, hath hid it none know where. Yet somewhere in the world it still may be, and may be it is left to us, and to this noble order of the Table Round, to find and bring it home, and make of this our realm the happiest in the earth. Many great quests and perilous adventures have ye all taken and achieved, but this high quest he only shall attain who hath clean hands and a pure heart, and valor and hardihood beyond all other men."

But King Arthur stood up and said, "Lords and brave knights, have no fear, but celebrate; we have witnessed strange things today, but even stranger things are yet to come. For now I know that today we will see the one who might sit in the Siege Perilous and will achieve the Holy Grail. As you all know, that sacred vessel, from which at the Last Supper our Lord drank wine with His disciples before His death, has been regarded as the holiest treasure in the world. Wherever it has been, peace and prosperity have followed on that land. But since the sorrowful blow that Balin struck King Pelles, it has not been seen, for Heaven, angry about that audacious strike, has hidden it away, and no one knows where. Yet it may still exist somewhere in the world, and perhaps it is left to us, and to this noble order of the Round Table, to find it, bring it back, and make our realm the happiest on earth. Many great quests and dangerous adventures you have all undertaken and completed, but this high quest can only be achieved by the one who has clean hands and a pure heart, along with courage and daring beyond all others."

While the king spoke there came in softly an old man robed all in white, leading with him a young knight clad in red from top to toe, but without armor or shield, and having by his side an empty scabbard.

While the king spoke, an old man dressed all in white quietly entered, leading a young knight dressed in red from head to toe, but without armor or shield, and carrying an empty scabbard by his side.

The old man went up to the king, and said, "Lord, here I bring thee this young knight of royal lineage, and of the blood of Joseph of Arimathea, by whom the marvels of thy court shall fully be accomplished."

The old man approached the king and said, "My lord, I present to you this young knight of royal heritage, descended from the bloodline of Joseph of Arimathea, through whom the wonders of your court will truly be fulfilled."

The king was right glad at his words, and said, "Sir, ye be right heartily welcome, and the young knight also."

The king was very pleased with his words and said, "Sir, you are truly welcome, along with the young knight."

Then the old man put on Sir Galahad (for it was he) a crimson robe trimmed with fine ermine, and took him by the hand and led him to the Perilous Seat, and lifting up the silken cloth which hung upon it, read these words written in gold letters, "This is the seat of Sir Galahad, the good knight."

Then the old man dressed Sir Galahad (it was him) in a crimson robe trimmed with fine ermine, took his hand, and led him to the Perilous Seat. Lifting the silken cloth that covered it, he read the words written in gold letters, "This is the seat of Sir Galahad, the good knight."

"Sir," said the old man, "this place is thine."

"Sir," said the old man, "this place is yours."

Then sat Sir Galahad down firmly and surely, and said to the old man, "Sir, ye may now go your way, for ye have done well and truly all ye were commanded, and commend me to my grandsire, King Pelles, and say that I shall see him soon." So the old man departed with a retinue of twenty noble squires.

Then Sir Galahad sat down confidently and said to the old man, "Sir, you can go now, as you have done everything that was asked of you. Please send my regards to my grandfather, King Pelles, and let him know I will see him soon." So the old man left with a group of twenty noble squires.

But all the knights of the Round Table marveled at Sir Galahad, and at his tender age, and at his sitting there so surely in the Perilous Seat.

But all the knights of the Round Table were amazed at Sir Galahad, especially at his young age and how confidently he sat in the Perilous Seat.

Then the king led Sir Galahad forth from the palace, to show him the adventure of the floating stone. "Here," said he, "is as great a marvel as I ever saw, and right good knights have tried and failed to gain that sword."

Then the king took Sir Galahad out of the palace to show him the floating stone adventure. "Here," he said, "is one of the greatest wonders I've ever seen, and brave knights have tried and failed to get that sword."

"I marvel not thereat," said Galahad, "for this adventure is not theirs, but mine; and for the certainty I had thereof, I brought no sword with me, as thou mayst see here by this empty scabbard."

"I’m not surprised," said Galahad, "because this adventure isn’t theirs, but mine; and since I was so sure of that, I didn’t bring a sword with me, as you can see from this empty scabbard."

Anon he laid his hand upon the sword, and lightly drew it from the stone, and put it in his sheath, and said, "This sword was that enchanted one which erst belonged to the good knight, Sir Balin, wherewith he slew through piteous mistake his brother Balan; who also slew him at the same time: all which great woe befell him through the dolorous stroke he gave my grandsire, King Pelles, the wound whereof is not yet whole, nor shall be till I heal him."

He quickly placed his hand on the sword, pulled it out of the stone with ease, and put it in his sheath. He said, "This sword was the magical one that once belonged to the noble knight, Sir Balin, with which he tragically killed his brother Balan; who also ended up killing him at the same time. All this great sorrow came upon him because of the terrible blow he dealt my grandfather, King Pelles, whose wound is still not healed and won't be until I fix it."

As he stood speaking thus, they saw a lady riding swiftly down the river's bank towards them, on a white palfrey, who, saluting the king and queen, said, "Lord king, Nacien the hermit sendeth thee word that to thee shall come to-day the greatest honor and worship that hath yet ever befallen a king of Britain; for this day shall the Sangreal appear in thy house."

As he was speaking, they saw a woman riding quickly down the riverbank toward them on a white horse. She greeted the king and queen, saying, "Lord king, Nacien the hermit sends you word that today the greatest honor and respect ever given to a king of Britain will come to you; for today the Sangreal will appear in your house."

With that the damsel took her leave, and departed the same way she came.

With that, the young woman said her goodbyes and left the same way she had arrived.

"Now," said the king, "I know that from to-day the quest of the Sangreal shall begin, and all ye of the Round Table will be scattered so that nevermore shall I see ye again together as ye are now; let me then see a joust and tournament amongst ye for the last time before ye go."

"Now," said the king, "I know that starting today, the quest for the Sangreal will begin, and all of you at the Round Table will be separated so that I will never see you all together like this again; so let me witness a joust and tournament among you for the last time before you leave."

So they all took their harness and met together in the meadows by Camelot, and the queen and all her ladies sat in a tower to see.

So they all grabbed their gear and gathered in the meadows by Camelot, while the queen and all her ladies watched from a tower.

Then Sir Galahad, at the prayer of the king and queen, put on a coat of light armor, and a helmet, but shield he would take none, and grasping a lance, he drove into the middle of the press of knights, and began to break spears marvelously, so that all men were full of wonder. And in so short a time he had surmounted and exceeded the rest, save Sir Lancelot and Sir Percival, that he took the chief worship of the field.

Then Sir Galahad, at the request of the king and queen, put on a light armor and a helmet, but refused to take a shield. Grabbing a lance, he charged into the group of knights and began to break spears impressively, leaving everyone amazed. In no time, he surpassed all the others, except for Sir Lancelot and Sir Percival, earning the highest honor on the field.

Then the king and all the court and fellowship of knights went back to the palace, and so to evensong in the great minster, a royal and goodly company, and after that sat down to supper in the hall, every knight in his own seat, as they had been before.

Then the king and all the court and group of knights returned to the palace, and then to evening prayer in the grand cathedral, a royal and impressive gathering, and after that sat down to dinner in the hall, every knight in his own place, just like before.

Anon suddenly burst overhead the cracking and crying of great peals of thunder, till the palace walls were shaken sorely, and they thought to see them riven all to pieces.

Suddenly, a loud crashing and wailing of thunder erupted overhead, shaking the palace walls so violently that they feared the walls would break apart completely.

And in the midst of the blast there entered in a sunbeam, clearer by seven times than ever they saw day, and a marvelous great glory fell upon them all. Then each knight, looking on his neighbor, found his face fairer than he had ever seen, and so—all standing on their feet—they gazed as dumb men on each other, not knowing what to say.

And in the middle of the explosion, a sunbeam came in, shining seven times brighter than they had ever seen during the day, and an amazing glory surrounded them all. Then each knight, looking at his neighbor, saw his face more beautiful than he had ever noticed before, and so—standing on their feet—they stared at each other in silence, not knowing what to say.

Then entered into the hall the Sangreal, borne aloft without hands through the midst of the sunbeam, and covered with white samite, so that none might see it. And all the hall was filled with perfume and incense, and every knight was fed with the food he best loved. And when the holy vessel had been thus borne through the hall, it suddenly departed, no man saw whither.

Then the Sangreal entered the hall, floating in the air through the sunlight, covered in white fabric so that no one could see it. The entire hall was filled with sweet scents and incense, and every knight was served their favorite food. After the holy vessel was carried through the hall, it suddenly vanished, and no one knew where it went.

When they recovered breath to speak, King Arthur first rose up, and yielded thanks to God and to our Lord.

When they caught their breath to speak, King Arthur stood up first and thanked God and our Lord.

Then Sir Gawain sprang up and said, "Now have we all been fed by miracle with whatsoever food we thought of or desired; but with our eyes we have not seen the blessed vessel whence it came, so carefully and preciously it was concealed. Therefore, I make a vow, that from to-morrow I shall labor twelve months and a day in quest of the Sangreal, and longer if need be; nor will I come again into this court until mine eyes have seen it evidently."

Then Sir Gawain stood up and said, "Now we have all been miraculously fed with whatever food we thought of or wanted; but we haven't seen with our own eyes the blessed vessel from which it came, so carefully and precious it was hidden. Therefore, I vow that starting tomorrow, I will spend twelve months and a day searching for the Holy Grail, and longer if necessary; and I won't return to this court until I have seen it clearly."

When he had spoken thus, knight after knight rose up and vowed himself to the same quest, till the most part of the Round Table had thus sworn.

When he finished speaking, knight after knight stood up and committed themselves to the same quest, until most of the Round Table had made the same vow.

But when King Arthur heard them all, he could not refrain his eyes from tears, and said, "Sir Gawain, Sir Gawain, thou hast set me in great sorrow, for I fear me my true fellowship shall never meet together here again; and surely never Christian king had such a company of worthy knights around his table at one time."

But when King Arthur heard all this, he couldn’t hold back his tears and said, "Sir Gawain, Sir Gawain, you have filled me with great sorrow, for I fear my true fellowship will never gather here again; and surely no Christian king has ever had such a group of honorable knights around his table at one time."

And when the queen and her ladies and gentlewomen heard the vows, they had such grief and sorrow as no tongue could tell; and Queen Guinevere cried out, "I marvel that my lord will suffer them to depart from him." And many of the ladies who loved knights would have gone with them, but were forbidden by the hermit Nacien, who sent this message to all who had sworn themselves to the quest: "Take with ye no lady nor gentlewoman, for into so high a service as ye go in, no thought but of our Lord and heaven may enter."

And when the queen and her ladies heard the vows, they felt such deep grief that words couldn't express it; and Queen Guinevere exclaimed, "I wonder why my lord allows them to leave him." Many of the ladies who cared for the knights would have joined them, but the hermit Nacien stopped them, sending a message to everyone who had committed to the quest: "Do not take any ladies or gentlewomen with you, as in this noble service you’re entering, only thoughts of our Lord and heaven should occupy your minds."

On the morrow morning all the knights rose early, and when they were fully armed, save shields and helms, they went in with the king and queen to service in the minster. Then the king counted all who had taken the adventure on themselves, and found them a hundred and fifty knights of the Round Table; and so they all put on their helms, and rode away together in the midst of cries and lamentations from the court, and from the ladies, and from all the town.

On the next morning, all the knights got up early, and once they were fully equipped, except for their shields and helmets, they went with the king and queen to the service at the church. Then the king counted everyone who had taken on the quest and found that there were one hundred and fifty knights of the Round Table; so they all put on their helmets and rode away together amidst the cries and lamentations from the court, the ladies, and everyone in the town.

But the queen went alone to her chamber, that no man might see her sorrow; and Sir Lancelot followed her to say farewell.

But the queen went to her room by herself so that no one could see her sadness; and Sir Lancelot followed her to say goodbye.

When she saw him she cried out, "Oh, Sir Lancelot, thou hast betrayed me; thou hast put me to death thus to depart and leave my lord the king."

When she saw him, she shouted, "Oh, Sir Lancelot, you have betrayed me; you have killed me by leaving like this and abandoning my lord the king."

"Ah, madam," said he, "be not displeased or angry, for I shall come again as soon as I can with honor."

"Ah, ma'am," he said, "please don't be upset or angry, because I will come back as soon as I can with honor."

"Alas!" said she, "that ever I saw thee; but He that suffered death upon the cross for all mankind be to thee safety and good conduct, and to all thy company."

"Alas!" she said, "that I ever saw you; but may He who suffered death on the cross for all humanity bring you safety and good behavior, and all your companions too."

Then Sir Lancelot saluted her and the king, and went forth with the rest, and came with them that night to Castle Vagon, where they abode, and on the morrow they departed from each other on their separate ways, every knight taking the way that pleased him best.

Then Sir Lancelot greeted her and the king, and went out with the others, arriving that night at Castle Vagon, where they stayed. The next day, they parted ways, each knight choosing the path that suited him best.

Now Sir Galahad went forth without a shield, and rode so four days without adventure; and on the fourth day, after evensong, he came to an abbey of white monks, where he was received in the house, and led into a chamber. And there he was unarmed, and met two knights of the Round Table, King Bagdemagus, and Sir Uwaine.

Now Sir Galahad set out without a shield and rode for four days without encountering any adventures. On the fourth day, after evening prayers, he arrived at an abbey of white monks, where he was welcomed into the house and taken to a room. There, he was disarmed and met two knights of the Round Table, King Bagdemagus and Sir Uwaine.

"Sirs," said Sir Galahad, "what adventure hath brought ye here?"

"Sirs," said Sir Galahad, "what adventure has brought you here?"

"Within this place, as we are told," they answered, "there is a shield no man may bear around his neck without receiving sore mischance, or death within three days."

"Here, as we've been told," they replied, "there's a shield that no man can wear around his neck without facing serious misfortune or death within three days."

"To-morrow," said King Bagdemagus, "I shall attempt the adventure; and if I fail, do thou, Sir Galahad, take it up after me."

"Tomorrow," said King Bagdemagus, "I will take on the adventure; and if I fail, you, Sir Galahad, continue it after me."

"I will willingly," said he; "for as ye see I have no shield as yet."

"I'll do it gladly," he said, "because, as you can see, I don't have a shield yet."

So on the morrow they arose and heard mass, and afterwards King Bagdemagus asked where the shield was kept. Then a monk led him behind the altar, where the shield hung, as white as any snow, and with a blood-red cross in the midst of it.

So the next day they got up and heard mass, and then King Bagdemagus asked where the shield was stored. A monk led him behind the altar, where the shield hung, as white as snow, with a blood-red cross in the center.

"Sir," said the monk, "this shield should hang from no knight's neck unless he be the worthiest in the world. I warn ye, therefore, knights; consider well before ye dare to touch it."

"Sir," said the monk, "this shield shouldn't hang from any knight's neck unless he is the worthiest in the world. I warn you, knights; think carefully before you try to touch it."

"Well," said King Bagdemagus, "I know well that I am far from the best knight in all the world, yet shall I make the trial"; and so he took the shield, and bore it from the monastery.

"Well," said King Bagdemagus, "I know I'm not the best knight in the world, but I'll give it a try"; and with that, he took the shield and carried it away from the monastery.

"If it please thee," said he to Sir Galahad, "abide here till thou hearest how I speed."

"If it's okay with you," he said to Sir Galahad, "stay here until you hear how I do."

"I will abide thee," said he.

"I will stay with you," he said.

Then taking with him a squire who might return with any tidings to Sir Galahad, the king rode forth; and before he had gone two miles, he saw in a fair valley a hermitage, and a knight who came forth dressed in white armor, horse and all, who rode fast against him. When they encountered, Bagdemagus brake his spear upon the White Knight's shield, but was himself struck through the shoulder with a sore wound, and hurled down from his horse. Then the White Knight alighting, came and took the white shield from the king, and said, "Thou hast done great folly, for this shield ought never to be borne but by one who hath no living peer." And turning to the squire, he said, "Bear thou this shield to the good knight, Sir Galahad, and greet him well from me."

Then the king set out with a squire who could bring any news back to Sir Galahad. After riding for about two miles, he spotted a nice valley with a hermitage and saw a knight coming towards him dressed in all white armor. As they met, Bagdemagus broke his spear against the White Knight's shield, but in return, he got a painful wound in his shoulder and was thrown from his horse. The White Knight got off his horse, took the white shield from the king, and said, "You've made a big mistake, because this shield should only be carried by someone who has no equal." He then turned to the squire and said, "Take this shield to the noble knight, Sir Galahad, and give him my regards."

"In whose name shall I greet him?" said the squire.

"In whose name should I greet him?" said the squire.

"Take thou no heed of that," he answered; "it is not for thee or any earthly man to know."

"Don't worry about that," he replied; "it's not for you or any earthly person to know."

"Now tell me, fair sir, at the least," said the squire, "why may this shield be never borne except its wearer come to injury or death?"

"Now tell me, good sir, at the very least," said the squire, "why can this shield only be carried by someone who is facing injury or death?"

"Because it shall belong to no man save its rightful owner, Galahad," replied the knight.

"Because it belongs to no one but its rightful owner, Galahad," replied the knight.

Then the squire went to his master, and found him wounded nigh to death, wherefore he fetched his horse, and bore him back with him to the abbey. And there they laid him in a bed, and looked to his wounds; and when he had lain many days grievously sick, he at the last barely escaped with his life.

Then the squire went to his master and found him wounded almost to death, so he got his horse and brought him back to the abbey. There, they laid him on a bed and tended to his wounds. After lying severely ill for many days, he finally just managed to survive.

"Sir Galahad," said the squire, "the knight who overthrew King Bagdemagus sent you greeting, and bade you bear this shield."

"Sir Galahad," said the squire, "the knight who defeated King Bagdemagus sends his regards and asks you to take this shield."

"Now blessed be God and fortune," said Sir Galahad, and hung the shield about his neck, and armed him, and rode forth.

"Now thank God and luck," said Sir Galahad, and put the shield around his neck, suited up, and rode out.

Anon he met the White Knight by the hermitage, and each saluted courteously the other.

Soon, he ran into the White Knight by the hermitage, and they both greeted each other politely.

"Sir," said Sir Galahad, "this shield I bear hath surely a full marvelous history."

"Sir," said Sir Galahad, "this shield I carry definitely has an amazing history."

"Thou sayest rightly," answered he. "That shield was made in the days of Joseph of Arimathea, the gentle knight who took our Lord down from the cross. He, when he left Jerusalem with his kindred, came to the country of King Evelake, who warred continually with one Tollome; and when, by the teaching of Joseph, King Evelake became a Christian, this shield was made for him in our Lord's name; and through its aid King Tollome was defeated. For when King Evelake met him next in battle, he hid it in a veil, and suddenly uncovering it, he showed his enemies the figure of a bleeding man nailed to a cross, at sight of which they were discomfited and fled. Presently after that, a man whose hand was smitten off touched the cross upon the shield, and had his hand restored to him; and many other miracles it worked. But suddenly the cross that was upon it vanished away. Anon both Joseph and King Evelake came to Britain, and by the preaching of Joseph the people were made Christians. And when at length he lay upon his death-bed, King Evelake begged of him some token ere he died. Then, calling for his shield, he dipped his finger in his own blood, for he was bleeding fast, and none could staunch the wound, and marked that cross upon it, saying, 'This cross shall ever show as bright as now, and the last of my lineage shall wear this shield about his neck, and go forth to all the marvelous deeds he will achieve.'"

"You’re right," he replied. "That shield was made in the days of Joseph of Arimathea, the noble knight who took our Lord down from the cross. He left Jerusalem with his family and came to the land of King Evelake, who was in a constant battle with a man named Tollome. When King Evelake converted to Christianity through Joseph's teachings, this shield was created for him in the name of our Lord; with its help, King Tollome was defeated. The next time King Evelake faced him in battle, he hid it under a veil, and then suddenly revealed it, showing his enemies the image of a bleeding man nailed to a cross. At the sight of it, they were terrified and fled. Shortly after, a man with a severed hand touched the cross on the shield and had his hand restored; it performed many other miracles, too. But then, unexpectedly, the cross on it disappeared. Soon after, both Joseph and King Evelake came to Britain, and through Joseph's preaching, the people converted to Christianity. When he lay on his deathbed, King Evelake asked him for some sign before he died. He called for his shield, dipped his finger in his own blood, as he was bleeding heavily and no one could stop the wound, and marked that cross on it, saying, 'This cross will always shine as bright as it does now, and the last of my lineage will wear this shield around his neck and go forth to accomplish all the marvelous deeds he will achieve.'"

When the White Knight had thus spoken he vanished suddenly away, and Sir Galahad returned to the abbey.

When the White Knight finished speaking, he suddenly disappeared, and Sir Galahad went back to the abbey.

As he alighted, came a monk, and prayed him to go see a tomb in the churchyard, wherefrom came such a great and hideous noise, that none could hear it but they went nigh mad, or lost all strength. "And, sir," said he, "I deem it is a fiend."

As he got down, a monk approached him and asked him to go check out a tomb in the churchyard, from which came such a terrible and horrifying noise that anyone who heard it either went nearly insane or lost all their strength. "And, sir," he said, "I think it’s a demon."

"Lead me thither," said Sir Galahad.

"Take me there," said Sir Galahad.

When they were come near the place, "Now," said the monk, "go thou to the tomb, and lift it up."

When they got close to the place, the monk said, "Now, you go to the tomb and lift it up."

And Galahad, nothing afraid, quickly lifted up the stone, and forthwith came out a foul smoke, and from the midst thereof leaped up the loathliest figure that ever he had seen in the likeness of man; and Galahad blessed himself, for he knew it was a fiend of hell. Then he heard a voice crying out, "Oh, Galahad, I cannot tear thee as I would; I see so many angels round thee, that I may not come at thee."

And Galahad, unafraid, quickly lifted the stone, and immediately a foul smoke emerged, from which sprang the most repulsive figure he had ever seen in the shape of a man. Galahad crossed himself, knowing it was a demon from hell. Then he heard a voice crying out, "Oh, Galahad, I can't attack you as I want; I see so many angels surrounding you that I can't get to you."

Then the fiend suddenly disappeared with a marvelous great cry; and Sir Galahad, looking in the tomb, saw there a body all armed, with a sword beside it. "Now, fair brother," said he to the monk, "let us remove this cursed body, which is not fit to lie in a churchyard, for when it lived, a false and perjured Christian man dwelt in it. Cast it away, and there shall come no more hideous noises from the tomb."

Then the monster suddenly vanished with a loud scream; and Sir Galahad, looking in the tomb, saw a fully armored body with a sword beside it. "Now, dear brother," he said to the monk, "let's remove this cursed body, which doesn’t belong in a graveyard, for when it was alive, a false and lying Christian man inhabited it. Get rid of it, and there will be no more horrible noises coming from the tomb."

"And now must I depart," he added, "for I have much in hand, and am upon the holy quest of the Sangreal, with many more good knights."

"And now I must leave," he added, "because I have a lot to do, and I'm on the sacred quest for the Holy Grail, along with many other brave knights."

So he took his leave, and rode many journeys backwards and forwards as adventure would lead him; and at last one day he departed from a castle without first hearing mass, which was it ever his custom to hear before he left his lodging. Anon he found a ruined chapel on a mountain, and went in and kneeled before the altar, and prayed for wholesome counsel what to do; and as he prayed he heard a voice, which said, "Depart, adventurous knight, unto the Maiden's Castle, and redress the violence and wrongs there done!"

So he took his leave and went on many travels back and forth as adventure called him; and at last, one day he left a castle without first attending mass, which was always his habit before he left his place. Soon, he came across a ruined chapel on a mountain, went inside, knelt before the altar, and prayed for wise advice on what to do; and while he prayed, he heard a voice that said, "Go, adventurous knight, to the Maiden's Castle, and correct the violence and wrongs done there!"

Hearing these words he cheerfully arose, and mounted his horse, and rode but half a mile, when he saw before him a strong castle, with deep ditches round it, and a fair river running past. And seeing an old churl hard by, he asked him what men called that castle.

Hearing these words, he happily got up, climbed onto his horse, and rode for only half a mile when he saw a sturdy castle ahead, surrounded by deep moats and a beautiful river flowing nearby. Spotting an old man nearby, he asked him what people called that castle.

"Fair sir," said he, "it is the Maiden's Castle."

"Good sir," he said, "it's the Maiden's Castle."

"It is a cursed place," said Galahad, "and all its masters are but felons, full of mischief and hardness and shame."

"It’s a cursed place," Galahad said, "and all its masters are just criminals, full of trouble, cruelty, and shame."

"For that good reason," said the old man, "thou wert well-advised to turn thee back."

"For that good reason," said the old man, "you were smart to turn back."

"For that same reason," quoth Sir Galahad, "will I the more certainly ride on."

"For that same reason," said Sir Galahad, "I will ride on even more confidently."

Then, looking at his armor carefully, to see that nothing failed him, he went forward, and presently there met him seven damsels, who cried out, "Sir knight, thou ridest in great peril, for thou hast two waters to pass over."

Then, examining his armor closely to make sure everything was in place, he moved ahead, and soon he encountered seven maidens, who exclaimed, "Sir knight, you are in great danger, for you have two rivers to cross."

"Why should I not pass over them?" said he, and rode straight on.

"Why shouldn't I ignore them?" he said, and rode on without a glance.

Anon he met a squire, who said, "Sir knight, the masters of this castle defy thee, and bid thee go no further, till thou showest them thy business here."

Soon he encountered a squire, who said, "Sir knight, the lords of this castle challenge you and ask that you don't proceed any further until you explain your purpose here."

"Fair fellow," said Sir Galahad, "I am come here to destroy their wicked customs."

"Hey there," said Sir Galahad, "I've come here to put an end to their evil traditions."

"If that be thy purpose," answered he, "thou wilt have much to do."

"If that’s your goal," he replied, "you’ll have a lot to do."

"Go thou," said Galahad, "and hasten with my message."

"Go," said Galahad, "and hurry with my message."

In a few minutes after rode forth furiously from the gateways of the castle seven knights, all brothers, and crying out, "Knight, keep thee," bore down all at once upon Sir Galahad. But thrusting forth his spear, he smote the foremost to the earth, so that his neck was almost broken, and warded with his shield the spears of all the others, which every one brake off from it, and shivered into pieces. Then he drew out his sword, and set upon them hard and fiercely, and by his wondrous force drave them before him, and chased them to the castle gate, and there he slew them.

In just a few minutes, seven knights, all brothers, rode out furiously from the castle gates, shouting, "Knight, stand your ground." They charged at Sir Galahad all at once. But he thrust out his spear and struck the first one down, almost breaking his neck, and used his shield to deflect the spears from the others, breaking them apart into pieces. Then he pulled out his sword and attacked them fiercely, using his incredible strength to drive them back, chasing them to the castle gate, where he defeated them.

At that came out to him an ancient man, in priest's vestments, saying, "Behold, sir, here, the keys of this castle."

At that moment, an old man in priestly robes approached him and said, "Look, sir, here are the keys to this castle."

Then he unlocked the gates, and found within a multitude of people, who cried out, "Sir knight, ye be welcome, for long have we waited thy deliverance," and told him that the seven felons he had slain had long enslaved the people round about, and killed all knights who passed that way, because the maiden whom they had robbed of the castle had foretold that by one knight they should themselves be overthrown.

Then he unlocked the gates and found a crowd of people inside who shouted, "Sir knight, welcome! We've been waiting for your arrival for a long time." They told him that the seven villains he had defeated had long tormented the surrounding people and killed every knight who came this way. This was because the maiden they had robbed of the castle had predicted that they would be defeated by a single knight.

"Where is the maiden?" asked Sir Galahad.

"Where is the girl?" asked Sir Galahad.

"She lingereth below in a dungeon," said they.

"She's hanging out down in a dungeon," they said.

So Sir Galahad went down and released her, and restored her her inheritance; and when he had summoned the barons of the country to do her homage, he took his leave, and departed.

So Sir Galahad went down and freed her, and gave her back her inheritance; and when he had called the barons of the land to pay their respects, he took his leave and left.

Presently thereafter, as he rode, he entered a great forest, and in a glade thereof met two knights, disguised, who proffered him to joust. These were Sir Lancelot, his father, and Sir Percival, but neither knew the other. So he and Sir Lancelot encountered first, and Sir Galahad smote down his father. Then drawing his sword, for his spear was broken, he fought with Sir Percival, and struck so mightily that he clave Sir Percival's helm, and smote him from his horse.

Presently after that, as he rode, he entered a large forest, and in a clearing met two disguised knights who offered to joust. These were Sir Lancelot, his father, and Sir Percival, but neither recognized the other. So he first faced Sir Lancelot, and Sir Galahad knocked his father down. Then, drawing his sword since his spear was broken, he fought with Sir Percival, and struck so fiercely that he split Sir Percival's helmet and knocked him off his horse.

Now hard by where they fought there was a hermitage, where dwelt a pious woman, a recluse, who, when she heard the sound, came forth, and seeing Sir Galahad ride, she cried, "God be with thee, the best knight in the world; had yonder knights known thee as well as I do, they would not have encountered with thee."

Now, close by where they fought, there was a hermitage where a devout woman lived as a recluse. When she heard the noise, she came out and saw Sir Galahad riding by. She exclaimed, "God be with you, the best knight in the world; if those knights had known you as well as I do, they wouldn’t have dared to challenge you."

When Sir Galahad heard that, fearing to be made known, he forthwith smote his horse with his spurs, and departed at a great pace.

When Sir Galahad heard that, afraid of being recognized, he immediately urged his horse forward with his spurs and rode away quickly.

Sir Lancelot and Sir Percival heard her words also, and rode fast after him, but within a while he was out of their sight. Then Sir Percival rode back to ask his name of the recluse; but Sir Lancelot went forward on his quest, and following any path his horse would take, he came by-and-by after nightfall to a stone cross hard by an ancient chapel. When he had alighted and tied his horse up to a tree, he went and looked in through the chapel door, which was all ruinous and wasted, and there within he saw an altar, richly decked with silk, whereon there stood a fair candlestick of silver, bearing six great lights. And when Sir Lancelot saw the light, he tried to get within the chapel, but could find no place. So, being passing weary and heavy, he came again to his horse, and when he had unsaddled him, and set him free to pasture, he unlaced his helm, and ungirded his sword, and laid him down to sleep upon his shield before the cross.

Sir Lancelot and Sir Percival heard her words too and quickly rode after him, but soon he was out of their sight. Then Sir Percival rode back to ask the recluse his name, while Sir Lancelot pressed on with his quest. Following any path his horse would take, he eventually arrived after nightfall at a stone cross near an old chapel. Once he dismounted and tied his horse to a tree, he looked through the chapel door, which was in ruins, and saw inside an altar richly adorned with silk, featuring a beautiful silver candlestick with six large candles. When Sir Lancelot spotted the light, he tried to enter the chapel, but couldn't find a way in. Feeling quite weary, he returned to his horse, unsaddled it, let it graze, removed his helmet, took off his sword, and lay down to sleep on his shield before the cross.

And while he lay between waking and sleeping, he saw come by him two white palfreys bearing a litter, wherein a sick knight lay, and the palfreys stood still by the cross. Then Sir Lancelot heard the sick man say, "O sweet Lord, when shall this sorrow leave me, and the holy vessel pass by me, wherethrough I shall be blessed? for I have long endured."

And while he was lying between waking and sleeping, he saw two white horses passing by with a litter carrying a sick knight, and the horses stopped by the cross. Then Sir Lancelot heard the sick man say, "O sweet Lord, when will this sorrow leave me, and when will the holy vessel pass by me, through which I will be blessed? For I have suffered for a long time."

With that Sir Lancelot saw the chapel open, and the candlestick with the six tapers come before the cross, but he could see none who bare it. Then came there also a table of silver, and thereon the holy vessel of the Sangreal. And when the sick knight saw that, he sat up, and lifting both his hands, said, "Fair Lord, sweet Lord, who art here within this holy vessel, have mercy on me, that I may be whole"; and therewith he crept upon his hands and knees so nigh, that he might touch the vessel; and when he had kissed it, he leaped up, and stood and cried aloud, "Lord God, I thank Thee, for I am made whole." Then the Holy Grail departed with the table and the silver candlestick into the chapel, so that Sir Lancelot saw it no more, nor for his sins' sake could he follow it. And the knight who was healed went on his way.

With that, Sir Lancelot saw the chapel open, and the candlestick with six candles come before the cross, but he couldn't see who was carrying it. Then a silver table appeared, and on it was the holy vessel of the Sangreal. When the sick knight saw that, he sat up, and lifting both his hands, said, "Fair Lord, sweet Lord, who are here within this holy vessel, have mercy on me, so I can be healed"; and then he crawled on his hands and knees close enough to touch the vessel; and when he had kissed it, he jumped up, stood, and shouted, "Lord God, I thank You, for I am healed." Then the Holy Grail, along with the table and the silver candlestick, left for the chapel, so Sir Lancelot saw it no more, nor could he follow it because of his sins. The knight who was healed continued on his way.

Then Sir Lancelot awake, and marveled whether he had seen aught but a dream. And as he marveled, he heard a voice saying, "Sir Lancelot, thou art unworthy, go thou hence, and withdraw thee from this holy place." And when he heard that, he was passing heavy, for he bethought him of his sins.

Then Sir Lancelot woke up and wondered if he had experienced anything but a dream. While he was pondering this, he heard a voice say, "Sir Lancelot, you are unworthy, go away and leave this holy place." Hearing that, he felt very troubled because he started to reflect on his sins.

So he departed weeping, and cursed the day of his birth, for the words went into his heart, and he knew wherefore he was thus driven forth. Then he went to seek his arms and horse, but could not find them; and then he called himself the wretchedest and most unhappy of all knights, and said, "My sin hath brought me unto great dishonor: for when I sought earthly honors, I achieved them ever; but now I take upon me holy things, my guilt doth hinder me, and shameth me; therefore had I no power to stir or speak when the holy blood appeared before me."

So he left, crying, and regretted the day he was born, because the words hit him hard, and he understood why he had been banished. Then he went to find his armor and horse, but couldn't locate them; and he called himself the most miserable and unfortunate of all knights, saying, "My wrongdoing has brought me great shame: when I sought worldly honors, I always achieved them; but now, as I take on sacred matters, my guilt holds me back and embarrasses me; therefore, I couldn’t even move or speak when the holy blood appeared before me."

So thus he sorrowed till it was day, and he heard the birds sing; then was he somewhat comforted, and departing from the cross on foot, he came into a wild forest, and to a high mountain, and there he found a hermitage; and, kneeling before the hermit down upon both his knees, he cried for mercy for his wicked works, and prayed him to hear his confession. But when he told his name, the hermit marveled to see him in so sore a case, and said, "Sir, ye ought to thank God more than any knight living, for He hath given thee more honor than any; yet for thy presumption, while in deadly sin to come into the presence of His flesh and blood, He suffered thee neither to see nor follow it. Wherefore, believe that all thy strength and manhood will avail thee little, when God is against thee."

He grieved until morning, when he heard the birds singing; this brought him some comfort. Leaving the cross behind on foot, he entered a wild forest and climbed a high mountain, where he found a hermitage. Kneeling down before the hermit, he asked for mercy for his sins and prayed for him to hear his confession. When he revealed his name, the hermit was shocked to see him in such a troubled state and said, "Sir, you should thank God more than any knight alive, for He has granted you more honor than anyone. Yet for your arrogance, while being in a state of serious sin and coming into the presence of His flesh and blood, He has allowed you neither to see nor follow it. Therefore, understand that all your strength and bravery will mean little when God is against you."

Then Sir Lancelot wept and said, "Now know I well ye tell me truth."

Then Sir Lancelot cried and said, "Now I know for sure you are telling me the truth."

Then he confessed to him, and told him all his sins, and how he had for fourteen years served but Queen Guinevere only, and forgotten God, and done great deeds of arms for her, and not for Heaven, and had little or nothing thanked God for the honor that he won. And then Sir Lancelot said, "I pray you counsel me."

Then he admitted everything to him, sharing all his sins, explaining how he had spent fourteen years serving only Queen Guinevere, forgetting about God, and achieving great feats in battle for her, not for Heaven, and hardly thanking God for the honor he received. Then Sir Lancelot said, "Please advise me."

"I will counsel thee," said he: "never more enter into that queen's company when ye can avoid it."

"I'll give you some advice," he said: "Never go into that queen's company if you can help it."

So Sir Lancelot promised him.

So Sir Lancelot made a promise.

"Look that your heart and your mouth accord," said the good man, "and ye shall have more honor and more nobleness than ever ye have had."

"Make sure your heart and your words match," said the good man, "and you will have more honor and nobility than you ever have before."

Then were his arms and horse restored to him, and so he took his leave, and rode forth, repenting greatly.

Then his arms and horse were given back to him, and he said goodbye, riding away with deep regret.

Now Sir Percival had ridden back to the recluse, to learn who that knight was whom she had called the best in the world. And when he had told her that he was Sir Percival, she made passing great joy of him, for she was his mother's sister, wherefore she opened her door to him, and made him good cheer. And on the morrow she told him of her kindred to him, and they both made great rejoicing. Then he asked her who that knight was, and she told him, "He it is who on Whit Sunday last was clad in the red robe, and bare the red arms; and he hath no peer, for he worketh all by miracle, and shall be never overcome by any earthly hands."

Now Sir Percival had ridden back to the recluse to find out who the knight was that she had called the best in the world. When he revealed that he was Sir Percival, she expressed immense joy, as she was his mother’s sister. She welcomed him into her home and treated him warmly. The next day, she shared with him their family connection, and they both celebrated. Then he asked her who that knight was, and she answered, “It is the one who, on Whit Sunday last, wore the red robe and bore the red arms; he has no equal, for he accomplishes everything through miracle and will never be defeated by any earthly hands.”

"By my goodwill," said Sir Percival, "I will never after these tidings have to do with Sir Galahad but in the way of kindness; and I would fain learn where I may find him."

"By my goodwill," said Sir Percival, "I will never after hearing this have anything to do with Sir Galahad except in a kind way; and I would like to know where I can find him."

"Fair nephew," said she, "ye must ride to the Castle of Goth, where he hath a cousin; by him ye may be lodged, and he will teach you the way to go; but if he can tell you no tidings, ride straight to the Castle of Carbonek, where the wounded king is lying, for there shall ye surely hear true tidings of him."

"Dear nephew," she said, "you must ride to the Castle of Goth, where you have a cousin; he can give you a place to stay, and he'll show you the way to get there. But if he doesn't have any news, head straight to the Castle of Carbonek, where the wounded king is resting, because you'll definitely hear real news about him there."

So Sir Percival departed from his aunt, and rode till evensong time, when he was ware of a monastery closed round with walls and deep ditches, where he knocked at the gate, and anon was let in. And there he had good cheer that night, and on the morrow heard mass. And beside the altar where the priest stood, was a rich bed of silk and cloth of gold; and on the bed there lay a man passing old, having a crown of gold upon his head, and all his body was full of great wounds, and his eyes almost wholly blind; and ever he held up his hands and said, "Sweet Lord, forget not me!"

So Sir Percival left his aunt and rode until evening prayer, when he noticed a monastery surrounded by walls and deep ditches. He knocked at the gate and was quickly let in. That night, he had a hearty meal, and the next morning, he attended mass. Next to the altar where the priest stood was a luxurious bed made of silk and gold cloth; lying on it was an elderly man with a gold crown on his head. His body was covered in deep wounds, and his eyes were nearly blind. He continually raised his hands and said, "Sweet Lord, don’t forget me!"

Then Sir Percival asked one of the brethren who he was.

Then Sir Percival asked one of the brothers who he was.

"Sir," said the good man, "ye have heard of Joseph of Arimathea, how he was sent of Jesus Christ into this land to preach and teach the Christian faith. Now, in the city of Sarras he converted a king named Evelake, and this is he. He came with Joseph to this land, and ever desired greatly to see the Sangreal; so on a time he came nigh thereto, and was struck almost blind. Then he cried out for mercy, and said, 'Fair Lord, I pray thee let me never die until a good knight of my blood achieve the Sangreal, and I may see and kiss him.' When he had thus prayed, he heard a voice that said, 'Thy prayers be heard and answered, for thou shalt not die till that knight kiss thee; and when he cometh shall thine eyes be opened and thy wounds be healed.' And now hath he lived here for three hundred winters in a holy life, and men say a certain knight of King Arthur's court shall shortly heal him."

"Sir," said the good man, "you've heard about Joseph of Arimathea and how he was sent by Jesus Christ to this land to preach and share the Christian faith. In the city of Sarras, he converted a king named Evelake, and this is him. He came with Joseph to this land and always longed to see the Holy Grail; once, he got very close to it and was nearly blinded. Then he cried out for mercy, saying, 'Fair Lord, I pray that I never die until a good knight from my bloodline achieves the Holy Grail, and I can see and kiss him.' After he prayed, he heard a voice that said, 'Your prayers are heard and answered; you will not die until that knight kisses you, and when he arrives, your eyes will be opened and your wounds will be healed.' And now he has lived here for three hundred years in a holy life, and people say a certain knight from King Arthur's court will soon heal him."

Thereat Sir Percival marveled greatly, for he well knew who that knight should be; and so, taking his leave of the monk, departed.

There, Sir Percival was greatly amazed, for he knew exactly who that knight was; and so, after saying goodbye to the monk, he left.

Then he rode on till noon, and came into a valley where he met twenty men-at-arms bearing a dead knight on a bier. And they cried to him, "Whence comest thou?"

Then he rode on until noon and came into a valley where he encountered twenty armed men carrying a dead knight on a coffin. They shouted to him, "Where are you coming from?"

"From King Arthur's court," he answered.

"From King Arthur's court," he replied.

Then they all cried together, "Slay him," and set upon him.

Then they all shouted together, "Kill him," and attacked him.

But he smote down the first man to the ground, and his horse upon him; whereat seven of them all at once assailed him, and others slew his horse. Thus he had been either taken or slain, but by good chance Sir Galahad was passing by that way, who, seeing twenty men attacking one, cried, "Slay him not," and rushed upon them; and, as fast as his horse could drive, he encountered with the foremost man, and smote him down. Then, his spear being broken, he drew forth his sword and struck out on the right hand and on the left, at each blow smiting down a man, till the remainder fled, and he pursued them.

But he knocked the first man to the ground, his horse landing on top of him; at that moment, seven others all attacked him at once, and others killed his horse. He would have been captured or killed, but by a stroke of luck, Sir Galahad was passing by. Seeing twenty men ganging up on one person, he shouted, "Don't kill him," and charged at them; he rode at full speed and collided with the first man, knocking him down. Then, when his spear broke, he pulled out his sword and attacked to the right and left, taking down a man with each strike, until the rest fled, and he chased after them.

Then Sir Percival, knowing that it was Sir Galahad, would fain have overtaken him, but could not, for his horse was slain. Yet followed he on foot as fast as he could go; and as he went there met him a yeoman riding on a palfrey, and leading in his hand a great black steed. So Sir Percival prayed him to lend him the steed, that he might overtake Sir Galahad. But he replied, "That can I not do, fair sir, for the horse is my master's, and should I lend it he would slay me." So he departed, and Sir Percival sat down beneath a tree in heaviness of heart. And as he sat, anon a knight went riding past on the black steed which the yeoman had led. And presently after came the yeoman back in haste, and asked Sir Percival if he had seen a knight riding his horse.

Then Sir Percival, realizing it was Sir Galahad, wanted to catch up with him, but he couldn't because his horse was dead. Still, he followed on foot as quickly as he could; and as he walked, he encountered a woodsman riding a pony and leading a large black horse. Sir Percival asked him to lend him the horse so he could catch up with Sir Galahad. But the woodsman replied, "I can't do that, good sir, because the horse belongs to my master, and if I lent it, he would kill me." So the woodsman left, and Sir Percival sat down under a tree, feeling very sad. While he sat there, a knight rode by on the black horse that the woodsman had been leading. Shortly after, the woodsman returned in a hurry and asked Sir Percival if he had seen a knight riding his horse.

"Yea," said Sir Percival.

"Yeah," said Sir Percival.

"Alas," said the yeoman, "he hath reft him from me by strength, and my master will slay me."

"Unfortunately," said the farmer, "he has taken him from me by force, and my boss will kill me."

Then he besought Sir Percival to take his hackney and follow, and get back his steed. So he rode quickly, and overtook the knight, and cried, "Knight, turn again." Whereat he turned and set his spear, and smote Sir Percival's hackney in the breast, so that it fell dead, and then went on his way. Then cried Sir Percival after him, "Turn now, false knight, and fight with me on foot"; but he would not, and rode out of sight.

Then he asked Sir Percival to take his horse and follow him to retrieve his steed. So he rode off quickly, caught up with the knight, and shouted, "Knight, turn around." At that, he turned, readied his spear, and struck Sir Percival's horse in the chest, causing it to fall dead, and then continued on his way. Sir Percival called after him, "Turn now, false knight, and fight me on foot"; but he refused and rode out of sight.

Then was Sir Percival passing wroth and heavy of heart, and lay down to rest beneath a tree, and slept till midnight. When he awoke he saw a woman standing by him, who said to him right fiercely, "Sir Percival, what doest thou here?"

Then Sir Percival was very angry and weighed down with sorrow, so he lay down to rest under a tree and slept until midnight. When he woke up, he saw a woman standing next to him, who said to him fiercely, "Sir Percival, what are you doing here?"

"I do neither good nor evil," said he.

"I don't do good or evil," he said.

"If thou wilt promise me," said she, "to do my will whenever I shall ask thee, I will bring thee here a horse that will bear thee wheresoever thou desirest."

"If you promise me," she said, "to do what I ask whenever I ask it, I will bring you a horse that will take you wherever you want."

At that he was full glad, and promised as she asked. Then anon she came again, with a great black steed, strong and well appareled. So Sir Percival mounted, and rode through the clear moonlight, and within less than an hour had gone a four days' journey, till he came to a rough water that roared; and his horse would have borne him into it, but Sir Percival would not suffer him, yet could he scarce restrain him. And seeing the water so furious, he made the sign of the cross upon his forehead, whereat the horse suddenly shook him off, and with a terrible sound leaped into the water and disappeared, the waves all burning up in flames around him. Then Sir Percival knew it was a fiend which had brought him the horse; so he commended himself to God, and prayed that he might escape temptations, and continued in prayer till it was day.

At that, he felt very happy and promised to do what she asked. Soon after, she returned with a big black horse, strong and well-equipped. So, Sir Percival got on the horse and rode through the bright moonlight, covering a distance that normally took four days in less than an hour, until he reached a wild river that was roaring. His horse tried to take him into it, but Sir Percival refused to let it; still, he could barely hold it back. Seeing how fierce the water was, he made the sign of the cross on his forehead, which caused the horse to suddenly throw him off and, with a terrible noise, jump into the water and vanish, the waves igniting in flames around it. Sir Percival then realized that it was a demon that had brought him the horse. He entrusted himself to God and prayed to escape temptations, continuing to pray until morning came.

Then he saw that he was on a wild mountain, nigh surrounded on all sides by the sea, and filled with wild beasts; and going on into a valley, he saw a serpent carrying a young lion by the neck. With that came another lion, crying and roaring after the serpent, and anon overtook him, and began to battle with him. And Sir Percival helped the lion, and drew his sword, and gave the serpent such a stroke that it fell dead. Thereat the lion fawned upon him like a dog, licking his hands, and crouching at his feet, and at night lay down by him and slept at his side.

Then he realized he was on a wild mountain, nearly surrounded by the sea, and filled with wild animals. As he walked into a valley, he saw a serpent gripping a young lion by the neck. Then another lion came, crying and roaring after the serpent, and soon caught up with it, starting to fight. Sir Percival jumped in to help the lion, drew his sword, and struck the serpent so hard that it fell dead. The lion then acted like a dog, nuzzling against him, licking his hands, and lying down by his side to sleep at night.

And at noon the next day Sir Percival saw a ship come sailing before a strong wind upon the sea towards him, and he rose and went towards it. And when it came to shore, he found it covered with white samite, and on the deck there stood an old man dressed in priest's robes, who said, "God be with you, fair sir; whence come ye?"

And at noon the next day, Sir Percival saw a ship sailing toward him on a strong wind over the sea, and he got up and walked toward it. When it reached the shore, he found it draped in white fabric, and on the deck stood an old man in priest's robes, who said, "God be with you, good sir; where do you come from?"

"I am a knight of King Arthur's court," said he, "and follow the quest of the Sangreal; but here have I lost myself in this wilderness."

"I’m a knight of King Arthur’s court," he said, "and I’m on the quest for the Holy Grail; but I’ve gotten lost in this wilderness."

"Fear nothing," said the old man, "for I have come from a strange country to comfort thee."

"Don't be afraid," said the old man, "because I've traveled from a distant place to offer you comfort."

Then he told Sir Percival it was a fiend of hell upon which he had ridden to the sea, and that the lion, whom he had delivered from the serpent, meant the Church. And Sir Percival rejoiced at these tidings, and entered into the ship, which presently sailed from the shore into the sea.

Then he told Sir Percival that it was a demon from hell that he had ridden to the sea, and that the lion, whom he had rescued from the serpent, represented the Church. Sir Percival was glad to hear this, and he boarded the ship, which soon sailed away from the shore into the sea.

Now when Sir Bors rode forth from Camelot to seek the Sangreal, anon he met a holy man riding on an ass, and courteously saluted him.

Now when Sir Bors rode out from Camelot to look for the Holy Grail, he soon met a holy man riding on a donkey and greeted him politely.

"Who are ye, son?" said the good man.

"Who are you, son?" said the good man.

"I am a knight," said he, "in quest of the Sangreal, and would fain have thy counsel, for he shall have much earthly honor who may bring it to a favorable end."

"I am a knight," he said, "on a quest for the Holy Grail, and I would really like your advice, because whoever brings it to a successful conclusion will gain a lot of worldly honor."

"That is truth," said the good man, "for he shall be the best knight of the world; yet know that none shall gain it save by sinless living."

"That is true," said the good man, "because he will be the best knight in the world; but know that no one will achieve it without living a sinless life."

So they rode to his hermitage together, and there he prayed Sir Bors to abide that night, and anon they went into the chapel, and Sir Bors was confessed. And they eat bread and drank water together.

So they rode to his hermitage together, and there he asked Sir Bors to stay the night. Then they went into the chapel, and Sir Bors confessed. After that, they ate bread and drank water together.

"Now," said the hermit, "I pray thee eat no other food till thou sit at the table where the Sangreal shall be." Thereto Sir Bors agreed.

"Now," said the hermit, "I ask you to eat no other food until you sit at the table where the Sangreal will be." To this, Sir Bors agreed.

"Also," said the hermit, "it were wise that ye should wear a sackcloth garment next your skin, for penance"; and in this also did Sir Bors as he was counseled. And afterwards he armed himself and took his leave.

"Also," said the hermit, "it would be wise for you to wear a sackcloth garment next to your skin, for penance"; and Sir Bors did as he was advised. Then he put on his armor and took his leave.

Then rode he onwards all that day, and as he rode he saw a passing great bird sit in an old dry tree, whereon no leaves were left; and many little birds lay round the great one, nigh dead with hunger. Then did the big bird smite himself with his own bill, and bled till he died amongst his little ones, and they recovered life in drinking up his blood. When Sir Bors saw this he knew it was a token, and rode on full of thought. And about eventide he came to a tower, whereto he prayed admission, and he was received gladly by the lady of the castle. But when a supper of many meats and dainties was set before him, he remembered his vow, and bade a squire to bring him water, and therein he dipped his bread, and ate.

Then he rode on all day, and as he rode, he saw a large bird perched in an old, dry tree with no leaves left on it; many little birds lay around the big one, nearly dead from hunger. The large bird then pecked at itself and bled to death among its little ones, who revived by drinking his blood. When Sir Bors saw this, he understood it was a sign and continued to ride, deep in thought. Around evening, he arrived at a tower, where he asked for admission and was warmly welcomed by the lady of the castle. But when a feast of various dishes and delicacies was laid before him, he remembered his vow and asked a squire to bring him water, in which he dipped his bread and ate.

Then said the lady, "Sir Bors, I fear ye like not my meat."

Then the lady said, "Sir Bors, I’m afraid you don’t like my food."

"Yea, truly," said he; "God thank thee, madam; but I may eat no other meat this day."

"Yes, really," he said; "God thank you, ma'am; but I can't eat any other food today."

After supper came a squire, and said, "Madam, bethink thee to provide a champion for thee to-morrow for the tourney, or else shall thy sister have thy castle."

After dinner, a squire arrived and said, "Madam, you need to think about finding a champion for the tournament tomorrow, or your sister will take your castle."

At that the lady wept, and made great sorrow. But Sir Bors prayed her to be comforted, and asked her why the tournament was held. Then she told him how she and her sister were the daughters of King Anianse, who left them all his lands between them; and how her sister was the wife of a strong knight, named Sir Pridan le Noir, who had taken from herself all her lands, save the one tower wherein she dwelt. "And now," said she, "this also will they take, unless I find a champion by to-morrow."

At that, the lady cried and showed great sadness. But Sir Bors asked her to be comforted and inquired about the reason for the tournament. Then she explained how she and her sister were the daughters of King Anianse, who had given them all his lands to share. She told him that her sister was married to a powerful knight named Sir Pridan le Noir, who had taken all her lands except for the one tower where she lived. "And now," she said, "they will take this as well unless I find a champion by tomorrow."

Then said Sir Bors, "Be comforted; to-morrow I will fight for thee"; whereat she rejoiced not a little, and sent word to Sir Pridan that she was provided and ready. And Sir Bors lay on the floor, and in no bed, nor ever would do otherwise till he had achieved his quest.

Then Sir Bors said, "Don’t worry; tomorrow I’ll fight for you"; at which she felt quite happy and let Sir Pridan know that she was prepared and ready. And Sir Bors slept on the floor, without a bed, and he would not do anything different until he had accomplished his mission.

On the morrow he arose and clothed himself, and went into the chapel, where the lady met him, and they heard mass together. Anon he called for his armor, and went with a goodly company of knights to the battle. And the lady prayed him to refresh himself ere he should fight, but he refused to break his fast until the tournament were done. So they all rode together to the lists, and there they saw the lady's eldest sister, and her husband, Sir Pridan le Noir. And a cry was made by the heralds that, whichever should win, his lady should have all the other's lands.

On the next day, he got up, got dressed, and went to the chapel, where the lady met him, and they attended mass together. Shortly after, he asked for his armor and set off with a good group of knights to the battle. The lady urged him to eat something before the fight, but he declined to eat until the tournament was over. So they all rode together to the arena, where they saw the lady's eldest sister and her husband, Sir Pridan le Noir. The heralds announced that whoever won would have their lady receive all the other's lands.

Then the two knights departed asunder a little space, and came together with such force, that both their spears were shivered, and their shields and hauberks pierced through; and both fell to the ground sorely wounded, with their horses under them. But swiftly they arose, and drew their swords, and smote each other on the head with many great and heavy blows, till the blood ran down their bodies; and Sir Pridan was a full good knight, so that Sir Bors had more ado than he had thought for to overcome him.

Then the two knights moved apart for a moment, then charged at each other with such force that both their lances shattered, and their shields and armor were pierced; they both fell to the ground, seriously injured, with their horses beneath them. But they quickly got up, drew their swords, and struck each other on the head with many powerful blows until blood poured down their bodies; and Sir Pridan was quite a skilled knight, so Sir Bors had a harder time defeating him than he expected.

But at last Sir Pridan grew a little faint; that instantly perceived Sir Bors, and rushed upon him the more vehemently, and smote him fiercely, till he rent off his helm, and then gave him great strokes upon his visage with the flat of his sword, and bade him yield or be slain.

But finally, Sir Pridan started to feel a bit weak; Sir Bors noticed it immediately and attacked him even more fiercely, hitting him hard until he knocked off his helmet, then struck him repeatedly on the face with the flat of his sword, demanding that he surrender or be killed.

And then Sir Pridan cried him mercy, and said, "For God's sake slay me not, and I will never war against thy lady more." So Sir Bors let him go, and his wife fled away with all her knights.

And then Sir Pridan begged for mercy and said, "For God’s sake, don’t kill me, and I won’t ever fight against your lady again." So Sir Bors let him go, and his wife ran away with all her knights.

Then all those who had held lands of the lady of the tower came and did homage to her again, and swore fealty. And when the country was at peace Sir Bors departed, and rode forth into a forest until it was midday, and there befell him a marvelous adventure.

Then everyone who owned land from the lady of the tower came and pledged their loyalty to her again, swearing their allegiance. When the country was peaceful, Sir Bors left and rode into a forest until noon, where he experienced an amazing adventure.

For at a place where two ways parted, there met him two knights, bearing Sir Lionel, his brother, all naked, bound on a horse, and as they rode, they beat him sorely with thorns, so that the blood trailed down in more than a hundred places from his body; but for all this he uttered no word or groan, so great he was of heart. As soon as Sir Bors knew his brother, he put his spear in rest to run and rescue him; but in the same moment heard a woman's voice cry close beside him in the wood, "St. Mary, succor thy maid"; and, looking round, he saw a damsel whom a felon knight dragged after him into the thickets; and she, perceiving him, cried piteously for help, and adjured him to deliver her as he was a sworn knight. Then was Sir Bors sore troubled, and knew not what to do, for he thought within himself, "If I let my brother be, he will be murdered; but if I help not the maid, she is shamed forever, and my vow compelleth me to set her free; wherefore must I first help her, and trust my brother unto God."

For at a spot where two roads split, he came across two knights who were bringing his brother, Sir Lionel, completely naked and tied to a horse. As they rode, they beat him harshly with thorns, causing blood to flow from more than a hundred wounds on his body; yet despite all this, he said nothing and made no sound, so great was his courage. As soon as Sir Bors recognized his brother, he raised his spear to charge in and save him; but at that moment, he heard a woman's voice calling nearby in the woods, "St. Mary, help your maid!" Looking around, he saw a lady being dragged into the bushes by a wicked knight. She saw him and cried out desperately for help, begging him to rescue her as he was a sworn knight. Sir Bors was then deeply troubled and didn’t know what to do. He thought to himself, "If I abandon my brother, he will be killed; but if I don't help the maid, she will be dishonored forever, and my vow requires me to free her. Therefore, I must help her first and leave my brother in God's hands."

So, riding to the knight who held the damsel, he cried out, "Sir knight, lay your hand off that maid, or else ye be but dead."

So, riding up to the knight who was holding the damsel, he shouted, "Sir knight, take your hand off that girl, or you'll be dead."

At that the knight set down the maid, and dropped his shield, and drew forth his sword against Sir Bors, who ran at him, and smote him through both shield and shoulder, and threw him to the earth; and when he pulled his spear forth, the knight swooned. Then the maid thanked Sir Bors heartily, and he set her on the knight's horse, and brought her to her men-at-arms, who presently came riding after her. And they made much joy, and besought him to come to her father, a great lord, and he should be right welcome. But "truly," said he, "I may not at this time, for I have a great adventure yet to do"; and commending them to God, he departed in great haste to find his brother.

At that, the knight set the maid down, dropped his shield, and drew his sword against Sir Bors, who charged at him, striking him through both the shield and shoulder, and knocked him to the ground. When he pulled his spear out, the knight fainted. Then the maid thanked Sir Bors sincerely, and he put her on the knight's horse and took her to her men-at-arms, who quickly came riding after her. They celebrated and asked him to come meet her father, a great lord, assuring him he would be very welcome. But he replied, "Honestly, I can’t right now, because I have a significant quest to complete," and after commending them to God, he hurried away to find his brother.

So he rode, seeking him by the track of the horses a great while. Anon he met a seeming holy man riding upon a strong black horse, and asked him, had he seen pass by that way a knight led bound and beaten with thorns by two others.

So he rode for a long time, following the trail of the horses. Soon, he encountered a man who appeared to be holy, riding a strong black horse. He asked him if he had seen a knight being led along that path, bound and beaten with thorns by two others.

"Yea, truly, such an one I saw," said the man; "but he is dead, and lo! his body is hard by in a bush."

"Yeah, really, I saw someone like that," said the man; "but he’s dead, and look! his body is nearby in a bush."

Then he showed him a newly slain body lying in a thick bush, which seemed indeed to be Sir Lionel. Then made Sir Bors such mourning and sorrow that by-and-by he fell into a swoon upon the ground. And when he came to himself again, he took the body in his arms and put it on his horse's saddle, and bore it to a chapel hard by, and would have buried it. But when he made the sign of the cross, he heard a full great noise and cry as though all the fiends of hell had been about him, and suddenly the body and the chapel and the old man vanished all away. Then he knew that it was the devil who had thus beguiled him, and that his brother yet lived.

Then he showed him a freshly killed body lying in a thick bush, which seemed to be Sir Lionel. Sir Bors mourned so deeply that he soon collapsed onto the ground. When he came to again, he picked up the body and placed it on his horse's saddle, intending to take it to a nearby chapel for burial. But when he made the sign of the cross, he heard a loud uproar, as if all the demons of hell were around him, and suddenly the body, the chapel, and the old man all disappeared. Then he realized that it was the devil who had tricked him, and that his brother was still alive.

Then held he up his hands to heaven, and thanked God for his own escape from hurt, and rode onwards; and anon, as he passed by an hermitage in a forest, he saw his brother sitting armed by the door. And when he saw him he was filled with joy, and lighted from his horse, and ran to him and said, "Fair brother, when came ye hither?"

Then he raised his hands to heaven and thanked God for his lucky escape from harm, and continued riding on; soon after, as he passed by a hermitage in a forest, he saw his brother sitting armed by the door. When he saw him, he was filled with joy, got off his horse, ran to him, and said, "Dear brother, when did you get here?"

But Sir Lionel answered, with an angry face, "What vain words be these, when for you I might have been slain? Did ye not see me bound and led away to death, and left me in that peril to go succoring a gentlewoman, the like whereof no brother ever yet hath done? Now, for thy false misdeed, I do defy thee, and ensure thee speedy death."

But Sir Lionel replied angrily, "What foolish talk is this, when I could have been killed for you? Didn't you see me tied up and taken away to die, and you left me in that danger to go help a lady, something no brother has ever done before? Now, because of your treachery, I challenge you and promise you a quick death."

Then Sir Bors prayed his brother to abate his anger, and said, "Fair brother, remember the love that should be between us twain."

Then Sir Bors asked his brother to calm down, and said, "Dear brother, remember the bond of love that should exist between us."

But Sir Lionel would not hear, and prepared to fight, and mounted his horse and came before him, crying, "Sir Bors, keep thee from me, for I shall do to thee as a felon and a traitor; therefore, start upon thy horse, for if thou wilt not, I will run upon thee as thou standest."

But Sir Lionel wouldn’t listen and got ready to fight. He mounted his horse and rode up to him, shouting, "Sir Bors, stay away from me, because I’ll treat you like a criminal and a traitor; so get on your horse, because if you don’t, I’ll charge at you while you’re standing there."

But for all his words Sir Bors would not defend himself against his brother. And anon the fiend stirred up Sir Lionel to such rage, that he rushed over him and overthrew him with his horse's hoofs, so that he lay swooning on the ground. Then would he have rent off his helm and slain him, but the hermit of that place ran out, and prayed him to forbear, and shielded Sir Bors with his body.

But despite everything he said, Sir Bors refused to defend himself against his brother. Soon, the devil stirred up Sir Lionel to such a fury that he charged at him, knocking him down with his horse's hooves, leaving him fainting on the ground. Then he intended to rip off his helmet and kill him, but the hermit from that area ran out and asked him to stop, using his body to protect Sir Bors.

Then Sir Lionel cried out, "Now, God so help me, sir priest, but I shall slay thee else thou depart, and him too after thee."

Then Sir Lionel shouted, "Now, I swear to God, priest, if you don't leave, I will kill you, and him too right after."

And when the good man utterly refused to leave Sir Bors, he smote him on the head until he died, and then he took his brother by the helm and unlaced it, to have stricken off his head, and so he would have done, but suddenly was pulled off backwards by a knight of the Round Table, who, by the will of Heaven, was passing by that place—Sir Colgrevance by name.

And when the good man completely refused to leave Sir Bors, he struck him on the head until he died. Then he took his brother by the helmet and unfastened it, intending to decapitate him, and he would have done so, but suddenly a knight of the Round Table, Sir Colgrevance by name, pulled him back just as he was passing by that spot, all by the will of Heaven.

"Sir Lionel," he cried, "will ye slay your brother, one of the best knights of all the world? That ought no man to suffer."

"Sir Lionel," he shouted, "are you really going to kill your brother, one of the best knights in the world? No one should have to endure that."

"Why," said Sir Lionel, "will ye hinder me and meddle in this strife? beware, lest I shall slay both thee and him."

"Why," said Sir Lionel, "are you stopping me and getting involved in this conflict? Be careful, or I might end up killing both you and him."

And when Sir Colgrevance refused to let them be, Sir Lionel defied him, and gave him a great stroke through the helmet, whereat Sir Colgrevance drew his sword, and smote again right manfully. And so long they fought together that Sir Bors awoke from his swoon, and tried to rise and part them, but had no strength to stand upon his feet.

And when Sir Colgrevance wouldn't leave them alone, Sir Lionel challenged him and landed a powerful hit on his helmet. Sir Colgrevance drew his sword and struck back with all his might. They fought for so long that Sir Bors came to from his faint and tried to get up to separate them, but he had no strength to stand.

Anon Sir Colgrevance saw him, and cried out to him for help, for now Sir Lionel had nigh defeated him. When Sir Bors heard that, he struggled to his feet, and put his helmet on, and took his sword. But before he could come to him, Sir Lionel had smitten off Sir Colgrevance's helm, and thrown him to the earth and slain him. Then turned he to his brother as a man possessed by fiends, and gave him such a stroke as bent him nearly double.

Anon, Sir Colgrevance saw him and called out for help, as Sir Lionel had nearly defeated him. When Sir Bors heard this, he struggled to his feet, put on his helmet, and grabbed his sword. But before he could reach him, Sir Lionel had knocked off Sir Colgrevance's helmet, thrown him to the ground, and killed him. Then he turned to his brother like a man possessed by demons and dealt him a blow that nearly doubled him over.

But Sir Bors prayed him for God's sake to quit that battle, "For if it befell us that we either slew the other we should die for care of that sin."

But Sir Bors begged him for God's sake to back down from that fight, "Because if we ended up killing each other, we would suffer from the weight of that sin."

"Never will I spare thee if I master thee," cried out Sir Lionel.

"Never will I hold back if I conquer you," shouted Sir Lionel.

Then Sir Bors drew his sword all weeping, and said, "Now, God have mercy on me, though I defend my life against my brother"; with that he lifted up his sword to strike, but suddenly he heard a mighty voice, "Put up thy sword, Sir Bors, and flee, or thou shalt surely slay him." And then there fell upon them both a fiery cloud, which flamed and burned their shields, and they fell to the earth in sore dread.

Then Sir Bors drew his sword, weeping, and said, "Now, may God have mercy on me, even though I'm defending my life against my brother." With that, he raised his sword to strike, but suddenly he heard a powerful voice say, "Put away your sword, Sir Bors, and flee, or you'll definitely kill him." Then a fiery cloud descended upon them both, scorching their shields, and they fell to the ground in great fear.

Anon Sir Bors rose to his feet, and saw that Sir Lionel had taken no harm. Then came the voice again, and said, "Sir Bors, go hence and leave thy brother, and ride thou forward to the sea, for there Sir Percival abideth thee."

Anon Sir Bors got up and saw that Sir Lionel was unharmed. Then the voice spoke again, saying, "Sir Bors, go away and leave your brother, and ride on to the sea, for there Sir Percival is waiting for you."

Then he said to his brother, "Brother, forgive me all my trespass against thee."

Then he said to his brother, "Brother, please forgive me for everything I’ve done wrong to you."

And Sir Lionel answered, "God forgive it thee, as I do."

And Sir Lionel replied, "May God forgive you, as I do."

Then he departed and rode to the sea, and on the strand he found a ship all covered with white samite, and as soon as he had entered thereinto, it put forth from the shore. And in the midst of the ship there stood an armed knight, whom he knew to be Sir Percival. Then they rejoiced greatly over each other, and said, "We lack nothing now but the good knight Sir Galahad."

Then he left and rode to the sea, and on the shore he found a ship completely covered in white silk. As soon as he got on board, it pushed away from the shore. In the middle of the ship stood an armored knight, whom he recognized as Sir Percival. They were both very happy to see each other and said, "Now we only need the good knight Sir Galahad."

Now when Sir Galahad had rescued Sir Percival from the twenty knights he rode into a vast forest. And after many days it befell that he came to a castle whereat was a tournament. And the knights of the castle were put to the worse; which when he saw, he set his spear in rest and ran to help them, and smote down many of their adversaries. And as it chanced, Sir Gawain was amongst the stranger knights, and when he saw the white shield with the red cross, he knew it was Sir Galahad, and proffered to joust with him. So they encountered, and having broken their spears, they drew their swords, and Sir Galahad smote Sir Gawain so sorely on the helm that he clove it through, and struck on slanting to the earth, carving the horse's shoulder in twain, and Sir Gawain fell to the earth. Then Sir Galahad beat back all who warred against the castle, yet would he not wait for thanks, but rode away that no man might know him.

Now, after Sir Galahad rescued Sir Percival from the twenty knights, he rode into a vast forest. After many days, he came to a castle where a tournament was taking place. The knights of the castle were struggling; when he saw this, he readied his spear and charged in to help them, knocking down many of their enemies. Coincidentally, Sir Gawain was among the foreign knights, and when he spotted the white shield with the red cross, he recognized it was Sir Galahad and offered to joust with him. They clashed, and after breaking their spears, they drew their swords. Sir Galahad struck Sir Gawain so hard on the helm that it split right through, slashing slantwise to the ground and cutting the horse's shoulder in half, causing Sir Gawain to fall to the ground. Then, Sir Galahad drove back all who attacked the castle, but he didn't stay to receive thanks; instead, he rode off so no one would recognize him.

And he rested that night at a hermitage, and when he was asleep, he heard a knocking at the door. So he rose, and found a damsel there, who said, "Sir Galahad, I will that ye arm you, and mount upon your horse and follow me, for I will show you within these three days the highest adventure that ever any knight saw."

And he stayed that night at a hermitage, and while he was sleeping, he heard a knock at the door. So he got up and found a lady there, who said, "Sir Galahad, I want you to get dressed in your armor, get on your horse, and follow me, because I will show you the greatest adventure that any knight has ever experienced within the next three days."

Anon Sir Galahad armed him, and took his horse, and commended himself to God, and bade the gentlewoman go, and he would follow where she liked.

Anon, Sir Galahad got himself ready and took his horse, then he prayed to God and told the lady to go ahead, saying he would follow wherever she wanted.

So they rode onwards to the sea as fast as their horses might gallop, and at night they came to a castle in a valley, inclosed by running water, and by strong and high walls, whereinto they entered and had great cheer, for the lady of the castle was the damsel's mistress.

So they rode on to the sea as fast as their horses could run, and at night they arrived at a castle in a valley, surrounded by flowing water and tall, sturdy walls. They entered the castle and were warmly welcomed, as the lady of the castle was the damsel's guardian.

And when he was unarmed, the damsel said to her lady, "Madam, shall we abide here this night?"

And when he was unarmed, the girl said to her lady, "Ma'am, should we stay here for the night?"

"Nay," said she, "but only till he hath dined and slept a little."

"Nah," she said, "but just until he has eaten and taken a short nap."

So he ate and slept a while, till the maid called him, and armed him by torchlight; and when he had saluted the lady of the castle, the damsel and Sir Galahad rode on.

So he ate and slept for a bit until the maid called him and got him ready by torchlight; after he greeted the lady of the castle, the young woman and Sir Galahad rode on.

Anon they came to the seaside, and lo! the ship, wherein were Sir Percival and Sir Bors, abode by the shore. Then they cried, "Welcome, Sir Galahad, for we have awaited thee long."

Anon they came to the seaside, and look! the ship, where Sir Percival and Sir Bors were, stayed by the shore. Then they shouted, "Welcome, Sir Galahad, for we have been waiting for you a long time."

Then they rejoiced to see each other, and told of all their adventures and temptations. And the damsel went into the ship with them, and spake to Sir Percival: "Sir Percival, know ye not who I am?"

Then they were happy to see each other and shared all their adventures and challenges. The young woman got into the ship with them and spoke to Sir Percival: "Sir Percival, don't you know who I am?"

And he replied, "Nay, certainly, I know thee not."

And he replied, "No, I definitely don't know you."

Then said she, "I am thy sister, the daughter of King Pellinore, and am sent to help thee and these knights, thy fellows, to achieve the quest which ye all follow."

Then she said, "I am your sister, the daughter of King Pellinore, and I’ve come to help you and these knights, your companions, to succeed in the quest you all are pursuing."

So Sir Percival rejoiced to see his sister, and they departed from the shore. And after a while they came upon a whirlpool, where their ship could not live. Then saw they another greater ship hard by and went towards it, but saw neither man nor woman therein. And on the end of it these words were written, "Thou who shalt enter me, beware that thou be in steadfast belief, for I am Faith; and if thou doubtest, I cannot help thee." Then were they all adread, but, commending themselves to God, they entered in.

So Sir Percival was happy to see his sister, and they left the shore. After a while, they encountered a whirlpool where their ship couldn't survive. Then they spotted another larger ship nearby and headed toward it, but there was no one inside—no man or woman. At the end of it, these words were written, "You who enter here, be sure to have strong faith, for I am Faith; and if you doubt, I cannot help you." Then they were all filled with fear, but they entrusted themselves to God and boarded the ship.

As soon as they were on board they saw a fair bed, whereon lay a crown of silk, and at the foot was a fair and rich sword drawn from its scabbard half a foot and more. The pommel was of precious stones of many colors, every color having a different virtue, and the scales of the haft were of two ribs of different beasts. The one was bone of a serpent from Calidone forest, named the serpent of the fiend; and its virtue saveth all men who hold it from weariness. The other was of a fish that haunteth the floods of Euphrates, named Ertanax; and its virtue causeth whoever holdeth it to forget all other things, whether of joy or pain, save the thing he seeth before him.

As soon as they boarded, they saw a beautiful bed, with a silk crown resting on it, and at the foot was a stunning, ornate sword that was pulled halfway out of its scabbard. The hilt was adorned with precious stones of various colors, each color representing a different power. The handle was made from the bones of two different creatures. One was from a serpent in the Calidone forest, known as the serpent of the fiend, and its power protects anyone who holds it from fatigue. The other was from a fish that swims in the Euphrates River, called Ertanax; its power allows anyone who holds it to forget everything else, whether happy or painful, except for what they see in front of them.

"In the name of God," said Sir Percival, "I shall assay to handle this sword"; and set his hand to it, but could not grasp it. "By my faith," said he, "now have I failed."

"In the name of God," said Sir Percival, "I'm going to try to take this sword"; and he reached for it, but couldn't grab it. "I swear," he said, "now I've failed."

Sir Bors set his hand to it, and failed also.

Sir Bors tried it too, but he failed as well.

Then came Sir Galahad, and saw these letters written red as blood, "None shall draw me forth save the hardiest of all men; but he that draweth me shall never be shamed or wounded to death." "By my faith," said Sir Galahad, "I would draw it forth, but dare not try."

Then Sir Galahad arrived and saw these letters written in red like blood, "Only the bravest man can pull me out; but whoever pulls me out will never be shamed or mortally wounded." "I swear," said Sir Galahad, "I would pull it out, but I don't dare to try."

"Ye may try safely," said the gentlewoman, Sir Percival's sister, "for be ye well assured the drawing of this sword is forbid to all but you. For this was the sword of David, King of Israel, and Solomon his son made for it this marvelous pommel and this wondrous sheath, and laid it on this bed till thou shouldest come and take it up; and though before thee some have dared to raise it, yet have they all been maimed or wounded for their daring."

"You can try safely," said the gentlewoman, Sir Percival's sister, "because you can be assured that only you are allowed to draw this sword. This is the sword of David, King of Israel, and his son Solomon made this amazing pommel and this incredible sheath for it. He placed it on this bed for you to come and take it; and though some have bravely attempted to raise it before you, they have all been injured or hurt for their boldness."

"Where," said Sir Galahad, "shall we find a girdle for it?"

"Where," said Sir Galahad, "are we going to find a belt for it?"

"Fair sir," said she, "dismay you not"; and therewith took from out a box a girdle, nobly wrought with golden thread, set full of precious stones and with a rich gold buckle. "This girdle, lords," said she, "is made for the most part of mine own hair, which, while I was yet in the world, I loved full well; but when I knew that this adventure was ordained me, I cut off and wove as ye now see."

"Kind sir," she said, "don't be alarmed"; and with that, she took out a box and revealed a belt, beautifully crafted with golden thread, adorned with precious stones and a lavish gold buckle. "This belt, my lords," she said, "is mostly made from my own hair, which I cherished dearly while I was still alive; but when I learned that this quest was meant for me, I cut it off and wove it into this, as you see now."

Then they all prayed Sir Galahad to take the sword, and so anon he gripped it in his fingers; and the maiden girt it round his waist, saying, "Now reck I not though I die, for I have made thee the worthiest knight of all the world."

Then they all asked Sir Galahad to take the sword, and immediately he grasped it in his hands; and the maiden fastened it around his waist, saying, "Now I don't care if I die, because I have made you the greatest knight in all the world."

"Fair damsel," said Sir Galahad, "ye have done so much that I shall be your knight all the days of my life."

"Fair lady," said Sir Galahad, "you have done so much that I will be your knight for the rest of my life."

Then the ship sailed a great way on the sea, and brought them to land near the Castle of Carteloise. When they were landed came a squire and asked them, "Be ye of King Arthur's court?"

Then the ship traveled a long distance over the sea and brought them to land near the Castle of Carteloise. Once they had landed, a squire approached and asked them, "Are you from King Arthur's court?"

"We are," said they.

"We are," they said.

"In an evil hour are ye come," said he, and went back swiftly to the castle.

"In a bad time, you’ve arrived," he said, and quickly headed back to the castle.

Within a while they heard a great horn blow, and saw a multitude of well-armed knights come forth, who bade them yield or die. At that they ran together, and Sir Percival smote one to the earth and mounted his horse, and so likewise did Sir Bors and Sir Galahad, and soon had they routed all their enemies and alighted on foot, and with their swords slew them downright, and entered into the castle.

Within a while, they heard a loud horn blow and saw a crowd of well-armed knights approach, demanding they surrender or face death. At that, they regrouped, and Sir Percival struck one knight down and got on his horse. Sir Bors and Sir Galahad did the same, and soon they had defeated all of their enemies, dismounted, and with their swords killed them outright before entering the castle.

Then came there forth a priest, to whom Sir Galahad kneeled and said, "In sooth, good father, I repent me of this slaughter; but we were first assailed, or else it had not been."

Then a priest came forward, and Sir Galahad knelt and said, "Truly, good father, I regret this killing; but we were attacked first, or it wouldn't have happened."

"Repent ye not," said the good man, "for if ye lived as long as the world lasted ye could do no better deed, for these were all the felon sons of a good knight, Earl Hernox, whom they have thrown into a dungeon, and in his name have slain priests and clerks, and beat down chapels far and near."

"Don't repent," said the good man, "because even if you lived as long as the world lasts, you couldn't do a better deed. These are all the criminal sons of a good knight, Earl Hernox, who they've thrown into a dungeon, and in his name, they've killed priests and clerks, and destroyed chapels everywhere."

Then Sir Galahad prayed the priest to bring him to the earl; who, when he saw Sir Galahad, cried out, "Long have I waited for thy coming, and now I pray thee hold me in thine arms that I may die in peace."

Then Sir Galahad asked the priest to take him to the earl; when the earl saw Sir Galahad, he exclaimed, "I have long waited for your arrival, and now I ask you to hold me in your arms so that I may die peacefully."

And therewith, when Sir Galahad had taken him in his arms, his soul departed from his body.

And with that, when Sir Galahad held him in his arms, his soul left his body.

Then came a voice in the hearing of them all, "Depart now, Sir Galahad, and go quickly to the maimed king, for he hath long abided to receive health from thy hand."

Then a voice spoke to everyone present, "Leave now, Sir Galahad, and go quickly to the injured king, for he has been waiting a long time to receive healing from you."

So the three knights departed, and Sir Percival's sister with them, and came to a vast forest, and saw before them a white hart, exceeding fair, led by four lions; and marveling greatly at that sight, they followed.

So the three knights set off, along with Sir Percival's sister, and arrived at a huge forest. In front of them, they saw a beautiful white deer, guarded by four lions. Amazed by this sight, they decided to follow.

Anon they came to a hermitage and a chapel, whereunto the hart entered, and the lions with it. Then a priest offered mass, and presently they saw the hart change into the figure of a man, most sweet and comely to behold; and the four lions also changed and became a man, an eagle, a lion, and an ox. And suddenly all those five figures vanished without sound. Then the knights marveled greatly, and fell upon their knees, and when they rose they prayed the priest to tell them what that sight might mean.

Soon they arrived at a hermitage and a chapel, where the hart entered along with the lions. Then a priest began the mass, and right away they saw the hart transform into the figure of a man, extremely pleasant and beautiful to look at. The four lions also transformed, becoming a man, an eagle, a lion, and an ox. Suddenly, all five figures disappeared without a sound. The knights were greatly amazed and fell to their knees, and when they stood up, they asked the priest to explain what that vision could mean.

"What saw ye, sirs?" said he, "for I saw nothing." Then they told him.

"What did you see, gentlemen?" he said, "because I saw nothing." Then they told him.

"Ah, lords!" said he, "ye are full welcome; now know I well ye be the knights who shall achieve the Sangreal, for unto them alone such mysteries are revealed. The hart ye saw is One above all men, white and without blemish, and the four lions with Him are the four evangelists."

"Ah, lords!" he said, "you are all very welcome; now I know you are the knights who will achieve the Holy Grail, for only to them are such mysteries revealed. The deer you saw is One above all men, white and without flaw, and the four lions with Him represent the four evangelists."

When they heard that they heartily rejoiced, and thanking the priest, departed.

When they heard the news, they rejoiced wholeheartedly and thanked the priest before leaving.

Anon, as they passed by a certain castle, an armed knight suddenly came after them, and cried out to the damsel, "By the holy cross, ye shall not go till ye have yielded to the custom of the castle."

Anon, as they walked past a certain castle, an armed knight suddenly appeared behind them and shouted at the lady, "By the holy cross, you won't be able to leave until you abide by the customs of the castle."

"Let her go," said Sir Percival, "for a maiden, wheresoever she cometh, is free."

"Let her go," said Sir Percival, "for a maiden, wherever she goes, is free."

"Whatever maiden passeth here," replied the knight, "must give a dishful of her blood from her right arm."

"Any maiden who passes here," replied the knight, "must give a full dish of blood from her right arm."

"It is a foul and shameful custom," cried Sir Galahad and both his fellows, "and sooner will we die than let this maiden yield thereto."

"It’s a disgusting and shameful practice,” shouted Sir Galahad and his companions, “and we would rather die than let this maiden go along with it."

"Then shall ye die," replied the knight, and as he spake there came out from a gate hard by, ten or twelve more, and encountered with them, running upon them vehemently with a great cry. But the three knights withstood them, and set their hands to their swords, and beat them down and slew them.

"Then you will die," answered the knight, and as he spoke, ten or twelve more came out from a nearby gate and charged at them with a loud shout. But the three knights stood their ground, drew their swords, and fought them back, defeating and killing them.

At that came forth a company of threescore knights, all armed. "Fair lords," said Sir Galahad, "have mercy on yourselves and keep from us."

At that point, a group of sixty armed knights came forward. "Gentlemen," said Sir Galahad, "have mercy on yourselves and stay away from us."

"Nay, fair lords," they answered, "rather be advised by us, and yield ye to our custom."

"Nay, good lords," they replied, "it would be better to listen to us and follow our customs."

"It is an idle word," said Galahad, "in vain ye speak it."

"It’s just an empty word," Galahad said, "you’re saying it for no reason."

"Well," said they, "will ye die?"

"Well," they said, "are you going to die?"

"We be not come thereto as yet," replied Sir Galahad.

"We haven't gotten there yet," replied Sir Galahad.

Then did they fall upon each other, and Sir Galahad drew forth his sword, and smote on the right hand and on the left, and slew so mightily that all who saw him thought he was a monster and no earthly man. And both his comrades helped him well, and so they held the field against that multitude till it was night. Then came a good knight forward from the enemy and said, "Fair knights, abide with us to-night and be right welcome; by the faith of our bodies as we are true knights, to-morrow ye shall rise unharmed, and meanwhile maybe ye will, of your own accord, accept the custom of the castle when ye know it better."

Then they charged at each other, and Sir Galahad pulled out his sword, striking right and left, taking down so many foes that everyone who saw him thought he was a monster and not a man from this world. His comrades fought bravely alongside him, and together they held their ground against the enemy until nightfall. Then, a noble knight stepped forward from the opposing side and said, "Brave knights, stay with us tonight and you’ll be warmly welcomed; by the honor of our knighthood, as true knights, tomorrow you will leave unharmed. In the meantime, perhaps you'll be willing to accept the customs of the castle once you understand them better."

So they entered and alighted and made great cheer. Anon, they asked them whence that custom came. "The lady of this castle is a leper," said they, "and can be no way cured save by the blood of a pure virgin and a king's daughter; therefore to save her life are we her servants bound to stay every maid that passeth by, and try if her blood may not cure our mistress."

So they entered, got off, and celebrated loudly. Soon, they asked where that tradition came from. "The lady of this castle has leprosy," they replied, "and she can only be cured by the blood of a pure virgin who is also a king's daughter; so to save her life, we are bound as her servants to stop every girl who passes by and see if her blood can cure our mistress."

Then said the damsel, "Take ye of my blood as much as ye will, if it may avail your lady."

Then the young woman said, "Take as much of my blood as you want, if it can help your lady."

And though the three knights urged her not to put her life in that great peril, she replied, "If I die to heal another's body, I shall get health to my soul," and would not be persuaded to refuse.

And even though the three knights urged her not to put her life in such great danger, she replied, "If I die to heal someone else's body, I'll find healing for my soul," and refused to be convinced otherwise.

So on the morrow she was brought to the sick lady, and her arm was bared, and a vein thereof was opened, and the dish filled with her blood. Then the sick lady was anointed therewith, and anon she was whole of her malady. With that Sir Percival's sister lifted up her hand and blessed her, saying, "Madam, I am come to my death to make you whole; for God's love pray for me"; and thus saying she fell down in a swoon.

So the next day, she was taken to the sick lady, her arm was exposed, a vein was opened, and a dish was filled with her blood. Then the sick lady was anointed with it, and immediately she was healed of her illness. At that, Sir Percival's sister raised her hand and blessed her, saying, "Madam, I have come to my end in order to heal you; for God's sake, please pray for me"; and as she said this, she collapsed in a faint.

Then Sir Galahad, Sir Percival, and Sir Bors started to lift her up and staunch her blood, but she had lost too much to live. So when she came to herself she said to Sir Percival, "Fair brother, I must die for the healing of this lady, and now, I pray thee, bury me not here, but when I am dead put me in a boat at the next haven and let me float at venture on the sea. And when ye come to the city of Sarras, to achieve the Sangreal, shall ye find me waiting by a tower, and there I pray thee bury me, for there shall Sir Galahad and ye also be laid." Thus having said, she died.

Then Sir Galahad, Sir Percival, and Sir Bors began to lift her up and stop her bleeding, but she had lost too much blood to survive. When she regained her senses, she said to Sir Percival, "Dear brother, I must die so this lady can be healed, and now, I ask you, don’t bury me here. When I’m gone, place me in a boat at the nearest harbor and let me drift on the sea. When you reach the city of Sarras to seek the Holy Grail, you will find me waiting by a tower, and there I ask you to bury me, for that is where Sir Galahad and you will also be laid to rest." Having said this, she passed away.

Then Sir Percival wrote all the story of her life and put it in her right hand, and so laid her in a barge and covered it with silk. And the wind arising drove the barge from land, and all the knights stood watching it till it was out of sight.

Then Sir Percival wrote down the entire story of her life and placed it in her right hand, then laid her in a boat and covered her with silk. As the wind picked up, it pushed the boat away from the shore, and all the knights stood watching until it disappeared from view.

Anon they returned to the castle, and forthwith fell a sudden tempest of thunder and lightning and rain, as if the earth were broken up: and half the castle was thrown down. Then came a voice to the three knights which said, "Depart ye now asunder till ye meet again where the maimed king is lying." So they parted and rode divers ways.

Soon they returned to the castle, and immediately a sudden storm of thunder, lightning, and rain erupted, as if the earth had split open: and half the castle was destroyed. Then a voice spoke to the three knights, saying, "Go your separate ways until you meet again where the wounded king is lying." So they parted and rode off in different directions.

Now after Sir Lancelot had left the hermit, he rode a long while till he knew not whither to turn, and so he lay down to sleep, if haply he might dream whither to go.

Now after Sir Lancelot had left the hermit, he rode for a long time until he didn't know where to turn, and then he lay down to sleep, hoping he might dream of where to go.

And in his sleep a vision came to him saying, "Lancelot, rise up and take thine armor, and enter the first ship that thou shalt find."

And while he was sleeping, a vision appeared to him saying, "Lancelot, get up and put on your armor, and board the first ship you come across."

When he awoke he obeyed the vision, and rode till he came to the sea-shore, and found there a ship without sails or oars, and as soon as he was in it he smelt the sweetest savor he had ever known, and seemed filled with all things he could think of or desire. And looking round he saw a fair bed, and thereon a gentlewoman lying dead, who was Sir Percival's sister. And as Sir Lancelot looked on her he spied the writing in her right hand, and, taking it, he read therein her story. And more than a month thereafter he abode in that ship and was nourished by the grace of Heaven, as Israel was fed with manna in the desert.

When he woke up, he followed the vision and rode until he reached the seashore, where he found a ship without sails or oars. As soon as he got in, he smelled the sweetest fragrance he had ever experienced and felt filled with everything he could think of or desire. Looking around, he saw a beautiful bed with a lady lying dead on it, who was Sir Percival's sister. As Sir Lancelot gazed at her, he noticed the writing in her right hand. He took it and read her story. He stayed on that ship for more than a month, nourished by the grace of Heaven, just like Israel was fed with manna in the desert.

And on a certain night he went ashore to pass the time, for he was somewhat weary, and, listening, he heard a horse come towards him, from which a knight alighted and went up into the ship; who, when he saw Sir Lancelot, said, "Fair sir, ye be right welcome to mine eyes, for I am thy son Galahad, and long time I have sought for thee." With that he kneeled and asked his blessing, and took off his helm and kissed him, and the great joy there was between them no tongue can tell.

And one night he went ashore to take a break, feeling a bit tired. As he listened, he heard a horse approaching. A knight got off and walked up to the ship. When he saw Sir Lancelot, he said, "Good sir, it's a true pleasure to see you; I am your son Galahad, and I’ve been looking for you for a long time." With that, he kneeled, asked for his blessing, took off his helmet, and kissed him. The joy they felt in that moment was beyond words.

Then for half a year they dwelt together in the ship, and served God night and day with all their powers, and went to many unknown islands, where none but wild beasts haunted, and there found many strange and perilous adventures.

Then they lived together on the ship for six months, serving God day and night with all their energy. They traveled to many unknown islands, where only wild animals roamed, and encountered numerous strange and dangerous adventures.

And upon a time they came to the edge of a forest, before a cross of stone, and saw a knight armed all in white, leading a white horse. Then the knight saluted them, and said to Galahad, "Ye have been long time enough with your father; now, therefore, leave him and ride this horse till ye achieve the Holy Quest."

And one day they reached the edge of a forest, in front of a stone cross, and saw a knight dressed in white, leading a white horse. The knight greeted them and said to Galahad, "You’ve spent enough time with your father; now, leave him and ride this horse until you complete the Holy Quest."

Then went Sir Galahad to his father and kissed him full courteously, and said, "Fair father, I know not when I shall see thee again."

Then Sir Galahad went to his father and gave him a courteous kiss, saying, "Dear father, I don’t know when I will see you again."

And as he took his horse a voice spake in their hearing, "Ye shall meet no more in this life."

And as he took his horse, a voice spoke within earshot, "You will not meet again in this life."

"Now, my son, Sir Galahad," said Sir Lancelot, "since we must so part and see each other never more, I pray the High Father of Heaven to preserve both you and me."

"Now, my son, Sir Galahad," said Sir Lancelot, "since we have to part ways and may never see each other again, I pray that the Almighty Father in Heaven protects both you and me."

Then they bade farewell, and Sir Galahad entered the forest, and Sir Lancelot returned to the ship, and the wind rose and drove him more than a month through the sea, whereby he slept but little, yet ever prayed that he might see the Sangreal.

Then they said their goodbyes, and Sir Galahad entered the forest, while Sir Lancelot headed back to the ship. The wind picked up and pushed him through the sea for over a month, during which he slept very little but continually prayed that he would see the Holy Grail.

So it befell upon a certain midnight, the moon shining clear, he came before a fair and rich castle, whereof the postern gate was open towards the sea, having no keeper save two lions in the entry.

So it happened one midnight, with the moon shining brightly, he arrived at a beautiful and grand castle, where the back gate was open towards the sea, having no guard except for two lions at the entrance.

Anon Sir Lancelot heard a voice: "Leave now thy ship and go within the castle, and thou shalt see a part of thy desire."

Anon Sir Lancelot heard a voice: "Leave your ship now and go into the castle, and you will see part of what you desire."

Then he armed and went towards the gate, and coming to the lions he drew out his sword, but suddenly a dwarf rushed out and smote him on the arm, so that he dropt his sword, and heard again the voice, "Oh, man of evil faith, and poor belief, wherefore trustest thou thine arms above thy Maker?" Then he put up his sword and signed the cross upon his forehead, and so passed by the lions without hurt.

Then he got ready for battle and walked towards the gate. As he approached the lions, he pulled out his sword, but suddenly a dwarf ran out and struck him on the arm, causing him to drop his sword. He then heard the voice again, "Oh, man of weak faith and little belief, why do you trust your weapons more than your Creator?" He then sheathed his sword and made the sign of the cross on his forehead, and passed by the lions unharmed.

And going in, he found a chamber with the door shut, which in vain he tried to open. And listening thereat he heard a voice within, which sang so sweetly that it seemed no earthly thing, "Joy and honor be to the Father of Heaven!" Then he kneeled down at the door, for he knew well the Sangreal was there within.

And as he entered, he found a room with the door closed, which he tried to open in vain. Listening closely, he heard a voice inside, singing so beautifully that it seemed otherworldly, "Joy and honor to the Father in Heaven!" Then he knelt by the door, knowing that the Sangreal was inside.

Anon the door was opened without hands, and forthwith came thereout so great a splendor as if all the torches of the world had been alight together. But when he would have entered in, a voice forbade him; wherefore he drew back, and looked, standing upon the threshold of the door. And there he saw a table of silver, and the holy vessel covered with red samite, and many angels round it holding burning candles and a cross and all the ornaments of the altar.

Soon the door opened on its own, and an incredible brightness flowed out, as if all the torches in the world had been lit at once. But just as he was about to step in, a voice stopped him; so he hesitated and looked, standing on the doorway. There he saw a silver table, and the holy vessel covered with red cloth, with many angels around it holding lit candles, a cross, and all the decorations of the altar.

Then a priest stood up and offered mass, and when he took the vessel up, he seemed to sink beneath that burden. At that Sir Lancelot cried, "O Father, take it not for sin that I go in to help the priest, who hath much need thereof." So saying, he went in, but when he came towards the table he felt a breath of fire which issued out therefrom and smote him to the ground, so that he had no power to rise.

Then a priest stood up and offered mass, and when he lifted the vessel, he seemed to struggle under its weight. At that moment, Sir Lancelot shouted, "Oh Father, please don’t see it as a sin that I’m going in to help the priest, who really needs it." With that, he walked in, but as he approached the table, he felt a breath of fire coming from it that knocked him to the ground, leaving him unable to stand.

Then felt he many hands about him, which took him up and laid him down outside the chapel door. There lay he in a swoon all through that night, and on the morrow certain people found him senseless, and bore him to an inner chamber and laid him on a bed. And there he rested, living, but moving no limbs, twenty-four days and nights.

Then he felt many hands around him, lifting him up and laying him down outside the chapel door. He lay there in a faint all through the night, and the next day, some people found him senseless and carried him to an inner room, putting him on a bed. He rested there, alive but not moving any limbs, for twenty-four days and nights.

On the twenty-fifth day he opened his eyes and saw those standing round, and said, "Why have ye waked me? for I have seen marvels that no tongue can tell, and more than any heart can think."

On the twenty-fifth day, he opened his eyes and saw the people around him and said, "Why did you wake me? I have seen wonders that no words can express and more than any heart can imagine."

Then he asked where he was, and they told him, "In the Castle of Carbonek."

Then he asked where he was, and they told him, "In the Castle of Carbonek."

"Tell your lord, King Pelles," said he, "that I am Sir Lancelot."

"Tell your lord, King Pelles," he said, "that I am Sir Lancelot."

At that they marveled greatly, and told their lord it was Sir Lancelot who had lain there so long.

At that, they were amazed and told their lord it was Sir Lancelot who had been there for so long.

Then was King Pelles wondrous glad and went to see him, and prayed him to abide there for a season. But Sir Lancelot said, "I know well that I have now seen as much as mine eyes may behold of the Sangreal; wherefore I will return to my own country." So he took leave of King Pelles, and departed towards Logris.

Then King Pelles was very happy and went to see him, asking him to stay there for a while. But Sir Lancelot replied, "I know I've seen as much of the Sangreal as I can, so I'm going back to my own land." He then said goodbye to King Pelles and left for Logris.

Now after Sir Galahad had parted from Sir Lancelot, he rode many days, till he came to the monastery where the blind King Evelake lay, whom Sir Percival had seen. And on the morrow, when he had heard mass, Sir Galahad desired to see the king, who cried out, "Welcome, Sir Galahad, servant of the Lord! long have I abided thy coming. Take me now in thine arms, that I may die in peace."

Now after Sir Galahad had said goodbye to Sir Lancelot, he rode for many days until he reached the monastery where the blind King Evelake was lying, whom Sir Percival had seen. The next day, after attending mass, Sir Galahad wanted to see the king, who exclaimed, "Welcome, Sir Galahad, servant of the Lord! I've been waiting for you for a long time. Hold me in your arms now so that I can die in peace."

At that Sir Galahad embraced him; and when he had so done the king's eyes were opened, and he said, "Fair Lord Jesus, suffer me now to come to Thee"; and anon his soul departed.

At that moment, Sir Galahad hugged him; and as he did, the king's eyes were opened, and he said, "Fair Lord Jesus, let me come to You now"; and soon after, his soul left his body.

Then they buried him royally, as a king should be; and Sir Galahad went on his way.

Then they buried him like a king should be; and Sir Galahad continued on his way.

Within a while he came to a chapel in a forest, in the crypt whereof he saw a tomb which always blazed and burnt. And asking the brethren what that might mean, they told him, "Joseph of Arimathea's son did found this monastery, and one who wronged him hath lain here these three hundred and fifty years and burneth evermore, until that perfect knight who shall achieve the Sangreal doth quench the fire."

After a while, he arrived at a chapel in a forest, where he saw a tomb in the crypt that was constantly blazing and burning. When he asked the monks what it meant, they told him, "Joseph of Arimathea's son founded this monastery, and someone who wronged him has been lying here for three hundred and fifty years, burning forever, until the perfect knight who will achieve the Holy Grail puts out the fire."

Then said he, "I pray ye bring me to the tomb."

Then he said, "Please take me to the tomb."

And when he touched the place immediately the fire was quenched, and a voice came from the grave and cried, "Thanks be to God, who now hath purged me of my sin, and draweth me from earthly pains into the joys of paradise."

And when he touched the spot, the fire was immediately put out, and a voice came from the grave and shouted, "Thank God, who has now freed me from my sins and is taking me from earthly suffering into the joys of paradise."

Then Sir Galahad took the body in his arms and bore it to the abbey, and on the morrow put it in the earth before the high altar.

Then Sir Galahad picked up the body and carried it to the abbey, and the next day buried it in the ground in front of the high altar.

Anon he departed from thence and rode five days in a great forest; and after that he met Sir Percival, and a little further on Sir Bors. When they had told each other their adventures, they rode together to the Castle of Carbonek: and there King Pelles gave them hearty welcome, for he knew they should achieve the Holy Quest.

Soon, he left that place and rode for five days through a vast forest; after that, he met Sir Percival, and a little further along, Sir Bors. After sharing their adventures with each other, they rode together to the Castle of Carbonek, where King Pelles welcomed them warmly, knowing they were destined to complete the Holy Quest.

As soon as they were come into the castle, a voice cried in the midst of the chamber, "Let them who ought not now to sit at the table of the Lord rise and depart hence!" Then all, save those three knights, departed.

As soon as they entered the castle, a voice shouted in the middle of the room, "Let those who shouldn’t be sitting at the Lord's table rise and leave!" Then everyone except for those three knights left.

Anon they saw other knights come in with haste at the hall doors and take their harness off, who said to Sir Galahad, "Sir, we have tried sore to be with you at this table."

Anon they saw other knights rush in through the hall doors and take off their armor, who said to Sir Galahad, "Sir, we have eagerly tried to join you at this table."

"Ye be welcome," said he, "but whence are ye?"

"You're welcome," he said, "but where are you from?"

So three of them said they were from Gaul; and three from Ireland; and three from Denmark.

So three of them said they were from Gaul; and three from Ireland; and three from Denmark.

Then came forth the likeness of a bishop, with a cross in his hand, and four angels stood by him, and a table of silver was before them, whereon was set the vessel of the Sangreal. Then came forth other angels also—two bearing burning candles, and the third a towel, and the fourth a spear which bled marvelously, the drops wherefrom fell into a box he held in his left hand. Anon the bishop took the wafer up to consecrate it, and at the lifting up, they saw the figure of a Child, whose visage was as bright as any fire, which smote itself into the midst of the wafer and vanished, so that all saw the flesh made bread.

Then there appeared a figure of a bishop, holding a cross, with four angels standing beside him, and a silver table set in front of them that held the vessel of the Sangreal. Then more angels appeared—two carrying burning candles, the third holding a towel, and the fourth a spear that bled gloriously, with the drops falling into a box he held in his left hand. Soon, the bishop lifted the wafer to consecrate it, and as he raised it, they saw the form of a Child, whose face shone as brightly as fire, which embedded itself into the center of the wafer and disappeared, allowing everyone to see the flesh turned to bread.

Thereat the bishop went to Galahad and kissed him, and bade him go and kiss his fellows; and said, "Now, servants of the Lord, prepare for food such as none ever yet were fed with since the world began."

There, the bishop approached Galahad, kissed him, and told him to go and kiss his companions; he said, "Now, servants of the Lord, get ready for a feast like no one has ever had since the beginning of time."

With that he vanished, and the knights were filled with a great dread and prayed devoutly.

With that, he disappeared, and the knights were filled with a deep fear and prayed sincerely.

Then saw they come forth from the holy vessel the vision of a man bleeding all openly, whom they knew well by the tokens of His passion for the Lord Himself. At that they fell upon their faces and were dumb. Anon he brought the Holy Grail to them and spake high words of comfort, and, when they drank therefrom, the taste thereof was sweeter than any tongue could tell or heart desire. Then a voice said to Galahad, "Son, with this blood which drippeth from the spear anoint thou the maimed king and heal him. And when thou hast this done, depart hence with thy brethren in a ship that ye shall find, and go to the city of Sarras. And bear with thee the holy vessel, for it shall no more be seen in the realm of Logris."

Then they saw come out of the holy vessel the vision of a man bleeding openly, whom they recognized by the signs of His suffering for the Lord Himself. At that, they fell on their faces and were silent. Soon, he brought the Holy Grail to them and spoke words of comfort, and when they drank from it, its taste was sweeter than anything one could express or desire. Then a voice said to Galahad, "Son, with this blood that drips from the spear, anoint the wounded king and heal him. And when you have done this, leave with your brothers in a ship that you will find, and go to the city of Sarras. And take with you the holy vessel, for it will no longer be seen in the realm of Logris."

At that Sir Galahad walked to the bleeding spear, and therefrom anointing his fingers went out straightway to the maimed King Pelles, and touched his wound. Then suddenly he uprose from his bed as whole a man as ever he was, and praised God passing thankfully with all his heart.

At that moment, Sir Galahad walked over to the bleeding spear, and after anointing his fingers, he immediately went to the injured King Pelles and touched his wound. Suddenly, King Pelles rose from his bed as whole as he had ever been, and he praised God, expressing his gratitude with all his heart.

Then Sir Galahad, Sir Bors, and Sir Percival departed as they had been told; and when they had ridden three days they came to the sea-shore, and found the ship awaiting them. Therein they entered, and saw in the midst the silver table and the vessel of the Sangreal, covered with red samite. Then were they passing glad, and made great reverence thereto. And Sir Galahad prayed that now he might leave the world and pass to God. And presently, the while he prayed, a voice said to him, "Galahad, thy prayer is heard, and when thou asketh the death of the body thou shalt have it, and find the life of thy soul."

Then Sir Galahad, Sir Bors, and Sir Percival set off as they had been instructed; after three days of riding, they arrived at the shore and found the ship waiting for them. They boarded the ship and saw in the middle a silver table and the vessel of the Sangreal, covered with red fabric. They were very happy and showed great respect for it. Sir Galahad prayed to be able to leave the world and return to God. While he was praying, a voice spoke to him, "Galahad, your prayer has been heard, and when you ask for the death of your body, you shall receive it and find the life of your soul."

But while they prayed and slept the ship sailed on, and when they woke they saw the city of Sarras before them, and the other ship wherein was Sir Percival's sister. Then the three knights took up the holy table and the Sangreal and went into the city; and there, in a chapel, they buried Sir Percival's sister right solemnly.

But while they prayed and slept, the ship continued its journey, and when they awoke, they saw the city of Sarras ahead of them, along with the other ship that had Sir Percival's sister on board. Then the three knights took the holy table and the Sangreal and entered the city; there, in a chapel, they buried Sir Percival's sister with great solemnity.

Now at the gate of the town they saw an old cripple sitting, whom Sir Galahad called to help them bear their weight.

Now at the town gate, they saw an old cripple sitting there, whom Sir Galahad called over to help them carry their load.

"Truly," said the old man, "it is ten years since I have gone a step without these crutches."

"Honestly," said the old man, "it's been ten years since I've taken a step without these crutches."

"Care ye not," said Sir Galahad, "rise now and show goodwill."

"Don't worry," said Sir Galahad, "get up now and be friendly."

So he assayed to move, and found his limbs as strong as any man's might be, and running to the table helped to carry it.

So he tried to move and found his limbs as strong as any man's could be, and he ran to the table to help carry it.

Anon there rose a rumor in the city that a cripple had been healed by certain marvelous strange knights.

Soon, a rumor spread around the city that a disabled person had been healed by some amazing, unusual knights.

But the king, named Estouranse, who was a heathen tyrant, when he heard thereof took Sir Galahad and his fellows, and put them in prison in a deep hole. Therein they abode a great while, but ever the Sangreal was with them and fed them with marvelous sweet food, so that they fainted not, but had all joy and comfort they could wish.

But the king, named Estouranse, who was a pagan tyrant, when he heard about this, took Sir Galahad and his companions and threw them in a deep dungeon. They stayed there for a long time, but the Sangreal was always with them and provided them with amazing delicious food, so they didn’t faint and had all the joy and comfort they could want.

At the year's end the king fell sick and felt that he should die. Then sent he for the three knights, and when they came before him prayed their mercy for his trespasses against them. So they forgave him gladly, and anon he died.

At the end of the year, the king got sick and felt that he was about to die. He then called for the three knights, and when they came to him, he asked for their forgiveness for the wrongs he had done to them. They gladly forgave him, and soon after, he died.

Then the chief men of the city took counsel together who should be king in his stead, and as they talked, a voice cried in their midst, "Choose ye the youngest of the three knights King Estouranse cast into prison for your king." At that they sought Sir Galahad and made him king with the assent of all the city, and else they would have slain him.

Then the leading men of the city came together to decide who should be king in his place, and while they were discussing, a voice called out among them, "Choose the youngest of the three knights that King Estouranse imprisoned to be your king." With that, they sought out Sir Galahad and made him king with everyone in the city agreeing, or else they would have killed him.

But within a twelve-month came to him, upon a certain day, as he prayed before the Sangreal, a man in likeness of a bishop, with a great company of angels round about him, who offered mass, and afterwards called to Sir Galahad, "Come forth, thou servant of the Lord, for the time hath come thou hast desired so long."

But within a year, on a certain day while he was praying before the Holy Grail, a man who looked like a bishop appeared to him surrounded by a great group of angels. The man offered mass and then called to Sir Galahad, “Come forward, you servant of the Lord, for the time you have long desired has come.”

Then Sir Galahad lifted up his hands and prayed, "Now, blessed Lord! would I no longer live if it might please Thee."

Then Sir Galahad raised his hands and prayed, "Now, blessed Lord! I would rather not live if that would please You."

Anon the bishop gave him the sacrament, and when he had received it with unspeakable gladness, he said, "Who art thou, father?"

Anon the bishop gave him the sacrament, and when he received it with overwhelming joy, he said, "Who are you, father?"

"I am Joseph of Arimathea," answered he, "whom our Lord hath sent to bear thee fellowship."

"I am Joseph of Arimathea," he replied, "whom our Lord has sent to be with you."

When he heard that, Sir Galahad went to Sir Percival and Sir Bors and kissed them and commended them to God, saying, "Salute for me Sir Lancelot, my father, and bid them remember this unstable world."

When he heard that, Sir Galahad went to Sir Percival and Sir Bors, kissed them, and commended them to God, saying, "Say hi to Sir Lancelot, my dad, and remind them to keep in mind this unpredictable world."

Therewith he kneeled down and prayed, and suddenly his soul departed, and a multitude of angels bare it up to heaven. Then came a hand from heaven and took the vessel and the spear and bare them out of sight.

Thereupon, he knelt down and prayed, and suddenly his soul left his body, and a host of angels lifted it up to heaven. Then a hand reached down from heaven, took the vessel and the spear, and carried them away from sight.

Since then was never man so hardy as to say that he had seen the Sangreal.

Since then, no one has ever been bold enough to claim that they have seen the Sangreal.

And after all these things, Sir Percival put off his armor and betook him to an hermitage, and within a little while passed out of this world. And Sir Bors, when he had buried him beside his sister, returned, weeping sore for the loss of his two brethren, to King Arthur, at Camelot.

And after all this, Sir Percival took off his armor and went to a hermitage, where he soon passed away. Sir Bors, after burying him next to his sister, returned to King Arthur at Camelot, crying heavily for the loss of his two brothers.


THE PASSING OF ARTHUR


XIV

SIR LANCELOT AND THE FAIR ELAINE

Now after the quest of the Sangreal was fulfilled and all the knights who were left alive were come again to the Round Table, there was great joy in the court. And passing glad were King Arthur and Queen Guinevere to see Sir Lancelot and Sir Bors, for they had been long absent in that quest.

Now that the quest for the Holy Grail was completed and all the surviving knights had returned to the Round Table, there was great joy in the court. King Arthur and Queen Guinevere were very happy to see Sir Lancelot and Sir Bors, as they had been away for a long time on that quest.

And so greatly was Sir Lancelot's fame now spread abroad that many ladies and damsels daily resorted to him and besought him for their champion; and all right quarrels did he gladly undertake for the pleasure of our Lord Christ. And always as much as he might he withdrew him from the queen.

And so widely was Sir Lancelot's fame known that many ladies and young women came to him daily, asking him to be their champion; and he gladly took on all just battles for the glory of our Lord Christ. And as much as he could, he kept his distance from the queen.

Wherefore Queen Guinevere, who counted him for her own knight, grew wroth with him, and on a certain day she called him to her chamber, and said thus: "Sir Lancelot, I daily see thy loyalty to me doth slack, for ever thou art absent from this court, and takest other ladies' quarrels on thee more than ever thou wert wont. Now do I understand thee, false knight, and therefore shall I never trust thee more. Depart now from my sight, and come no more within this court upon pain of thy head." With that she turned from him and would hear no excuses.

Wherefore Queen Guinevere, who saw him as her own knight, became angry with him. One day, she called him to her chamber and said: "Sir Lancelot, I see your loyalty to me slipping away, as you are always absent from this court and taking on the disputes of other ladies more than you ever used to. Now I understand you, false knight, and I will never trust you again. Leave my sight now, and don't return to this court on pain of your life." With that, she turned away from him and refused to listen to any excuses.

So Sir Lancelot departed in heaviness of heart, and calling Sir Bors, Sir Ector, and Sir Lionel, he told them how the queen had dealt with him.

So Sir Lancelot left feeling heavy-hearted, and calling Sir Bors, Sir Ector, and Sir Lionel, he told them how the queen had treated him.

"Fair sir," replied Sir Bors, "remember what honor ye have in this country, and how ye are called the noblest knight in the world; wherefore go not, for women are hasty, and do often what they sore repent of afterwards. Be ruled by my advice. Take horse and ride to the hermitage beside Windsor, and there abide till I send ye better tidings."

"Kind sir," replied Sir Bors, "remember the honor you have in this country and how you are known as the noblest knight in the world; so don't go, because women can be impulsive and often do things they regret later. Listen to my advice. Take your horse and ride to the hermitage near Windsor, and stay there until I send you better news."

To that Sir Lancelot consented, and departed with a sorrowful countenance.

To that, Sir Lancelot agreed, and left with a sad expression.

Now when the queen heard of his leaving she was inwardly sorry, but made no show of grief, bearing a proud visage outwardly. And on a certain day she made a costly banquet to all the knights of the Round Table, to show she had as great joy in all others as in Sir Lancelot. And at the banquet were Sir Gawain, and his brothers Sir Agravaine, Sir Gaheris, and Sir Gareth; also Sir Modred, Sir Bors, Sir Blamor, Sir Bleoberis, Sir Ector, Sir Lionel, Sir Palomedes, Sir Mador de la Port, and his cousin Sir Patrice—a knight of Ireland, Sir Pinell le Savage, and many more.

Now when the queen heard he was leaving, she felt sad inside, but didn’t show any sadness on the outside, keeping a proud face. One day, she hosted an extravagant banquet for all the knights of the Round Table to demonstrate that she took just as much joy in everyone else as she did in Sir Lancelot. At the banquet were Sir Gawain and his brothers Sir Agravaine, Sir Gaheris, and Sir Gareth; also present were Sir Modred, Sir Bors, Sir Blamor, Sir Bleoberis, Sir Ector, Sir Lionel, Sir Palomedes, Sir Mador de la Port, and his cousin Sir Patrice—a knight from Ireland, Sir Pinell le Savage, and many more.

Now Sir Pinell hated Sir Gawain because he had slain one of his kinsmen by treason; and Sir Gawain had a great love for all kinds of fruit, which, when Sir Pinell knew, he poisoned certain apples that were set upon the table, with intent to slay him. And so it chanced as they ate and made merry, Sir Patrice, who sat next to Sir Gawain, took one of the poisoned apples and eat it, and when he had eaten he suddenly swelled up and fell down dead.

Now Sir Pinell hated Sir Gawain because he had killed one of his relatives through treachery; and Sir Gawain loved all kinds of fruit, which, when Sir Pinell learned, he poisoned some apples placed on the table, intending to kill him. As they ate and celebrated, Sir Patrice, who sat next to Sir Gawain, took one of the poisoned apples and ate it, and right after he finished, he suddenly swelled up and collapsed dead.

At that every knight leapt from the board ashamed and enraged nigh out of their wits, for they knew not what to say, yet seeing that the queen had made the banquet they all had suspicion of her.

At that, every knight jumped up from the table, feeling ashamed and furious, almost losing their minds, because they didn't know what to say. However, since the queen had organized the banquet, they all suspected her.

"My lady the queen," said Sir Gawain, "I wit well this fruit was meant for me, for all men know my love for it, and now had I been nearly slain; wherefore, I fear me, ye will be ashamed."

"My lady the queen," said Sir Gawain, "I know this fruit was meant for me, because everyone knows how much I love it, and now I was almost killed; so, I fear you will be embarrassed."

"This shall not end so," cried Sir Mador de la Port; "now have I lost a noble knight of my own blood, and for this despite and shame I will be revenged to the uttermost."

"This won't end like this," shouted Sir Mador de la Port; "I've lost a noble knight from my own family, and for this insult and shame, I will take my revenge to the fullest."

Then he challenged Queen Guinevere concerning the death of his cousin, but she stood still, sore abashed, and anon with her sorrow and dread, she swooned.

Then he confronted Queen Guinevere about the death of his cousin, but she remained silent, deeply embarrassed, and soon overwhelmed by her grief and fear, she fainted.

At the noise and sudden cry came in King Arthur, and to him appealed Sir Mador, and impeached the queen.

At the sound of the noise and sudden shout, King Arthur entered, and Sir Mador turned to him, accusing the queen.

"Fair lords," said he, "full sorely am I troubled at this matter, for I must be rightful judge, and therein it repenteth me I may not do battle for my wife, for, as I deem, this deed was none of hers. But I suppose she will not lack a champion, and some good knight surely will put his body in jeopardy to save her."

"Dear lords," he said, "I’m truly troubled by this situation, because I have to be the fair judge, and it pains me that I cannot fight for my wife, as I believe this action was not her doing. But I trust she won't be without a champion, and some noble knight will surely risk his life to protect her."

But all who had been bidden to the banquet said they could not hold the queen excused, or be her champions, for she had made the feast, and either by herself or servants must it have come.

But everyone who was invited to the banquet said they couldn't excuse the queen or defend her because she had organized the feast, and it must have come from either her or her servants.

"Alas!" said the queen, "I made this dinner for a good intent, and no evil, so God help me in my need."

"Alas!" said the queen, "I prepared this dinner with good intentions, not to cause any harm, so help me God in my time of need."

"My lord the king," said Sir Mador, "I require you heartily as you be a righteous king give me a day when I may have justice."

"My lord the king," said Sir Mador, "I sincerely ask you, as a just king, to grant me a day to seek justice."

"Well," said the king, "I give ye this day fifteen days, when ye shall be ready and armed in the meadow beside Westminster, and if there be a knight to fight with you, God speed the right, and if not, then must my queen be burnt."

"Well," said the king, "I give you fifteen days starting today to get ready and armed in the meadow beside Westminster, and if there’s a knight to fight you, may the best one win, and if not, then my queen must be burned."

When the king and queen were alone together he asked her how this case befell.

When the king and queen were alone, he asked her how this situation happened.

"I wot not how or in what manner," answered she.

"I don’t know how or in what way," she replied.

"Where is Sir Lancelot?" said King Arthur, "for he would not grudge to do battle for thee."

"Where is Sir Lancelot?" King Arthur asked. "He wouldn't hesitate to fight for you."

"Sir," said she, "I cannot tell you, but all his kinsmen deem he is not in this realm."

"Sir," she said, "I can't say for sure, but all his relatives believe he's not in this realm."

"These be sad tidings," said the king; "I counsel ye to find Sir Bors, and pray him for Sir Lancelot's sake to do this battle for you."

"These are sad news," said the king; "I advise you to find Sir Bors and ask him, for Sir Lancelot's sake, to fight this battle for you."

So the queen departed and sent for Sir Bors to her chamber, and besought his succor.

So the queen left and called for Sir Bors to come to her room, asking for his help.

"Madam," said he, "what would you have me do? for I may not with my honor take this matter on me, for I was at that same dinner, and all the other knights would have me ever in suspicion. Now do ye miss Sir Lancelot, for he would not have failed you in right nor yet in wrong, as ye have often proved, but now ye have driven him from the country."

"Madam," he said, "what do you want me to do? I can't take this on with my honor at stake, since I was at that same dinner, and all the other knights would always suspect me. Now you miss Sir Lancelot, because he would have stood by you in both right and wrong, as you have often seen, but now you’ve driven him out of the country."

"Alas! fair knight," said the queen, "I put me wholly at your mercy, and all that is done amiss I will amend as ye will counsel me."

"Sadly, noble knight," said the queen, "I completely surrender to your judgment, and I will fix everything that’s wrong as you advise me."

And therewith she kneeled down upon both her knees before Sir Bors, and besought him to have mercy on her.

And with that, she knelt down on both knees in front of Sir Bors and begged him to show her mercy.

Anon came in King Arthur also, and prayed him of his courtesy to help her, saying, "I require you for the love of Lancelot."

Anon came in King Arthur too, and asked him kindly to help her, saying, "I ask you for the love of Lancelot."

"My lord," said he, "ye require the greatest thing of me that any man can ask, for if I do this battle for the queen I shall anger all my fellows of the Table Round; nevertheless, for my lord Sir Lancelot's sake, and for yours, I will that day be the queen's champion, unless there chance to come a better knight than I am to do battle for her." And this he promised on his faith.

"My lord," he said, "you're asking me for the greatest favor a man can ask, because if I fight this battle for the queen, I'll upset all my friends at the Round Table. However, for the sake of my lord Sir Lancelot and for you, I will be the queen's champion that day, unless a better knight comes along to fight for her." And he promised this on his honor.

Then were the king and queen passing glad, and thanked him heartily, and so departed.

Then the king and queen were very happy and thanked him sincerely, and then they left.

But Sir Bors rode in secret to the hermitage where Sir Lancelot was, and told him all these tidings.

But Sir Bors rode secretly to the hermitage where Sir Lancelot was and shared all this news with him.

"It has chanced as I would have it," said Sir Lancelot; "yet make ye ready for the battle, but tarry till ye see me come."

"It has happened as I wanted," said Sir Lancelot; "but get ready for battle, and wait until you see me arrive."

"Sir," said Sir Bors, "doubt not but ye shall have your will."

"Sir," said Sir Bors, "don't worry, you will get what you want."

But many of the knights were greatly wroth with him when they heard he was to be the queen's champion, for there were few in the court but deemed her guilty.

But many of the knights were very angry with him when they heard he was going to be the queen's champion, because almost everyone at the court believed she was guilty.

Then said Sir Bors, "Wit ye will, fair lords, it were a shame to us all to suffer so fair and noble a lady to be burnt for lack of a champion, for ever hath she proved herself a lover of good knights; wherefore I doubt not she is guiltless of this treason."

Then Sir Bors said, "You all know, honorable lords, it would be a disgrace for us to let such a beautiful and noble lady be burned because there’s no champion to defend her. She has always shown herself to be a supporter of good knights; therefore, I have no doubt she is innocent of this betrayal."

At that were some well pleased, but others rested passing wroth.

At that, some were pleased, but others were quite angry.

And when the day was come, the king and queen and all the knights went to the meadow beside Westminster, where the battle should be fought. Then the queen was put in ward, and a great fire was made round the iron stake, where she must be burnt if Sir Mador won the day.

And when the day arrived, the king, queen, and all the knights went to the meadow by Westminster, where the battle would take place. The queen was placed in custody, and a large fire was set up around the iron stake, where she would be burned if Sir Mador won the day.

So when the heralds blew, Sir Mador rode forth, and took oath that Queen Guinevere was guilty of Sir Patrice's death, and his oath he would prove with his body against any who would say the contrary. Then came forth Sir Bors, and said, "Queen Guinevere is in the right, and that will I prove with my hands."

So when the trumpets sounded, Sir Mador rode out and swore that Queen Guinevere was responsible for Sir Patrice's death, and he would defend his claim with his own body against anyone who disagreed. Then Sir Bors stepped forward and said, "Queen Guinevere is innocent, and I will prove it with my hands."

With that they both departed to their tents to make ready for the battle. But Sir Bors tarried long, hoping Sir Lancelot would come, till Sir Mador cried out to King Arthur, "Bid thy champion come forth, unless he dare not." Then was Sir Bors ashamed, and took his horse and rode to the end of the lists.

With that, they both went back to their tents to prepare for the battle. But Sir Bors waited a long time, hoping Sir Lancelot would show up, until Sir Mador shouted to King Arthur, "Tell your champion to come out, unless he’s too scared." That made Sir Bors feel ashamed, so he took his horse and rode to the edge of the lists.

But ere he could meet Sir Mador he was aware of a knight upon a white horse, armed at all points, and with a strange shield, who rode to him and said, "I pray you withdraw from this quarrel, for it is mine, and I have ridden far to fight in it."

But before he could meet Sir Mador, he noticed a knight on a white horse, fully armed and carrying an unusual shield, who rode up to him and said, "Please step back from this fight, because it's mine, and I've traveled a long way to battle for it."

Thereat Sir Bors rode to King Arthur, and told him that another knight was come who would do battle for the queen.

There, Sir Bors rode up to King Arthur and told him that another knight had arrived who would fight for the queen.

"Who is he?" said King Arthur.

"Who is he?" asked King Arthur.

"I may not tell you," said Sir Bors; "but he made a covenant with me to be here to-day, wherefore I am discharged."

"I can’t tell you," said Sir Bors; "but he promised me he would be here today, so I'm off the hook."

Then the king called that knight, and asked him if he would fight for the queen.

Then the king summoned the knight and asked him if he would fight for the queen.

"Therefore came I hither, Sir king," answered he; "but let us tarry no longer, for anon I have other matters to do. But wit ye well," said he to the Knights of the Round Table, "it is shame to ye for such a courteous queen to suffer this dishonor."

"That's why I came here, Sir King," he replied; "but let's not stay any longer, because I have other things to attend to soon. But know this," he said to the Knights of the Round Table, "it’s a shame for you to let such a gracious queen endure this dishonor."

And all men marveled who this knight might be, for none knew him save Sir Bors.

And everyone was amazed at who this knight could be, because no one knew him except Sir Bors.

Then Sir Mador and the knight rode to either end of the lists, and couching their spears, ran one against the other with all their might; and Sir Mador's spear broke short, but the strange knight bore both him and his horse down to the ground. Then lightly they leaped from their saddles and drew their swords, and so came eagerly to the battle, and either gave the other many sad strokes and sore and deep wounds.

Then Sir Mador and the knight rode to opposite ends of the tournament field, and lowering their spears, charged at each other with all their strength; Sir Mador’s spear shattered, but the unknown knight knocked both him and his horse to the ground. They quickly jumped off their horses and drew their swords, eagerly engaging in combat, each delivering many painful blows and serious, deep wounds to the other.

Thus they fought nigh an hour, for Sir Mador was a full strong and valiant knight. But at last the strange knight smote him to the earth, and gave him such a buffet on the helm as wellnigh killed him. Then did Sir Mador yield, and prayed his life.

Thus they fought for almost an hour, because Sir Mador was a very strong and brave knight. But finally, the strange knight knocked him to the ground and dealt him such a blow to the helmet that it nearly killed him. Then Sir Mador surrendered and begged for his life.

"I will but grant it thee," said the strange knight, "if thou wilt release the queen from this quarrel forever, and promise that no mention shall be made upon Sir Patrice's tomb that ever she consented to that treason."

"I'll give it to you," said the strange knight, "if you agree to free the queen from this conflict for good, and promise that no mention will be made on Sir Patrice's tomb that she ever agreed to that betrayal."

"All this shall be done," said Sir Mador.

"All this will be done," said Sir Mador.

Then the knights parters took up Sir Mador and led him to his tent, and the other knight went straight to the stair foot of King Arthur's throne; and by that time was the queen come to the king again, and kissed him lovingly.

Then the knights helped Sir Mador and took him to his tent, and the other knight went directly to the bottom of King Arthur's throne; by that time, the queen had returned to the king and kissed him affectionately.

Then both the king and she stooped down, and thanked the knight, and prayed him to put off his helm and rest him, and to take a cup of wine. And when he put his helmet off to drink, all people saw it was Sir Lancelot. But when the queen beheld him she sank almost to the ground weeping for sorrow and for joy, that he had done her such great goodness when she had showed him such unkindness.

Then both the king and she bent down, thanked the knight, and asked him to take off his helmet and rest, and to have a cup of wine. When he took off his helmet to drink, everyone saw it was Sir Lancelot. But when the queen saw him, she nearly collapsed on the ground, crying from both sorrow and joy for the great kindness he had shown her after she had treated him so poorly.

Then the knights of his blood gathered round him, and there was great joy and mirth in the court. And Sir Mador and Sir Lancelot were soon healed of their wounds; and not long after came the Lady of the Lake to the court, and told all there by her enchantments how Sir Pinell, and not the queen, was guilty of Sir Patrice's death. Whereat the queen was held excused of all men, and Sir Pinell fled the country.

Then the knights related to him gathered around, and there was great joy and laughter in the court. Sir Mador and Sir Lancelot quickly recovered from their injuries, and not long after, the Lady of the Lake came to the court and revealed through her magic that Sir Pinell, not the queen, was responsible for Sir Patrice's death. Because of this, the queen was cleared of all blame, and Sir Pinell fled the country.

So Sir Patrice was buried in the church of Winchester, and it was written on his tomb that Sir Pinell slew him with a poisoned apple, in error for Sir Gawain. Then, through Sir Lancelot's favor, the queen was reconciled to Sir Mador, and all was forgiven.

So Sir Patrice was buried in the church of Winchester, and it was written on his tomb that Sir Pinell killed him with a poisoned apple, mistaking him for Sir Gawain. Then, with Sir Lancelot's help, the queen made amends with Sir Mador, and everything was forgiven.

Now fifteen days before the Feast of the Assumption of our Lady, the king proclaimed a tourney to be held that feast-day at Camelot, whereat himself and the King of Scotland would joust with all who should come against them. So thither went the King of North Wales, and King Anguish of Ireland, and Sir Galahaut the noble prince, and many other nobles of divers countries.

Now, fifteen days before the Feast of the Assumption of our Lady, the king announced a tournament to take place on that feast day at Camelot, where he and the King of Scotland would compete against anyone who challenged them. So, the King of North Wales, King Anguish of Ireland, Sir Galahaut the noble prince, and many other nobles from various countries went there.

And King Arthur made ready to go, and would have had the queen go with him, but she said that she was sick. Sir Lancelot, also, made excuses, saying he was not yet whole of his wounds.

And King Arthur got ready to leave, and wanted the queen to come with him, but she said she was sick. Sir Lancelot also made excuses, saying he wasn’t fully healed from his wounds.

At that the king was passing heavy and grieved, and so departed alone towards Camelot. And by the way he lodged in a town called Astolat, and lay that night in the castle.

At that, the king was feeling sad and upset, and he set off alone towards Camelot. On his way, he stopped in a town called Astolat and spent the night in the castle.

As soon as he had gone, Sir Lancelot said to the queen, "This night I will rest, and to-morrow betimes will I take my way to Camelot; for at these jousts I will be against the king and his fellowship."

As soon as he left, Sir Lancelot said to the queen, "Tonight I will rest, and tomorrow morning I will head to Camelot; for at these tournaments, I will compete against the king and his group."

"Ye may do as ye list," said Queen Guinevere; "but by my counsel ye will not be against the king, for in his company are many hardy knights, as ye well know."

"Do what you want," said Queen Guinevere; "but my advice is that you shouldn't go against the king, because he has many brave knights with him, as you know."

"Madam," said Sir Lancelot, "I pray ye be not displeased with me, for I will take the adventure that God may send me."

"Ma'am," said Sir Lancelot, "I hope you’re not angry with me, because I am going to take whatever adventure God may send my way."

And on the morrow he went to the church and heard mass, and took his leave of the queen, and so departed.

And the next day he went to church, attended mass, said goodbye to the queen, and left.

Then he rode long till he came to Astolat, and there lodged at the castle of an old baron called Sir Bernard of Astolat, which was near the castle where King Arthur lodged. And as Sir Lancelot entered the king espied him, and knew him. Then said he to the knights, "I have just seen a knight who will fight full well at the joust toward which we go."

Then he rode for a long time until he arrived at Astolat, where he stayed at the castle of an old baron named Sir Bernard of Astolat, which was close to the castle where King Arthur was staying. As Sir Lancelot entered, the king spotted him and recognized him. He then said to the knights, "I just saw a knight who will be a great competitor in the joust we're heading to."

"Who is it?" asked they.

"Who is it?" they asked.

"As yet ye shall not know," he answered smiling.

"As of now, you won't know," he replied with a smile.

When Sir Lancelot was in his chamber unarming the old baron came to him, saluting him, though as yet he knew not who he was.

When Sir Lancelot was in his room taking off his armor, the old baron came to him, greeting him, even though he still didn't know who he was.

Now Sir Bernard had a daughter passing beautiful, called the Fair Maid of Astolat, and when she saw Sir Lancelot she loved him from that instant with her whole heart, and could not stay from gazing on him.

Now Sir Bernard had a daughter who was incredibly beautiful, known as the Fair Maid of Astolat, and when she saw Sir Lancelot, she instantly loved him with all her heart and couldn’t help but gaze at him.

On the morrow, Sir Lancelot asked the old baron to lend him a strange shield. "For," said he, "I would be unknown."

On the next day, Sir Lancelot asked the old baron to lend him an unusual shield. "Because," he said, "I want to remain anonymous."

"Sir," said his host, "ye shall have your desire, for here is the shield of my eldest son, Sir Torre, who was hurt the day he was made knight, so that he cannot ride; and his shield, therefore, is not known. And, if it please you, my youngest son, Sir Lavaine, shall ride with you to the jousts, for he is of his age full strong and mighty; and I deem ye be a noble knight, wherefore I pray ye tell me your name."

"Sir," said his host, "you shall have what you want, for here is the shield of my oldest son, Sir Torre, who was injured the day he became a knight, so he cannot ride; and his shield isn’t recognized. If it’s okay with you, my youngest son, Sir Lavaine, will ride with you to the jousts, as he is very strong and capable for his age; and I believe you are a noble knight, so I ask you to tell me your name."

"As to that," said Sir Lancelot, "ye must hold me excused at this time, but if I speed well at the jousts, I will come again and tell you; but in anywise let me have your son, Sir Lavaine, with me, and lend me his brother's shield."

"As for that," said Sir Lancelot, "you'll have to excuse me this time, but if I do well at the jousts, I’ll come back and tell you; however, please let me take your son, Sir Lavaine, with me, and lend me his brother's shield."

Then, ere they departed, came Elaine, the baron's daughter, and said to Sir Lancelot, "I pray thee, gentle knight, to wear my token at to-morrow's tourney."

Then, before they left, Elaine, the baron's daughter, approached Sir Lancelot and said, "I kindly ask you, noble knight, to wear my token at tomorrow's tournament."

"If I should grant you that, fair damsel," said he, "ye might say that I did more for you than ever I have done for lady or damsel."

"If I were to give you that, fair lady," he said, "you could say that I've done more for you than I ever have for any other woman."

Then he bethought him that if he granted her request he would be the more disguised, for never before had he worn any lady's token. So anon he said, "Fair damsel, I will wear thy token on my helmet if thou wilt show it me."

Then he considered that if he granted her request, he would be even more disguised, because he had never worn any lady's token before. So he quickly said, "Fair lady, I will wear your token on my helmet if you will show it to me."

Thereat was she passing glad, and brought him a scarlet sleeve broidered with pearls, which Sir Lancelot took, and put upon his helm. Then he prayed her to keep his shield for him until he came again, and taking Sir Torre's shield instead, rode forth with Sir Lavaine towards Camelot.

There she was, really happy, and she gave him a red sleeve embroidered with pearls, which Sir Lancelot took and put on his helmet. Then he asked her to hold onto his shield until he returned, and taking Sir Torre's shield instead, he rode out with Sir Lavaine towards Camelot.

On the morrow the trumpets blew for the tourney, and there was a great press of dukes and earls and barons and many noble knights; and King Arthur sat in a gallery to behold who did the best. So the King of Scotland and his knights, and King Anguish of Ireland rode forth on King Arthur's side; and against them came the King of North Wales, the King of a Hundred Knights, the King of Northumberland, and the noble prince Sir Galahaut.

On the next day, the trumpets sounded for the tournament, and a large crowd of dukes, earls, barons, and many noble knights gathered; King Arthur sat in a gallery to watch who performed the best. The King of Scotland and his knights, along with King Anguish of Ireland, joined King Arthur's side; opposing them were the King of North Wales, the King of a Hundred Knights, the King of Northumberland, and the noble prince Sir Galahaut.

But Sir Lancelot and Sir Lavaine rode into a little wood behind the party which was against King Arthur, to watch which side should prove the weakest.

But Sir Lancelot and Sir Lavaine rode into a small woods behind the group opposing King Arthur to see which side turned out to be the weakest.

Then was there a strong fight between the two parties, for the King of a Hundred Knights smote down the King of Scotland; and Sir Palomedes, who was on King Arthur's side, overthrew Sir Galahaut. Then came fifteen Knights of the Round Table and beat back the Kings of Northumberland and North Wales with their knights.

Then there was a fierce battle between the two sides, as the King of a Hundred Knights struck down the King of Scotland; and Sir Palomedes, who fought for King Arthur, defeated Sir Galahaut. Then fifteen Knights of the Round Table arrived and pushed back the Kings of Northumberland and North Wales along with their knights.

"Now," said Sir Lancelot to Sir Lavaine, "if ye will help me, ye shall see yonder fellowship go back as fast as they came."

"Now," said Sir Lancelot to Sir Lavaine, "if you help me, you'll see that group leave as quickly as they arrived."

"Sir," said Sir Lavaine, "I will do what I can."

"Sir," said Sir Lavaine, "I'll do what I can."

Then they rode together into the thickest of the press, and there, with one spear, Sir Lancelot smote down five Knights of the Round Table, one after other, and Sir Lavaine overthrew two. And taking another spear, for his own was broken, Sir Lancelot smote down four more knights, and Sir Lavaine a fifth. Then, drawing his sword, Sir Lancelot fought fiercely on the right hand and the left, and unhorsed Sir Safire, Sir Epinogris, and Sir Galleron. At that the Knights of the Round Table withdrew themselves as well as they were able.

Then they rode together into the thick of the action, and there, with one spear, Sir Lancelot took down five Knights of the Round Table, one after another, while Sir Lavaine knocked down two. After breaking his spear, Sir Lancelot grabbed another and took down four more knights, and Sir Lavaine took out a fifth. Then, drawing his sword, Sir Lancelot fought fiercely on both sides, unhorsing Sir Safire, Sir Epinogris, and Sir Galleron. At that moment, the Knights of the Round Table retreated as best as they could.

"Now, mercy," said Sir Gawain, who sat by King Arthur; "what knight is that who doth such marvelous deeds of arms? I should deem him by his force to be Sir Lancelot, but that he wears a lady's token on his helm as never Lancelot doth."

"Now, hold on," said Sir Gawain, who was sitting next to King Arthur. "Which knight is that who performs such amazing feats? I would think he’s Sir Lancelot because of his strength, but he’s wearing a lady's token on his helmet, which Lancelot never does."

"Let him be," said King Arthur; "he will be better known, and do more ere he depart."

"Let him be," said King Arthur; "he'll be better understood and accomplish more before he leaves."

Thus the party against King Arthur prospered at this time, and his knights were sore ashamed. Then Sir Bors, Sir Ector, and Sir Lionel called together the knights of their blood, nine in number, and agreed to join together in one band against the two strange knights. So they encountered Sir Lancelot all at once, and by main force smote his horse to the ground; and by misfortune Sir Bors struck Sir Lancelot through the shield into the side, and the spear broke off and left the head in the wound.

Thus, the group opposing King Arthur was thriving at this time, and his knights felt deeply ashamed. Then Sir Bors, Sir Ector, and Sir Lionel gathered their fellow knights, totaling nine, and decided to unite against the two unknown knights. They confronted Sir Lancelot all at once, and with sheer force, knocked his horse down. Unfortunately, Sir Bors struck Sir Lancelot through his shield into his side, and the spear broke, leaving the tip embedded in the wound.

When Sir Lavaine saw that, he ran to the King of Scotland and struck him off his horse, and brought it to Sir Lancelot, and helped him to mount. Then Sir Lancelot bore Sir Bors and his horse to the ground, and in like manner served Sir Ector and Sir Lionel; and turning upon three other knights he smote them down also; while Sir Lavaine did many gallant deeds.

When Sir Lavaine saw this, he rushed over to the King of Scotland and knocked him off his horse, bringing it to Sir Lancelot and helping him get on. Then Sir Lancelot took Sir Bors and his horse down to the ground, and did the same for Sir Ector and Sir Lionel. He then turned on three other knights and knocked them down too, while Sir Lavaine performed many brave feats.

But feeling himself now sorely wounded Sir Lancelot drew his sword, and proffered to fight with Sir Bors, who, by this time, was mounted anew. And as they met, Sir Ector and Sir Lionel came also, and the swords of all three drave fiercely against him. When he felt their buffets, and his wound that was so grievous, he determined to do all his best while he could yet endure, and smote Sir Bors a blow that bent his head down nearly to the ground and razed his helmet off and pulled him from his horse.

But feeling seriously wounded, Sir Lancelot drew his sword and offered to fight Sir Bors, who had mounted his horse again by this time. As they clashed, Sir Ector and Sir Lionel joined the fray, and the swords of all three struck fiercely against him. When he felt their blows and remembered his severe injury, he resolved to give it his all while he could still hold on, and he hit Sir Bors with a blow that bent his head almost to the ground, knocked his helmet off, and unseated him from his horse.

Then rushing at Sir Ector and Sir Lionel, he smote them down, and might have slain all three, but when he saw their faces his heart forbade him. Leaving them, therefore, on the field, he hurled into the thickest of the press, and did such feats of arms as never were beheld before.

Then he charged at Sir Ector and Sir Lionel, knocking them down, and could have killed all three, but when he saw their faces, his heart wouldn’t let him. So, leaving them on the battlefield, he threw himself into the thick of the fight and performed feats of bravery like nothing ever seen before.

And Sir Lavaine was with him through it all, and overthrew ten knights; but Sir Lancelot smote down more than thirty, and most of them Knights of the Round Table.

And Sir Lavaine was with him the whole time, and took down ten knights; but Sir Lancelot knocked down more than thirty, and most of them were Knights of the Round Table.

Then the king ordered the trumpets to blow for the end of the tourney, and the prize to be given by the heralds to the knight with the white shield who bore the red sleeve.

Then the king ordered the trumpets to sound for the end of the tournament, and the prize to be awarded by the heralds to the knight with the white shield who wore the red sleeve.

But ere Sir Lancelot was found by the heralds, came the King of the Hundred Knights, the King of North Wales, the King of Northumberland, and Sir Galahaut, and said to him, "Fair knight, God bless thee, for much have ye done this day for us; wherefore we pray ye come with us and receive the honor and the prize as ye have worshipfully deserved it."

But before the heralds found Sir Lancelot, the King of the Hundred Knights, the King of North Wales, the King of Northumberland, and Sir Galahaut arrived and said to him, "Noble knight, God bless you, for you have done a great deal for us today; therefore, we ask you to come with us and receive the honor and the prize that you have rightfully earned."

"My fair lords," said Sir Lancelot, "wit ye well if I have deserved thanks, I have sore bought them, for I am like never to escape with my life; therefore pray ye let me depart, for I am sore hurt. I take no thought of honor, for I had rather rest me than be lord of all the world." And therewith he groaned piteously, and rode a great gallop away from them.

"My good lords," Sir Lancelot said, "you should know that if I deserve thanks, I've paid a heavy price for them, as I'm barely clinging to life; so please let me go, because I'm badly injured. I don't care about honor; I'd rather rest than be the ruler of the entire world." With that, he groaned painfully and rode away at a fast gallop.

And Sir Lavaine rode after him, sad at heart, for the broken spear still stuck fast in Sir Lancelot's side, and the blood streamed sorely from the wound. Anon they came near a wood more than a mile from the lists, where he knew he could be hidden.

And Sir Lavaine rode after him, feeling heavy-hearted, because the broken spear was still lodged in Sir Lancelot's side, and blood was streaming out of the wound. Soon they reached a forest more than a mile away from the tournament grounds, where he knew he could find cover.

Then said he to Sir Lavaine, "O gentle knight, help me to pull out this spear-head from my side, for the pain thereof nigh killeth me."

Then he said to Sir Lavaine, "Oh gentle knight, please help me pull this spearhead out of my side, because the pain is almost killing me."

"Dear lord," said he, "I fain would help ye; but I dread to draw it forth, lest ye should die for loss of blood."

"Dear lord," he said, "I really want to help you; but I’m afraid to pull it out, in case you bleed to death."

"I charge you as you love me," said Sir Lancelot, "draw it out."

"I urge you, as you care for me," said Sir Lancelot, "pull it out."

So they dismounted, and with a mighty wrench Sir Lavaine drew the spear forth from Sir Lancelot's side; whereat he gave a marvelous great shriek and ghastly groan, and all his blood leaped forth in a full stream. Then he sank swooning to the earth, with a visage pale as death.

So they got off their horses, and with a powerful pull, Sir Lavaine pulled the spear out from Sir Lancelot's side; at that, Lancelot let out a terrible scream and an awful groan, and all his blood gushed out in a full stream. Then he collapsed to the ground, his face as pale as death.

"Alas!" cried Sir Lavaine, "what shall I do now?"

"Wow!" exclaimed Sir Lavaine, "what am I supposed to do now?"

And then he turned his master's face towards the wind, and sat by him nigh half an hour while he lay quiet as one dead. But at the last he lifted up his eyes, and said, "I pray ye bear me on my horse again, and lead me to a hermit who dwelleth within two miles hence, for he was formerly a knight of Arthur's court, and now hath mighty skill in medicine and herbs."

And then he turned his master's face toward the wind and sat with him for nearly half an hour while he lay as still as if he were dead. But finally, he lifted his eyes and said, "Please carry me back on my horse and take me to a hermit who lives about two miles from here, because he used to be a knight at Arthur's court and now has great skill in medicine and herbs."

So with great pain Sir Lavaine got him to his horse, and led him to the hermitage within the wood, beside a stream. Then knocked he with his spear upon the door, and prayed to enter. At that a child came out, to whom he said, "Fair child, pray the good man thy master to come hither and let in a knight who is sore wounded."

So with great effort, Sir Lavaine helped him onto his horse and led him to the hermitage in the woods, next to a stream. Then, he knocked on the door with his spear and asked to be let in. A child came out, to whom he said, "Dear child, please ask your master to come here and let in a knight who is badly injured."

Anon came out the knight-hermit, whose name was Sir Baldwin, and asked, "Who is this wounded knight?"

Anon came out the knight-hermit, whose name was Sir Baldwin, and asked, "Who is this wounded knight?"

"I know not," said Sir Lavaine, "save that he is the noblest knight I ever met with, and hath done this day such marvelous deeds of arms against King Arthur that he hath won the prize of the tourney."

"I don't know," said Sir Lavaine, "except that he is the noblest knight I've ever met, and he's done such amazing feats of arms today against King Arthur that he's won the prize of the tournament."

Then the hermit gazed long on Sir Lancelot, and hardly knew him, so pale he was with bleeding, yet said he at the last, "Who art thou, lord?"

Then the hermit stared at Sir Lancelot for a long time and barely recognized him, he was so pale from bleeding, yet finally said, "Who are you, my lord?"

Sir Lancelot answered feebly, "I am a stranger knight adventurous, who laboreth through many realms to win worship."

Sir Lancelot replied weakly, "I am a wandering knight on a quest for glory, traveling through many lands to earn respect."

"Why hidest thou thy name, dear lord, from me?" cried Sir Baldwin; "for in sooth I know thee now to be the noblest knight in all the world—my lord Sir Lancelot du Lake, with whom I long had fellowship at the Round Table."

"Why are you hiding your name from me, dear lord?" Sir Baldwin exclaimed. "Because I truly know that you are the noblest knight in the world—my lord Sir Lancelot du Lake, with whom I have long shared fellowship at the Round Table."

"Since ye know me, fair sir," said he, "I pray ye, for Christ's sake, to help me if ye may."

"Since you know me, kind sir," he said, "I ask you, for Christ's sake, to help me if you can."

"Doubt not," replied he, "that ye shall live and fare right well."

"Don't doubt," he replied, "that you will live and do very well."

Then he staunched his wound, and gave him strong medicines and cordials till he was refreshed from his faintness and came to himself again.

Then he stopped the bleeding, gave him strong medicines and drinks until he felt better and regained his strength.

Now after the jousting was done King Arthur held a feast, and asked to see the knight with the red sleeve that he might take the prize. So they told him how that knight had ridden from the field wounded nigh to death. "These be the worst tidings I have heard for many years," cried out the king; "I would not for my kingdom he were slain."

Now that the jousting was over, King Arthur hosted a feast and requested to see the knight with the red sleeve so he could award the prize. They informed him that the knight had left the field badly wounded, close to death. "This is the worst news I've heard in many years," the king exclaimed; "I wouldn't want him killed for my kingdom."

Then all men asked, "Know ye him, lord?"

Then everyone asked, "Do you know him, sir?"

"I may not tell ye at this time," said he; "but would to God we had good tidings of him."

"I can’t share that with you right now," he said; "but I wish to God we had some good news about him."

Then Sir Gawain prayed leave to go and seek that knight, which the king gladly gave him. So forthwith he mounted and rode many leagues round Camelot, but could hear no tidings.

Then Sir Gawain asked for permission to go find that knight, which the king gladly granted him. So right away, he got on his horse and rode many miles around Camelot, but he couldn't find any news.

Within two days thereafter King Arthur and his knights returned from Camelot, and Sir Gawain chanced to lodge at Astolat, in the house of Sir Bernard. And there came in the fair Elaine to him, and prayed him news of the tournament, and who won the prize. "A knight with a white shield," said he, "who bare a red sleeve in his helm, smote down all comers and won the day."

Within two days after that, King Arthur and his knights came back from Camelot, and Sir Gawain happened to stay at Astolat, in Sir Bernard's house. Then the beautiful Elaine came to him and asked for news about the tournament and who won the prize. "A knight with a white shield," he said, "who had a red sleeve on his helmet, knocked down all challengers and won the day."

At that the visage of Elaine changed suddenly from white to red, and heartily she thanked our Lady.

At that, Elaine's face suddenly shifted from pale to flushed, and she sincerely thanked our Lady.

Then said Sir Gawain, "Know ye that knight?" and urged her till she told him that it was her sleeve he wore. So Sir Gawain knew it was for love that she had given it; and when he heard she kept his proper shield he prayed to see it.

Then Sir Gawain said, "Do you recognize that knight?" and pressed her until she revealed that it was her sleeve he was wearing. So Sir Gawain realized it was out of love that she had given it to him; and when he heard she was keeping his own shield, he asked to see it.

As soon as it was brought he saw Sir Lancelot's arms thereon, and cried, "Alas! now am I heavier of heart than ever yet."

As soon as it was brought in, he saw Sir Lancelot's emblem on it and exclaimed, "Oh no! Now my heart is heavier than it's ever been."

"Wherefore?" said fair Elaine.

"Why?" said fair Elaine.

"Fair damsel," answered he, "know ye not that the knight ye love is of all knights the noblest in the world, Sir Lancelot du Lake? With all my heart I pray ye may have joy of each other, but hardly dare I think that ye shall see him in this world again, for he is so sore wounded he may scarcely live, and is gone out of sight where none can find him."

"Fair lady," he replied, "don’t you know that the knight you love is the noblest of all knights, Sir Lancelot du Lake? I truly hope you find happiness together, but I can hardly believe you will see him in this world again, for he is severely wounded and might not survive, and he has gone where no one can find him."

Then was Elaine nigh mad with grief and sorrow, and with piteous words she prayed her father that she might go seek Sir Lancelot and her brother. So in the end her father gave her leave, and she departed.

Then Elaine was almost mad with grief and sorrow, and with tearful words she begged her father to let her go find Sir Lancelot and her brother. In the end, her father agreed, and she left.

And on the morrow came Sir Gawain to the court, and told how he had found Sir Lancelot's shield in Elaine's keeping, and how it was her sleeve which he had worn; whereat all marveled, for Sir Lancelot had done for her more than he had ever done for any woman.

And the next day, Sir Gawain arrived at the court and shared how he had discovered Sir Lancelot's shield with Elaine, and that it was her sleeve he had worn; everyone was amazed because Sir Lancelot had done more for her than he had ever done for any other woman.

But when Queen Guinevere heard it she was beside herself with wrath, and sending privily for Sir Bors, who sorrowed sorely that through him Sir Lancelot had been hurt—"Have ye now heard," said she, "how falsely Sir Lancelot hath betrayed me?"

But when Queen Guinevere heard this, she was filled with rage, and secretly called for Sir Bors, who was deeply troubled that Sir Lancelot had been injured because of him. "Have you heard," she said, "how dishonestly Sir Lancelot has betrayed me?"

"I beseech thee, madam," said he, "speak not so, for else I may not hear thee."

"I beg you, ma'am," he said, "don't speak like that, or I might not be able to hear you."

"Shall I not call him traitor," cried she, "who hath worn another lady's token at the jousting?"

"Should I not call him a traitor," she exclaimed, "who has worn another woman's token at the jousting?"

"Be sure he did it, madam, for no ill intent," replied Sir Bors, "but that he might be better hidden, for never did he in that wise before."

"He's definitely guilty, ma'am, but not for any bad reason," Sir Bors replied, "just so he could stay better hidden, since he’s never acted that way before."

"Now shame on him, and thee who wouldest help him," cried the queen.

"Now shame on him, and on you who would help him," cried the queen.

"Madam, say what ye will," said he; "but I must haste to seek him, and God send me soon good tidings of him."

"Ma'am, say what you want," he said; "but I have to hurry to find him, and may God give me good news about him soon."

So with that he departed to find Sir Lancelot.

So with that, he left to find Sir Lancelot.

Now Elaine had ridden with full haste from Astolat, and come to Camelot, and there she sought throughout the country for any news of Lancelot. And so it chanced that Sir Lavaine was riding near the hermitage to exercise his horse, and when she saw him she ran up and cried aloud, "How doth my lord Sir Lancelot fare?"

Now Elaine had hurriedly ridden from Astolat and arrived at Camelot, where she searched the area for any news of Lancelot. As it happened, Sir Lavaine was riding near the hermitage to exercise his horse, and when she spotted him, she ran up and called out, "How is my lord Sir Lancelot doing?"

Then said Sir Lavaine, marveling greatly, "How know ye my lord's name, fair sister?"

Then Sir Lavaine said, amazed, "How do you know my lord's name, fair sister?"

So she told him how Sir Gawain had lodged with Sir Bernard, and knew Sir Lancelot's shield.

So she told him how Sir Gawain had stayed with Sir Bernard and recognized Sir Lancelot's shield.

Then prayed she to see his lord forthwith, and when she came to the hermitage and found him lying there sore sick and bleeding, she swooned for sorrow. Anon, as she revived, Sir Lancelot kissed her, and said, "Fair maid, I pray ye take comfort, for, by God's grace, I shall be shortly whole of this wound, and if ye be come to tend me, I am heartily bounden to your great kindness." Yet was he sore vexed to hear Sir Gawain had discovered him, for he knew Queen Guinevere would be full wroth because of the red sleeve.

Then she prayed to see his lord right away, and when she arrived at the hermitage and found him lying there seriously ill and bleeding, she fainted from grief. As she came to, Sir Lancelot kissed her and said, "Fair maid, I ask you to find comfort, for, with God's help, I will soon heal from this wound, and if you’ve come to care for me, I am truly grateful for your kindness." Yet he was very troubled to hear that Sir Gawain had found him, knowing that Queen Guinevere would be very angry because of the red sleeve.

So Elaine rested in the hermitage, and ever night and day she watched and waited on Sir Lancelot, and would let none other tend him. And as she saw him more, the more she set her love upon him, and could by no means withdraw it. Then said Sir Lancelot to Sir Lavaine, "I pray thee set some to watch for the good knight Sir Bors, for as he hurt me, so will he surely seek for me."

So Elaine stayed in the hermitage, and every night and day she watched over Sir Lancelot, allowing no one else to care for him. The more she saw him, the more she fell in love with him, and she couldn't pull herself away from those feelings. Then Sir Lancelot said to Sir Lavaine, "Please send someone to look out for the good knight Sir Bors, because just as he hurt me, he will definitely come looking for me."

Now Sir Bors by this time had come to Camelot, and was seeking for Sir Lancelot everywhere, so Sir Lavaine soon found him, and brought him to the hermitage.

Now Sir Bors had arrived at Camelot and was searching for Sir Lancelot everywhere, so Sir Lavaine quickly found him and took him to the hermitage.

And when he saw Sir Lancelot pale and feeble, he wept for pity and sorrow that he had given him that grievous wound. "God send thee a right speedy cure, dear lord," said he; "for I am of all men most unhappy to have wounded thee, who art our leader, and the noblest knight in all the world."

And when he saw Sir Lancelot looking pale and weak, he cried out of pity and sadness for giving him that terrible wound. "God grant you a quick recovery, dear lord," he said; "for I am the unluckiest of all men to have hurt you, who are our leader and the greatest knight in the world."

"Fair cousin," said Sir Lancelot, "be comforted, for I have but gained what I sought, and it was through pride that I was hurt, for had I warned ye of my coming it had not been; wherefore let us speak of other things."

"Hey, cousin," said Sir Lancelot, "don't be upset. I only got what I wanted, and it was my pride that caused the trouble. If I had warned you I was coming, none of this would have happened. So let's talk about something else."

So they talked long together, and Sir Bors told him of the queen's anger. Then he asked Sir Lancelot, "Was it from this maid who tendeth you so lovingly ye had the token?"

So they talked for a long time, and Sir Bors told him about the queen's anger. Then he asked Sir Lancelot, "Was it from this maid who cares for you so lovingly that you got the token?"

"Yea," said Sir Lancelot; "and would I could persuade her to withdraw her love from me."

"Yeah," said Sir Lancelot; "I wish I could convince her to stop loving me."

"Why should ye do so?" said Sir Bors; "for she is passing fair and loving. I would to heaven ye could love her."

"Why should you do that?" said Sir Bors; "because she is incredibly beautiful and loving. I wish you could love her."

"That may not be," replied he; "but it repenteth me in sooth to grieve her."

"That may not be," he replied; "but I genuinely regret making her sad."

Then they talked of other matters, and of the great jousting at Allhallowtide next coming, between King Arthur and the King of North Wales.

Then they talked about other things, including the big jousting event coming up at Allhallowtide between King Arthur and the King of North Wales.

"Abide with me till then," said Sir Lancelot, "for by that time I trust to be all whole again, and we will go together."

"Stay with me until then," said Sir Lancelot, "because by that time I hope to be fully healed, and we can go together."

So Elaine daily and nightly tending him, within a month he felt so strong he deemed himself full cured. Then on a day, when Sir Bors and Sir Lavaine were from the hermitage, and the knight-hermit also was gone forth, Sir Lancelot prayed Elaine to bring him some herbs from the forest.

So Elaine took care of him day and night, and within a month, he felt so strong that he believed he was fully healed. Then one day, when Sir Bors and Sir Lavaine were away from the hermitage, and the knight-hermit was also out, Sir Lancelot asked Elaine to bring him some herbs from the forest.

When she was gone he rose and made haste to arm himself, and try if he were whole enough to joust, and mounted on his horse, which was fresh with lack of labor for so long a time. But when he set his spear in the rest and tried his armor, the horse bounded and leapt beneath him, so that Sir Lancelot strained to keep him back. And therewith his wound, which was not wholly healed, burst forth again, and with a mighty groan he sank down swooning on the ground.

When she left, he got up quickly to gear up and see if he was fit enough to joust. He got on his horse, which was fresh from not being used for so long. But when he positioned his spear and tested his armor, the horse reared and jumped underneath him, forcing Sir Lancelot to struggle to hold him back. At that moment, his wound, which hadn’t completely healed, reopened, and with a loud groan, he collapsed, fainting on the ground.

At that came fair Elaine and wept and piteously moaned to see him lying so. And when Sir Bors and Sir Lavaine came back, she called them traitors to let him rise, or to know any rumor of the tournament. Anon the hermit returned and was wroth to see Sir Lancelot risen, but within a while he recovered him from his swoon and staunched the wound. Then Sir Lancelot told him how he had risen of his own will to assay his strength for the tournament. But the hermit bade him rest and let Sir Bors go alone, for else would he sorely peril his life. And Elaine, with tears, prayed him in the same wise, so that Sir Lancelot in the end consented.

At that moment, fair Elaine came and cried, heartbroken to see him lying there. When Sir Bors and Sir Lavaine returned, she accused them of being traitors for allowing him to get up or for not knowing any news about the tournament. Soon the hermit came back and was angry to see Sir Lancelot up, but after a while he helped him come to his senses and treated his wound. Then Sir Lancelot explained that he had gotten up on his own to test his strength for the tournament. But the hermit told him to rest and let Sir Bors go by himself, reminding him that otherwise he would seriously risk his life. Elaine, tearfully, begged him in the same way, and in the end, Sir Lancelot agreed.

So Sir Bors departed to the tournament, and there he did such feats of arms that the prize was given between him and Sir Gawain, who did like valiantly.

So Sir Bors headed to the tournament, and there he performed such outstanding acts of bravery that the prize was awarded to him and Sir Gawain, who also fought valiantly.

And when all was over he came back and told Sir Lancelot, and found him so nigh well that he could rise and walk. And within a while thereafter he departed from the hermitage and went with Sir Bors, Sir Lavaine, and fair Elaine to Astolat, where Sir Bernard joyfully received them.

And when it was all done, he returned and told Sir Lancelot, finding him well enough to rise and walk. Soon after, he left the hermitage and went with Sir Bors, Sir Lavaine, and the beautiful Elaine to Astolat, where Sir Bernard warmly welcomed them.

But after they had lodged there a few days Sir Lancelot and Sir Bors must needs depart and return to King Arthur's court.

But after they had stayed there for a few days, Sir Lancelot and Sir Bors had to leave and return to King Arthur's court.

So when Elaine knew Sir Lancelot must go, she came to him and said, "Have mercy on me, fair knight, and let me not die for your love."

So when Elaine realized Sir Lancelot had to leave, she approached him and said, "Have mercy on me, kind knight, and don't let me die for your love."

Then said Sir Lancelot, very sad at heart, "Fair maid, what would ye that I should do for you?"

Then Sir Lancelot said, very sadly, "Fair maiden, what would you like me to do for you?"

"If I may not be your wife, dear lord," she answered, "I must die."

"If I can't be your wife, dear lord," she replied, "then I will die."

"Alas!" said he, "I pray heaven that may not be; for in sooth I may not be your husband. But fain would I show ye what thankfulness I can for all your love and kindness to me. And ever will I be your knight, fair maiden; and if it chance that ye shall ever wed some noble knight, right heartily will I give ye such a dower as half my lands will bring."

"Alas!" he said, "I hope that doesn't happen; because honestly, I can't be your husband. But I would love to show you my gratitude for all your love and kindness. I will always be your knight, fair maiden; and if you ever marry some noble knight, I will gladly give you a dowry that will be worth half my lands."

"Alas! what shall that aid me?" answered she; "for I must die," and therewith she fell to the earth in a deep swoon.

"Alas! How will that help me?" she replied. "For I must die," and with that, she collapsed to the ground in a deep faint.

Then was Sir Lancelot passing heavy of heart, and said to Sir Bernard and Sir Lavaine, "What shall I do for her?"

Then Sir Lancelot, feeling very weighed down with sadness, said to Sir Bernard and Sir Lavaine, "What should I do for her?"

"Alas!" said Sir Bernard, "I know well that she will die for your sake."

"Unfortunately!" said Sir Bernard, "I know she will die because of you."

And Sir Lavaine said, "I marvel not that she so sorely mourneth your departure, for truly I do as she doth, and since I once have seen you, lord, I cannot leave you."

And Sir Lavaine said, "I’m not surprised she’s mourning your departure so deeply, because I feel the same way as she does, and ever since I first saw you, my lord, I can’t bring myself to leave you."

So anon, with a full sorrowful heart, Sir Lancelot took his leave, and Sir Lavaine rode with him to the court. And King Arthur and the Knights of the Round Table joyed greatly to see him whole of his wound, but Queen Guinevere was sorely wroth, and neither spake with him nor greeted him.

So soon, with a heavy heart, Sir Lancelot said his goodbyes, and Sir Lavaine rode with him to the court. King Arthur and the Knights of the Round Table were very happy to see he had healed from his wound, but Queen Guinevere was extremely angry and neither spoke to him nor acknowledged him.

Now when Sir Lancelot had departed, the Maid of Astolat could neither eat, nor drink, nor sleep for sorrow; and having thus endured ten days, she felt within herself that she must die.

Now that Sir Lancelot had left, the Maid of Astolat could neither eat, nor drink, nor sleep because of her sadness; and after enduring this for ten days, she knew deep down that she would die.

Then sent she for a holy man, and was shriven and received the sacrament. But when he told her she must leave her earthly thoughts, she answered, "Am I not an earthly woman? What sin is it to love the noblest knight of all the world? And, by my truth, I am not able to withstand the love whereof I die; wherefore, I pray the High Father of Heaven to have mercy on my soul."

Then she called for a holy man and confessed her sins and received the sacrament. But when he told her she needed to let go of her earthly thoughts, she replied, "Am I not a woman of this earth? What sin is it to love the greatest knight in the world? And, honestly, I cannot resist this love that is killing me; so, I pray to the High Father of Heaven to have mercy on my soul."

Then she besought Sir Bernard to indite a letter as she should devise, and said, "When I am dead put this within my hand, and dress me in my fairest clothes, and lay me in a barge all covered with black samite, and steer it down the river till it reach the court. Thus, father, I beseech thee let it be."

Then she asked Sir Bernard to write a letter as she would direct, and said, "When I am dead, put this in my hand, dress me in my finest clothes, and lay me in a boat covered with black fabric, and guide it down the river until it reaches the court. So, father, I beg you to do it this way."

Then, full of grief, he promised her it should be so. And anon she died, and all the household made a bitter lamentation over her.

Then, filled with sorrow, he promised her it would be done. Soon after, she died, and everyone in the household mourned her deeply.

Then did they as she had desired, and laid her body, richly dressed, upon a bed within the barge, and a trusty servant steered it down the river towards the court.

Then they did as she had asked and placed her body, dressed beautifully, on a bed inside the barge, while a loyal servant navigated it down the river toward the court.

Now King Arthur and Queen Guinevere sat at a window of the palace, and saw the barge come floating with the tide, and marveled what was laid therein, and sent a messenger to see, who, soon returning, prayed them to come forth.

Now King Arthur and Queen Guinevere sat by a palace window and watched as the barge floated in with the tide. They were curious about what was inside, so they sent a messenger to find out. The messenger soon returned, asking them to come outside.

When they came to the shore they marveled greatly, and the king asked of the serving-man who steered the barge what this might mean. But he made signs that he was dumb, and pointed to the letter in the damsel's hands. So King Arthur took the letter from the hand of the corpse, and found thereon written, "To the noble knight, Sir Lancelot du Lake."

When they reached the shore, they were in awe, and the king asked the servant who had steered the boat what this could mean. The servant gestured that he couldn't speak and pointed to the letter in the girl's hands. So King Arthur took the letter from the corpse's hand and saw it said, "To the noble knight, Sir Lancelot du Lake."

Then was Sir Lancelot sent for, and the letter read aloud by a clerk, and thus it was written:—

Then Sir Lancelot was called for, and a clerk read the letter aloud, and it was written like this:—

"Most noble knight, my lord Sir Lancelot, now hath death forever parted us. I, whom men call the Maid of Astolat, set my love upon you, and have died for your sake. This is my last request, that ye pray for my soul and give me burial. Grant me this, Sir Lancelot, as thou art a peerless knight."

"Most honorable knight, my lord Sir Lancelot, death has now separated us forever. I, known as the Maid of Astolat, have placed my love on you and have died for your sake. This is my final request: please pray for my soul and give me a proper burial. Grant me this, Sir Lancelot, as you are an unmatched knight."

At these words the queen and all the knights wept sore for pity.

At these words, the queen and all the knights cried out of compassion.

Then said Sir Lancelot, "My lord, I am right heavy for the death of this fair damsel; and God knoweth that right unwillingly I caused it, for she was good as she was fair, and much was I beholden to her; but she loved me beyond measure, and asked me that I could not give her."

Then Sir Lancelot said, "My lord, I am truly saddened by the death of this beautiful young woman; and God knows I didn't want it to happen at all, for she was as kind as she was beautiful, and I owed her a lot. But she loved me deeply and wanted something from me that I couldn’t give her."

"Ye might have shown her gentleness enough to save her life," answered the queen.

"You could have shown her enough kindness to save her life," replied the queen.

"Madam," said he, "she would but be repaid by my taking her to wife, and that I could not grant her, for love cometh of the heart and not by constraint."

"Ma'am," he said, "she would only be satisfied if I married her, and I can't give her that because love comes from the heart, not by force."

"That is true," said the king; "for love is free."

"That’s true," said the king; "because love is free."

"I pray you," said Sir Lancelot, "let me now grant her last asking, to be buried by me."

"I ask you," said Sir Lancelot, "please let me grant her final request, to be buried next to me."

So on the morrow, he caused her body to be buried richly and solemnly, and ordained masses for her soul, and made great sorrow over her.

So the next day, he arranged for her body to be buried in a lavish and respectful way, organized masses for her soul, and expressed deep sadness over her loss.

Then the queen sent for Sir Lancelot, and prayed his pardon for her wrath against him without cause. "This is not the first time it hath been so," answered he; "yet must I ever bear with ye, and so do I now forgive you."

Then the queen called for Sir Lancelot and asked for his forgiveness for being angry with him for no reason. "This isn't the first time it’s happened," he replied, "but I always have to put up with you, and I forgive you now."

So Queen Guinevere and Sir Lancelot were made friends again; but anon such favor did she show him, as in the end brought many evils on them both and all the realm.

So Queen Guinevere and Sir Lancelot became friends again; but soon she showed him such favor that, in the end, it brought many troubles for both of them and all the kingdom.


XV

THE WAR BETWEEN ARTHUR AND LANCELOT AND THE PASSING OF ARTHUR

Within a while thereafter was a jousting at the court, wherein Sir Lancelot won the prize. And two of those he smote down were Sir Agravaine, the brother of Sir Gawain, and Sir Modred, his false brother—King Arthur's son by Belisent. And because of his victory they hated Sir Lancelot, and sought how they might injure him.

Within a while after that, there was a jousting tournament at the court, in which Sir Lancelot won the prize. Two of the knights he defeated were Sir Agravaine, the brother of Sir Gawain, and Sir Modred, his treacherous brother—King Arthur's son by Belisent. Because of his victory, they hated Sir Lancelot and looked for ways to harm him.

So on a night, when King Arthur was hunting in the forest, and the queen sent for Sir Lancelot to her chamber, they two espied him; and thinking now to make a scandal and a quarrel between Lancelot and the king, they found twelve others, and said Sir Lancelot was ever now in the queen's chamber, and King Arthur was dishonored.

So one night, while King Arthur was out hunting in the forest, the queen called for Sir Lancelot to come to her room. They spotted him and decided to create a scandal and conflict between Lancelot and the king. They gathered twelve others and claimed that Sir Lancelot was always in the queen's chamber, which dishonored King Arthur.

Then, all armed, they came suddenly round the queen's door, and cried, "Traitor! now art thou taken."

Then, all armed, they suddenly burst around the queen's door and shouted, "Traitor! You're caught now."

"Madam, we be betrayed," said Sir Lancelot; "yet shall my life cost these men dear."

"Ma'am, we've been betrayed," said Sir Lancelot; "but my life will make these men pay dearly."

Then did the queen weep sore, and dismally she cried, "Alas! there is no armor here whereby ye might withstand so many; wherefore ye will be slain, and I be burnt for the dread crime they will charge on me."

Then the queen cried hard and said sadly, "Oh no! There’s no armor here that can protect you from so many; you will be killed, and I will be punished for the terrible crime they’ll accuse me of."

But while she spake the shouting of the knights was heard without, "Traitor, come forth, for now thou art snared!"

But while she was speaking, the shouting of the knights was heard outside, "Traitor, come out, for now you are trapped!"

"Better were twenty deaths at once than this vile outcry," said Sir Lancelot.

"Better to face twenty deaths at once than to endure this terrible outcry," said Sir Lancelot.

Then he kissed her and said, "Most noble lady, I beseech ye, as I have ever been your own true knight, take courage; pray for my soul if I be now slain, and trust my faithful friends, Sir Bors and Sir Lavaine, to save you from the fire."

Then he kissed her and said, "Most noble lady, I ask you, as I have always been your true knight, be brave; pray for my soul if I am now slain, and trust my loyal friends, Sir Bors and Sir Lavaine, to save you from the fire."

But ever bitterly she wept and moaned, and cried, "Would God that they would take and slay me, and that thou couldest escape."

But she cried and moaned bitterly, saying, "I wish they would just kill me so you could get away."

"That shall never be," said he. And wrapping his mantle round his arm he unbarred the door a little space, so that but one could enter.

"That will never happen," he said. Wrapping his cloak around his arm, he opened the door just enough for one person to get in.

Then first rushed in Sir Chalaunce, a full strong knight, and lifted up his sword to smite Sir Lancelot; but lightly he avoided him, and struck Sir Chalaunce, with his hand, such a sore buffet on the head as felled him dead upon the floor.

Then Sir Chalaunce charged in first, a very strong knight, and raised his sword to strike Sir Lancelot; but Lancelot quickly dodged him and hit Sir Chalaunce with such a heavy blow to the head that it knocked him dead to the floor.

Then Sir Lancelot pulled in his body and barred the door again, and dressed himself in his armor, and took his drawn sword in his hand.

Then Sir Lancelot pulled back his body, shut the door again, put on his armor, and took his sword in hand.

But still the knights cried mightily without the door, "Traitor, come forth!"

But still the knights shouted loudly outside the door, "Traitor, come out!"

"Be silent and depart," replied Sir Lancelot; "for be ye sure ye will not take me, and to-morrow will I meet ye face to face before the king."

"Be quiet and leave," replied Sir Lancelot; "because you can be sure you won't catch me, and tomorrow I will meet you face to face in front of the king."

"Ye shall have no such grace," they cried; "but we will slay thee, or take thee as we list."

"You're not getting any grace from us," they shouted; "instead, we'll kill you or take you as we please."

"Then save yourselves who may," he thundered, and therewith suddenly unbarred the door and rushed forth at them. And at the first blow he slew Sir Agravaine, and after him twelve other knights, with twelve more mighty buffets. And none of all escaped him save Sir Modred, who, sorely wounded, flew away for life.

"Then save yourselves, whoever can," he shouted, and with that, he quickly unbarred the door and charged at them. With the first strike, he killed Sir Agravaine, and then took down twelve more knights with twelve powerful blows. None escaped him except for Sir Modred, who, badly injured, fled for his life.

Then returned he to the queen, and said, "Now, madam, will I depart, and if ye be in any danger I pray ye come to me."

Then he returned to the queen and said, "Now, ma'am, I'm going to leave, and if you're in any danger, please come to me."

"Surely will I stay here, for I am queen," she answered; "yet if to-morrow any harm come to me I trust to thee for rescue."

"Of course, I will stay here, because I am the queen," she replied. "But if anything happens to me tomorrow, I trust you to save me."

"Have ye no doubt of me," said he, "for ever while I live am I your own true knight."

"Don't doubt me," he said, "because for as long as I live, I am your true knight."

Therewith he took his leave, and went and told Sir Bors and all his kindred of this adventure. "We will be with thee in this quarrel," said they all; "and if the queen be sentenced to the fire, we certainly will save her."

Therewith he took his leave and went to tell Sir Bors and all his relatives about this adventure. "We will stand by you in this conflict," they all said; "and if the queen is sentenced to be burned, we will definitely save her."

Meanwhile Sir Modred, in great fear and pain, fled from the court, and rode until he found King Arthur, and told him all that had befallen. But the king would scarce believe him till he came and saw the bodies of Sir Agravaine and all the other knights.

Meanwhile, Sir Modred, filled with fear and pain, escaped from the court and rode until he found King Arthur. He told the king everything that had happened. However, the king could hardly believe him until he came and saw the bodies of Sir Agravaine and all the other knights.

Then felt he in himself that all was true, and with his passing grief his heart nigh broke. "Alas!" cried he, "now is the fellowship of the Round Table forever broken: yea, woe is me! I may not with my honor spare my queen."

Then he felt deep inside that everything was true, and with his overwhelming grief, his heart nearly broke. "Oh no!" he cried, "the fellowship of the Round Table is now forever shattered: woe is me! I cannot, without losing my honor, spare my queen."

Anon it was ordained that Queen Guinevere should be burned to death, because she had dishonored King Arthur.

Anon it was decided that Queen Guinevere would be burned to death, because she had dishonored King Arthur.

But when Sir Gawain heard thereof, he came before the king, and said, "My lord, I counsel thee be not too hasty in this matter, but stay the judgment of the queen a season, for it may well be that Sir Lancelot was in her chamber for no evil, seeing she is greatly beholden to him for so many deeds done for her sake, and peradventure she had sent to him to thank him, and did it secretly that she might avoid slander."

But when Sir Gawain heard this, he approached the king and said, "My lord, I advise you not to rush into a decision on this matter. Instead, delay the queen's judgment for a while. It’s possible that Sir Lancelot was in her room without any bad intentions, especially since she owes him a lot for all he has done for her. Perhaps she asked him to come in order to thank him privately to avoid gossip."

But King Arthur answered, full of grief, "Alas! I may not help her; she is judged as any other woman."

But King Arthur replied, filled with sorrow, "Oh no! I can't help her; she is judged like any other woman."

Then he required Sir Gawain and his brethren, Sir Gaheris and Sir Gareth, to be ready to bear the queen to-morrow to the place of execution.

Then he asked Sir Gawain and his brothers, Sir Gaheris and Sir Gareth, to be ready to take the queen tomorrow to the place of execution.

"Nay, noble lord," replied Sir Gawain, "that can I never do; for neither will my heart suffer me to see the queen die, nor shall men ever say I was of your counsel in this matter."

"Nah, noble lord," replied Sir Gawain, "I can never do that; for my heart won't let me watch the queen die, and no one will ever say I was part of your counsel in this matter."

Then said his brother, "Ye may command us to be there, but since it is against our will, we will be without arms, that we may do no battle against her."

Then his brother said, "You can order us to be there, but since we don’t want to, we’ll be unarmed so that we won’t fight against her."

So on the morrow was Queen Guinevere led forth to die by fire, and a mighty crowd was there, of knights and nobles, armed and unarmed. And all the lords and ladies wept sore at that piteous sight. Then was she shriven by a priest, and the men came nigh to bind her to the stake and light the fire.

So the next day, Queen Guinevere was taken out to be burned at the stake, and a huge crowd gathered, both armed and unarmed knights and nobles. All the lords and ladies cried hard at the heartbreaking sight. Then a priest heard her confession, and the men came close to tie her to the stake and set the fire.

At that Sir Lancelot's spies rode hastily and told him and his kindred, who lay hidden in a wood hard by; and suddenly, with twenty knights, he rushed into the midst of all the throng to rescue her.

At that moment, Sir Lancelot's spies quickly rode in and informed him and his family, who were hiding nearby in the woods; and suddenly, with twenty knights, he charged into the crowd to save her.

But certain of King Arthur's knights rose up and fought with them, and there was a full great battle and confusion. And Sir Lancelot drave fiercely here and there among the press, and smote on every side, and at every blow struck down a knight, so that many were slain by him and his fellows.

But some of King Arthur's knights stood up and fought against them, and there was a huge battle and chaos. Sir Lancelot pushed fiercely through the crowd, striking in every direction, and with each blow took down a knight, so that many were killed by him and his companions.

Then was the queen set free, and caught up on Sir Lancelot's saddle and fled away with him and all his company to the Castle of La Joyous Garde.

Then the queen was set free, jumped onto Sir Lancelot's saddle, and fled with him and his whole group to the Castle of La Joyous Garde.

Now so it chanced that, in the turmoil of the fighting, Sir Lancelot had unawares struck down and slain the two good knights Sir Gareth and Sir Gaheris, knowing it not, for he fought wildly, and saw not that they were unarmed.

Now it happened that, in the chaos of battle, Sir Lancelot unknowingly struck down and killed the two brave knights Sir Gareth and Sir Gaheris, not realizing it, as he fought fiercely and did not notice that they were unarmed.

When King Arthur heard thereof, and of all that battle, and the rescue of the queen, he sorrowed heavily for those good knights, and was passing wroth with Lancelot and the queen.

When King Arthur heard about it all, and about that battle, and the rescue of the queen, he was deeply saddened for those noble knights and was really angry with Lancelot and the queen.

But when Sir Gawain heard of his brethren's death he swooned for sorrow and wrath, for he wist that Sir Lancelot had killed them in malice. And as soon as he recovered he ran in to the king, and said, "Lord king and uncle, hear this oath which now I swear, that from this day I will not fail Sir Lancelot till one of us hath slain the other. And now, unless ye haste to war with him, that we may be avenged, will I myself alone go after him."

But when Sir Gawain heard about his brothers' deaths, he fainted from grief and anger because he knew that Sir Lancelot had killed them out of spite. As soon as he came to, he rushed to the king and said, "Lord king and uncle, listen to this oath I now take: from this day forward, I will not rest until one of us has killed the other. And now, unless you hurry to go to war with him so we can get our revenge, I will go after him myself."

Then the king, full of wrath and grief, agreed thereto, and sent letters throughout the realm to summon all his knights, and went with a vast army to besiege the Castle of La Joyous Garde. And Sir Lancelot, with his knights, mightily defended it; but never would he suffer any to go forth and attack one of the king's army, for he was right loth to fight against him.

Then the king, filled with anger and sadness, agreed to it and sent out letters across the kingdom to call all his knights together. He marched with a large army to lay siege to the Castle of La Joyous Garde. Sir Lancelot, along with his knights, fiercely defended the castle; however, he would never allow anyone to go out and attack one of the king's troops, as he was very reluctant to fight against him.

So when fifteen weeks were passed, and King Arthur's army wasted itself in vain against the castle, for it was passing strong, it chanced upon a day Sir Lancelot was looking from the walls and espied King Arthur and Sir Gawain close beside.

So after fifteen weeks had gone by, and King Arthur's army was struggling in vain against the castle, since it was really strong, one day Sir Lancelot was looking from the walls and spotted King Arthur and Sir Gawain right next to each other.

"Come forth, Sir Lancelot," said King Arthur right fiercely, "and let us two meet in the midst of the field."

"Step forward, Sir Lancelot," King Arthur said fiercely, "and let's meet in the middle of the field."

"God forbid that I should encounter with thee, lord, for thou didst make me a knight," replied Sir Lancelot.

"God forbid that I should meet you, my lord, for you made me a knight," replied Sir Lancelot.

Then cried Sir Gawain, "Shame on thee, traitor and false knight, yet be ye well assured we will regain the queen and slay thee and thy company; yea, double shame on ye to slay my brother Gaheris unarmed, Sir Gareth also, who loved ye so well. For that treachery, be sure I am thine enemy till death."

Then shouted Sir Gawain, "Shame on you, traitor and false knight, but know that we will rescue the queen and kill you and your men; yes, double shame on you for killing my unarmed brother Gaheris, and Sir Gareth as well, who cared for you so much. Because of that betrayal, know that I will be your enemy until death."

"Alas!" cried Sir Lancelot, "that I hear such tidings, for I knew not I had slain those noble knights, and right sorely now do I repent it with a heavy heart. Yet abate thy wrath, Sir Gawain, for ye know full well I did it by mischance, for I loved them ever as my own brothers."

"Alas!" exclaimed Sir Lancelot, "I can't believe I've heard such news, for I didn't realize I had killed those noble knights, and I deeply regret it with a heavy heart. But calm your anger, Sir Gawain, because you know very well that it was an accident; I always loved them like my own brothers."

"Thou liest, false recreant," cried Sir Gawain, fiercely.

"You’re lying, you false coward," shouted Sir Gawain fiercely.

At that Sir Lancelot was wroth, and said, "I well see thou art now mine enemy, and that there can be no more peace with thee, or with my lord the king, else would I gladly give back the queen."

At that, Sir Lancelot was angry and said, "I can see you are now my enemy, and there can't be any more peace between us, or with my lord the king; otherwise, I would gladly return the queen."

Then the king would fain have listened to Sir Lancelot, for more than all his own wrong did he grieve at the sore waste and damage of the realm, but Sir Gawain persuaded him against it, and ever cried out foully on Sir Lancelot.

Then the king would have liked to hear from Sir Lancelot, for more than his own troubles, he was upset about the serious destruction and damage to the kingdom. But Sir Gawain convinced him otherwise and constantly spoke badly of Sir Lancelot.

When Sir Bors and the other knights of Lancelot's party heard the fierce words of Sir Gawain, they were passing wroth, and prayed to ride forth and be avenged on him, for they were weary of so long waiting to no good. And in the end Sir Lancelot, with a heavy heart, consented.

When Sir Bors and the other knights from Lancelot's group heard Sir Gawain's fierce words, they were extremely angry and asked to ride out for revenge, as they were tired of waiting without any results. In the end, Sir Lancelot, feeling heavyhearted, agreed.

So on the morrow the hosts on either side met in the field, and there was a great battle. And Sir Gawain prayed his knights chiefly to set upon Sir Lancelot; but Sir Lancelot commanded his company to forbear King Arthur and Sir Gawain.

So the next day, the armies on both sides gathered in the field, and a big battle took place. Sir Gawain urged his knights to mainly attack Sir Lancelot; however, Sir Lancelot instructed his men to avoid fighting King Arthur and Sir Gawain.

So the two armies jousted together right fiercely, and Sir Gawain proffered to encounter with Sir Lionel, and overthrew him. But Sir Bors and Sir Blamor, and Sir Palomedes, who were on Sir Lancelot's side, did great feats of arms, and overthrew many of King Arthur's knights.

So the two armies clashed fiercely, and Sir Gawain challenged Sir Lionel and defeated him. But Sir Bors, Sir Blamor, and Sir Palomedes, who were on Sir Lancelot's side, achieved great feats of strength and took down many of King Arthur's knights.

Then the king came forth against Sir Lancelot, but Sir Lancelot forbore him and would not strike again.

Then the king stepped forward to confront Sir Lancelot, but Sir Lancelot held back and refused to strike again.

At that Sir Bors rode up against the king and smote him down. But Sir Lancelot cried, "Touch him not on pain of thy head," and going to King Arthur he alighted and gave him his own horse, saying, "My lord, I pray thee forbear this strife, for it can bring to neither of us any honor."

At that moment, Sir Bors charged at the king and knocked him down. But Sir Lancelot shouted, "Don’t touch him, or you’ll pay for it!" He then went to King Arthur, got off his horse, and offered it to him, saying, "My lord, I ask you to end this fighting, as it won’t bring honor to either of us."

And when King Arthur looked on him the tears came to his eyes as he thought of his noble courtesy, and he said within himself, "Alas! that ever this war began."

And when King Arthur looked at him, tears filled his eyes as he thought about his noble kindness, and he said to himself, "What a shame that this war ever started."

But on the morrow Sir Gawain led forth the army again, and Sir Bors commanded on Sir Lancelot's side. And they two struck together so fiercely that both fell to the ground sorely wounded; and all the day they fought till night fell, and many were slain on both sides, yet in the end neither gained the victory.

But the next day, Sir Gawain led the army again, and Sir Bors commanded on Sir Lancelot's side. The two of them clashed so fiercely that they both fell to the ground seriously injured; they fought throughout the day until night fell, and many were killed on both sides, yet in the end, neither achieved victory.

But by now the fame of this fierce war spread through all Christendom, and when the Pope heard thereof he sent a Bull, and charged King Arthur to make peace with Lancelot, and receive back Queen Guinevere; and for the offense imputed to her absolution should be given by the Pope.

But by now the news of this fierce war spread throughout all of Christendom, and when the Pope heard about it, he sent a Bull, instructing King Arthur to make peace with Lancelot and welcome back Queen Guinevere; and for the alleged offense against her, the Pope would grant absolution.

Thereto would King Arthur straightway have obeyed, but Sir Gawain ever urged him to refuse.

King Arthur would have agreed right away, but Sir Gawain constantly pushed him to say no.

When Sir Lancelot heard thereof, he wrote thus to the king: "It was never in my thought, lord, to withhold thy queen from thee; but since she was condemned for my sake to death, I deemed it but a just and knightly part to rescue her therefrom; wherefore I recommend me to your grace, and within eight days will I come to thee and bring the queen in safety."

When Sir Lancelot heard this, he wrote to the king: "It was never my intention, my lord, to keep your queen from you; but since she was sentenced to death because of me, I thought it only fair and honorable to save her. So I ask for your understanding, and I will come to you in eight days and bring the queen back safely."

Then, within eight days, as he had said, Sir Lancelot rode from out the castle with Queen Guinevere, and a hundred knights for company, each carrying an olive branch, in sign of peace. And so they came to the court, and found King Arthur sitting on his throne, with Sir Gawain and many other knights around him. And when Sir Lancelot entered with the queen, they both kneeled down before the king.

Then, within eight days, as he had promised, Sir Lancelot rode out of the castle with Queen Guinevere, accompanied by a hundred knights, each carrying an olive branch as a sign of peace. They arrived at the court and found King Arthur sitting on his throne, surrounded by Sir Gawain and many other knights. When Sir Lancelot and the queen entered, they both knelt down before the king.

Anon Sir Lancelot rose and said, "My lord, I have brought hither my lady the queen again, as right requireth, and by commandment of the Pope and you. I pray ye take her to your heart again and forget the past. For myself I may ask nothing, and for my sin I shall have sorrow and sore punishment; yet I would to heaven I might have your grace."

Anon, Sir Lancelot stood up and said, "My lord, I have brought back my lady the queen, as is right and as commanded by the Pope and you. I ask that you accept her with your heart again and put the past behind you. As for myself, I can ask for nothing, and for my wrongs, I will face sorrow and harsh punishment; still, I wish to God that I could have your favor."

But ere the king could answer, for he was moved with pity at his words, Sir Gawain cried aloud, "Let the king do as he will, but be sure, Sir Lancelot, thou and I shall never be accorded while we live, for thou has slain my brethren traitorously and unarmed."

But before the king could respond, feeling compassion for his words, Sir Gawain shouted, "Let the king do as he pleases, but know this, Sir Lancelot, you and I will never be at peace while we live, for you have treacherously killed my brothers while they were unarmed."

"As heaven is my help," replied Sir Lancelot, "I did it ignorantly, for I loved them well, and while I live I shall bewail their death; but to make war with me were no avail, for I must needs fight with thee if thou assailest, and peradventure I might kill thee also, which I were right loth to do."

"As God is my witness," replied Sir Lancelot, "I did it without realizing, because I cared for them deeply, and for as long as I live, I will mourn their deaths; but waging war against me would be pointless, because I would have to fight you if you attacked, and perhaps I might end up killing you too, which I would hate to do."

"I will forgive thee never," cried Sir Gawain, "and if the king accordeth with thee he shall lose my service."

"I will never forgive you," shouted Sir Gawain, "and if the king agrees with you, he will lose my loyalty."

Then the knights who stood near tried to reconcile Sir Gawain to Sir Lancelot, but he would not hear them. So, at the last, Sir Lancelot said, "Since peace is vain, I will depart, lest I bring more evil on my fellowship."

Then the knights nearby tried to get Sir Gawain to make up with Sir Lancelot, but he wouldn’t listen. Finally, Sir Lancelot said, "Since peace is pointless, I’ll leave, so I don’t cause more trouble for my friends."

And as he turned to go, the tears fell from him, and he said, "Alas, most noble Christian realm, which I have loved above all others, now shall I see thee never more!" Then said he to the queen, "Madam, now must I leave ye and this noble fellowship forever. And, I beseech ye, pray for me, and if ye ever be defamed of any, let me hear thereof, and as I have been ever thy true knight in right and wrong, so will I be again."

And as he turned to leave, tears fell from his eyes, and he said, "Oh, most noble Christian realm, which I have loved above all others, I shall never see you again!" Then he said to the queen, "Madam, I must now leave you and this noble company forever. I ask you, please pray for me, and if anyone ever speaks ill of you, let me know, and just as I have always been your true knight in both good times and bad, I will be again."

With that he kneeled and kissed King Arthur's hands, and departed on his way. And there was none in all that court, save Sir Gawain alone, but wept to see him go.

With that, he knelt and kissed King Arthur's hands, then left on his way. And there was no one in that entire court, except for Sir Gawain, who didn't cry to see him go.

So he returned with all his knights to the Castle of La Joyous Garde, and, for his sorrow's sake, he named it Dolorous Garde thenceforth.

So he went back with all his knights to the Castle of La Joyous Garde, and, because of his sorrow, he renamed it Dolorous Garde from then on.

Anon he left the realm, and went with many of his fellowship beyond the sea to France, and there divided all his lands among them equally, he sharing but as the rest.

Soon he left the kingdom and traveled with many of his companions across the sea to France, where he evenly divided all his lands among them, taking only as much as the others.

And from that time forward peace had been between him and King Arthur, but for Sir Gawain, who left the king no rest, but constantly persuaded him that Lancelot was raising mighty hosts against him.

And from that time on, there was peace between him and King Arthur, except for Sir Gawain, who didn't let the king rest and kept insisting that Lancelot was gathering powerful armies against him.

So in the end his malice overcame the king, who left the government in charge of Modred, and made him guardian of the queen, and went with a great army to invade Sir Lancelot's lands.

So in the end, his spite got the better of the king, who left the government in the hands of Modred, making him the guardian of the queen, and then went with a large army to invade Sir Lancelot's territories.

Yet Sir Lancelot would make no war upon the king, and sent a message to gain peace on any terms King Arthur chose. But Sir Gawain met the herald ere he reached the king, and sent him back with taunting and bitter words. Whereat Sir Lancelot sorrowfully called his knights together and fortified the Castle of Benwicke, and there was shortly besieged by the army of King Arthur.

Yet Sir Lancelot would not wage war against the king and sent a message to secure peace on whatever terms King Arthur wanted. However, Sir Gawain confronted the herald before he could reach the king and sent him back with mocking and harsh words. In response, Sir Lancelot sadly gathered his knights and strengthened the Castle of Benwick, where he was soon besieged by King Arthur's army.

And every day Sir Gawain rode up to the walls, and cried out foully on Sir Lancelot, till, upon a time, Sir Lancelot answered him that he would meet him in the field and put his boasting to the proof. So it was agreed on both sides that there should none come nigh them or separate them till one had fallen or yielded; and they two rode forth.

And every day Sir Gawain rode up to the walls and shouted insults at Sir Lancelot, until one time, Sir Lancelot replied that he would meet him in the field and prove his words. It was agreed by both sides that no one would come near or separate them until one of them fell or surrendered; and the two rode out.

Then did they wheel their horses apart, and turning, came together as it had been thunder, so that both horses fell, and both their lances broke. At that they drew their swords and set upon each other fiercely, with passing grievous strokes.

Then they turned their horses apart and, turning back, charged at each other like thunder, causing both horses to fall and both lances to break. At that, they drew their swords and fiercely attacked each other with devastating blows.

Now Sir Gawain had through magic a marvelous great gift. For every day, from morning till noon, his strength waxed to the might of seven men, but after that waned to his natural force. Therefore till noon he gave Sir Lancelot many mighty buffets, which scarcely he endured. Yet greatly he forbore Sir Gawain, for he was aware of his enchantment, and smote him slightly till his own knights marveled. But after noon Sir Gawain's strength sank fast, and then, with one full blow, Sir Lancelot laid him on the earth. Then Sir Gawain cried out, "Turn not away, thou traitor knight, but slay me if thou wilt, or else I will arise and fight with thee again some other time."

Now Sir Gawain had an amazing magical gift. Every day, from morning until noon, his strength grew to the power of seven men, but then it would drop back to his normal level. So, until noon, he dealt Sir Lancelot many powerful blows that he could barely handle. However, Sir Lancelot held back because he knew about Gawain's enchantment and only hit him lightly, which made his own knights stare in astonishment. But after noon, Sir Gawain's strength quickly faded, and then, with one full strike, Sir Lancelot knocked him to the ground. Sir Gawain shouted, "Don't turn away, you traitor knight! Either kill me if you want, or I’ll get back up and fight you again another time."

"Sir knight," replied Sir Lancelot, "I never yet smote a fallen man."

"Sir knight," replied Sir Lancelot, "I've never hit someone who's already down."

At that they bore Sir Gawain sorely wounded to his tent, and King Arthur withdrew his men, for he was loth to shed the blood of so many knights of his own fellowship.

At that, they carried Sir Gawain, badly injured, to his tent, and King Arthur pulled back his men, as he was reluctant to spill the blood of so many knights from his own group.

But now came tidings to King Arthur from across the sea, which caused him to return in haste. For thus the news ran, that no sooner was Sir Modred set up in his regency, than he had forged false tidings from abroad that the king had fallen in a battle with Sir Lancelot. Whereat he had proclaimed himself the king, and had been crowned at Canterbury, where he had held a coronation feast for fifteen days. Then he had gone to Winchester, where Queen Guinevere abode, and had commanded her to be his wife; whereto, for fear and sore perplexity, she had feigned consent, but, under pretext of preparing for the marriage, had fled in haste to London and taken shelter in the Tower, fortifying it and providing it with all manner of victuals, and defending it against Sir Modred, and answering to all his threats that she would rather slay herself than be his queen.

But now news reached King Arthur from across the sea that made him rush back. The word was that as soon as Sir Modred took over as regent, he had spread false rumors from overseas that the king had died fighting Sir Lancelot. This prompted him to declare himself king and get crowned in Canterbury, where he threw a coronation feast that lasted fifteen days. After that, he went to Winchester, where Queen Guinevere was staying, and ordered her to be his wife. Out of fear and confusion, she pretended to agree but, under the excuse of preparing for the wedding, quickly fled to London and sought refuge in the Tower, reinforcing it and stocking it with all kinds of supplies while defending it against Sir Modred. She responded to all his threats by saying she would rather take her own life than be his queen.

Thus was it written to King Arthur. Then, in passing great wrath and haste, he came with all his army swiftly back from France and sailed to England. But when Sir Modred heard thereof, he left the Tower and marched with all his host to meet the king at Dover.

Thus it was written to King Arthur. Then, in a fit of anger and urgency, he quickly returned with his entire army from France and sailed to England. But when Sir Modred heard about it, he left the Tower and marched with all his forces to meet the king at Dover.

Then fled Queen Guinevere to Amesbury to a nunnery, and there she clothed herself in sackcloth, and spent her time in praying for the king and in good deeds and fasting. And in that nunnery evermore she lived, sorely repenting and mourning for her sin, and for the ruin she had brought on all the realm. And there anon she died.

Then Queen Guinevere ran away to a convent in Amesbury, where she put on sackcloth and dedicated her time to praying for the king, doing good deeds, and fasting. She lived in that convent, deeply regretting and mourning her sin and the devastation she had caused throughout the kingdom. And there, she soon died.

And when Sir Lancelot heard thereof, he put his knightly armor off, and bade farewell to all his kin, and went a mighty pilgrimage for many years, and after lived a hermit till his death.

And when Sir Lancelot heard this, he took off his knightly armor, said goodbye to all his family, and went on a long pilgrimage for many years. After that, he lived as a hermit until his death.

When Sir Modred came to Dover, he found King Arthur and his army but just landed; and there they fought a fierce and bloody battle, and many great and noble knights fell on both sides.

When Sir Modred arrived in Dover, he found King Arthur and his army had just landed; and there they fought a fierce and bloody battle, resulting in many great and noble knights falling on both sides.

But the king's side had the victory, for he was beyond himself with might and passion, and all his knights so fiercely followed him, that, in spite of all their multitude, they drove Sir Modred's army back with fearful wounds and slaughter, and slept that night upon the battle-field.

But the king's side won the victory, as he was filled with strength and passion, and all his knights followed him so fiercely that, despite their large number, they pushed Sir Modred's army back with devastating injuries and deaths, and spent that night on the battlefield.

But Sir Gawain was smitten by an arrow in the wound Sir Lancelot gave him, and wounded to the death. Then was he borne to the king's tent, and King Arthur sorrowed over him as it had been his own son. "Alas!" said he; "in Sir Lancelot and in you I had my greatest earthly joy, and now is all gone from me."

But Sir Gawain was struck by an arrow in the wound Sir Lancelot had given him, and he was fatally injured. Then he was carried to the king's tent, and King Arthur mourned for him as if he were his own son. "Oh no!" he said; "in Sir Lancelot and in you, I found my greatest happiness on this earth, and now it’s all lost to me."

And Sir Gawain answered, with a feeble voice, "My lord and king, I know well my death is come, and through my own wilfulness, for I am smitten in the wound Sir Lancelot gave me. Alas! that I have been the cause of all this war, for but for me thou hadst been now at peace with Lancelot, and then had Modred never done this treason. I pray ye, therefore, my dear lord, be now agreed with Lancelot, and tell him, that although he gave me my death-wound, it was through my own seeking; wherefore I beseech him to come back to England, and here to visit my tomb, and pray for my soul."

And Sir Gawain replied weakly, "My lord and king, I know my time has come, and it's because of my own stubbornness, as I'm injured by the wound Sir Lancelot gave me. I'm so sorry that I caused this entire war, because if it weren't for me, you would have been at peace with Lancelot, and Modred would never have committed this betrayal. So I ask you, my dear lord, to reconcile with Lancelot, and let him know that even though he dealt me my fatal wound, it was my own fault; therefore, I urge him to return to England, to visit my grave, and pray for my soul."

When he had thus spoken, Sir Gawain gave up his ghost, and the king grievously mourned for him.

When he had said this, Sir Gawain passed away, and the king mourned deeply for him.

Then they told him that the enemy had camped on Barham Downs, whereat, with all his hosts, he straightway marched there, and fought again a bloody battle, and overthrew Sir Modred utterly. Howbeit, he raised yet another army, and retreating ever from before the king, increased his numbers as he went, till at the farthest west in Lyonesse, he once more made a stand.

Then they informed him that the enemy had set up camp on Barham Downs, so he immediately marched there with all his forces and engaged in another bloody battle, completely defeating Sir Modred. However, he raised yet another army, consistently retreating from the king while increasing his numbers until, at the farthest west in Lyonesse, he made a stand once more.

Now, on the night of Trinity Sunday, being the eve of the battle, King Arthur had a vision, and saw Sir Gawain in a dream, who warned him not to fight with Modred on the morrow, else he would be surely slain; and prayed him to delay till Lancelot and his knights should come to aid him.

Now, on the night of Trinity Sunday, the evening before the battle, King Arthur had a vision and saw Sir Gawain in a dream. Gawain warned him not to fight Modred the next day, or he would surely be killed, and he urged Arthur to wait until Lancelot and his knights arrived to help him.

So when King Arthur woke he told his lords and knights that vision, and all agreed to wait the coming of Sir Lancelot. Then a herald was sent with a message of truce to Sir Modred, and a treaty was made that neither army should assail the other.

So when King Arthur woke up, he told his lords and knights about the vision, and everyone agreed to wait for Sir Lancelot to arrive. Then a herald was sent with a message of peace to Sir Modred, and a treaty was established that neither army would attack the other.

But when the treaty was agreed upon, and the heralds returned, King Arthur said to his knights, "Beware, lest Sir Modred deceive us, for I in no wise trust him, and if swords be drawn be ready to encounter!" And Sir Modred likewise gave an order, that if any man of the king's army drew his sword, they should begin to fight.

But when the treaty was finalized and the messengers came back, King Arthur said to his knights, "Watch out, in case Sir Modred tries to trick us, because I don’t trust him at all. If swords are drawn, be ready to fight!" And Sir Modred also instructed that if anyone from the king's army drew their sword, they should start fighting.

And as it chanced, a knight of the king's side was bitten by an adder in the foot, and hastily drew forth his sword to slay it. That saw Sir Modred, and forthwith commanded all his army to assail the king's.

And as it happened, a knight on the king's side was bitten by a snake in the foot and quickly pulled out his sword to kill it. Sir Modred saw this and immediately ordered his entire army to attack the king's.

So both sides rushed to battle, and fought passing fiercely. And when the king saw there was no hope to stay them, he did right mightily and nobly as a king should do, and ever, like a lion, raged in the thickest of the press, and slew on the right hand and on the left, till his horse went fetlock deep in blood. So all day long they fought, and stinted not till many a noble knight was slain.

So both sides charged into battle and fought fiercely. When the king saw there was no way to hold them back, he fought bravely and nobly, as a king should, and like a lion, he raged in the thick of the struggle, striking down enemies on both sides until his horse was deep in blood. They fought all day long and didn’t stop until many noble knights were killed.

But the king was passing sorrowful to see his trusty knights lie dead on every side. And at the last but two remained beside him, Sir Lucan, and his brother, Sir Bedivere, and both were sorely wounded.

But the king was deeply saddened to see his loyal knights lying dead all around him. In the end, only two remained by his side—Sir Lucan and his brother, Sir Bedivere—and both were severely wounded.

"Now am I come to mine end," said King Arthur; "but, lo! that traitor Modred liveth yet, and I may not die till I have slain him. Now, give me my spear, Sir Lucan."

"Now I have come to my end," said King Arthur; "but look! that traitor Modred is still alive, and I cannot die until I have killed him. Now, give me my spear, Sir Lucan."

"Lord, let him be," replied Sir Lucan; "for if ye pass through this unhappy day, ye shall be right well revenged upon him. My good lord, remember well your dream, and what the spirit of Sir Gawain did fore-warn ye."

"Lord, just leave him be," Sir Lucan replied. "If you get through this tough day, you'll have your revenge on him. My good lord, remember your dream and what Sir Gawain's spirit warned you about."

"Betide me life, betide me death," said the king; "now I see him yonder alone, he shall never escape my hands, for at a better vantage shall I never have him."

"Whether it's life or death for me," said the king, "now that I see him over there all alone, he will never get away from me, because I will never have a better opportunity."

"God speed you well," said Sir Bedivere.

"Good luck to you," said Sir Bedivere.

Then King Arthur got his spear in both his hands, and ran towards Sir Modred, crying, "Traitor, now is thy death-day come!" And when Sir Modred heard his words, and saw him come, he drew his sword and stood to meet him. Then King Arthur smote Sir Modred through the body more than a fathom. And when Sir Modred felt he had his death wound, he thrust himself with all his might up to the end of King Arthur's spear, and smote his father, Arthur, with his sword upon the head, so that it pierced both helm and brain-pan.

Then King Arthur took his spear with both hands and charged at Sir Modred, shouting, "Traitor, today is your day to die!" When Sir Modred heard this and saw him coming, he drew his sword and prepared to face him. King Arthur struck Sir Modred with his spear, penetrating him deeply. When Sir Modred realized he was mortally wounded, he pushed himself forward with all his strength onto the end of King Arthur's spear and struck his father, Arthur, on the head with his sword, piercing both his helmet and skull.

And therewith Sir Modred fell down stark dead to the earth, and King Arthur fell down also in a swoon, and swooned many times.

And with that, Sir Modred fell down dead on the ground, and King Arthur also collapsed, fainting several times.

Then Sir Lucan and Sir Bedivere came and bare him away to a little chapel by the sea-shore. And there Sir Lucan sank down with the bleeding of his own wounds, and fell dead.

Then Sir Lucan and Sir Bedivere arrived and carried him to a small chapel by the seashore. There, Sir Lucan collapsed from his own injuries and died.

And King Arthur lay long in a swoon, and when he came to himself, he found Sir Lucan lying dead beside him, and Sir Bedivere weeping over the body of his brother.

And King Arthur lay unconscious for a long time, and when he came to, he found Sir Lucan dead beside him, and Sir Bedivere crying over his brother's body.

Then said the king to Sir Bedivere, "Weeping will avail no longer, else would I grieve forevermore. Alas! now is the fellowship of the Round Table dissolved forever, and all my realm I have so loved is wasted with war. But my time hieth fast, wherefore take thou Excalibur, my good sword, and go therewith to yonder water-side and throw it in, and bring me word what thing thou seest."

Then the king said to Sir Bedivere, "Crying won't help anymore, or else I would cry forever. Unfortunately, the fellowship of the Round Table is gone for good, and everything I've cherished in my kingdom is ruined by war. But my time is running out, so take Excalibur, my good sword, go to the water's edge, throw it in, and tell me what you see."

So Sir Bedivere departed; but as he went he looked upon the sword, the hilt whereof was all inlaid with precious stones exceeding rich. And presently he said within himself, "If I now throw this sword into the water, what good should come of it?" So he hid the sword among the reeds, and came again to the king.

So Sir Bedivere left; but as he walked away, he looked at the sword, the hilt of which was covered in incredibly valuable jewels. He thought to himself, "If I throw this sword into the water now, what good will come of it?" So he hid the sword among the reeds and went back to the king.

"What sawest thou?" said he to Sir Bedivere.

"What did you see?" he asked Sir Bedivere.

"Lord," said he, "I saw nothing else but wind and waves."

"Lord," he said, "I saw nothing but wind and waves."

"Thou hast untruly spoken," said the king; "wherefore go lightly back and throw it in, and spare not."

"You're speaking untruths," said the king; "so go back quickly and throw it in, and don't hold back."

Then Sir Bedivere returned again, and took the sword up in his hand; but when he looked on it, he thought it sin and shame to throw away a thing so noble. Wherefore he hid it yet again, and went back to the king.

Then Sir Bedivere came back again and picked up the sword; but when he saw it, he felt it was wrong and shameful to throw away something so noble. So he hid it once more and returned to the king.

"What saw ye?" said King Arthur.

"What did you see?" asked King Arthur.

"Lord," answered he, "I saw nothing but the water ebbing and flowing."

"Lord," he replied, "I only saw the water coming in and going out."

"Oh, traitor and untrue!" cried out the king; "twice hast thou now betrayed me. Art thou called of men a noble knight, and wouldest betray me for a jewelled sword? Now, therefore, go again for the last time, for thy tarrying hath put me in sore peril of my life, and I fear my wound hath taken cold; and if thou do it not this time, by my faith I will arise and slay thee with my hands."

"Oh, traitor and deceitful one!" the king shouted; "you've betrayed me twice now. Are you considered a noble knight, and would you really betray me for a jeweled sword? So, go again one last time, because your delay has put me in great danger, and I fear my wound has gotten worse; if you don’t do it this time, I swear I will get up and kill you with my own hands."

Then Sir Bedivere ran quickly and took up the sword, and went down to the water's edge, and bound the girdle round the hilt and threw it far into the water. And lo! an arm and hand came forth above the water, and caught the sword, and brandished it three times, and vanished.

Then Sir Bedivere hurriedly picked up the sword, went down to the water's edge, tied the girdle around the hilt, and threw it far into the water. And behold! An arm and hand emerged from the water, seized the sword, waved it three times, and disappeared.

So Sir Bedivere came again to the king and told him what he had seen.

So Sir Bedivere returned to the king and shared what he had seen.

"Help me from hence," said King Arthur; "for I dread me I have tarried over long."

"Help me from here," said King Arthur; "for I'm afraid I've stayed too long."

Then Sir Bedivere took the king up in his arms, and bore him to the water's edge. And by the shore they saw a barge with three fair queens therein, all dressed in black, and when they saw King Arthur they wept and wailed.

Then Sir Bedivere lifted the king in his arms and carried him to the water's edge. By the shore, they saw a barge with three beautiful queens in it, all dressed in black, and when they saw King Arthur, they cried and mourned.

"Now put me in the barge," said he to Sir Bedivere, and tenderly he did so.

"Now put me in the boat," he said to Sir Bedivere, and he did so gently.

Then the three queens received him, and he laid his head upon the lap of one of them, who cried, "Alas! dear brother, why have ye tarried so long, for your wound hath taken cold?"

Then the three queens welcomed him, and he rested his head on the lap of one of them, who exclaimed, "Oh no! dear brother, why have you taken so long? Your wound has gotten cold!"

With that the barge put from the land, and when Sir Bedivere saw it departing, he cried with a bitter cry, "Alas! my lord King Arthur, what shall become of me now ye have gone from me?"

With that, the barge pushed away from the shore, and when Sir Bedivere saw it leaving, he shouted with a painful cry, "Oh no! My lord King Arthur, what will happen to me now that you have left?"

"Comfort ye," said King Arthur, "and be strong, for I may no more help ye. I go to the Vale of Avilion to heal me of my grievous wound, and if ye see me no more, pray for my soul."

"Take comfort," said King Arthur, "and be strong, for I can no longer help you. I am going to the Vale of Avalon to heal my serious wound, and if you never see me again, please pray for my soul."

Then the three queens kneeled down around the king and sorely wept and wailed, and the barge went forth to sea, and departed slowly out of Sir Bedivere's sight.

Then the three queens knelt around the king and cried bitterly, and the boat sailed out to sea, slowly disappearing from Sir Bedivere's view.

THE END


Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!